Skip to main content

Full text of "The Catholic educational review"

See other formats


Digitized  by  the  Internet  Archive 

in  2007  with  funding  from 

IVIicrosoft  Corporation 


http://www.archive.org/details/catholiceducatio02cathuoft 


The  Catholic 
Educational  Review 


VOLUME  II 

June-December 

1911 


Published  Monthly  Except  July  and  August 


THE  Catholic  Education  Press 

Under  the  Direction  of  the 
DEPARTMENT  OF  EDUCATION 

The  Catholic  University  of  America,  Washington,  D.  C. 


EDITORS 

Edward  A.  Pace,  Ph.  D.,  S.  T.  D.,  Professor  of  Philosophy 
Thomas  Edward  Shields,  Ph.  D.,  LL.  D.  Professor  of  Education 


COPYRIGHT.  1911,  BY  THE  CATHOLIC  EDUCA.TION  PRESS 


CONTRIBUTORS 

Burns,  Jame:s  A.,  Report  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools  605 

Carrigan,  Thomas  C,  William  Callyhan  Robinson 919 

Charity,  A  Sister  of.  The  Educational  Work  of  New  York 

Sisters  of  Charity 793 

Corcoran,  C.  M.,  Relation  of  the  Seminary  to  the  General  Edu- 
cational Problem,  considered  from  the  Seminary  View- 
point   875 

Currier,  Chari.es  Warren,  Education  in  South  America 699 

DoNNELivY,  Francis  P.,  Splitting  the  Difference  in  Education  488 

Generose,  Sr.  M.,  Discussion   550 

The  Conduct  of  the  Teacher  in  the  Class- 
room   711 

Hartigan,  James  A.,  Twentieth  Century  Praise  of  Books 518 

HoivY  Cross,  A  Sister  of.  The  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross—  627 

A  Hasty  Inference 923 

Holy  Name,  A  Sister  of.  What  the   First   Summer   School 

at   the    Catholic   University   of 
America  Was  to  the  Students  673 
The  Work  of  the  Sisters  of  the 

Holy  Names 888 

JuiviAN,  Brother,  A  Tripartite  Aid  to  Religious  Education 909 

McCoRMiCK,  Patrick  J.,  Current  Events__559,  662,  759,  854,  950 

Retardation     and     Elimination     of 

Pupils  in  Our  Schools 641 

Education  of  the  Laity  in  the  Mid- 
dle   Ages ^'^' 

McClorey,  J.  A.,  The  Education  of  the  Priest  of  To-day 786 

Nolle,  Lambert,  Doctor  Lorenz  Kellner 682 

O'DoNNELiy,  Charles  L.,  Reading  in  Secondary  Schools  and 

Colleges    898 

O'Hara,  Edwin  V.,  The  Diocesan  Teachers'  Institute 481 

Ott,  Michael,  Benedictine  Education  in  the  United  States.-  499 
Pace,  Edward  A.,  The  Seminary  and  the  Educatron  Problem  577 

Religion  in  Education 769 

Shahan,  Thomas  J.,  The  Summer  School 593 


484  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

of  the  Institute,  for  no  matter  how  thoroughly  the  lec- 
turer may  know  his  subject,  he  may  fail  to  present  it  so 
as  to  be  useful  to  the  teachers.  He  must  bear  in  mind 
that  the  primary  purpose  of  the  Institute  is  inspirational 
and  consequently,  that  he  is  not  to  present  a  course  of 
lectures  furnishing  detailed  information  about  the  sub- 
ject in  hand,  nor  is  he  concerned  exclusively  with  the 
method  of  presenting  his  subject  to  a  class.  His  aim  must 
be  to  open  up  new  avenues  of  thought,  to  implant  fertile 
ideas  which  will  bear  fruit  in  the  years  to  come;  to 
increase  a  love  and  zeal  for  the  particular  branch  he  is 
teaching,  for  the  success  of  the  teacher  in  the  school  is  not 
to  be  attributed  chiefly  to  method,  nor  to  mere  mastery  of 
detail,  but  to  the  interest  and  enthusiasm  for  the  subject 
which  he  can  awaken  in  the  pupil. 

In  describing  the  actual  programme  of  an  Institute  we 
may  begin  by  calling  attention  to  the  religious  exercises 
with  which  it  is  opened  and  closed.  The  Church  has 
always  placed  every  serious  undertaking  under  the  pro- 
tection of  God.  Hence  it  is  fitting  that  our  Institute 
should  open  with  the  Mass  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  to  draw 
down  the  light  of  the  Spirit  of  Truth  and  Wisdpm  on  the 
assembly.  At  the  mass  a  sermon  is  delivered  by  a  dis- 
tinguished priest,  on  the  aims  of  Catholic  education,  thus 
giving  a  keynote  to  the  proceedings  of  the  Institute  and 
declaring  the  principles  upon  which  those  who  are  assem- 
bled are  agreed.  This  opening  sermon  serves,  too,  as  an 
enunciation  of  the  Catholic  position  and  makes  clear  to 
the  public  the  serious  purpose  of  the  Church  in  main- 
taining, at  such  great  sacrifice,  its  independent  system  of 
educational  institutions.  The  Institute  is  brought  to  a 
close  with  solemn  benediction  at  which  the  Most  Eeverend 
Archbishop  delivers  the  concluding  address. 

In  general  it  may  be  said  that  the  forenoon  is  devoted 
to  departmental  work  and  the  afternoon  to  the  general 
sessions  of  the  Institute.  The  department  work  may  be 
divided  according  to  grade  or  to  the  special  subjects,  thus 


The  Diocesan  Teachers'  Institute  485 

we  may  have  kindergarten,  primary,  grammar  and  high 
school  departments,  or,  cutting  across  these  lines  of  divi- 
sion somewhat,  we  may  have  classes  in  religious  instruc- 
tion, domestic  science,  manual  training,  music,  mathe- 
matics, history  and  so  forth.  It  is  manifestly  impossible 
to  have  all  of  these  different  branches  represented  at  each 
institute.  Choice  must  be  made  among  them.  The  best 
results  will  be  secured  if  five  or  six  are  maintained.  Nor 
should  all  of  these  be  conducted  at  one  period.  The  fore- 
noon may  be  conveniently  divided  into  three  one-hour 
periods,  and  two,  or  not  more  than  three,  departments 
conducted  simultaneously.  Care  must  be  taken  to  arrange 
the  departments  so  that  no  two  which  appeal  to  the  same 
group  of  teachers  will  be  carried  on  at  the  same  time. 
Those  attending  the  Institute  will  thus  be  able  to  select 
the  classes  they  wish  to  follow,  or  their  superiors  can 
assign  the  departments  from  which  they  will  derive  the 
greatest  utility.  This  arrangement  will  also  give  the 
teachers  free  periods,  when  they  may  consult  with  the 
lecturers  personally.  By  a  department  we  mean  a  sub- 
ject to  which  there  will  be  devoted  a  course  of  three  to 
five  lectures,  ordinarily  one  each  day.  The  connection 
between  the  lectures  of  such  a  course  may  be  the  common 
subject-matter,  as,  for  example,  American  Political  His- 
tory or  School  Hygiene ;  or  the  connection  may  come  from 
the  class  of  students  contemplated,  as,  for  example,  the 
teaching  of  the  kindergarten  or  the  elementary  grades. 

Just  as  the  forenoon  is  devoted  to  those  subjects  which 
are  of  interest  to  special  classes  of  teachers,  the  afternoon 
is  devoted  to  lectures  of  general  interest  and  to  a  musical 
programme.  These  general  talks  may  deal  with  the 
teaching  of  religion,  which,  of  course,  is  of  interest  to 
every  teacher  in  the  schools,  or  with  general  method,  or, 
finally,  with  special  topics  by  some  well-known  authority. 
Perhaps  this  is  the  best  opportunity  to  introduce  a  course 
of  lectures  on  religious  instruction.  Thus,  last  year  we 
had  a  series  of  five  lectures  by  Kev.  P.  C.  Yorke,  D.  D., 


vi  Index 

Shi£:i.ds,  Thomas  E.,  Survey  of  the  Field 531,  728,  925 

Discussion 748,  841,  944 

Stanton,  LssuE,  Material  Conditions   816 

Tracy,  John  J.,  De  La  Salle,  Francke's  Prototype 528 

Military  Training  for  Adolescents 799 

Turner,  Wii.IvIAm,  How  to  Study  the  History  of  Education. _  -508 

The  Christian  Ideal  of  Education 865 

Ursuline  Sister,  The  First  Session  of  the  Summer  School 

of  the  Catholic  University 654 

Valentine,  Brother,  Fatigue  in  Teachers 777 

Van  Antwerp,  Francis  J.,  The  Relation  of  the  Seminary  to 

the  General  Educational  Problem 695 


GENERAL  INDEX 


Action   and   the   teaching   of   Ian- 
gauge    550 

and  the  teaching  of  religion__554 

words  in  child's  vocabulary 751 

and  study  of  history 523 

Aiken,  Charles,  address  to  Cardi- 
nal Gibbons   834 

Aim  in  teaching  child  to  read 843 

Aims,   needless   conflict   of 932 

Alexia,  Mother  723 

American     Cassinese     Congrega- 
tion of  Benedictines 503 

American       colleges,       university 

methods  in  497 

Americanization,    hasty    533 

Angela,    Mother   633 

Anselm's    St.,    College,    Manches- 
ter  - 503 

Associaton     of     oral     and    visual 

images    844 

Attitude,    change    of 539 

Authority,    usurpation    of 740 

Automatizing  words  852 

Bede's.  St.,  College,  Peru 502 

Benedict,    St.   812 

Benedictine  education  in  U.  S.  —499 

first  monastery  in  U.  S. 500 

Missionaries  504 

Order,  discipline  in 506 

School,  spread  of 812-13 

teaching,  disinterestedness  of_504 
Benedictine  College, 

first  in  U.  S. 501 

Pueblo     502 

Savannah — 503 

Benedictine  Colleges 503-4 

curriculum    506 

Benedictines 

and   the  conversion   of   Eng- 
land   ---- 499 

and   European   civilizaton 506 

first      establishment     in      the 

U.  S. 500 

and    Medieval    education ._499 

and  Reformation  ._.  .'I'OG 

work    of -__499 

Benedict's,  St.,  College,  Atchison_502 

Bernard's,    St.,    College 502 

Blackboards  and  pictures 819 

Boarding   Schools, 

advantages  of  801 

defence  of  505 

Books. 


possibilities  of 535-26 

20th  century  praise  of 517-18 

Boys    and    girls,    mental    powers 
of 542 

Brown,  Ammi  746 

CaroHne,  Mother  Mary 724 

Carriage   and  posture 819-20 

Carrigan,  Thomas  C. 741,  745 

Catholic    college,    first    for    wom- 
en      1 922-24 

Catholic  education, 

organization  of 876-7 

in  Oregon 481 

problems    of    and    the    sem- 
inary   877 

Catholic   education   series 849 

and   context   method 944-5 

Catholic  Educational  Association_925 
Catholic    Educational    Review    in 

the    Seminary    884 

Catholic     educators     and     educa- 
tional   difficulties    769 

Catholic  High  School, 

academic  standing  of 615-16 

and  college  612,  614 

complete    and    incomplete 608 

cost  of  618-19 

curriculum    617-20 

need   of   607,    655 

in    New   York —797 

number    of 605-6 

plea  for 943 

specific  aim  of  932 

Catholic  ideal  of  education 548 

Catholic  literature,  neglect  of 902 

Catholic   military   schools 799 

Catholic  schools, 

effective  training  in 776 

need  of  statistics  of — , 645 

need  of  system  in.— — _ 926 

retardation  and  elimination__641 

Catholics   in    science 916 

Catholic  University, 

founding  of 832 

growth  of  -- 824,  831 

lay    faculties 836-38 

new  appointments 745 

a  product  of  faith 824 

saving  the 832-33 

Summer  School, 

appreciation  of 654,   673 

attendance    593 

classified  attendance 659 


Vlll 


Indj;x 


and        Coordination        in 

Catholic  schools 597 

courses    593 

parochial  schools  595 

prolessors    of 675 

relation   to   University 594 

religious    teachers    at 603 

report  of  Secretary 658-61 

significance   of    593 

students    of    675 

and  teaching  of  religion_602-3 
Catholicism,  growth  of  in  U.  S._826 
Character,  time  required  for  for- 
mation     716 

Charity,  Srs.  of, 

educational  work  in  N.  Y 793 

St.    Vincent   de    Paul 793 

Schools  conducted  by 795-97 

Training    of    novices 794 

Training  School  of ».— 797 

Work  of 793 

Child    language    and    home     en- 
vironment   842 

Children,  classifying 850 

Child's 

dramatization    945 

need  of  mental   food 944 

oral     and     written     vocabu- 
laries     824 

thought,    developing 944 

written   vocabulary   750 

Christian  aim  in  education 511 

education  and  imitation 871 

home    and   pagan    society 807 

Christian  ideal  of  education 865 

misunderstandings    of    873 

permanency   of   873-4 

Christian  and  pre-Christian  ideals 

of  education   516 

Christian  schools, 

development  of  early 805-6 

types  of  early 806-7 

Christianity  and 

cultivation  of  the  beautiful_871-2 

freedom    868 

immortality    869 

marriage    t. 868-69 

sanctity  of  home  868 

supremacy  of  spiritual  ideal 

869-70 

unification    of    character 872 

Chrysostom,     St.,    and    Christian 

schools     806 

Church  and 

education 678 

experimental  science 917 

Roman  schools 805 

science   912-15 


Church's  solution  738 

Circulating    library    905 

Class      explanation      and      home 
study    492 

Classics, 

method   of   studying 492 

reading  of 906 

and  small  college 490 

Classroom  equipment 816 

Coeducation  and 

elimination    of    boys :-544 

Englewood    experiment    in 541 

imitation    545 

passing   of    540 

College, 

definition   of   standard 792 

entrance  requirements   

616,  617,  931,  937,  939 

small  and  the  classics 490 

Collegeville,      Minn.,      foundation 

of     501-2 

Collegiate    Hall,  ^  St.    Mary's. 639 

Colleges  and  universities 489 

Coin,    Franz    745 

Compromise 

in  education 488 

a  fatal  534 

and  httle  red  school  house 532 

Conception    College    503 

Conflict  of  ideals . 733 

Conscience    in    the    morning 784 

Context  method 748 

Catholic  Education  Series944-45 
Continuity  in  educational  process  936 
Coordination    and    subordination 

of  studies  495 

Correcting   papers   777-8 

Culture   and   rehgion    678-9 

Curriculum,  meaning  of 508 

Defective  home  training 802 

De   La   Salle,  , 

Francke's  prototype   528 

and    the    poor    — 529 

Diocesan  teachers'  institute 481 

Diplomas   from  sitate  officials 731 

Discipline   in   the   schoolroom — 781-2 
Discontent  with   educational   sys- 
tem  536 

Discrepancy  in  high  school  aims_941 

Dissipation  of  energy  942 

Distractions,    avoidance    of 818 

Dubois,    Bishop    794-5 

Dujarie,   J.    F.    628 

Durocher,   Eulalie   887 

Education, 

American,  superficiality  of — 496 

in   Argentina   722-5 

Benedictine  in  U.  S. 499 


Index 


ix: 


in    Brazil    701 

Catholic   ideal    of    548 

in    Cnile    ^ 706 

Christian  aim   in   511 

Christian  ideal  of 865 

Christian     and    pre-Christian 

ideals    516 

and    the     Church     in     South 

America     699-700 

in  Colombia 709 

compromise   in    488 

cultural    and    vocational    ele- 
ments in   582 

defective  histories  of 528 

Greek  ideal 867 

how  to  study  the  history  of-_508 

for    human    excellence 866-67 

of   laity  in   Middle  Ages 805 

material   conditions   of    816 

medieval    and    the     Benedic- 
tines     499 

and   the  ministry  883-84 

narrow  meaning  of   580 

organization  of  Catholic  -.876-77 

organized    efifont    in    512 

pagan   and    Christian      ideals 

•      of     865-66 

in   Panama  710 

in    Peru    708 

policy  of  540 

religion    in    769 

religious   aids   to   909 

Roman    ideal    of    867 

in  South  America 699 

splitting   the   difference   in 488 

in   Uruguay    702-3 

and   the   young  priest   880 

Educational 

advance   696 

discussions   in    the   seminary_884 

experiments    531 

ideals,    succession   of    511 

lectures   in   the    seminary 886 

magazines   in   the   seminary — 884 

monopoly    •- 733 

principles    488 

principles  and  the   liturgy   __509 
principles   and   methods— 599-600 
problem  from  seminary  view- 
point     875 

problem,  solultion  of 942 

work  in   New   York   of    Srs. 

of  Charity 793 

Educator,  marks  of  the  true  — 780-1 
Electivism, 

cause  of  movement  497 

in  seminary  and  college  — 582-3 


Elementary  schools,  function 
of    641-2 

England,  conversion  of  by  the 
Benedictines 499 

Exercise,  out  of  doors 784 

Expression  in  language  494 

Farley,  Archbishop,  address   of__830 
Fatigue, 

causes   of 779,   781,  783 

function    of    778 

in  teachers 777 

Feminization  of  schools   546 

First    lesson    752 

France  and  apostolic  spirit 627 

Francke,  an  imitator 530 

Francke's  work  tor  the  poor 528 

French  Revolution 627 

Fourier,  St.  Peter 723 

Gascoin,   Leocadie   628 

Gillespie,  Eliza 633 

German   training   of   professors__497 
Gibbons,   Cardinal, 

as    an    educator    826 

reply  to  addresses 839 

sketch   of   life   826-29 

success  of  University  due  to_833 

and  the  University 831-33 

Gibbons  Memorial   Hall, 

building    of    830 

contributions    to    824 

dedication    823 

Girls  and  boys,  mental  power  of_542 

Gleis,   Paul  745 

Gray's  attitude  towards  books 523 

High  School, 

biology    in    935 

Catholic  and  non-CathoHc  —608 

Committee  of  N.  E.  a 927 

course  938 

Curriculum 937 

Curriculum  enriched 928 

English  in 934 

function  of 928-29 

and   Life's   purposes   943 

naitural   science   in 935 

and  parochial   school   610 

physical  training  in 936 

report      of      Committee      on 

Catholic  605 

teachers 609-10 

social  science  in 935 

two-fold  aim  of 926-27 

History, 

disciplinary  value  of -495 

and   literature   903 

History  of  Education, 

cultural  value  of   513 


Inde;x 


how    to    study    508 

impartiality    in    514 

interpreting  facts  in 515 

items  in  the 512 

point  of  view  in   513,   516 

in    seminary    881 

History,  philosophy  of 495 

Holy  Cross  Association 628 

Holy  Cross  Srs.  of- 627-28 

American   notiviate   630-31 

in    Civil    War    638-39 

Constitution     and     rules     ap- 
proved     637 

Foundress    of    _628-29 

new  American  Congregation_637 

new    foundations    632 

Spansh-American   War   639 

Holy  Names,  Srs.  of ___887 

development     of     community 

of 891-92 

foundation    889-90 

Spanish-American  War  __896-97 

Home,  developing  the  idea  of 945 

Home    study   and    class    explana- 
tion   492 

Imagination,  cultivation  of 753 

Imitation    and    Christian    educa- 
tion   871 

Incarnation,  the 788 

Individual, 

safeguarded  by  Christianity--867 
suppression  of  in  pagan  edu- 
cation    866 

Institute, 

advantages    of    487 

aim    of    482 

departmental   work  and  gen- 
eral   sessions 483-84 

diocesan     teachers'    _-_ 481 

and    general    public    487 

general   work   of   485 

instructors   in    482 

management    of    483 

opening      and      closing      ad- 
dresses     484 

programs 484-85 

support   of   486 

Intellectual  and   moral   training__881 

Interstate   certification   728 

Jasper   College    503 

John's,  St.,  College,  opening  of— 502 
Joseph's,   St.,   College,   Covington, 

La.    503 

Kellner, 

Lorenz     682 

and  Catholic  education 682-83 

death    of    693-94 


enemies'  praises  of 684-85,  693 

and  history  of   education 689 

and  Kulturkamp 692 

life  and  education 685-87 

master    of    training    college--687 

Schulrat    690 

writings    of    685 

Kelly,  C.  L.  746 

Laity  in   Middle  Ages,  education 

of    805 

Language, 

first  steps  in  written 748 

methods   of   teaching   552 

teaching,  old  and  new  meth- 
ods of 552-53 

Law  and  the  American  Child  __741 
Laws   of  mental   development_712-13 

Lecturing    and    teaching    493 

Leo's,   St.,   College,   Fla.   502 

Literature,  love  of,  in  the  teacher  900 
Liturgy  and  the  principles  of  edu- 
cation    509 

Martin    of    Tours,    St.    811 

Martin's,      St.,      College,      Lacy, 

Wash. 503 

Mary    Rose,  Mother 892 

Mary's,   St.,  College, 

Belmont 502 

North    Dakota    503 

Newark   502 

Material  conditions  of  education_816 
Mathematics  as  mental  drill  --494 
Means,   the   choice   and  grouping 

of    493 

Medieval   and   modern   ideals 870 

Meinrad's,  St.,  College  and  Sem- 
inary   ^—. 503 

Melting   Pot  of   nations   535 

Men  teachers,  need  of 547 

Mental  power  of  boys  and  girls_542 
Methods, 

classification    of    508 

prevalent    unscientinc    853 

Middle  Ages,  education  of  laity_805 
Military, 

and  civic  virtue  800 

schools, 

aim  of  private 803-04 

a    corrective    802 

modern    799 

and   self-control    _— ...802-03 

virtues  developed  in 800 

training    for    adolescents    — 799 

in   Greece   799 

Milton's   attitude   towards 

books 522-23 

belief 520-21 


Index 


XI 


Modern  method  of  teaching 584 

Monasteries  in  Great  Britain 813 

Monastery, 

first    Benedictine    in    U.    S.-_500 
outer   and   inner   departments 

of    812 

Monastic   schools, 

development  of  810 

•early   807-8 

early   in    Gaul   810-11 

in    Ireland    813-14 

Monasticism,     western,     influence 

of  eastern  on  811 

Moral  and  intellectual   training__881 

Moreau,  Abbe  628-29 

Motives  for  teaching 510 

Mount  Angel  College,  Oregon 503 

Mount   St.   Vincent   on   Hudson, 

Academy    797 

College    795 

Nagging    822 

National  Menace  734 

New  words,  treatment  of 853 

Normal  schools,  standard 730 

Notre   Dame 

and  Le   Mans   636 

School  Srs.  of,  in  America--723 

American  foundation 723 

Foundation    in    Mil- 
waukee     723 

Government    of    Congre- 
gation     727 

Membership    in    724 

Rapid  growth  of 725 

Training   of   novices--726-27 

Open  door  in  education 940 

Oral      method      and      syllabifica- 
tion  843-44 

Oral   and  visual   images,   relative 

strength  of 844 

Oregon,  Catholic  education  in 481 

Out-door  exercise  784 

Pagan 

ideals    static    866 

society  and  Christian  home 807 

Painter's  history  of  education,  de- 
fects of  529 

Parallel,    suggestive    737 

Parish   school  in 

Edessa    809 

Rennes     809 

Parochial  schools  in  6th  century_809 

Pastor    in    the    school    879 

Pastoral     theology     and     educa- 
tion     882-83 

Pedagogy  in   the 

Seminar    885 

seminary    697,    878,    882 


Perfection,    ideal    of    872 

Philosophy   of    History   495 

Plato  and  books 525-26 

Power    vs.    Content    584-85 

Preparation    for   class   777 

Priest 

and    Catholic    education    588 

education    of    the    786 

and  educational  movement 577 

human   elements   in 790 

privileges  of 792 

qualifications  of   791 

Priesthood, 

training  for  584 

two-fold   function  of 787 

Primitive    Observance,    congrega- 
tion of  503 

Procopius,   St.,  College,   111. 502 

Procrustean  methods   -848 

Professors,  German  training  of__497 
Prudery,      reaction      against      in 

literature     519' 

Public    schools,    retardation    and 

elimination    642-43 

Pupils, 

bright  and  dull 490 

entrance    and    exit    of 818-19 

large  and  small  numbers  of 489 

Quantitative    requirements    933 

Questioning  and  talking 491 

Reading, 

acquiring  a  taste  for  899- 

adjusting   to   student    901 

circle    and    literature    904 

for  information   903 

in    primary   grades    752 

in  secondary  schools  and  col- 
leges     898 

silent    757 

Regents  and  educational  experts_73& 

Regularity  in  school  823, 

Religion 

Christ's     method     of     teach- 
ing   556-5T 

in    education    769 

effect   of    773 

and  historv 910 

meaning    of    770-71 

and  morality  775 

new    meaning   of    773-74 

in    the   schools    772 

science   910 

teaching  of  old  and  new  meth- 
ods     555. 

Religious  vocations 940 

Repetition,  need  of — 944 

Retardation  and  elimination 

in  Catholic  schools 641 


Xll 


Index 


function  of 648-49 

in   public   schools 642-43 

Rhodes   scholars,   defective  train- 
ing  of    496 

Robinson,  William  C, 

death   of   919 

sketch  of  life 919-21 

Round  Table   discussions 483 

Sacramental   Presence   789 

Saint  Mary's 

Academy 633 

chartered    635 

Salary,  disadvantages 737 

Seaton,    Mother    Elizabeth    Bay- 
ley  793 

Secular   clergy,     ducation    of,   in 

monastic   schools   808 

Senses,    Cultivation    of    752-53 

School  Board, 

a  dummy 739 

paid 735 

School  work,   first  phase   846 

Schools,  large  and  small 489 

Science   and   the   teaching   oi    re- 
ligion     910 

Scientific  methods  509 

in  primary  grades 848 

temper,  absence  of  536 

Seminary 

and     adjustment    to    present 

needs    _578-79 

and    college    _ 580-81 

conservation  in 578 

curriculum    697-98 

and  educational  problem_577,  695 

function   of    578 

history  of  education  in 881 

ideal  of  education 577 

pedagogy  in 697 

preparation  for 583 

and  problems  of  Catholic  edu- 
cation     877 

teaching  of  pedagogy  in__589-90 

Shame,  glorying  in   our 534 

Shea,  D.  J.,  address  to  Cardinal 

Gibbons   836 

Shepherd    idea,    development    of, 

946,   949 

Sign,  a  helpful 538 

Sisters'  College  at  Catholic  Uni- 
versity     743 

Sorin,    Father    630 

SpelHng  book,  qualities  of 854 

Spelling 

drills    851 

oral  methods  of 842 

learning,    psychological    basis 
of    842 


new  method  of  teaching 841 

in  second  grade 846 

teaching   of    841 

Spencer's  ideal  of  education 871 

btandard, 

Christian  732 

the  dollar 732 

uniform  731 

State  limitations  738 

Statistics,     fallacious     deductions 

from   646-47 

Studies,   coordination   and   subor- 
dination     495 

Subiaco,  new,  college 503 

buperficiality  of  American  educa- 
tion    496 

Supplies,  anticipating  needed 817 

Swiss-American   Congregation   of 

Bened.'ctines  503 

System  in  teacher's  work 779 

Talking  and  questioning 491 

Taste  for  great  books 907-8 

Teacher, 

character  and  knowledge 711 

coldness    in    714 

conduct  of,  in   classroom 711 

and  formation  of  character-_696 

humanity    in    718 

necessity  of  faith  in 716 

personal  influence  of 714 

personality  of  821 

and  students'  reading 900 

Teachers, 

fatigue    in    777 

institute,  diocesan 481 

need    of    men    547 

work,    system    in    779 

Teaching 

child  to  spell 941 

child   to  think 944 

conditions  of  778-79 

and  lecturing 493 

motives   for  510 

Script 756 

Temperament  and   enthusiasm 783 

Teresa  of  Jesus,   Mother 893 

Text-book  in  primary  reading  and 

spelling 849 

Thought,   development  844 

Truth,   suppression  of 530 

Universities  and  the  ages  ot  faith, 

823-24 
University  methods  in   American 

colleges    497 

Unscientific  methods,  value  of 509 

Ventilation 

in  the  schoolroom 782 

of    schools    817-1 


Ind^x 


XIU 


Vincent,  St.,  first  Benedictine  Col- 
lege in  U.  S. - -_ 501 

Virtues     developed     in     military 

schools    800 

Visual  area,  development  of 844 

Visualizing  power, 

classifying  children  according 

to    - 847 

differences   in   847 

Vocational 

and  liberal,  blending  of 930 


training  of  women 543 

Vocations,  cultivation  of 549,  933 

Washington,   value   of    a   sojourn 

in  680 

Walk,    how    to    820 

West    Point,   model    for   military 

schools  803 

Wimmer,  Fr.  Boniface 500 

Women    teachers    and    politics^ 548 

Women,  vocational  training  for__543 
Word  pictures,  functioning  of — 844 


XIV 


Inde:x 


CURRENT  EVENTS 


American  Cardinals,  three  new--950 
American       Seminary,       Foreign 

Missions    760 

Brooklyn  College,  new  President_564 
Catholic  College  for  \A/omen,  Chi- 
cago     951 

Catholic  Educational  Association, 

Chicago,  meeting 662 

Resolutions  of 665 

Catholic  High  Schools,  St.  Louis_759 
Catholic  University  of  America, 

Conferring  of  degrees 560 

Engineering  Building  — _• — 559 

Faculty    560 

Gibbons'   Memorial   Hall-559-560 

Increased    registration    854 

New  Departments 559 

Public  lectures   858 

Summer  School   559 

Trustees'   Meeting 559 

Catholic  Women,  Congress  of 565 

Catholic  Young  Men,  Convention 

of 952 

Children's  Bureau  in  the  Depart- 
ment of  Commerce  and  Labor_560 

Conway,    Katherine    E.    761 

De      Paul     University,      Summer 

School    671 

Digby,  Mother  Katherine 760 

Diocesan       Teachers'       Institute, 

Santa  Monica,  Cal. ; 667 

Flynn,  Rt.  Rev.  D.  J. 668 

Fraternity  men,  failure  of 564 

High      JSchool      Fraternities 
abolished  956 


Holy  Cross  Academy 957 

Resumption   of   Classes 858 

Visit  of  Apostolic  Delegate--859 

Kerst,  Mother  Scholastica 670 

McCaddin  Fund,  for  Education  of 

ecclesiastical    students    563 

Mothers,  National  Congress  of  __565 
Mount    St.    Vincent    on    Hudson, 

gifts    to    670 

National   Congress   of   Mothers__565 

O'Doherty,  Rev.  D.  J.  761 

Parental  School  in  Washington__856 
Parochial  Schools  and  Vocational 

Schools    669 

Professional        Schools,       higher 

entrance   requirements   954 

Repplier,   Agnes   567 

Ryan,  James  A. 951 

St.  Charles'  College,  rebuilding  761-62 
St.    Mary's   of   the   Woods,    com- 
mencement     ^__566 

Sisters'    College, 

Faculty  of 1 854 

Formal   opening   854 

Schrembs,  Rt.  Rev.  Joseph  855 

Squiers,   Plon.   H.   G.   955 

Southern    University    for    Wom- 
en  857 

Trinity  College,  registration 857 

Villa  Sancta   Scholastica,   College 

Department 855 

Winona  Seminary,  Growth  of  __956 
Women, 

Congress  of  Catholic 565 

Southern  University  for 857 


REVIEWS  AND  NOTICES 


Ayres,  Laggards  in  Our  Schools_570 
Currier,    Lands   of   the    Southern 
Cross    863 

Donnelly,    translation    of    Tosti's 
History  of  Pope  Boniface  VIII...964 

Donnelly,   Analysis   of   Newman's     ; 
Second    Spring    864 

G.   C.   D.,  Life  and  Writings   of 

Rt.  Rev.  John  B.  Delany 961 

Hudson,    The    New    Shakespeare, 

12th  Night,  or  What  You  Will_964 
Jones,    Education   as   Growth,   or 

the  Culture  of  Character 765 

Krus,    Von    Dr.    Franz,    Padago- 

gische   Grundfragen    965 

Laurie,  Teachers'  Encyclopedia— 861 
MaHne,  Story  of  the  Mountain — 573 


Menghini,      Manuale      Sacrarum 
Caeremoniarum    966 

Mullett,  Chief   Ideas  of  the  Bal- 
timore   Catechism    572 

Report      of      Superintendent      of 
Catholic  Schools, 

New  York  571 

Pittsburg    56§ 

Newark 958 

Report    of    the    Proceedings    and 
Addresses  of  Cath.  Ed.  Ass'n__959 

Semeria  Eucharistic  League  in  the 
Roman  Rite 575 

Turner,  Lessons  in  Logic 764 

Winch,  When  Should  a  Child  Be- 
gin  School   763 


The  Catholic 
Educational  Review 

JUNE,  1911 

THE  DIOCESAN  TEACHERS'  INSTITUTE 

The  present  paper  aims  to  set  forth  simply  an  account 
of  the  workings  of  a  diocesan  Teachers'  Institute,  based 
on  several  years'  observation  of  a  local  Institute  which 
has  passed  through  the  experimental  stage  and  is  now  on 
a  definitely  established  basis.  This  account  will  serve 
to  record  the  efforts  which  are  being  made  in  the  Arch- 
diocese of  Oregon  along  the  lines  of  Catholic  education, 
and  may  incidentally  be  suggestive  to  others. 

The  Teachers'  Institute  of  which  we  speak  is  a  gath- 
ering of  all  teachers  from  the  Catholic  schools  in  the 
diocese,  for  a  week  during  each  summer.  It  is  not  merely 
a  meeting  of  representatives  from  the  different  commu- 
nities but  aims  to  be  directly  of  service  to  each  individual 
teacher.  While  it  is  primarily  for  the  teachers  in  Cath- 
olic schools,  it  not  only  does  not  exclude  other  teachers, 
but  gives  an  opportunity  for  teachers  in  the  public  schools 
to  come  in  contact  with  the  principles  of  Catholic  educa- 
tion. The  Institute  is  not  held  merely  for  the  teachers 
in  the  parish  schools,  but  for  all  our  teachers,  whether  in 
academies,  parish  schools,  or  Catholic  high  schools.  In 
assembling  such  a  gathering  for  a  week  during  the  sum- 
mer it  requires  some  management  to  avoid  the  time  of 
retreat  for  the  various  religious  communities  both  of 
men  and  of  women.  The  selection  of  a  place,  too,  is 
attended  with  some  difficulty,  though  locally  we  are  for- 
tunately situated,  as  each  of  the  twelve  religious  commu- 


482  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

nities  who  are  teaching  in  the  Archdiocese  has  a  school 
in  Portland  where  its  members  reside  during  Institute 
week. 

We  pass  to  the  aim  of  the  Institute.  The  Institute  is 
distinct  from  the  summer  school.  Its  purpose  is  chiefly 
inspirational.  Teachers  engaged  in  the  round  of  daily 
class  work  receive  too  little  encouragement,  and  are  in 
grave  danger  of  losing  freshness  and  spontaneity,  and 
of  degenerating  into  human  machines.  It  is  the  aim  of  an 
Institute  to  counteract  such  tendencies,  to  give  a  sense 
of  solidarity  to  the  teaching  profession,  to  keep  before 
the  minds  of  the  teachers  of  youth  the  high  ideal  of  the 
vocation  to  which  they  are  called.  In  fact  the  Institute 
is  an  intellectual  retreat ;  hence  it  should  not  be  too  long. 
Teachers  require  a  vacation  after  the  nerve-racking 
experience  of  the  school  year,  both  for  their  own  sake 
and  for  that  of  the  pupils  committed  to  their  care.  The 
Institute  should,  therefore,  not  encroach  too  much  upon 
the  vacation  period.  Its  purpose  is  not  merely  instruc- 
tional on  the  one  hand,  nor  pedagogical  on  the  other;  it 
is  not  expected  that  teachers  will  here  study  in  detail  the 
subject-matter  of  a  special  branch;  neither  is  the  Institute 
merely  a  series  of  lectures  on  method.  It  must  be  sug- 
gestive both  on  the  pedagogical  side  and  on  the  instruc- 
tional side.  The  intense  earnestness  of  our  teachers  may 
be  depended  upon  to  cultivate  the  seeds  which  are  sown 
in  their  minds  during  the  Institute.  The  lectures  must 
therefore  be  arranged  accordingly. 

The  choice  of  instructors  for  the  Institute  is  of  prime 
importance.  They  should  be  taken  both  from  local  talent 
and  from  the  national  field.  In  the  first  place  selection 
should  be  made  from  local  instructors.  The  colleges 
of  the  diocese  may  always  be  counted  upon  to  possess 
able  instructors,  and  the  writer  can  bear  testimony  to  the 
courtesy  and  enthusiasm  which  they  manifest  in  connec- 
tion with  the  diocesan  Institute.  Provision  must  be  made, 
too,  to  utilize  the  talent  of  the  teachers  actually  employed 


The  Diocesan  Teachers'  Institute  483 

in  the  elementary  schools,  though  the  burden  of  the 
Institute  should  not  be  thrown  upon  them.  Perhaps  the 
best  means  of  using  the  talent  of  the  Sisters  is  in  the 
informal  Round  Table  discussions  which  should  find  a 
place  on  the  Institute  programme.  In  addition  to  local  lec- 
turers, we  must  bring  in  the  ablest  Catholic  educators  that 
can  be  found  in  the  United  States.  This  is  essential  for 
the  infusion  of  new  and  progressive  ideas.  We  must 
strike  a  medium  between  the  extreme  views  that  our  pres- 
ent system  of  instruction  is  fundamentally  wrong  and,  on 
the  other  hand,  that  we  have  nothing  to  learn  on  the  sub- 
ject of  education.  Both  views  are  equally  mischievous.  A 
diocesan  system  should  feel  that  its  salvation  is  not 
dependent  upon  the  introduction  of  radical  ideas  on 
method  of  instruction  or  content  of  curriculum.  On  the 
other  hand  it  should  avoid  that  condition  of  sterility 
which  Kipling  satirizes  in  his  poem  where  he  speaks  of 
those  who  are  *  ^  perfectly  pleased  with  their  work. ' ' 

We  come  now  more  directly  to  the  actual  management 
of  the  Institute.  The  simplest  form  of  Institute  would 
be  that  conducted  by  a  single  lecturer.  The  teachers  are 
assembled  from  all  parts  of  the  diocese  and  from  all 
departments  of  the  schools,  teaching  every  grade  from  the 
kindergarten  to  college  preparatory,  and  every  subject 
from  music  to  domestic  science  and  back  again  to  gram- 
mar. The  lecturer,  choose  what  subject  he  may,  can 
hardly  hope  to  be  of  interest  or  use  to  this  heterogeneous 
assemblage.  He  may  try  to  find  the  least  common  denomi- 
nator in  general  talks  on  method,  but  sustained  interest 
cannot  be  maintained  on  such  a  basis.  The  Institute  must 
begin  by  recognizing  the  various  interests  represented 
and  attempting  to  make  an  appeal  to  every  class  of  teach- 
ers present.  This  leads  to  departmental  work.  It  also 
involves  the  selection  of  a  number  of  instructors  who  are 
fitted  to  present  different  subjects  and  to  present  them 
according  to  the  needs  of  the  different  groups  of  teachers. 
These  instructors  must  have  clearly  in  mind  the  purpose 


484  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

of  the  Institute,  for  no  matter  how  thoroughly  the  lec- 
turer may  know  his  subject,  he  may  fail  to  present  it  so 
as  to  be  useful  to  the  teachers.  He  must  bear  in  mind 
that  the  primary  purpose  of  the  Institute  is  inspirational 
and  consequently,  that  he  is  not  to  present  a  course  of 
lectures  furnishing  detailed  information  about  the  sub- 
ject in  hand,  nor  is  he  concerned  exclusively  with  the 
method  of  presenting  his  subject  to  a  class.  His  aim  must 
be  to  open  up  new  avenues  of  thought,  to  implant  fertile 
ideas  which  will  bear  fruit  in  the  years  to  come;  to 
increase  a  love  and  zeal  for  the  particular  branch  he  is 
teaching,  for  the  success  of  the  teacher  in  the  school  is  not 
to  be  attributed  chiefly  to  method,  nor  to  mere  mastery  of 
detail,  but  to  the  interest  and  enthusiasm  for  the  subject 
which  he  can  awaken  in  the  pupil. 

In  describing  the  actual  programme  of  an  Institute  we 
may  begin  by  calling  attention  to  the  religious  exercises 
with  which  it  is  opened  and  closed.  The  Church  has 
always  placed  every  serious  undertaking  under  the  pro- 
tection of  God.  Hence  it  is  fitting  that  our  Institute 
should  open  with  the  Mass  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  to  draw 
down  the  light  of  the  Spirit  of  Truth  and  Wisdpm  on  the 
assembly.  At  the  mass  a  sermon  is  delivered  by  a  dis- 
tinguished priest,  on  the  aims  of  Catholic  education,  thus 
giving  a  keynote  to  the  proceedings  of  the  Institute  and 
declaring  the  principles  upon  which  those  who  are  assem- 
bled are  agreed.  This  opening  sermon  serves,  too,  as  an 
enunciation  of  the  Catholic  position  and  makes  clear  to 
the  public  the  serious  purpose  of  the  Church  in  main- 
taining, at  such  great  sacrifice,  its  independent  system  of 
educational  institutions.  The  Institute  is  brought  to  a 
close  with  solemn  benediction  at  which  the  Most  Eeverend 
Archbishop  delivers  the  concluding  address. 

In  general  it  may  be  said  that  the  forenoon  is  devoted 
to  departmental  work  and  the  afternoon  to  the  general 
sessions  of  the  Institute.  The  department  work  may  be 
divided  according  to  grade  or  to  the  special  subjects,  thus 


The  Diocesan  Teachers'  Institute  485 

we  may  have  kindergarten,  primary,  grammar  and  high 
school  departments,  or,  cutting  across  these  lines  of  divi- 
sion somewhat,  we  may  have  classes  in  religious  instruc- 
tion, domestic  science,  manual  training,  music,  mathe- 
matics, history  and  so  forth.  It  is  manifestly  impossible 
to  have  all  of  these  different  branches  represented  at  each 
institute.  Choice  must  be  made  among  them.  The  best 
results  will  be  secured  if  five  or  six  are  maintained.  Nor 
should  all  of  these  be  conducted  at  one  period.  The  fore- 
noon may  be  conveniently  divided  into  three  one-hour 
periods,  and  two,  or  not  more  than  three,  departments 
conducted  simultaneously.  Care  must  be  taken  to  arrange 
the  departments  so  that  no  two  which  appeal  to  the  same 
group  of  teachers  will  be  carried  on  at  the  same  time. 
Those  attending  the  Institute  will  thus  be  able  to  select 
the  classes  they  wish  to  follow,  or  their  superiors  can 
assign  the  departments  from  which  they  will  derive  the 
greatest  utility.  This  arrangement  will  also  give  the 
teachers  free  periods,  when  they  may  consult  with  the 
lecturers  personally.  By  a  department  we  mean  a  sub- 
ject to  which  there  will  be  devoted  a  course  of  three  to 
five  lectures,  ordinarily  one  each  day.  The  connection 
between  the  lectures  of  such  a  course  may  be  the  common 
subject-matter,  as,  for  example,  American  Political  His- 
tory or  School  Hygiene ;  or  the  connection  may  come  from 
the  class  of  students  contemplated,  as,  for  example,  the 
teaching  of  the  kindergarten  or  the  elementary  grades. 

Just  as  the  forenoon  is  devoted  to  those  subjects  which 
are  of  interest  to  special  classes  of  teachers,  the  afternoon 
is  devoted  to  lectures  of  general  interest  and  to  a  musical 
programme.  These  general  talks  may  deal  with  the 
teaching  of  religion,  which,  of  course,  is  of  interest  to 
every  teacher  in  the  schools,  or  with  general  method,  or, 
finally,  with  special  topics  by  some  well-known  authority. 
Perhaps  this  is  the  best  opportunity  to  introduce  a  course 
of  lectures  on  religious  instruction.  Thus,  last  year  we 
had  a  series  of  five  lectures  by  Kev.  P.  C.  Yorke,  D.  D., 


486  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

on  the  manner  of  imparting  religious  instruction  in  the 
elementary  schools.  During  the  coming  Institute  we  plan 
to  have  a  course  of  lectures  on  Fundamental  Christian 
Apologetics,  by  the  Very  Reverend  H.  Moynihan,  D.  D., 
president  of  St.  Thomas  College,  St.  Paul,  Minnesota. 
Each  afternoon  a  quarter  of  an  hour  is  devoted  to  a 
musical  programme,  including  both  instrumental  and 
vocal  numbers.  This  introduces  a  period  of  relaxation 
into  the  otherwise  strenuous  labors  of  the  day. 

The  question  of  the  support  of  the  Institute  is  a  very 
practical  one.  It  is  unnecessary  to  say  that  a  staff  of 
instructors,  such  as  that  we  have  been  contemplating,  can- 
not be  secured  without  expense.  This  expense  is  required 
not  merely  for  the  services  of  the  various  lecturers,  but  in 
case  of  instructors  who  are  brought  from  a  distance,  the 
railroad  fares  are  no  small  item.  At  the  outset  we  met 
these  financial  obligations  by  holding  lectures,  the  pro- 
ceeds of  which  were  devoted  to  this  purpose.  Later  on  the 
religious  communities  of  the  diocese  contributed  a  per 
capita  tax  of  one  dollar  for  each  member  attending  the 
Institute.  While  this  method  resulted  in  raising  the  neces- 
sary sum,  it  was  realized  that  it  imposed  an  unjust  burden 
on  the  teaching  communities,  for  the  benefits  of  the  Insti- 
tute were  clearly  to  accrue  to  the  parishes  in  which  the 
teachers  were  engaged.  Hence  it  was  that  two  years  ago 
the  present  equitable  and  satisfactory  method  was  pro- 
posed and  adopted  by  the  pastors  who  were  interested  in 
the  work  of  the  Institute.  At  present  each  parish  con- 
tributes ten  cents  for  each  child  enrolled  in  its 
school  and  boarding  schools  contribute  a  like  sum  for 
their  pupils.  The  parishes  are  at  liberty  to  raise  the  fund 
in  whatever  way  seems  best  to  them,  though  the  simplest 
method,  and  one  growing  in  favor,  is  to  ask  each  child  in 
the  school  to  contribute  ten  cents  for  this  purpose.  An 
advantage  of  this  device  consists  in  the  fact  that  it  awak- 
ens a  direct  interest  in  the  children  and  in  their  homes  for 
the  advancement  of*  Catholic  education.    In  any  case  the 


The  Diocesan  Teachers'  Institute  487 

present  method  has  proved  entirely  satisfactory,  being 
at  once  equitable,  easy  to  operate,  and  adequate  in 
returns. 

The  advantages  of  the  diocesan  Institute  are  many.  We 
may  mention  a  few  of  the  more  important  here.  The  most 
obvious  result  is  the  increased  enthusiasm  for  their  work 
which  the  teachers  gain  from  the  lectures.  This  is  an 
advantage  which  will  not  be  underestimated  by  those 
who  know  the  necessity  of  interest  and  enthusiasm  on  the 
part  of  the  teacher.  New  methods  and  new  insight  into 
the  subjects  of  the  curriculum  are,  however,  not  the  only 
advantages.  The  Institute  gives  the  teachers  of  the 
various  communities  an  opportunity  to  meet  each  other 
in  an  informal  way.  It  thus  breaks  down  the  barriers 
which  sometimes  obstruct  intercourse  between  groups  of 
teachers  who  are  all  engaged  in  promoting  Catholic  edu- 
cation. Thus  the  general  aims  of  Catholic  education 
prevail  over  the  narrower  interests  of  any  particular 
school.  The  various  communities  within  the  diocese 
become  mutually  helpful  and  a  salutary  and  friendly 
emulation  arises  from  more  intimate  knowledge.  Another 
positive  advantage  is  to  be  found  in  the  uniformity  which 
comes  from  within.  It  is  theoretically  a  simple  matter 
for  authority  to  impose  uniformity  from  without,  but  a 
diocesan  system  in  which  the  unity  grows  up  from  within, 
rooted  in  a  recognition  of  common  interests  and  cultivated 
by  the  friendly  relations  of  independent  groups,  will  enjoy 
a  more  vigorous  and  fruitful  growth. 

We  may  close  by  calling  attention  to  a  final  advantage 
of  the  Institute,  namely,  its  moral  effect  on  the  Catholics 
of  the  community  and  on  the  general  public.  It  inspires  a 
confidence  in  the  efficiency  of  our  schools  which  can  hardly 
be  obtained  in  any  other  way.  It  brings  before  them  in  a 
visible  and  embodied  plan  the  earnestness  with  which  the 
Church  promotes  the  diffusion  of  knowledge  and  prepares 
her  teachers  to  bear  the  light  of  truth  to  her  children. 

Edwin  V.  O'Haba. 

Portland,  Ore. 


SPLITTING  THE  DIFFERENCE  IN  EDUCATION 

Who  was  it  that  said  that  principles  are  pilots,  not 
Pilates  1  Whoever  it  was,  he  would  not  have  been  patient 
with  the  title  originally  chosen  for  this  article.  Compro- 
mises in  Education.  Compromise  has  usually  an  evil 
sound.  It  implies  lowering  of  standard  or  deflecting  to 
the  left  or  right,  pursuing,  in  a  word,  the  devious  course 
of  Pilate,  who  was  trying  to  satisfy  both  sides  by  steering 
alternately  close  to  each,  not  keeping,  like  a  true  pilot, 
resolutely  to  the  central  channel.  Compromise  in  princi- 
ples is  an  evil,  but  compromise  in  their  application  may 
be  prudence.  Perhaps  compromise  is  not  the  best  word, 
although  most  of  us  might  plead  guilty  to  a  knowledge 
of  that  term  and  by  it  might  understand  better  the  point 
to  be  insisted  upon  in  the  vast  subject  of  education. 

Books  on  education  seem  to  establish  the  rather  com- 
forting fact  that  there  is  not  a  noteworthy  difference  of 
opinion  on  the  vital  topic  of  developing  the  mind.  The 
practical  common  sense  of  mankind,  confirmed  by  what 
it  sees  going  on  in  the  plant  and  animal  world,  agrees 
in  the  larger  principles  of  education.  There  must  be 
interest  and  activity  and  theory  and  practice.  The  native 
curiosity  or  desire  of  knowledge  must  be  stimulated;  a 
certain  amount  of  information  must  be  imparted;  the 
faculties  must  be  exercised  upon  the  matter,  the  growing 
mind  must  be  trained  to  cope  with  graded  difficulties. 
Put  in  that  way,  the  programme  would  meet  with  general 
approval.  The  problem  of  vesting  the  mind  is  akin  to 
the  less  noble  one  of  clothing  the  body.  We  all  approve 
of  the  large  rolls  of  cloth,  the  measuring  tape  and  the 
ruler;  we  all  see  the  need  of  a  comfortable,  decent  and 
well-fitting  suit  of  clothes.  The  problem  consists,  it  might 
be  said,  in  circling  the  square,  in  turning  flat    quad- 


Splitting  the  Diffekence  in  Education         489 

rangular  pieces  of  cloth  into  cylinders  and  spheres  and 
various  curved  surfaces  with  the  help  of  the  straight 
edges  of  rulers  and  scissors.  The  compromise  in  educa- 
tion, if  the  word  is  permitted,  consists  in  applying  the 
truths  of  science  and  art  to  the  varying  contours  of  the 
mind  by  the  help  of  these  unvarying  and  inflexible  princi- 
ples of  all  education.  Most  experienced  educational  tail- 
ors believe  in  cutting  the  cloth  to  suit  the  man ;  some  few 
faddists  cut  the  man  to  fit  their  ready-made  uniforms. 

between  lakge  numbeks  and  small 

The  first  place  in  which  the  theory  of  compromise  might 
be  applied  is  to  the  numbers  of  pupils  each  teacher  should 
have.  Unfortunately  this  difficulty  is  settled  by  other 
considerations  rather  than  by  the  prudence  of  the  educa- 
tor. The  number  of  teachers  is  small  and  will  likely  be 
always  small  relative  to  the  number  taught.  The  very 
rich  can  afford  a  private  tutor ;  the  comfortably  provided 
can  send  their  children  to  restricted  schools;  the  people 
will  have  to  force  their  little  ones  into  classes  already 
overcrowded,  believing  it  well  they  should  have  a  rag  to 
clothe  their  intellectual  deficiencies  if  they  cannot  have  the 
complete  outfit.  The  private  tutor  might  seem  ideal,  but 
there  is  an  education  and  a  democracy  in  the  rivalry  of 
the  class-world  which  is  not  supplied  by  the  quiet  and  skil- 
ful coaching  of  the  tutor.  Even  the  teacher  is  helped  by 
the  numbers  if  they  are  not  too  large. 

The  size  of  the  school,  as  well  as  the  size  of  the  class, 
affords  another  problem  of  adjustment.  Must  the  col- 
leges all  be  large  and  grow  into  universities  1  Are  all  our 
schools  to  be  department  stores !  This  question  has  been 
recently  put  and  answered  in  the  negative  by  the  grad- 
uates of  Amherst  College  in  an  address  submitted  to  the 
trustees  of  their  college.  The  compromise  is:  Have  a 
good  college  where  circumstances  of  finance  or  equipment 
do  not  permit  a  university;  let  those  who  want  an  educa- 


490  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

tion  for  a  trade  or  avocation  go  to  the  technical  schools. 
Professor  Gonzalez  Lodge  in  The  Classical  Weekly  (Feb. 
18,  1911),  commenting  on  this  address  with  approval, 
distinguishes  between  what  men  are  going  to  do  and  what 
they  are  going  to  be,  that  is,  between  what  their  avocation 
shall  be  and  ^'what  influence  they  are  going  to  exert  by 
their  own  personality  upon  their  neighbors.'*  He  believes 
that  experience  and  breadth  of  view  will  come  from  a 
modern  classical  education.  ^^The  proper  place  for  such 
an  education  is  in  the  small  college  and  not  in  the  large 
university;  in  the  small  college  men  have  time  to  grow 
instead  of  hustle,  the  object  in  view  is  primarily  life  and 
not  money. ' ' 

BETWEEN  CLEVEE  AND  DULL  STUDENTS 

When  the  students  have  assembled  in  the  class-room 
another  and  growing  problem  presents  itself.  Imagine 
a  whole  street  flocking  into  a  tailor  shop  and  insisting 
upon  being  supplied  with  suits  of  clothes,  all  the  same 
size  and  yet  every  one  a  good  fit.  The  tailor  might  order 
some  elastic  rubber,  but  more  probably  he  would  call  the 
police.  Now  the  teacher  has  daily  and  hourly  to  fit  one 
and  the  same  teaching  to  the  miscellaneous  sizes  before 
him.  Will  he  do  kindergarten  work  with  the  lowest  in 
the  class  or  will  he  give  a  university-extension  course  to 
the  brilliant  minds  at  the  head  of  the  class  ?  He  will  have 
to  compromise,  and  this  is  one  of  the  questions  which  wor- 
ries much  the  conscientious  teacher.  Some  make  sections 
and  so  strive  to  solve  the  problem.  Some  ignore  the  diffi- 
culty and  go  on  in  blissful  unconsciousness,  dispensing 
their  wisdom  without  hampering  their  progress  by  any- 
thing so  common  as  a  test  or  questions  or  repetitions. 
How  a  teacher  is  to  find  the  true  course  is  hard  to  deter- 
mine in  every  instance.  It  is  something  to  realize  that  all 
students  have  a  right  to  an  education,  the  dunce  as  well  as 
the  genius.    Some  modern  theorists  believe  both  extremes 


Splitting  the  Difference  in  Education         491 

are  diseases  and  promise  us  that  the  dunce,  at  least,  will 
cease  to  exist.  It  is  a  consummation  to  be  wished,  but  most 
of  the  remedies  hitherto  suggested  call  for  more  doc- 
tors for  one  patient  than  can  be  supplied,  and  then  we  are 
confronted  by  the  initial  problem  of  supplying  teachers. 

BETWEEN   talking  AND   QUESTIONING 

The  difference  between  pupils  leads  naturally  to 
another  difficulty  quite  similar,  the  choice  of  different 
methods  of  appeal  to  the  pupils.  Will  a  teacher  talk  all 
the  time  or  try  to  get  his  class  to  do  most  of  the  talking? 
If  the  writer  may  be  indulged  an  open  confession,  he 
would  admit  that  an  experience  of  some  years  of  teaching 
has  revealed  in  him  a  certain  inclination  to  talk,  not 
always  controlled  with  success.  To  question  with  tact 
and  patience,  to  perform  the  daily  miracle  of  curing  par- 
tial mental-blindness,  to  focus  the  vision  by  further  and 
further  suggestion  until  things  that  look  like  trees  finally 
disclose  themselves  as  men,  and  to  repeat  that  process 
over  and  over  again,  all  this  is  a  tremendous  strain  upon 
teachers,  and  it  can  hardly  surprise  us  that  they  yield 
frequently  to  the  more  flattering  and  easier  occupation  of 
listening  to  themselves  lecture.  Here  is  the  compromise 
offered  by  Mr.  A.  C.  Benson  in  ''The  Schoolmaster'' \ 
'  *  Some  teachers  deal  largely  in  questions,  but  if  the  class 
is  large,  it  needs  almost  genius  to  keep  question  and 
answer  going  with  sufficient  rapidity  to  insure  universal 
attention.  Moreover,  if  the  requisite  enthusiasm  is 
evoked,  it  requires  a  good  deal  of  masterfulness  to  keep 
it  within  decorous  bounds.  I  myself  believe  that  question- 
ing should  be  more  used  in  small  classes  and  that  with  a 
large  class  a  form  of  lecturing,  interspersed  with  ques- 
tions, is  the  more  effective.  But  here  again  the  idiosyn- 
crasy of  the  man  comes  in.  If  a  teacher  has  the  gift  of 
asking  questions  of  a  kind  that  stimulates  curiosity  by 
the  form  and  makes  the  answering  of  t}iem  into  a  brisk 


492  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

species  of  intellectual  lawn  tennis,  he  is  probably  a  very 
good  teacher.'^ 

BETWEEN    EXPLANATION    IN    CLASS    AND    STUDY    AT    HOME 

Home  work,  as  well  as  class  work,  makes  its  demands 
upon  the  teacher's  faculty  of  adjustment.  Happy  the 
teacher  who  dismisses  his  class,  not  burdened  and  dis- 
heartened by  a  heavy  load  of  merely  assigned  lessons,  not 
with  a  supply  of  cut  and  dried  answers  for  cut  and  dried 
questions,  but  with  lessons  that  have  been  explained, 
which  have  been  illuminated  by  sympathetic  and  sugges- 
tive teaching  and  which  will  call  for  some  original  work, 
not  wholly  uninteresting,  on  the  part  of  the  pupil,  work 
which  is  either  to  be  put  in  writing  or  made  ready  for 
an  oral  delivery  on  the  following  day.  A  particular 
example  of  this  species  of  compromise  is  furnished  in  the 
teaching  of  Latin  and  Greek.  In  Catholic  colleges  and 
especially  in  Jesuit  schools,  a  previous  explanation,  called 
the  prelection,  is  given  for  the  Greek  and  Latin  authors. 
A  different  system  has  been  followed  in  most  of  the  other 
schools  and  colleges  of  the  country,  but  now  the  latter 
seem  to  be  clamoring  for  a  better  adjustment.  To  say 
to  a  class  in  Latin,  ^^Take  the  nex:t  fifty  lines,''  is  usually 
only  another  way  of  saying,  *' Invest  a  small  sum  of 
money  in  a  translation. "  * '  A  professor  in  a  large  univer- 
sity," says  Professor  Lodge  in  The  Classical  Weekly, 
March  4,  1911,  ^^told  me  recently  that  ninety  per  cent  of 
the  work  done  in  the  classics  in  that  institution  was  done 
by  means  of  translations. ' '  What  does  the  Professor  of 
Teachers  College,  Columbia  University,  propose  as  a 
remedy  ?  ^ '  Not  more  time  devoted  to  Latin  and  Greek  in 
the  curriculum,  but  more  time  devoted  to  them  in  the 
school  or  class-room.  The  college  system  by  which  the 
freshman  class  prepares  a  certain  modicum  of  text  for 
recitation  in  the  class-room  is  fundamentally  wrong  and 


Splitting  the  Difference  in  Education         493 

must  go  or  we  must  go.''  ^*It  is  too  absurd  for  consid- 
eration/' Professor  Lodge  thinks,  *'to  ask  a  young  man 
of  eighteen  to  prepare  a  translation  of  fifty  lines  in 
Horace  after  he  has  been  studying  Latin  for  four  years. ' ' 
In  the  Classical  Journal,  January,  1911,  an  article  on 
Factors  in  Vitalizing  Study  of  the  Classics  advocates  the 
old  method  of  prelections  almost  as  if  it  were  a  new  dis- 
covery. The  precedent  of  Germany  is  adduced  in  favor  of 
the  practice.  A  lecture  of  Dr.  G.  Stanley  Hall  is  cited 
on  the  same  side.  ^'The  message  of  this  lecture,"  says 
the  writer,  ^4s,  ^ Teach!  Teach!  Ask  no  pupil  to  take  a 
step  in  advance  except  under  direction ! '  If  the  Germans 
do  not  make  weak  and  dependent  students  by  this  method, 
neither  need  we."  The  one  who  wishes  to  catch  up  to 
the  modern  advance  in  education  will  need  to  do  no  more 
than  stand  where  he  is  with  his  world-old  methods  and 
the  rapidly  shifting  programmes  and  schemes  of  today  will 
complete  their  comet-flights  in  space  and  come  back  to 
his  system. 

But  if  modern  teachers  see  once  more  the  advisability 
of  old  methods,  conservative  systems  must  not  go  to  the 
other  extreme  of  doing  everything  for  the  student  or 
becoming  stereotyped  in  their  teaching.  Their  explana- 
tions should  be  suggestive,  stimulating  and  not  formal 
and  exhaustive.  Between  the  lecturer  and  the  mere 
assigner  of  lessons  comes  the  teacher  who  will  plan  the 
campaign,  map  out  the  roads,  do  much  of  the  pioneer 
work,  point  to  the  enemy,  but  will  permit  his  students  to 
fight  in  the  battle. 

BETWEEN    ANY    MEANS    AND    CERTAIN    MEANS 

All  other  compromises  in  education  are  insignificant 
when  compared  with  the  most  important,  which  is  one 
concerned  with  the  choice  of  means  and  their  grouping. 
Ex-President  Eliot  and  his  school  believe  that  any  study 
or  work,  from  sawing  and  filing  in  the  shop  to  the  sorting 


494  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

and  weighing  in  the  laboratory,  will  give  as  good  an  edu- 
cation as  reading  and  writing  or  parsing  and  translating. 
Any  tool  in  the  universe,  it  would  seem,  can  fashion  brains. 
A  dentist  could  not  pull  a  tooth  with  his  hand-mirror  or 
a  doctor  lance  a  boil  with  a  stethoscope,  or  a  watchmaker 
mend  a  watch  with  a  hoe,  but  an  educator  can  grasp  any 
means  that  is  handy  to  poke  into  a  lad's  brain  and  bring 
it  into  order  and  maturity.  These  extreme  conclusions 
of  exaggerated  electivism  were  not  followed  out,  because 
a  force  of  teachers  could  not  possibly  be  supplied  for  the 
purpose  of  catering  to  every  individual  taste.  Some  of 
our  universities  had  schools  of  veterinary  surgery  and 
therapeutics,  but  none  of  them  could  supply  courses  in 
advanced  blacksmithing  and  asphalt-paving  and  other 
brain-producers  of  the  kind.  Again,  common  sense  and 
brief  experimentation  showed  that  as  the  instruments  of 
the  humblest  trade  have  been  perfected  in  the  course  of 
years,  much  more  had  the  established  instruments  of  edu- 
cation received  the  perfecting  touch  of  time.  Eeading, 
writing,  speaking,  in  a  word,  expression  in  language 
had  been  the  end  as  well  as  the  means  of  edu- 
cation for  centuries,  and  thoughtful  men  saw  that  so  it 
must  continue  to  be  because  language,  and  especially  the 
classical  languages,  had  been  rendered  apt  for  the  purpose 
by  constant  use  and  because  language  is  close  to 
man's  thoughts  and  will  certainly  serve  as  a  test  of  their 
worth  even  if  time  had  not  shown  it  to  be  their  very  best 
discipline.  Certain  other  means  of  education  which  have 
in  the  course  of  time  been  improved  and  are  now  adapted 
to  develop  the  faculties,  may  be  added  to  supplement. 
Mathematics  may  give  a  more  obvious  lesson  in  the  strict- 
ness of  logic,  and  initiate  its  scholar  into  the  world  of 
pure  science;  some  special  sciences,  such  as  chemistry 
and  physics,  may  focus  more  sharply  the  powers  of 
observation  and  open  up  the  world  of  nature  to  the  young 
mind  J  history  may  convey  more  interesting  and  useful 


Splitting  the  Difference  in  Education         495 

lessons  and  reveal  the  world  of  the  past,  but  a  sane  com- 
promise has  declared  that  these  additional  means  should 
fulfill  the  role  of  accessories,  not  of  principals. 

BETWEEN  COORDINATION  AND  SUBORDINATION  OF  STUDIES 

As  there  must  be  a  choice  in  the  means,  or  a  compro- 
mise, to  keep  to  the  term  in  the  sense  we  have  been  using 
it,  there  must  also  be  a  compromise  in  the  relative  promi- 
nence of  these  means.  Modern  education  has  pretty  well 
agreed  upon  the  languages,  mathematics,  some  special 
sciences  and  history  as  essential  means  of  developing  the 
faculties.  Modern  education  does  not  always  admit  there 
should  be  subordination  of  those  means.  The  tendency 
seems  to  be  to  put  all  these  means  on  the  same  level,  to 
coordinate  them  in  the  process  of  education.  In  some 
cases,  for  example,  history  is  treated  as  practically  the 
equivalent  in  educational  force  to  the  study  of  the  classi- 
cal languages,  but  in  order  to  make  it  so,  its  professors 
have  assembled  around  it  various  subsidiary  helps  from 
other  studies.  Composition  and  analysis  and  map- 
drawing  and  debates  and  fiction  and  drama  and  art,  in  a 
word,  every  educational  device  has  been  centered  upon 
history,  which  becomes  in  that  case  a  principal  study. 

Some  writers  on  eduation,  like  John  Stuart  Mill, 
would  not  seem  to  admit  a  large  amount  of  discipli- 
nary value  in  history.  There  are  two  things  in 
history,  his  opinion  seems  to  be,  facts  and  the  causal 
connection  of  facts.  The  facts  he  would  have  imparted 
to  students  who  are  not  likely  to  have  leisure  in  after 
life  to  gather  them  from  private  reading ;  the  causal  con- 
nection of  facts,  or  the  philosophy  of  history,  belongs  to 
the  professional  school.  Eecent  years  have  witnessed 
an  immense  activity  in  historical  lines,  partly  because 
the  world  is  growing  old  and  becoming  reminiscent, 
partly  because  evolutionary  theories  have  put  people  to 


496  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

studying  origins  and  growths.  The  schools  were  prompt 
to  respond  to  the  new  stimulus,  and  history  which  was 
formerly  content  to  be  an  accessory,  now  in  many  places 
has  been  raised  to  the  dignity  of  a  principal  study.  By 
the  various  devices  already  mentioned  as  well  as  by 
others  the  attempt  i§  made  to  have  the  lessons  of  history 
educate  in  the  process  of  committing  them  to  memory. 
The  attempt  has,  undoubtedly,  met  with  its  share  of  suc- 
cess, but  even  with  the  help  of  all  the  means  borrowed 
from  other  subjects  to  which  these  means  more  properly 
belong,  it  is  impossible  to  deny  the  truth  that  history 
for  the  lower  schools  is  a  question  of  committing  facts  to 
memory  and  so  not  suited  to  usurp  the  role  of  a  principal 
study  which  should  appeal  to  more  than  one  of  the  mental 
faculties.  The  coordination  of  history  as  a  principal 
subject  seems  to  have  worked  harm  in  other  ways,  and 
recently  Superintendent  Maxwell  of  New  York  City  has 
expressed  regret  that  the  teaching  of  Greek  and  Roman 
History  should  have  been  taken  from  the  Latin  and  Greek 
teachers.  Another  instance  of  advanced  views  in  educa- 
tion completing  the  orbit  of  experimentation  and  now 
returning  to  the  original  point  of  departure. 

The  evils  of  excessive  coordination  have  never  been  put 
so  strongly  as  they  have  been  in  his  recently  published 
annual  report  by  President  Pritchett,  of  the  Carnegie 
Foundation.  He  quotes  the  views  of  twenty-one  tutors 
who  give  their  opinions  on  all  the  Rhodes  scholars  from 
America  or  on  certain  individuals.  The  reports  offer 
rather  gloomy  reading.  Sixteen  of  the  criticisms  fasten 
on  lack  of  thoroughness,  smattering  and  dilettanteism. 
The  following  serve  as  a  specimen:  ^^I  think  that  their 
training  in  America  has,  in  most  cases,  encouraged  smat- 
tering in  a  large  number  of  subjects.  As  a  general  rule, 
they  know  nothing  well,  but  know  something  about  a 
great  many  things — the  kind  of  knowledge  you  might  get 
from  attending  public  lectures. '^     President  Pritchett, 


Splitting  the  Difference  in  Education         497 

commenting  on  these  views,  says  among  other  things: 
^^  These  shrewd  criticisms  show  unmistakably  that  the 
average  American  who  goes  as  a  Ehodes  scholar  to 
Oxford,  even  though  he  be  a  college  graduate,  finds  the 
work  to  which  he  is  there  assigned  fully  worthy  of  his 
mettle ;  and  they  show  also  most  clearly  that  in  the  major- 
ity of  cases  the  student  finds  difficulty  in  doing  his  work, 
arising  out  of  the  superficiality  and  the  diifuseness  of  his 
previous  training  in  the  American  secondary  school  and 
in  the  American  college,  and  the  failure  of  this  training 
to  give  him  intellectual  power. ' ' 

Such  criticism  might  have  been  confidently  expected 
by  anyone  that  has  marked  the  evolution  of  our  educa- 
tion for  the  past  fifty  years.  Representative  pro- 
fessors of  America  went  to  Germany  for  their  edu- 
cation. On  their  return  they  imposed  university  meth- 
ods on  American  colleges;  and  the  colleges,  in  turn, 
on  the  high  schools.  Had  they  brought  back  the  whole 
German  system,  education  would  not  have  suffered  so 
much,  although  the  substitution  of  a  new  system  in  place 
of  American  traditional  systems  would  have  caused  some 
difficulty.  Perhaps  it  is  this  imiversity  training  in  Ger- 
many of  American  professors  that  furnishes  the  sufficient 
explanation  of  the  mushroom  growth  of  electivism.  At 
all  events,  the  American  college  and  high  school  of  fifty 
or  sixty  years  ago  differed  but  little  in  its  educational 
system  from  the  corresponding  Catholic  college  and  high 
school.  The  classics  were  supreme  in  both  and  other  sub- 
jects were  kept  as  accessories  only;  in  both  there  was 
concentration  upon  definite  subjects  directed  to  a  definite 
aim.  There  was  subordination  and  not  coordination.  A 
striking  proof  of  this  close  unity  and  singleness  of  pur- 
pose in  teaching  may  be  found  in  such  a  book  as  Good- 
riches  British  Eloquence,  now  out  of  print.  The  book  is 
an  eloquent  testimony  of  the  teaching  at  Yale  in  the  mid- 
dle of  the  nineteenth  century.     Chauncey  Goodrich  was 


498  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

professor  of  rhetoric  there  for  more  than  thirty  years  at 
the  time  of  editing  his  book.  What  was  the  system  fol- 
lowed? *'He  took/^  he  says  in  his  preface,  ^'Demos- 
thenes '  Orations  for  the  Crown  as  a  text  book,  making  it 
the  basis  of  a  course  of  informal  lectures  on  the  principles 
of  oratory.'^  To  Demosthenes,  as  his  notes  show,  he 
added  Cicero,  and  to  both  the  best  orators  in  English. 
Here  was  a  professor  bringing  the  oratory  of  Greece, 
Eome,  England  and  America  to  bear  upon  one  subject, 
the  art  of  public  speaking.  That  concentration  of  three 
or  more  literatures  upon  the  acquisition  of  one  art  is  the 
practice  in  Catholic  colleges  and  schools  today.  The 
university  methods  of  coordinate  and  separate  depart- 
ments, each  directed  to  the  mastering  of  some  science,  not 
of  an  art,  is  the  characteristic  of  most  other  schools  and 
colleges  in  America  today.  Which  system  is  more  likely 
to  effect  that  thoroughness  which  has  been  found  lacking  1 

Fkancis  p.  Donnelly,  S.  J. 
St.  Andrew's  on  the  Hudson, 
Poughkeepsie,  N.  Y. 


BENEDICTINE  EDUCATION  IN  THE  UNITED 

STATES 

From  its  rise  in  the  sixth  century  up  to  our  own  days, 
the  Order  of  St.  Benedict  has  always  been  preeminently 
a  civilizer  of  nations.  St.  Benedict  himself  began  this 
work  of  civilization  by  destroying  the  last  remnants  of 
paganism  on  Monte  Casino,  and  his  sons  have  faithfully 
continued  to  spread  the  light  of  Christianity  and  civiliza- 
tion throughout  Europe.  In  proof  of  the  early  mission- 
ary and  civilizing  activity  of  the  Benedictine  Order  suffice 
it  to  mention  St.  Augustine,  who,  with  about  forty  other 
Benedictines,  was  sent  to  England  by  Pope  Gregory  I, 
himself  a  Benedictine,  to  spread  the  light  of  the  true 
Faith  among  the  pagan  Anglo-Saxons ;  St.  Boniface,  St. 
Willibrord,  St.  Suitbert,  St.  Pirmin,  who  preached  the 
Gospel  of  Christ  in  various  parts  of  Germany;  St.  Ans- 
gar,  who  converted  Scandinavia;  and  St.  Adalbert,  who 
evangelized  Prussia,  Bohemia  and  Hungary.  Throughout 
the  Middle  Ages  the  Benedictine  monasteries  were  so 
many  lighthouses  that  flashed  their  lights  of  learning  over 
the  whole  western  world.  In  recompense  for  these  great 
services  to  mankind,  the  false  reformers  of  the  sixteenth 
century  destroyed  countless  monasteries  on  the  European 
Continent  and  literally  annihilated  the  Order  in  England. 
Scarcely  had  it  recovered  from  these  reverses  when  in 
the  middle  of  the  eighteenth  century  the  forcible  seculari- 
zation of  monasteries  was  inaugurated  in  Austria  and 
spread  over  the  whole  of  Europe,  so  that  in  the  first  half 
of  the  nineteenth  century  nearly  all  the  Benedictine  mon- 
asteries had  been  appropriated  by  the  secular  powers  and 
the  monks  were  driven  penniless  from  their  homes.  But 
phenix-like  the  Order  rose  from  its  ruins  and  today  bids 
fair  to  regain  its  pristine  splendor.   It  was  due  to  the 


500  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

severe  setbacks  which  the  Order  sustained  in  Europe  that 
it  could  not  unfold  its  wonted  activity  in  the  United  States 
until  a  recent  date. 

The  first  permanent  establishment  of  the  Benedictines 
in  the  United  States  was  effected  by  the  late  Archabbot 
Boniface  Wimmer  in  the  year  1846.  The  proximate 
occasion  of  this  establishment  was  the  scarcity  of 
German- speaking  priests  and  the  ever  increasing  number 
of  Catholic  settlers  in  the  United  States.  The  heart  of 
Father  Boniface  Wimmer,  a  capitular  of  the  Abbey  of 
Metten  in  Lower  Bavaria  and  at  that  time  a  professor  at 
the  Hollandish  Institute  in  Munich,  went  out  to  his  spirit- 
ually neglected  countrymen  in  the  New  World.  He  knew 
that  the  best  way  to  help  them  permanently  would  be 
to  found  in  the  United  States  a  monastery  with  college 
and  seminary,  where  American-born  Germans  could  be 
prepared  for  the  priesthood.  After  a  few  years  the  semi- 
nary would  be  in  a  position  to  send  out  its  annual  quota 
of  priests  who  could  minister  to  the  spiritual  wants  of 
the  German  population.  Having  obtained  the  permission 
of  his  superiors.  Father  Boniface  entered  upon  his  cher- 
ished plan  with  all  the  energy  of  which  this  future  patri- 
arch of  American  Benedictines  was  possessed.  King 
Louis  I  of  Bavaria  and  the  Louis  Missionary  Society 
aided  him  financially,  so  that  on  July  25, 1846,  he  was  able 
to  set  out  for  the  United  States.  He  was  accompanied  by 
eighteen  young  men  who  had  signified  their  intention  to 
enter  the  Benedictine  monastery  which  Father  Boniface 
was  to  found  in  the  New  World.  Four  of  these  were 
theological  students,  while  the  other  f ounteen  were  intend- 
ing lay  brothers.  They  arrived  in  New  York  on  Septem- 
ber 16  and,  three  days  later,  left  for  the  place  which  is 
now  called  Carrolltown,  where  Father  Lemke  had  offered 
them  a  tract  of  land  for  building  a  monastery  and  a 
school.  They  reached  this  place  on  September  30,  but 
remained  only  two  weeks.    Bishop  Michael  O'Connor,  of 


Benedictine  Education  in  the  United  States    501 

Pittsburg,  who  was  highly  pleased  at  the  prospect  of 
having  a  Benedictine  monastery  and  school  in  his  diocese, 
invited  them  to  St.  Vincent,  a  place  forty  miles  east  of 
Pittsburg,  which  was  far  more  suitable  for  their  purpose 
than  Carrolltown.  They  accepted  the  bishop's  generous 
offer  and  arrived  at  their  new  home  October  18,  1846. 

This  is  not  the  place  to  recount  the  many  trials  and 
hardships  that  are  unavoidably  connected  with  the 
foundation  of  a  monastery,  especially  when,  as  in  the 
present  case,  the  founders  have  neither  money  nor  even 
the  necessaries  of  life,  and  are  almost  entirely  left  to  their 
own  resources.  But  God's  blessing  rested  visibly  on  the 
nascent  community  which  underwent  all  these  hardships 
in  His  service.  On  October  24,  1846,  the  eighteen  com- 
panions of  Father  Boniface  were  vested  with  the  habit 
of  St.  Benedict,  and  this  little  band  of  laborers  in  God's 
chosen  field  was  destined  to  grow  and  multiply  until  the 
sphere  of  their  missionary  and  educational  activity 
extended  over  almost  every  State  in  the  Union.  The  first 
Benedictine  College  in  the  United  States  was  opened  at 
St.  Vincent  in  Pennsylvania  in  1849  and  had  as  its  first 
director  the  Rev.  Thaddeus  Brunner,  a  capitular  of  the 
Benedictine  monastery  at  Metten  in  Bavaria,  who  had 
been  sent  by  his  abbot  to  assist  the  youthful  Benedictine 
community  in  the  United  States.  The  total  enrollment  of 
students  during  the  first  year  of  its  existence  was  only 
thirteen.  But  the  number  steadily  increased ;  in  1852  the 
enrollment  was  thirty-two,  and  two  years  later  it  reached 
ninety.  The  present  attendance  of  St^  Vincent's  College 
and  Seminary  ranges  between  four  and  ^ve  hundred. 

With  the  elevation  of  St.  Vincent  to  an  abbey  in  1855, 
the  educational  activity  of  the  Benedictines  developed 
very  rapidly.  At  the  request  of  Bishop  Cretin,  of  St. 
Paul,  the  first  Benedictines  were  sent  from  St.  Vincent 
to  Minnesota  in  1856.  They  were  the  learned  and  saintly 
Father  Demetrius  di  Marogna,  two  clerics  and  two  lay 


502  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

brothers.  One  of  the  two  clerics  was  the  Eev.  Cornelius 
Wittman,  who  is  still  living  as  a  capitular  of  St.  John's 
Abbey,  Collegeville,  Minn.  They  settled  about  two  miles 
south  of  St.  Cloud,  on  the  Mississippi,  where  a  log  hut 
served  as  their  monastery.  From  there  they  ministered 
to  the  spiritual  needs  of  the  neighboring  settlements  and 
erected  log  chapels  and  schools  at  various  places.  Some 
of  the  most  thriving  towns  of  Stearns  county  owe  their 
names  to  the  names  of  the  saints  in  whose  honor  those 
log  chapels  had  been  reared.  One  of  the  most  lasting 
monuments  of  Benedictine  missionary  and  educational 
activity  in  and  near  the  present  Abbey  of  St.  John's  is 
the  fact  that  Stearns  county,  in  which  the  abbey  is  sit- 
uated, is  the  most  Catholic  county  in  the  United  States. 
In  November,  1857,  they  opened  St.  John's  College  near 
St.  Cloud  with  one  professor  and  five  students.  In  1858 
monastery  and  college  were  transferred  to  the  neigh- 
boring town  of  St.  Joseph,  then,  in  1864,  to  a  place  near 
the  present  Collegeville  station,  and  finally  to  its  present 
site  in  1866.  The  number  of  students  that  flocked  to  St. 
John's  stea(Jily  increased  until  the  present  attendance  of 
the  College  and  Seminary  is  over  350. 

About  the  same  time  a  party  of  Benedictines  was  sent 
from  St.  Vincent  to  erect  a  monastery  and  a  college  in 
Kansas.  They  founded  St.  Benedict's  College  at  Atchi- 
son in  1858.  Whenever  the  archabbot  of  St.  Vincent  could 
spare  some  of  his  men,  he  would  send  them  out  to  found 
monasteries  and  colleges  wheresoever  they  were  most 
needed.  In  this  manner  arose  St.  Mary's  College  at 
Newark  in  New  Jersey,  in  1869;  St.  Mary's  College  at 
Belmont  in  North  Carolina,  in  1874 ;  St.  Leo  College  at  St. 
Leo  in  Florida,  in  1889;  St.  Bede  College  at  Peru  in 
Illinois,  in  1891;  St.  Bernard  College  at  St.  Bernard  in 
Alabama,  in  1892 ;  the  Bohemian  College  of  St.  Procopius, 
formerly  at  Chicago,  now  at  Lisle  in  Illinois,  in  1890; 
and  the  Benedictine  College  at  Pueblo  in  Colorado,  in 


Benedictine  Education  in  the  United  States    503 

1903.  The  Benedictines  of  St.  John's  Abbey  at  College- 
ville,  Minn.,  founded  St.  Martin's  College  at  Lacey  in 
Washington,  in  1895;  those  of  St.  Mary's  Abbey  in  New- 
ark, founded  St.  Anselm's  College  at  Manchester  in  New 
Hampshire,  in  1888;  and  those  of  Mary  Help  Abbey  in 
Belmont,  N.  C,  founded  the  Benedictine  College  at  Savan- 
nah in  Georgia,  in  1902. 

The  thirteen  Benedictine  colleges  mentioned  above  are 
conducted  by  that  branch  of  American  Benedictines  which 
was  transplanted  upon  American  soil  by  the  late  Arch- 
abbot  Boniface  Wimmer  and  is  known  as  the  American 
Cassinese  Congregation  of  Benedictines.  This  congrega- 
tion at  present  numbers  439  priests  among  its  members. 
Upon  the  invitation  of  Bishop  Maurice  de  Saint-Palais  of 
Vincennes,  a  new  colony  of  Benedictines  came  to  Indiana 
from  the  venerable  old  monastery  of  Einsiedeln  in  Switz- 
erland in  1853.  They  founded  the  monastery  of  St.  Mein- 
rad  in  1854,  St.  Meinrad's  College  in  1855,  and  St.  Mein- 
rad's  Seminary  in  1866.  This  branch  of  American  Bene- 
dictines, which  at  present  numbers  203  priests  among  its 
members,  is  known  as  the  Swiss- American  Congregation 
of  Benedictines.  Besides  the  College  and  Seminary  of  St. 
Meinrad  they  conduct  the  following  colleges :  Conception 
College  at  Conception  in  Missouri ;  New  Subiaco  College 
at  New  Subiaco  in  Arkansas ;  Jaspar  College  at  Jaspar  in 
Indiana;  St.  Joseph's  College  at  Covington  in  Louisiana; 
St.  Mary's  College  at  Eichardton  in  North  Dakota ;  Mount 
Angel  College  and  Seminary  at  Mount  Angel  in  Oregon. 

The  French  Province  of  the  Congregation  of  the  Primi- 
tive Observance  founded  the  Monastery  of  the  Sacred 
Heart  at  Sacred  Heart  in  Oklahoma  in  1874  and  conduct 
a  college  and  seminary  in  connection  with  their  monas- 
tery.   At  present  this  congregation  has  32  priests. 

In  all,  the  Benedictines  in  the  United  States  at  this 
writing  comprise  672  priests  and  conduct  twenty-one 
colleges  and  six  seminaries,  with  an  average  attendance 


504  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

of  3,500  students.  But  their  educational  activity  is  not 
limited  to  college  work.  Since  they  have  always  made 
it  a  practice  to  found  their  monasteries  and  colleges  at 
such  places  as  were  most  in  need  of  Catholic  missionaries 
and  educators,  they  have  often  found  it  necessary,  espe- 
cially in  their  pioneer  days,  to  accommodate  themselves 
to  the  needs  of  the  Catholic  population  and  teach  the 
elementary  branches  of  learning  as  well  as  the  higher 
ones.  In  Minnesota,  the  two  Dakotas,  and  Oklahoma 
some  Benedictines  have  for  a  long  time  been  devoting 
themselves  very  successfully  to  the  civilizing  and  Chris- 
tianizing of  the  Indians,  while  in  North  Carolina,  Florida, 
Alabama  and  the  Bahama  Islands  some  are  doing  the 
same  successful  work  among  the  negroes. 

The  educational  work  of  the  Benedictines  in  the  United 
States  has  met  with  great  success.  It  is  certainly  a  great 
advantage  to  students  that  all  their  teachers  are  members 
of  a  monastic  community,  who  are  not  in  the  least 
influenced  in  their  work  by  any  thoughts  of  financial 
recompense,  but  who  devote  their  lives  to  teaching, 
unmindful  of  any  worldly  reward,  in  accordance  with  the 
Benedictine  maxim:  Ut  in  ommihus  glorificetur  Deus. 
(That  in  all  things  God  may  be  glorified.)  Just  as  the 
individual  professors  in  Benedictine  colleges  do  not  make 
teaching  merely  a  means  of  gaining  their  livelihood,  so 
does  also  the  existence  of  a  Benedictine  College,  as  a 
whole,  in  no  way  depend  on  its  financial  income.  It  is  part 
of  the  monastery  with  which  it  will  stand  or  fall.  The 
education  of  youth  forms  part  of  the  daily  work  of  the 
Benedictine  monk,  and  is  no  more  conditioned  on  financial 
success  than  the  daily  recital  of  his  office.  Our  utilitarian 
men  of  affairs  may  shake  their  heads  at  such  unbusiness- 
like methods,  but  they  cannot  grasp  that  the  sole  purpose 
of  a  monastery  is  to  be  of  service  to  God  and  his  holy 
Church.  The  Benedictine  educators  work  on  the  prin- 
ciple that  the  thorough  Catholic  training  of  youth  is  the 


Benedictine  Education  in  the  United  States    505 

best  means  of  advancing  the  cause  of  the  Church.  Hence 
it  is,  that  the  Benedictine  monasteries  of  the  United 
States  apply  most  of  their  surplus  revenues  towards  the 
advancement  of  their  educational  institutions  and  are  not 
discouraged  even  if  they  conduct  their  colleges  at  a  finan- 
cial loss.  Since  the  existence  of  Benedictine  colleges  does 
not  depend  on  their  financial  success,  Benedictine  educa- 
tors do  not  care  merely  to  have  a  large  number  of  well- 
paying  students;  they  are  on  their  guard  to  admit  no 
student  whose  bad  habits  may  exert  an  evil  influence  on 
his  fellows.  Benedictine  educators  do  not  cater  to  the 
whims  of  those  entrusted  to  their  care.  They  have  the 
true  welfare  of  the  student  at  heart,  but  do  not  think 
that  he  is  a  competent  judge  of  what  is  conducive  to  a 
thorough  mental  and  moral  training.  It  is  also  for  this 
reason  that  the  elective  method  of  education,  which  has  of 
late  years  done  so  much  harm  in  our  American  institutions 
of  learning,  has  found  no  entrance  into  the  Benedictine 
colleges. 

Following  the  long  tradition  of  their  Order,  the  Bene- 
dictines in  the  United  States  have  made  it  a  practice  to 
erect  their  monasteries  and  educational  institutions  away 
from  the  distractions  and  temptations  of  large  cities.  In 
consequence,  most  of  their  institutions  of  learning  are 
boarding  schools.  Every  method  of  education  has  its 
defects,  but  it  can  scarcely  be  denied  that  a  boarding 
school,  if  it  is  conscientiously  managed  and  if  undesir- 
able students  are  excluded,  is  best  adapted  to  build  up 
and  develop  a  sterling  character  in  young  men.  The 
orderly  manner  of  living,  the  wise  distribution  of  time, 
the  edifying  example  and  the  imposing  personality  of  the 
Benedictine  teacher  in  his  religious  gown,  his  disinter- 
ested devotion  to  duty,  his  many  self-sacrifices  for  the 
moral  and  intellectual  advancement  of  his  pupils,  in  fact, 
everything  the  students  come  in  contact  with  in  a  board- 
ing school  that  is  directed  by  a  Benedictine  community, 


506  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

makes  a  lasting  impression  on  their  receptive  minds  and 
plastic  hearts.  They  become  accustomed  to  obedience, 
regularity,  the  exact  performance  of  duty  and  are  imbued 
with  such  principles  as  will  make  them  good  Christians 
and  useful  members  of  human  society.  Unlike  the  mem- 
bers of  most  other  religious  communities,  the  Benedic- 
tine monk  takes  the  vow  of  stability,  which  binds  him  to 
his  own  monastery  for  life.  He  is,  therefore,  not  trans- 
ferred from  one  monastery  to  another  at  the  will  of  his 
superior,  but  always  remains  a  member  of  the  monas- 
tery for  which  he  made  profession.  As  a  result,  the  life 
in  a  Benedictine  community  has  all  the  advantages  of  a 
happy  family  life — and  this  is  perhaps  the  most  beautiful 
feature  of  the  Benedictine  Order.  This  family  life 
extends  in  some  degree  also  to  the  students  at  Benedic- 
tine colleges.  The  officials  and  the  teachers  endeavor 
to  make  the  college  a  second  home  to  their  students  and 
treat  them  as  a  good  father  would  treat  his  son.  The 
discipline  is  mild  and  the  necessary  order  is  maintained 
rather  by  paternal  admonitions,  by  appealing  to  religious 
motives  and  to  the  student's  sense  of  honor,  than  by 
severer  methods. 

The  courses  of  study  pursued  in  Benedictine  colleges 
are  practically  the  same  as  in  other  American  Catholic 
colleges.  The  Benedictines  lay  great  stress  on  the  classi- 
cal course  which,  however,  in  accordance  with  the  exi- 
gencies of  the  times,  includes  a  thorough  training  in  the 
natural  sciences.  Some  of  their  colleges  also  have  special 
departments  of  music,  commerce  and  military  training. 
In  thoroughness  the  Benedictine  colleges  in  the  United 
States  stand  second  to  none.  Following  in  the  footsteps 
of  their  European  ancestors  they  put  great  stress  on 
what  years  of  experience  have  designated  as  the  essen- 
tials of  a  thorough  education  and  are  not  affected  by  the 
short-lived  educational  fads  which  have  in  recent  years 
greatly  impeded  the  efficiency  of  American  educational 


Benedictine  Education  in  the  United  States    507 

institutions.  The  experience  of  fourteen  hundred  years 
of  educational  activity  has  made  the  Benedictine  Order 
one  of  the  most  effective  teaching  bodies  in  the  world. 
The  names  of  Monte  Cassino,  Cluny,  Bee,  Canterbury, 
Fulda,  Eeichenau,  Corvey,  etc.,  are  emblazoned  in  golden 
letters  on  the  history  of  European  civilization.  The 
Protestant  Eeformation  and,  later,  the  French  Revolu- 
tion and  the  high-handed  secularization  of  Benedictine 
monasteries  and  schools  have  temporarily  lessened  the 
number  of  Benedictines  and,  hence,  diminished  the  extent 
of  their  educational  activity,  but  have  been  unable  to 
wrest  from  them  their  proverbial  industry  and  thorough- 
ness. The  great  achievements  of  their  forefathers  have 
spurred  them  on  to  follow  in  their  footsteps.  The  late 
Archabbot  Wimmer,  who  was  the  first  to  transplant  the 
Benedictine  Order  upon  the  soil  of  our  country,  often 
expressed  the  desire  that  the  Benedictines  should  do 
for  the  Church  of  America  in  our  times  what  they  did 
for  the  Church  of  Europe  during  the  Middle  Ages.  May 
God  grant  that  this  free  country  of  ours  will  never 
impede  the  growth  of  religious  orders  which  have  ever 
been  the  great  mainstay  of  the  Church  and  civilization; 
then  the  time  will  come  when  the  ardent  desire  of  Arch- 
abbot  Wimmer  will  be  realized.  Meanwhile  the  Benedic- 
tine educators  will  continue  their  labors  in  the  quiet  of 
their  monasteries  regardless  of  earthly  praise  or  material 
reward,  always  true  to  their  motto :  Ut  in  omnibus  glorifi- 
cetur  Deus, 

Michael  Ott,  0.  S.  B. 
St.  John's  College, 

Collegeville,  Minn. 


HOW  TO  STUDY  THE  HISTORY  OF  EDUCATION 

There  are  three  questions  pertinent  to  his  work  which 
every  teacher  ought  to  be  able  to  answer.  The  first  is 
What  do  you  teach?  the  second,  How  do  you  teach?  and 
the  third,  Why  do  you  teach f  The  answers  will  describe 
more  or  less  fully  the  content,  the  method  and  the  ideal  of 
the  educational  work  in  which  he  is  engaged. 

The  first  question  is  easily  answered.  A  teacher  is  able, 
without  hesitation,  to  tell  us  that  he  is  teaching  history, 
or  grammar,  or  physics,  or  physical  culture,  or  mathe- 
matics. These  are  called,  very  often,  the  branches  taught. 
The  programme  of  a  school,  which  is  a  combination  of 
several  branches,  is  called  the  curriculum.  The  word  cur- 
riculum is  also  applied  to  the  total  of  branches  studied  in 
a  historical  period,  or  a  geographical  subdivision  of  the 
field  of  history.  Thus,  we  speak  of  the  curriculum  of  the 
medieval  schools  or  the  curriculum  of  the  Roman  schools. 
The  student  of  history  of  education  will,  therefore,  under- 
stand that  by  the  content,  curriculmn,  or  branches  taught, 
are  meant  those  subjects  of  study  and  teaching  which 
have  engaged  the  attention  of  pupils  and  teacher  in  some 
particular  school,  or  in  all  the  schools  of  some  period  or 
in  some  locality. 

Th«  question.  How  do  you  teach?  is  answered  by  a 
description  of  the  method  used  in  teaching.  Methods,  in 
teaching,  as  in  other  activities,  may  be  scientific  or 
unscientific.  Unscientific  methods  are  haphazard,  more 
or  less  instinctive,  and  individual,  or  personal.  They  may 
be  eminently  successful,  yet  they  cannot  be  reduced  to 
formulas  or  general  principles.  If  the  teacher  who 
uses  them  is  called  on  to  justify  his  practice,  he 
falls  back  on  what  he  styles  common  sense.  Like  Lord 
Mansfield,  who,  advising  a  young  man  of  no  legal  training 
but  of  practical  good  sense  on  the  matter  of  a  judgeship 


How  TO  Study  the  History  of  Education        509 

to  which  the  young  man  had  been  appointed,  said,  ^  ^  Give 
your  decision  boldly,  for  it  will  probably  be  right,  but 
never  venture  to  assign  reasons,  for  they  will  almost 
infallibly  be  wrong,'*  so  the  teacher  whose  methods  are 
unscientific  recognizes  that  his  success  in  teaching  is  not 
capable  of  being  explained  by  an  appeal  to  general  prin- 
ciples. On  the  contrary,  scientific  methods  are  based  on 
the  study  of  the  growing  mind,  and  on  the  conclusions  of 
biology,  physiology,  and  psychology.  The  teacher  who 
uses  scientific  methods  has  the  advantage  of  knowing  the 
reason  why  he  adopts  a  certain  practice,  or  discontinues 
the  use  of  a  certain  device.  He  works  intelligently  in  the 
best  sense  of  that  word.  He  is  less  exposed  than  the 
unscientific  teacher  to  fall  into  mistakes,  and  he  is  able 
to  impart  to  others  the  secret  of  his  success.  Scientific 
methods  are  not  all  of  recent  invention.  The  past,  even 
the  remote  past,  had  some  educators  who  studied  in  the 
light  of  such  knowledge  as  was  then  available  the  needs 
of  the  developing  mind  of  the  child.  It  is  the  task,  there- 
fore, of  the  student  of  history  to  study  the  efforts,  suc- 
cessful or  unsuccessful,  of  educators  in  former  times  to 
fimd  a  theoretical  justification  for  the  methods  used  in 
teaching.  Neither  are  all  unscientific  methods  necessarily 
harmful  or  useless.  The  human  mind  often  discovered  by 
intuition  or  acquired  by  experience  an  educational  method 
which  it  could  not  justify  by  appeal  to  science,  but  which 
was  successful  because,  as  we  now  see,  it  really  did  con- 
form to  scientific  principles.  Thus,  the  savages  knew  the 
value  of  imitation ;  the  Greeks  realized  the  importance  of 
expression;  the  Chinese  had  a  clear  conception  of  the 
practical  function  of  recapitulation,  and  the  Christian 
Church  in  its  liturgy  and  practice  of  piety  used  many 
of  the  methods  of  modern  education  which  it  did  not 
attempt  to  account  for  by  principles  of  psychology.  It  is, 
consequently,  also  a  part  of  our  task  in  the  history  of 
education  to  study  those  methods,  to  describe  how  they 


510  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

were  adopted  in  an  unreflecting  way,  to  show  to  what  they 
owed  their  success  and  to  point  out  how,  when  elevated,  so 
to  speak,  to  the  scientific  order,  they  can  be  made  still 
more  successful. 

The  question.  Why  do  you  teach!  is  the  most  difficult 
to  answer.  Of  course,  the  inquiry  has  no  reference  to  the 
immediate  personal  motive.  '  ^  I  teach  because  I  am  paid 
so  much  a  month  for  teaching, ' '  or  ^ '  I  teach  because  my 
superiors  ordered  me  to  do  so,''  or  ^^I  teach  because  I 
like  the  work,"  or  even  ^'I  teach  because  I  hope  in  that 
way  to  please  God,  and  merit  heaven,''  is  not  the  answer 
that  is  expected.  The  question  bears,  rather,  on  the  gen- 
eral educative  purpose,  or  the  ideal  which  the  teacher  has 
in  mind.  For  instance,  *^I  teach  for  the  purpose  of 
training  useful  citizens,"  ^^I  teach  in  order  to  develop 
boys  and  girls  into  perfect  men  and  women, "  or  * '  I  teach 
in  order  to  prepare  my  pupils  for  the  business  of  life," 
are  answers  that  come  closer  to  the  intent  of  the  question. 
All  education  may  be  presumed  to  be  a  preparation.  For 
what  is  the  pupil  to  be  prepared?  The  most  general 
answer  is  **For  the  life  he  is  to  live."  The  meaning  of 
life  will,  therefore,  determine  the  educational  ideal.  The 
definition,  *^  Education  is  that  form  of  social  activity 
whereby,  under  the  direction  of  mature  minds,  and  by 
the  use  of  adequate  means,  the  physical,  intellectual  and 
moral  powers  of  the  immature  human  being  are  so  devel- 
oped as  to  prepare  him  for  the  accomplishment  of  his  life- 
work  here  and  for  the  attainment  of  his  eternal  destiny, '  \ 
contains  the  Christian  ideal.  The  savage  and  primitive 
man  at  the  dawn  of  civilization  educated  for  the  physical 
life  alone :  to  prepare  the  child  to  become  a  useful  member 
of  the  tribe,  to  teach  him  how  to  procure  food  and  cloth- 
ing, defend  himself  against  his  enemies  and  cultivate 
those  qualities  which  made  him  an  acquisition  to  the 
group  in  which  he  was  to  live,  was  the  sole  aim.  The 
Chinese  educated  for  the  civil-religious-domestic  order, 


Catholic  Encyclopedia,  Art.  ^'Education." 


How  TO  Study  the  History  of  Education        511 

which  was  at  once  the  state,  the  religion  and  the  family, 
and  was  not  distinct  from  nature  itself.  The  Hindus 
educated  for  the  religious-social  caste.  The  Persians  and 
the  Spartans  educated  for  the  military-civil  state.  The 
Greeks  and  the  Romans  educated  for  purely  human  excel- 
lence, the  former  laying  stress  on  the  artistic  and  literary, 
and  the  latter  on  the  practical  and  institutional,  type  of 
excellence.  Christianity  resumed  all  these  phases,  physi- 
cal fitness,  domestic  virtue,  civic  virtue,  human  excellence : 
it  added  another  element,  preparation  for  man's  eternal 
destiny,  and,  making  the  others  subservient  to  this  last,  it 
subsumed  them  all  under  the  principle  that  the  spiritual 
is  supreme,  and  thus  coordinated,  articulated  and  vital- 
ized them  all  in  one  consistent,  living  ideal.  The  student 
of  the  history  of  education  will  find  it  a  most  interesting 
and  important  portion  of  his  task  to  trace  the  succession 
of  these  ideals  and  their  results  in  the  countries  where 
they  were  operative;  he  will  then  study  the  manner  in 
which  Christianity  superseded  them  without  eliminating 
them ;  finally,  he  will  trace  the  development  of  the  Chris- 
tian ideal  in  its  various  successive  phases.  He  will  note 
how  one  phase  of  the  supremacy  of  spiritual  interests  was 
brought  out  in  the  struggle  between  pagan  and  Christian 
ideals  in  the  first  centuries  of  our  era ;  he  will  find  another 
phase  of  it  in  the  institution  of  monasticism ;  he  will  trace 
its  later  phases  in  popular  education,  guild  education,  the 
institutes  of  chivalry  and  the  rise  and  growth  of  the 
universities. 

The  study  of  the  succession  of  educational  ideals  and 
of  the  development  of  successive  phases  of  the  Christian 
ideal  will  be  the  most  important  part  of  the  student's 
task,  because  the  ideal  always  influences  both  the  method 
and  the  content  in  education.  The  Christian  educator, 
especially,  will  derive  from  this  study  not  only  a  proper 
appreciation  and  a  deeper  understanding  of  the  ideal 
which  inspires  his  own  work,  but  also  considerable  assist- 


512  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

ance  of  a  practical  kind  in  solving  the  problems  which 
confront  him.  He  will  realize  that  the  study  of  the  his- 
tory of  education  does  not  aim  at  being  informational 
merely,  but  that  it  is  essentially  formative  and  should  be 
brought  to  bear  on  his  own  work. 

Besides  the  content,  the  method  and  the  ideal,  there  are 
other  items  which  the  student  of  history  will  look  for  in 
every  system  of  education  which  he  studies.  He  will  be 
interested  in  educational  institutions.  He  will  mark  the 
beginning  and  growth  of  organized  effort  in  education. 
He  will  note  the  attempts  at  legislation  in  educational 
matters ;  he  will  study  the  provisions  made  by  the  social 
group  for  the  education  of  its  members,  the  buildings,  the 
salaries  for  teachers,  the  social  status  of  the  teacher,  the 
differentation  of  lower  and  higher  schools,  the  limitations 
by  custom  or  law  of  the  period  of  school  life,  the  hygienic 
provisions,  the  system  of  rewards  and  punishments,  and 
so  forth.  He  will  be  attracted  to  the  more  human  side  of 
the  problem,  especially  by  the  details  of  school  life,  and 
the  insight  which  passages  in  ancient  literature  afford 
into  the  thoughts  and  feelings  of  those  who,  centuries  ago, 
stood  in  essentially  the  same  circumstances  as  he  and  his 
pupils  do  today.  He  will  also  be  interested  in  the  per- 
sonality of  the  great  educators  who,  either  in  theory  or 
in  practice,  sought  to  frame,  upbuild  or  reform  educa- 
tional systems.  He  will  not  neglect  the  writings  of  these 
men,  contributions  to  educational  literature,  containing 
advice  to  teachers  and  pupils,  or  dissertations  on  the  best 
methods  of  imparting  knowledge.  Even  text-books,  dry 
and  formal  as  some  of  them  are,  will  be  of  interest  so 
long  as  they  throw  light  on  the  tasks  which  confronted 
those  who  went  before  us.  Distance  in  this  case  lends,  if 
not  enchantment,  at  least  a  mild  enjoyment  to  the  study 
of  literary  specimens  which  are  often  devoid  of  intrinsic 
power  to  please.  The  disordered  remnants  of  a  Pelasgian 
wall  have  for  the  historian  whose  imagination  is  properly 


How  TO  Study  the  History  of  Education        513 

instructed  an  interest  which  a  perfect  example  of  modem 
architecture  would  not  be  likely  to  possess. 

All  this  has  a  very  considerable  cultural  value.  Besides, 
it  is  an  excellent  corrective  of  some  defects  to  which  the 
teacher's  life  exposes  him.  There  is  perhaps  no  other 
occupation  that  tends  so  inevitably  as  that  of  teaching 
to  narrow  one's  outlook  on  life  and  hinder  the  develop- 
ment of  one's  interest  in  the  broader  fields  of  literature 
and  art.  The  study  of  the  historical  past  furnishes  a 
perspective  into  which  the  teacher's  own  work  is  made  to 
fit ;  the  world  into  which  it  introduces  him,  with  its  strug- 
gles, its  sacrifices,  its  achievements,  its  failures,  not  only 
teaches  him  many  useful  lessons,  but  makes  demands  on 
his  sympathies  and  his  loyalty  which  will  not  fail  to  make 
him  a  better  man  and  a  more  efficient  teacher. 

The  mention  of  loyalty  brings  us  to  a  question  which  is 
of  paramount  importance  for  the  Christian  teacher,  espe- 
cially for  the  teacher  in  our  Catholic  schools.  What 
should  be  the  point  of  view  of  the  historian  of  education  1 
How  is  he  to  reconcile  his  loyalty  to  Christian  ideals  with 
that  impartiality  which  is  a  primary  requisite  in  the  stu- 
dent and  teacher  of  history?  To  answer  this  question 
satisfactorily  one  should  first  clear  up  the  ideas  which  one 
has  of  both  loyalty  and  impartiality.  Loyalty  is  a  species 
of  devotion.  It  undoubtedly  colors  one's  convictions. 
But,  it  is  not  itself  a  convicticn :  it  is  rather  an  inclination 
or  disinclination  towards  conviction.  Any  man  who  is 
loyal  to  his  friend,  or  his  country,  or  his  college,  or  his 
church  will  be  inclined  to  believe  certain  facts  which  are 
favorable,  and  disinclined  to  believe  the  opposite  facts 
which  are  unfavorable.  When  the  facts  are  proved,  his 
loyalty  should  not  go  bO  far  as  to  prevent  him  from  seeing 
the  truth ;  it  shows  itself  rather  in  the  pleasure  with  which 
he  accepts  what  is  favorable  or  the  pain  with  which  he 
admits  what  is  unfavorable  to  the  cause.  Facts  cannot 
be  denied,  however   much  they  may  be  regretted.     To 


514  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

undo,  literally,  what  has  been  done  is  beyond  the  power 
of  even  the  most  loyal.  Loyalty,  therefore,  to  the  Chris- 
tian point  of  view  does  not  mean  obstinate  unwillingness 
to  believe  anjrthing  against  the  Church.  It  means  merely 
that,  where  the  opponent  of  Christianity  shows  too  great 
eagerness  to  believe  what  is  discreditable,  the  Christian 
historian  will  accord  to  the  Church  that  slowness  to 
believe  which  every  man  extends  to  his  friend  when  the 
friend  is  under  the  shadow  of  accusation.  It  means  that, 
where  the  opponent  of  Christianity  exhibits  unholy  glee 
at  the  revelation  of  a  blot  on  the  escutcheon  of  the  Church, 
the  Christian  student,  admitting  the  facts  in  the  case, 
will  show  a  becoming  sense  of  regret.  And  he  will  regret 
the  fact  more  than  the  revelation  of  it. 

With  regard  to  impartiality,  there  is  little  in  it  except 
the  sound.  No  historian  is  completely  impartial.  There 
are,  indeed,  partisans  so  pronounced  that  their  histories 
are  eulogies,  or  apologies,  or  libels,  or  denunciations,  of 
their  favorite  heroes  or  pet  aversions.  There  are  histo- 
rians who  are  color  blind.  In  contrast  to  these,  a  histo- 
rian is  said  to  be  impartial  who  admits  the  clear  evidence 
of  facts  and  does  not  resist  the  compelling  force  of  his 
conclusions.  In  this  sense  a  Christian  student  of  the  his- 
tory of  education  may  be,  and  should  be,  as  impartial  as 
the  opponent  of  Christianity.  He  will  admit  the  facts 
when  the  evidence  compels  him  to  do  so.  He  has  nothing 
to  gain  by  suppressing  them,  and  nothing  to  fear  from  the 
admission  of  them.  '  ^  The  truth  does  not  fear  the  truth, ' ' 
said  Leo  XIII,  in  reference  to  the  publication  of  the 
Vatican  archives.  And  in  educational  matters  especially, 
although  the  accusations  are  shouted  from  the  housetops, 
the  Church's  record  is  so  noble,  her  services  so  signal 
even  in  matters  not  directly  covered  by  her  divine  charter 
to  ^ '  Teach  all  nations, ' '  that  the  admission  of  all  the  facts 
in  the  case  leaves  an  overwhelmingly  large  balance  on  the 
credit  side.    ^^Tell  the  truth  and  shame  the  deviP'  is  a 


How  TO  Study  the  History  of  Education        515 

somewliat  homely  maxim  which  we  can  take  to  heart 
without  any  intended  discourtesy  towards  our  accusers. 
When,  however,  the  facts  are  admitted,  there  remains 
the  task  of  interpreting  the  facts.  And  it  is  in  this  task 
that  every  historian  is  more  or  less  a  partisan.  If  a  his- 
torian could  bring  to  ascertained  facts  a  mind  completely 
devoid  of  conviction,  he  might  be  said  to  interpret  them 
impartially.  What  really  happens  is  that  the  historian 
always  interprets  the  facts  in  accordance  with  his  own 
convictions.  Hitherto,  we  have  been  on  the  defensive  in 
the  matter  of  the  history  of  education.  We  have  been 
content,  when  we  were  able,  to  nail  a  lie,  as  the  saying  is, 
or  to  point  out  a  flagrant  instance  of  misinterpretation. 
Too  long,  unfortunately,  we  have  delayed  to  tell  the  story 
of  the  Church's  educational  career  as  we  understand  it. 
Meantime,  the  story  has  been  told,  but  with  what  degree 
of  impartiality  our  current  text-books  on  the  subject  bear 
only  too  ample  witness.  The  history  of  education  has  been 
written  from  the  point  of  view  of  anti-Christian  partisan- 
ship. The  party  prejudice  has  not  always  gone  so  far  as 
to  blind  the  historian  to  facts  or  to  induce  him  to  misstate 
the  facts  outright.  But  in  almost  every  instance,  so  far 
as  English  literature  on  the  subject  is  concerned,  there 
is  the  partisanship  of  faulty  and  hostile  interpretation. 
It  is  time  for  us  to  study  the  facts  with  a  partisanship  of 
the  opposite  kind.  We  have  the  best  right  to  interpret 
the  facts.  We  are  in  the  position  of  the  defendant  in 
the  suit,  and  our  case,  if,  largely  through  our  own  fault, 
it  has  not  been  heard  first,  should  be  heard  last,  before 
sentence  is  pronounced.  We  have  not  only  the  best  right 
in  law  and  honesty  of  purpose,  but  the  best  right  in  scien- 
tific method.  For  we  claim  to  be  the  heirs  of  the  Church's 
educational  spirit,  and,  as  such,  we  may  be  presumed  to 
have  a  better  understanding  of  her  intentions  and  pur- 
poses.   In  America,  at  least,  this  point  in  our  favor  is 


516  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

admitted.  We  are  called  on  to  give  our  account  of  what 
the  Church  has  done,  and  we  are  assured  a  respectful 
hearing. 

Our  point  of  view,  therefore,  as  students  of  the  his- 
tory of  education  should  be  frankly  and  fearlessly  Chris- 
tian. We  should  have  a  proper  respect  for  the  stubborn- 
ness of  facts.  But  in  the  interpretation  of  facts  we  claim 
the  right,  which  every  historian  exercises,  of  putting  them 
in  the  light  in  which  we  see  them.  Being  loyal  to  our 
Church,  we  admit  with  regret  those  facts  which  are  not 
to  the  credit  of  men,  institutions  and  epochs  which  repre- 
sent her;  but  we  need  not  hesitate  at  the  same  time  to 
read  the  facts — all  the  facts,  so  far  as  we  can  ascertain 
them — as  loyal  children  of  the  Church.  Ideally  impartial 
interpretation  is  an  unattainable  dream.  This  much,  how- 
ever, is  in  our  favor:  a  partial  partisanship  of  interpre- 
tation being  humanly  inevitable,  the  partisanship  of  love 
and  loyalty  is  surely  preferable  to  a  partisanship  of 
jealousy  and  hatred,  as  light  is  to  be  preferred  to  dark- 
ness, and,  in  general,  the  positive,  the  constructive,  the 
sanely  conservative,  'to  the  negative,  the  destructive,  the 
irresponsibly  irreverent. 

The  Christian  ideal  of  education  is  a  synthesis  of  all 
the  elements  contained  in  pre-Christian  ideals,  with  the 
addition  of  the  spiritual  element,  which,  as  a  center  of 
organic  unity,  articulates  all  the  others  into  one  vital  con- 
ception of  the  meaning  of  education.  The  Christian  ideal 
should,  consequently,  be  used  as  a  test  by  which  to  judge 
the  ideals  that  preceded  it,  as  a  standard  of  comparison 
by  which  they  may  be  estimated  in  their  shortcomings  as 
well  as  their  good  qualities.  It  serves  also  as  a  principle 
of  unification  for  the  study  of  the  events  which  took  place 
in  the  educational  world  after  the  advent  of  Christianity. 
The  supremacy  of  spiritual  interests  as  enunciated  in  the 
question  '  *  What  doth  it  profit  a  man  if  he  gain  the  whole 


How  TO  Study  the  History  of  Education        517 

world  and  suffer  the  loss  of  his  own  soulT'  is  the  prin- 
ciple for  which  the  Christian  Church  has  stood  consist- 
ently throughout  her  career.  The  application  of  it,  how- 
ever, varies  with  the  conditions  of  each  educational  epoch. 
The  study  of  those  conditions  and  of  the  maimer  in  which 
the  principle  was  applied  to  them  will  lead  to  a  better 
understanding  of  the  problems  which  confront  us  today 
and  throw  light  on  the  policy  by  which  the  Church 
throughout  the  world  is  dealing  with  them. 

William  Tuener. 


TWENTIETH  CENTURY  PRAISE  OF  BOOKS 

The  wise  and  prudent  Saint  Dominick,  being  asked  by 
a  curious  disciple  in  what  books  be  had  studied  to  lay 
the  foundations  of  his  great  learning,  answered:  ^'My 
son,  chiefly  in  the  book  of  charity,  for  that  teaches 
everything. ' '  Anecdotes  such  as  this  sometimes  trouble 
conscientious  modern  readers,  who  are  not  accustomed 
to  have  the  praise  of  books  conditioned.  Jealous  readers 
take  alarm  at  once,  and  feel  obliged  to  believe  either  that 
books  are  not  really  a  blessing  to  the  world,  or  that  holy 
men  have  talked  foolishly.  Yet  in  most  cases  the  holy 
men  have  not  really  questioned  the  value  of  a  good  book 
in  good  time  and  place.  Saint  Dominick  found  the  book 
of  charity  open  in  the  quiet  library  as  well  as  on  the  peo- 
pled highway,  and  his  answer  is  but  poorly  understood  by 
those  who  find  in  it  nothing  but  a  narrowing  prohibition. 
He  evaded  the  implied  request  for  advice  as  to  choosing 
books  in  order  that  he  might  rather  give  the  warning  how 
to  read.  He  was  not  a  worse  but  a  better  friend  to  books 
for  recognizing  their  comparative  insignificance.  By 
admitting  them  even  to  a  secondary  importance  in  the 
order  of  charity,  which  is  so  much  loftier  than  the  order 
of  intellect,  he  gave  them  an  intelligible  purpose,  and 
hence  a  lasting  value.  He  placed  the  act  of  reading  in 
relation  to  an  end  so  high  that  its  importance  can  never 
be  brought  in  question.  This,  and  not  our  indiscriminate 
praise,  is  true  appreciation  of  books. 

Catholic  readers  in  twentieth  century  America  do  not, 
on  the  whole,  value  their  books  too  highly.  Perhaps  they 
do  not  value  them  highly  enough ;  for  the  great  books,  if 
valued  rightly,  would  often  enable  them  to  laugh  to  scorn 
the  little  books  attacking  faith.  But  all  our  books  are  not 
great  books:  matters  have  but  grown  worse  since  an 


Twentieth  Centuey  Praise  of  Books  519 

eccentric  character  in  one  of  Disraeli's  novels  could  com- 
plain with  reason  that  ''nine-tenths  of  existing  books  are 
nonsense,  and  the  only  good  books  are  clever  refutation/' 
And  readers,  Catholic  as  well  as  Protestant  and  infidel, 
care  increasingly  less  for  discrimination.  They  praise 
their  books  in  the  gross.  They  seldom  make  that  definite 
adjustment  of  importance  between  a  man  and  his  books 
which  is  the  beginning  of  reading.  And  yet  a  book  is  not 
a  safe  possession  on  any  other  terms.  For  books,  though 
not  immediately  human,  have  this  much  of  human  nature 
about  them:  that  they  are  easily  spoiled  for  use  by 
prosperity. 

Viewing  the  matter  in  the  light  of  a  century  of  literary 
history,  one  perceives  that  much  of  our  indiscriminate 
praise  of  books  is  but  ancient  prudery  inverted.  Reaction 
against  the  brutality  that  is  said  to  have  hastened  the 
death  of  Keats,  or  the  clamorous  insular  morality  that 
published  and  exulted  over  the  domestic  frailties  of  Byron 
and  Shelley,  runs  easily  into  another  extreme.  We  order 
things  differently  today.  The  modem  gentle  reader, 
especially  the  modern  gentle  feminine  reader,  is  apt  to 
look  with  painful  seriousness  on  books  as  books,  and  most 
urgently  to  belabor  whoever  dares  suggest  that  books, 
unlike  babies,  do  not  justify  their  existence  merely  by 
being  born.  And  yet  good  books  are  so  numerous  today 
that  readers  can  only  gain  by  ruthless  criticism.  No 
perfervid  poet  in  twentieth  century  America  need  sup- 
press his  noble  rage  because  he  fears  the  prudes :  he  will 
have  them  with  him.  No  genius  born  before  his  time  need 
fear  to  be  ' '  snuffed  out  by  an  article ' ' :  the  present  Mrs. 
Grundy  goes  to  lectures  on  advanced  thought  and  bends 
herself  rather  to  snuff  out  the  old  fireside  proprieties. 
The  gentle  reader  who  is  fluttered  by  every  threatened 
restriction  on  reading  forgets  that  the  world  has  moved. 
Books  are  not  now  on  suffrance :  in  reputation,  at  least, 


520  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

they  have  come  into  their  own.  The  old  problem  of  bring- 
ing books  to  bear  on  the  common  life  of  men  is  no  nearer 
solution.  It  is  only  complicated  by  the  growing  modem 
sentiment  that  makes  respect  for  books  conventional. 

It  is  not  true  of  all  books  that  they  *'do  preserve  as  in 
a  vial  the  purest  efficacy  and  extraction  of  the  living 
intellect  that  bred  them.^^  The  modern  writers  who  use 
that  stately  phrase  without  discrimination  could  never 
have  originated  it.  The  splendid  fervor  of  a  religious 
human  purpose — splendid,  though  mistaken — glorified  for 
Milton  the  books  in  which  he  saw  that  purpose  reflected, 
and  blinded  him  to  the  multitude  of  dull  and  evil  books 
which  existed  in  his  day  as  well  as  in  our  own.  And  Mil- 
ton, as  a  poet,  spoke  not  literally,  but  with  a  poet's  license. 
In  the  light  of  the  subsequent  history  of  even  so  enduring 
a  book  as  ^^  Paradise  Losf  there  is  something  pathetic 
in  its  author's  vehement  reiteration  that  ** books  are  not 
dead  things.''  For  the  doctrinal  intention  which  was  to 
Milton  the  life  of  his  book  is  dead  indeed  to  most  modem 
readers,  and  all  that  remain  is  the  beauty  and  the  formal 
majesty  which  were  to  him — ^no  pantheist- — only  the  per- 
fection of  inanimate  clay.  Those  who  love  beauty  more 
than  virtue  may  hold  that  this  was,  indeed,  ^^the  purest 
efficacy  and  extraction  of  the  living  intellect"  of  John 
Milton.  But  for  the  ordinary  book  no  such  claim  can 
be  made  without  traducing  ordinary  human  nature. 

That  the  purest  efficacy  of  any  living  intellect  may  be 
preserved  in  a  book  is  a  large  assumption.  ** Living"  is 
a  word  of  transcendent  significance,  in  spite  of  all  the 
leveling  pretentions  of  science.  If  it  means  anything  in 
connection  with  intellect  it  means  the  vital  communicat- 
ing spirit  that  moves  and  thinks,  in  sharp  distinction  from 
the  objective  communicable  matter  that  is  thought  and 
suggested.  It  may  happen  that  a  book  preserves  a  fuller 
and  finer  measure  of  intellectual  efficacy  than  has  been 
set  in  motion  by  all  the  action  of  its  writer's  history.    It 


Twentieth  Century  Praise  of  Books  521 

does  often  happen  that  the  influence  of  a  book  is  almost 
miraculous;  and  the  fascination  in  the  study  of  books 
probably  lies  in  this  fact,  that  here  in  greater  purity  and 
distinctness  than  in  any  other  enduring  sensible  med- 
ium may  be  traced  the  record  of  a  power  beyond 
sense.  Yet  if  one  is  loyal  to  life  as  well  as  to  books,  one 
can  hardly  escape  the  conviction  that  the  **  purest  efficacy 
of  a  living  intellect*'  is  something  much  too  fine,  too  per- 
sonal, too  immediately  operative  for  good  and  evil  to  be 
preserved  unweakened  to  an  ink  and  paper  immortality, 
or  to  permit  of  concentration  in  any  vial  less  sensitive  and 
potent  than  a  conscious  human  soul. 

The  relative  importance  of  men  and  books  is  preserved 
in  praise  such  as  this  of  Milton's,  by  the  exaltation  of 
both:  sincerity  and  passion  refine  true  eloquence  from 
mawkishness  as  by  a  miracle  of  instinct.  But  there  is  no 
miracle  in  the  modem  indiscriminate  praise  of  books. 
Milton  could  praise  books  highly  because  he  believed  in 
a  high  religious  mission  in  human  life  and  literature :  the 
modern  indiscriminate  praise,  on  the  contrary,  approves 
most  often  such  books  as  leave  one  doubtful  whether  life 
and  literature  have  any  mission  at  all.  Milton  could 
become  vehement  in  praising  books,  because  he  believed 
intensely  in  a  difference  between  good  and  evil,  and 
thought  he  saw  in  books  a  means  of  propagating  the  truth 
that  was  good :  the  modern  indiscriminate  praise  likes  to 
play  that  good  and  evil  are  conventions,  and  values  books 
in  proportion  as  they  represent,  not  a  compelling  truth, 
but  a  purient  and  pragmatical  nothingness.  In  absolute 
contradiction  to  Milton  this  modern  praise  too  often  feeds 
respect  for  books  on  distrust  of  human  purpose.  It  makes 
books  spring  from  an  unimaginable,  self-sufficing  origin, 
to  be  the  flower  of  a  process  finer  than  human  living,  as 
if  books — except  one  great  book  that  lies  beyond  the  range 
of  this  discussion — were  not  made,  some  by  writers  and 
some  by  readers,  but  all  by  men. 


522  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

The  idea  of  writing  for  the  sake  of  writing,  or  of  read- 
ing for  the  sake  of  reading,  probably  never  entered  the 
minds  of  the  master  spirits  of  literature.  Says  Fulke 
Greville  of  Sir  Philip  Sidney:  ''His  aim  was  not  writing, 
even  while  he  wrote ;  nor  his  knowledge  moulded  for  tables 
or  schools,  but  both  his  wit  and  understanding  bent  upon 
his  heart,  to  make  himself  and  others,  not  in  words  or 
opinion,  but  in  life  and  action,  good  and  great.''  We 
laugh  at  the  moral  pretentions  of  some  of  our  older  novel- 
ists, but  such  pretentions,  though  extravagant,  were  an 
instructive  recognition  of  the  necessity  of  justifying  one's 
book.  It  is  only  in  modern  times  that  we  have  begun,  as 
a  distinguished  English  writer,  Frederic  Harrison,  puts 
it,  ''to  pride  ourselves  on  our  power  of  absorbing  print, 
as  our  grandfathers  did  on  their  gift  of  absorbing  port. ' ' 
It  is  only  since  so  large  a  part  of  mankind  has  grown 
sedentary  and  bilious  that  we  forget  the  native  dignity  of 
life  and  personality,  and  descend  to  overlay  our  con- 
sciousness with  any  lettered  page  that  comes  to  hand. 
We  &peak  the  lines  of  Shakespeare's  pedant  without  per- 
ceiving the  irony  of  the  writer :  ' '  Sir,  he  hath  never  been 
fed  of  the  dainties  that  are  bred  in  a  book ;  he  hath  not  eat 
paper,  as  it  were;  he  hath  not  drunk  ink;  his  intellect  is 
not  replenished ;  he  is  only  an  animal,  only  sensible  in  the 
duller  parts." 

Very  great  intellects  have  often  a  touch  of  madness, 
and  so  do  books  that  are  great  enough  for  serious  atten- 
tion. It  is  well  for  both  that  they  be  made  to  feel  at  times 
the  restraining  touch  of  a  commonplace  human  under- 
standing. The  highest  compliment  a  man  can  pay  his 
books  is  to  hold  them  to  a  human  accountability,  and  to 
recognize  that  they  may  be  as  troublesome  to  his  peace 
of  mind  as  are  his  intimate  friends.  The  utmost  appre- 
ciation that  can  be  afforded  to  genius  as  genius  is  finely 
expressed  in  a  line  of  the  poet  Gray : 


Twentieth  Century  Praise  of  Books  523 

*^ Beneath  the  Good  how  far — but  far  above  the  Great.'' 
Gray  speaks  for  his  own  province,  of  poetry,  but  the 
same  valuation  holds  throughout  literature.  Even  his- 
tory, building  professedly  on  facts  and  not  on  imagination, 
requires  its  reader  to  be  ever  alert,  ever  ready  to  match 
his  own  firm  soul  against  some  challenge  of  author  or 
material.  There  is  a  very  noble  concession  and  warning 
in  one  of  the  last  public  utterances  of  a  great  Catholic 
historian.  In  his  ^^ Lecture  on  the  study  of  History,'* 
Lord  Acton  tells  his  students :  ^  *  The  weight  of  opinion  is 
against  me  when  I  exhort  you  never  to  debase  the  moral 
currency,  or  to  lower  the  standard  of  rectitude,  but  to  try 
others  by  the  final  maxims  that  govern  your  own  lives.'' 
These  final  maxims  persist,  while  the  apparently  solid 
facts  of  history  have  a  trick  of  changing.  The  generally 
accepted  dictum  that  history  must  be  rewritten  for  each 
new  generation  suggests  the  cynical  reply  of  Faust  to 
Wagner : 

^*My  friend,  the  ages  that  are  past 

Are  as  a  book  with  seven  seals  made  fast. 

And  what  we  call  the  spirit  of  the  age 

Is  but  the  spirit  of  the  gentlemen 

Who  glass  their  own  thoughts  in  the  pliant  page. 

And  image  back  themselves. ' ' 
And,  indeed,  one  may  say  without  exaggeration  that 
books  are  largely  a  field  of  conflict  between  writer  and 
reader  as  to  which  shall  ^4mage  back  himself."  Lord 
Acton  was  in  many  respects  the  most  learned  man  and 
the  greatest  historian  of  the  last  generation,  and  his  devo- 
tion to  the  facts  of  history  was  the  trait  of  his  character 
which  the  world  knew  best.  Yet  he  continues,  in  the  lec- 
ture already  quoted:  ** Modern  history  touches  us  so 
nearly,  is  so  deep  a  question  of  life  and  death,  that  we 
are  bound  to  find  our  way  through  it,  and  to  owe  our 
insight  to  ourselves."  Such  a  declaration  from  a  sober 
historian  gives  value  to  a  paradox  which  was  merely  fan- 


524  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

tastic,  when  propounded  by  an  irresponsible  mystic.  **It 
is  not  history  that  teaches  conscience  to  be  honest,''  says 
AmiePs  Journal;  *4t  is  conscience  that  educates  history. 
Fact  is  corrupting — it  is  we  who  correct  it  by  the  persist- 
ence of  our  ideal.  The  soul  moralizes  the  past  in  order 
not  to  be  demoralized  by  it.''  Of  course,  fact  is  not  cor- 
rupting— quite  the  reverse.  But  facts  seen  through  the 
clouded  lens  of  a  human  personality  may  easily  assume 
the  shape  and  colors  of  evil,  and  all  book  facts  are  seen 
through  a  double  lens.  For  good  or  evil,  then,  the  soul 
of  the  reader  must  bring  with  it  the  light  that  shall  largely 
determine  the  effect. 

It  is  really  a  dull  reader  who  is  ever  so  entirely  satis- 
fied with  his  book  as  to  hear  it  praised  without  impa- 
tience. ^  ^  For  this,  I  conceive,  Phaedrus  is  the  evil  of  writ- 
ing, and  herein  it  closely  resembles  painting.  The  crea- 
tures of  the  latter  art  stand  before  you  as  if  they  were 
alive,  but  if  you  ask  them  a  question  they  look  solemn  and 
say  not  a  word.  And  so  it  is  with  written  discourses. 
You  could  fancy  they  speak  as  though  they  were  pos- 
sessed of  sense,  but  if  you  wish  to  understand  what  they 
say,  and  if  you  question  them  about  it,  you  find  them 
repeating  but  one  and  the  self-same  story. ' '  The  greater 
the  book,  the  greater  the  sense  of  incompleteness  on  fin- 
ishing it:  it  must  be  so,  because  our  deeper  longings  do 
not  stir  to  a  small  suggestion.  It  is  only  ignorance  that 
can  believe  in  a  library  of  perfect  books :  one  easily  learns 
the  names  of  the  great  books^ — one  must  learn  something 
of  the  kind  at  school — ^but  one  does  not  easily  find  time  for 
real  acquaintance.  Hence  comes  much  of  the  praise  that 
is  scandal  in  disguise. 

Every  persistent  reader  knows  something  of  this  expe- 
rience :  a  mood  in  which  the  good  book  and  the  bad  book 
are  equally  a  burden  to  the  soul.  The  mere  reader  encoun- 
ters such  an  experience  despondently,  the  great  creative 


Twentieth  Century  Praise  of  Books  525 

artists  turn  fiercely  for  relief  in  new  production;  but 
both  are  dissatisfied.  The  mood  in  question  is  not  to  be 
dispelled  by  the  modern  wiseacre's  prescription  of  a 
change  from  book  to  book — that  milk  for  babies :  it  is  a 
mood  to  find  impediment  and  disgust  in  mere  literal  real- 
ity: it  hates  the  never-ending  physical  dull  plodding 
through  the  resisting  mass  of  a  printed  page  that  it  knows 
can  only  end  in  shadows  and  surmises.  Books  are  small 
indeed  when  measured  starkly  with  a  lonely  human  soul, 
and  their  help  in  moments  of  human  anguish  is  seldom 
other  than  remote  or  accidental.  The  best  of  them  can- 
not sustain  consistently  the  demands  of  everyday  human 
intercourse.  The  confession  that  our  greatest  books  are 
weak  and  imperfect  is  oftenest  a  confession  of  love,  but 
it  is  none  the  less  a  confession  of  real  failure,  and  must 
be  made  by  every  reader  not  too  dull  to  risk  an  aspiration. 

The  confession  of  failure  in  reading  is  a  story  as  old 
as  history.  Plato,  in  the  myth  of  the  Phaedrus  from 
which  we  have  already  quoted,  would  have  us  believe  that 
the  failure  was  foretold  at  the  very  invention  of  books : 

* '  Theuth  began,  '  this  invention,  0  King,  will  make  the 
Egyptians  wiser  and  better  able  to  remember,  it  being 
a  medicine  I  have  discovered  both  for  memory  and  wis- 
dom.' The  King  replied:  *Most  ingenious  Theuth,  one 
man  is  capable  of  giving  birth  to  an  art,  another  of  esti- 
mating the  amount  of  good  or  harm  it  will  do  in  to  those 
who  use  it.  Now  you,  as  the  father  of  letters,  have 
ascribed  to  them,  in  your  fondness,  exactly  the  reverse 
of  their  real  effects.  For  this  invention  of  yours  will  pro- 
duce f orgetf nines s  in  the  minds  of  those  who  use  it,  by 
causing  them  to  neglect  their  memory,  inasmuch  as  from 
their  confidence  in  writing  they  will  recollect  by  the  aid 
of  foreign  symbols,  and  not  by  the  natural  use  of  their 
own  faculties.  Your  discovery,  therefore,  is  a  medicine 
not  for  memory,  but  for  recollection;  for  recalling,  not 


526  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

for  keeping  in  mind.  And  yon  are  providing  for  your 
disciples  a  show  of  wisdom  without  the  reality.  For 
acquiring  by  your  means  much  knowledge,  while  in  fact 
they  will,  for  the  most  part,  know  nothing  at  all;  and 
moreover  will  be  disagreeable  persons  to  deal  with,  as 
having  become  wise  in  their  own  conceit.'' 

The  same  confession  is  made  for  every  generation  of 
readers,  in  one  form  or  another,  by  men  who  like  Plato, 
think  nobly  of  the  soul.  Petrarch,  at  the  very  summit 
of  the  vauntiag  Renaiscence,  confesses  that  /^  Books 
have  brought  some  men  to  knowledge,  and  some  to  mad- 
ness.'' The  long  quotation  from  Plato  would  lose  much 
of  its  pertinence  for  us  if  we  were  ignorant  of  its  date. 
When  Socrates,  continuing  the  dialogue  with  Phaedrus, 
applies  the  lesson  to  ^*you  moderns,"  it  is  difficult  to 
remember  that  he  is  not  speaking  to  the  graduates  of 
twentieth  century  normal  schools  and  reading  circles,  but 
to  the  pupils  of  the  Athenian  Sophists,  four  hundred 
years  before  the  Christian  era. 

With  all  their  limitations  books  are  full  of  marvelous 
possibilities.  Under  God's  providence  they  help  to  shape 
at  once  the  vast  epochal  changes  of  the  world,  and  the 
most  intimate  hidden  moments  of  personality.  For  wis- 
dom and  virtue,  for  solace  and  enjoyment,  they  are  indeed 
a  medicine,  in  spite  of  Plato's  fabling.  And  yet,  of 
themselves,  they  are  nothing — as  Plato  wished  to  warn  us. 
One  human  mind  lends  them  a  meaning,  and  another 
human  mind  must  color  and  enlarge  that  meaning  into 
life.  That  which  a  man's  own  habit  of  life  and  thinking 
dispose  him  to  look  for  in  a  book,  that  he  will  almost 
certainly  find — if  not  by  attraction  or  imitation,  then  by 
mere  repulsion.  Not  our  books,  then,  but  **our  acts,  our 
angels  are,  or  good  or  ill"  and  '* these  fatal  shadows" 
which  walk  by  us  even  in  our  reading  determine  for  us 
what  we  shall  take  from  our  books.    Insistent  deference 


Twentieth  Century  Praise  of  Books  527 

to  books  as  books  is  hence  an  insult  to  the  human  will. 
It  is  a  denying  of  personal  responsibility.  Man  cannot 
afford  to  look  directly  at  books  for  themselves,  but  only 
as  Thoreau  said  he  looked  at  nature,  ^ '  with  the  side  of  his 
eye.''  Or,  rather,  man  must  look  boldly  through  and 
beyond  books  to  the  religion  and  humanity  which  they 
serve.  He  must  come  to  his  books  full  charged  with  high 
personal  convictions,  with  assured  hope,  with  sweetness 
and  light  within  him,  with  heroic  passion  and  beauty  and 
joyousness  in  his  own  life — or  he  will  find  none  of  these 
things  in  his  reading.  Or,  at  least,  he  must  come  with  the 
humble  desire  of  these  things,  that  he  may  even  see  their 
brightness  from  afar.  And  so,  in  any  case,  his  study  must 
be  first  and  chiefly  in  the  book  of  charity — ^^for  that 
teaches  everything. ' ' 

The  most  immoderately  worded  praise  of  books  prob- 
ably falls  far  short  of  bringing  any  reader  to  a  fitting 
appreciation  of  the  best  that  has  been  written.  No  praise 
that  inspired  readers  with  a  noble,  happy  purpose  could 
be  immediate.  It  is  well  to  assure  the  world  again  and 
again,  even  the  book-ridden  world  of  today,  that  good 
reading  is  worth  while.  But  it  is  never  well  to  throw 
the  praise  of  books  into  terms  of  life,  and  to  depreciate 
life  in  order  that  books  may  be  more  highly  valued.  Life, 
to  be  respected,  must  be  free  to  rise  above  its  accidents. 
And  pessimism,  the  lack  of  respect  for  life,  is  already  a 
crying  evil  of  our  age.  An  age  of  pessimism  may  praise 
books,  but  it  cannot  value  or  use  them;  for  books  as  the 
interpreters  of  life,  can  be  for  such  an  age  no  more  than 
mirrors  of  nothing. 

James  A.  Hartigan. 
South  Boston,  Mass. 


DE  LA  SALLE,  FRANCKE'S  PROTOTYPE 

In  the  leading  article  of  the  Review  for  March,  the 
Reverend  William  Turner,  S.  T.  D.,  while  making  an 
opportmie  and  forcible  plea  for  a  more  thorough  exploita- 
tion of  the  original  sources  of  educational  history,^ 
adduces  many  reasons  why  we  should  have  a  history  of 
education  from  the  pen  of  a  Catholic.  Existing  treatises 
on  the  history  of  education  are  shown  by  Dr.  Turner  to 
be  inadequate,  deficient,  and,  in  some  instances,  false. 
The  exceptions  taken  by  the  reviewer  to  Painter's  His- 
tory of  Education  are  particularly  to  the  purpose.  In  that 
volume  of  the  International  Education  Series,  there  is 
another  lacuna  which  should  not  be  permitted  to  go  un- 
noticed; it  is  the  omission  of  all  reference  to  St.  John 
Baptist  De  La  Salle.  This  hiatus  in  '^A  History  of  Edu- 
cation'' is  all  the  more  amazing,  as  Mr.  Painter  lavishes 
unstinted  commendation  on  A.  H.  Francke  for  a  line  of 
endeavor  which  had  been  originated,  and  even  more  com- 
pletely followed,  by  St.  De  La  Salle. 

In  the  account  Painter  gives  of  Francke,  we  read :  ^  *  In 
1691  the  University  of  Halle  was  founded,  and  the  fol- 
lowing year,  through  the  influence  of  Spener,  Francke 
was  appointed  Professor  of  Greek  and  Oriental  Lan- 
guages, and  at  the  same  time  pastor  of  a  suburban  church. 
Here  in  Halle  he  accomplished  a  great  work,  which  stands 
in  educational  history  almost  without  a  parallel.  The 
beginning  was  very  humble.  The  poor  were  accustomed 
to  assemble  on  Thursday  before  the  parsonage  to  receive 
alms.  The  thought  occurred  to  Francke  that  the  occa- 
sion might  be  improved  for  religious  instruction.  He 
invited  the  crowd  of  old  and  young  into  his  house,  and 
along  with  bread  administered  spiritual  food.    He  learned 


^"Sources    of    the    History    of    Education,"    by    William    Turner,    The 
Catholic   Educational   Review,   March,   1911,   pp.    199-211. 


De  La  Salle,  Francke's  Prototype  529 

the  condtions  of  the  poorer  classes,  and  his  heart  was 
touched  by  their  ignorance  and  need.  He  deprived  him- 
self of  comforts  to  administer  to  their  necessities. '  '^ 

In  connection  with  this  excerpt  from  Painter's  History 
of  Education,  published  in  1886,  consider  the  extract 
below,  taken  from  Canon  Blain's  Life  of  St.  John  Bap- 
tist De  La  Salle,  first  published  at  Eouen  in  1733. 

^^1684  was  a  year  of  famine  in  and  around  the  city  of 
Eheims.  The  starving  poor  from  the  country  round 
about  flocked  into  the  capital  of  the  province  and,  together 
with  the  indigent  of  the  town,  made  of  Eheims  a  veritable 
hospital.  *  *  *  That  year,  so  direful,  was  a  year  of 
heroic  virtue  and  of  extraordinary  merit  for  John  Bap- 
tist De  La  Salle;  for  it  furnished  him  the  occasion  of 
practising  the  greatest  of  the  corporal  and  of  the  spiritual 
works  of  mercy.  *  *  *  He  gave  away  a  large  patri- 
mony and  deprived  himself  even  of  the  means  of  liveli- 
hood for  the  relief  of  those  in  distress.  It  was  hard  to 
say  which  was  more  pleasing  to  him ;  to  become  poor,  or 
to  be  rich  so  that  he  might  assist  the  poor.     *     *     * 

He  did  not,  however,  distribute  his  wealth  at  hazard. 
*  *  *  The  charitable  priest,  seeing  assembled  under 
his  eyes  so  many  destitute  persons,  studied  their  char- 
acters in  order  to  give  them  suitable  advice.  By  pious 
remonstrances,  prudent  corrections  and  heartfelt  sym- 
pathy, he  strove,  while  relieving  their  bodily  wants,  to 
heal  their  souls  of  the  maladies  to  which  they  were  a  prey. 
A  distribution  of  alms  took  place  at  his  house  every 
morning.  *  *  *  Become  poor  in  assisting  the  poor, 
he  himself  had  later  to  go  from  door  to  door  to  beg  the 
necessaries  of  life.''^ 

Francke  took  up  his  residence  in  Halle  in  1692.  It  was 
accordingly  after  that  date  that  he  dispensed  bread  and 

""'A  History  of  Education,"  by  F.  V.  N.  Painter,  pp.  258-9,  reprint 
of   1904. 

°La  Vie  du  Bienheureux  Serviteur  de  Dieti,  Jean-Baptiste  De  La 
Salle,  Instituteur  des  Freres  des  Ecoles  Chretiennes,  par  M.  TAbbe 
Jean-Baptiste  Blain,  Pubilee  en  1733,  Reeditee  a  Paris  en  1889,  pp. 
146-7. 


530  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

instruction  to  his  poor  visitors.  Now,  in  1684,  eight  years 
before  Francke  settled  in  Halle,  St.  John  Baptist  De  La 
Salle  had  done  in  Eheims  all  that  Francke  did  later  in 
the  Saxon  city  on  the  Saale.  The  Saint  gave  away  a  large 
fortune  and  devoted  himself  by  vow  for  a  long  lifetime  to 
the  arduous  labors  of  schoolmaster.  Francke  deprived 
himself  of  comforts  to  administer  to  the  necessities  of  the 
poor ;  St.  John  Baptist  De  La  Salle  had  eight  years  pre- 
viously deprived  himself  of  even  necessaries  for  the  relief 
of  the  indigent,  and  that  he  might,  in  the  interests  of  the 
most  needy  class  of  society,  found  a  teaching  congregation 
on  the  enduring  cornerstone  of  evangelical  poverty. 
Francke  did  something  for  the  people  of  one  small  town ; 
St.  De  La  Salle  founded  schools  in  Eheims,  Paris,  Eouen, 
Marseilles,  Grenoble  and  Eome,  and  moreover,  he  insti- 
tuted a  society  of  teachers  that  has  long  since  spread  the 
world  over.  With  all  these  differences  of  priority,  excel- 
lence and  universality  in  favor  of  St.  John  Baptist  De 
La  Salle,  he  gets  no  mention  whatsoever  from  Mr.  Painter 
in  *^A  History  of  Education ; ^ ^  whereas  an  imitator, 
Francke,  is  credited  with  methods  that  had  been  devised 
and  publicly  followed  years  before  by  the  founder  of  the 
Brothers  of  the  Christian  Schools. 

Here  we  have  a  suppression  of  important  facts  and  an 
undue  prominence  given  to  such  as  are  merely  second- 
ary— a  distortion  all  the  stranger  as  it  proceeds  from  a 
presumably  enlightened  source.  If  such  wrongs  can  not 
be  entirely  righted,  it  were  well  that  they  should  at  least 
be  exposed.  The  publication  of  a  Catholic  source  book 
of  the  history  of  education  would  do  much  to  eradicate 
error,  to  advance  the  cause  of  truth,  and  to  bring  to  light 
hitherto  unrecognized  contributions  to  the  developing 
science  of  pedagogy. 

John  J.  Tracy. 
Clason  Point  Military  Academy, 
West  Chester,  New  York  City. 


SUEVEY  OF  THE  FIELD 

If  there  is  any  one  lesson  taught  by  the  history  of 
civilization  in  such  a  manner  as  to  leave  no  room  for 
doubt  or  misinterpretation  it  is  that  reckless  and  whole- 
sale experimenting  in  the  field  of  education  should  not 
be  permitted.  Of  course,  progress  in  education,  as  in 
other  fields,  demands  that  experiment  be  employed  to 
test  the  validity  of  theory,  but  the  experiment  must  be 
conducted  with  all  the  care  which  the  gravity  of  the 
situation  demands;  and  it  should  be  limited  to  as  small 
a  number  of  children  as  the  nature  of  the  case  will  permit, 
for  under  the  best  of  circumstances  the  happiness  and 
wellbeing  of  the  children  experimented  upon  are  at  stake, 
and  where  no  restrictions  are  placed  upon  the  numbers 
the  stability  of  the  social  order  may  easily  be  undermined. 
Whether  it  be  due  to  the  intoxication  caused  by  our 
incalculable  natural  resources  or  to  the  fact  that  our 

population,  upon  whom  ultimately  rests 
EECKLEss  the  responsibility  of  government,  is  made 

EDUCATIONAL  Up  largely  of  the  millions  who  have  been 
EXPEEiMENTs    pushcd  out  of  oldcr  countries  and  have  not 

yet  had  time  in  this  country  to  develop 
respect  for  authority  or  to  set  up  sane  standards,  it  re- 
mains true  that  we  have  been  indulging  in  educational 
experiments  with  a  recklessness  and  on  a  scale  that  have 
never  before  been  attempted  by  any  civilized  nation. 
However,  if  not  in  justification,  at  least  in  palliation  of 
this  procedure,  it  should  be  borne  in  mind  that  our  situa- 
tion in  this  country  is  characterized  by  many  special  diffi- 
culties. Our  population  is  heterogeneous  to  the  last 
extreme,  our  cities  are  the  meeting-ground  of  the  nations 
of  the  earth.  Out  of  the  babel  of  tongues,  the  conflict 
of  national  customs  and  the  clash  of  divergent  religious 
beliefs  the  schools  are  called  upon  to  develop  a  homoge- 


532  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

neous  nation.  The  history  of  education  provides  no 
adequate  solution  for  the  difficulties  which  confront  us, 
and  hence  it  was  to  be  expected  that  educators  would 
resort  to  theory  and  experiment  for  light  in  the  shaping 
of  our  policies.  It  is  not,  therefore,  the  fact  of  experi- 
menting, but  its  extent  and  recklessness,  that  is  open  to 
objection. 

Our  democratic  form  of  government  rests  on  the  in- 
telligence of  the  individual  citizen  and  hence  it  is  most 
natural  that  we  should  adopt  the  policy  of 
COMPROMISE  affording  to  each  child  bom  to  the  nation  an 
AND  THE  opportunity  of  obtaining  at  least  an  ele- 
LiTTLE  RED  moutaiy  education.  Since  English  is  the 
scHOOLHousE  language  of  the  country,  all  of  our  children 
should  be  taught  its  use ;  otherwise,  they  will 
not  be  able  to  take  an  intelligent  part  in  the  life  of  the 
commonwealth.  Under  these  circumstances,  the  common 
school  in  which  the  children  of  every  nationality  should 
meet  on  an  equal  footing  to  study  our  language  and  to 
learn  the  duties  of  citizenship  seemed  to  be  demanded. 
Prudence  might  have  suggested  the  advisability  of  test- 
ing the  plan  thoroughly  on  a  small  scale,  but  with  our 
characteristic  impatience  of  delays  we  straightway  de- 
creed that  the  common  school  should  be  called  into  exist- 
ence in  every  village  and  hamlet  in  the  land.  And  once 
this  decree  of  the  sovereign  people  went  forth,  it  were 
high  treason  to  question  its  wisdom.  The  fact  that  it  was 
a  compromise  begotten  of  dire  necessity  was  soon  for- 
gotten, and  the  little  red  schoolhouse  was  enthroned  on 
the  altar  of  the  nation. 

In  several  of  the  countries  of  Europe  the  children  are 
bi-lingual  or  multi-lingual,  but  in  the  common  schools  of 
this  country  the  children  acquire  a  very 
MISSING  AN  questionable  mastery  of  English  alone.  We 
OPPORTUNITY  cannot  teach  all  the  foreign  languages,  and 
as  one  nationality  has  as  good  a  right  as 
another  to  have  its  language  taught,  if  any  language 


Survey  of  the  Field  533 

other  than  English  is  to  find  a  place  in  the  curriculum,  we 
compromise  by  teaching  English  alone  and  straightway 
convince  ourselves  that  this  is  the  best  conceivable  sys- 
tem and  look  down  with  pity  on  the  ignorance  of  poor 
benighted  foreigners,  who  grow  up  with  the  easy  use  of 
several  languages.  Nor  are  we  concerned  with  the  com- 
ments sometimes  passed  upon  us  by  students  of  education 
who  point  out  the  wonderful  opportunity  for  learning 
the  various  languages  afforded  our  children  through  the 
cosmopolitan  character  of  our  school  population,  and  the 
incomprehensible  neglect  of  our  natural  resources  in  this 
direction  by  those  who  are  responsible  for  our  educational 
system. 

Again,  we  are  so  anxious  to  make  patriots  or  ward  poli- 
ticians in  the  shortest  possible  time  out  of  the  multitudes 
who  annually  reach  our  shores  in  search 
HASTY  of  gold  that  we  cannot  wait  for  our 

AMERICANIZATION  customs  to  soHdify  or  for  our  traditions 
to  take  root  in  the  lives  of  their  chil- 
dren. We  deem  it  our  chief  duty  to  remove  from  the  chil- 
dren of  our  immigrant  population  all  trace  of  the  national 
customs  and  family  traditions  that  for  countless  genera- 
tions served  in  guiding  the  footsteps  of  their  forefathers 
through  the  formative  period  of  childhood  and  youth  to 
secure  manhood.  That  the  children  lose  their  respect  for 
authority  and  their  reverence  for  parents  does  not  seem 
to  concern  us.  Since  the  education  which  we  give  our 
children  in  the  public  schools  usually  results  in  depriving 
them  of  virtues  that  were  long  held  to  be  necessary  to  the 

wholesome  development  of  their  characters,  we 
STRANGE  immediately  conclude  that  we  have  made  another 
VIRTUES   great  discovery.    What  was  formerly  supposed 

to  be  virtue  is  now  seen  to  be  vice,  and  what 
many  reactionaries  and  old  fogies  believed  to  be  vice,  we 
now  know  to  be  virtues.  Mr.  LaEue,  former  Superin- 
tendent of  Schools  in  Augusta,  Maine,  assures  us  that 
*^  so-called  irreverence,  disobedience,  and  impudence  are 


534  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

but  the  first  crude  expressions  of  a  fiery,  straightforward, 
independent  nature — something  to  thank  God  for,  not  to 
wail  over.''* 

In  the  matter  of  religion,  as  in  that  of  language  and 
national  customs,  we  proceeded  without  hesitation.  It 
was  apparent  that  the  various  forms  of  re- 
A  FATAL  ligion  which  counted  their  adherents  among 
COMPROMISE  our  citizcns  could  not  all  be  taught  in  the 
school.  Horace  Mann  found  the  remedy  in 
banishing  religion  from  the  school  and  leaving  the  reli- 
gious instruction  of  the  children  to  the  churches.  It  is 
true  that  the  Catholics  and  the  Lutherans  protested,  but 
their  protest  went  unheeded.  They  built  and  supported 
their  own  schools  so  that  religion  might  be  developed  in 
the  hearts  of  their  children  and  enthroned  as  the  guar- 
dian of  morals  and  the  saving  influence  in  forming  the 
characters  of  our  future  citizens.  The  proposal  of  the 
Catholics  and  Lutherans  to  have  denominational  schools 
supported  out  of  the  public  funds  met  with  little  favor 
among  the  denominations  that  feared  the  Catholic 
Church,  through  her  teaching  orders,  would  thus  gain  an 
undue  advantage.  While  it  was  suspected  that  the  banish- 
ing of  religious  instruction  from  the  schools  might  weaken 
the  religious  life  of  the  nation,  it  was  thought  better  to 
compromise,  even  at  this  cost ;  if  they  could  not  have  the 
whole  child,  like  the  false  claimant  before  the  throne  of 
Solomon,  they  demanded  their  half,  and  as  a  consequence 
religion  died  in  the  hearts  of  the  children. 

Seventy  years  of  this  experiment  have  resulted  in  emp- 
tying our  churches  and  in  filling  our  prisons.    We  are  not 

daunted  by  the  fact  that  during  the  last  decade 
GLORYING  we  avcragcd  147  felonious  murders  per  million 
IN  OUR  per  annum,  as  against  3  in  Canada,  and  14  as 
SHAME       the  highest  record  in  Europe.    We  have  more 

divorces  in  a  year  than  all  the  rest  of  the  civil- 
ized world.     Our  carelessness  of  human  life  permits  an 


*Daniel   Wolford   LaRue,   The   Church   and   the    Public   Schools,    The 
Educational  Review,  May,  1909. 


Survey  of  the  Field  535 

industrial  holocaust  annually  which  so  far  transcends  the 
fatalities  in  other  countries  as  to  stagger  the  imagiaation. 
But  all  this  is  not  sufficient  to  cause  our  unalterable  faith 
in  the  value  of  our  plan  to  waver  for  a  moment.  In  fact, 
we  have  forgotten  all  about  the  pitiful  compromise  in  our 
action  and  hail  the  policy  of  Horace  Mann  as  the  '  *  great- 
est educational  discovery  of  the  century.''  We  move  so 
rapidly  in  the  van  of  progress  that  we  are  a  little 
ashamed  of  France  because  it  took  her  so  long  to  adopt 
our  policy  of  secularization,  and  we  pity  Germany  be- 
cause, in  spite  of  her  evident  progress  in  other  matters, 
she  is  still  so  far  under  the  dominance  of  superstitution 
that  she  insists  on  religion  being  taught  in  her  schools. 
That  patriotism  wanes,  that  corruption  and  graft  run 
riot  in  our  municipal  politics,  that  intellectual  and 
aesthetic  standards  are  being  steadily  lowered  among  the 
masses  of  our  people,  that  crime  is  multiplying  beyond 
measure, — none  of  these  things,  nor  all  of  them  together, 
are  sufficient  to  make  us  pause  and  reconsider  the  wisdom 
of  our  policy.  We  are  deeply  sorry,  in  fact,  for  our 
benighted  English  cousins,  for  as  Professor  Dewey  tells 
us,  '  ^  Nothing,  I  think,  struck  the  American  who  followed 
the  debates  on  the  last  English  educational  bill  with  more 
emphasis  than  the  fact  that  even  the  more  radical  upon 
the  Liberal  side  disclaimed,  almost  with  horror,  any 
intention  of  bringing  about  the  state  of  things  which  we, 
upon  this  side,  precisely  take  for  granted  as  normal — all 
of  us  except  Lutherans  and  Eoman  Catholics.'' 

We  loudly  proclaim  our  privilege  of  free  speech  and 
independent   thinking;   nevertheless,   there   are   certain 

things  which  we,  as  American  citizens, 
THE  MELTING  must  hold  as  too  sacred  for  discussion, 
POT  OP  THE  and  among  these  may  be  numbered  the 
NATIONS  doctrines    that   the   permanence   of   our 

democratic  institutions  demands  the  edu- 
cation of  all  our  people,  and  that  this  education  should 
concern  itself  chiefly  with  the  eradication  of  the  national 


536  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

and  religious  characteristics  of  the  people  who  come  to  our 
shores  from  other  lands.  Our  chests  swell  with  pride  as 
we  declare  that  the  public  school  is  the  alembic  through 
which  all  the  best  qualities  of  the  nations  of  the  world  are 

carried  over  into  the  formation  of  the  Amer- 
A  GEOwiNG  ican  citizen.  In  spite  of  our  assurance, 
discontent    however,  there  are  not  wanting  symptoms  of 

approaching  change.  For  the  past  few  years 
a  healthy  discontent  with  ourselves  and  with  our  educa- 
tional system  is  beginning  to  develop  in  all  parts  of  the 
country.  Many  of  the  Protestant  denominations  are  com- 
ing to  realize  their  mistake  in  consenting  to  the  banishing 
of  religion  from  the  schools,  and  are  looking  about  to  find 
some  means  of  retrieving  their  losses.  Serious  men  of  all 
shades  of  religious  belief,  as  well  as  those 
A  NEW  FORM  who  acknowledge  no  religious  affiliations, 
OF  AN  OLD  are  demanding  that  more  thorough  in- 

FALLACY  struction  in  morals  be  given  in  the  schools. 

It  is  true  that  we  are  still  very  largely 
under  the  domination  of  the  old  delusion  that  knowl- 
edge and  virtue  are  synonymous,  and  so  we  are  attempt- 
ing to  stem  the  swelling  tide  of  immorality  in  our  school 
population  by  giving  thorough  instruction  in  sex  hygiene 
to  our  babies.  We  have  grown  profoundly  discontented 
with  the  output  of  our  schools  when  the  children  are 
judged  from  the  standpoint  of  efficiency,  either  as  private 
individuals  or  as  public  servants,  and  a  reconstruction 
of  the  whole  system  which  will  permit  the  introduction 
of  vocational  training  in  the  grammar  grades  is  being 
demanded. 

This  general  unrest  and  dissatisfaction  with  ourselves 
and  our  achievements  in  the  field  of  education  is  a  hopeful 
sign.  It  is  true  that  we  might  have 
ABSENCE  OF  THE  more  reason  to  expect  immediate  re- 
sciENTiFic  TEMPER  sults  if  the  Scientific  temper  con- 
trolled our  experimenting,  but  the 
opposite  seems  to  be  the  case.  In  educational  matters  we 


Survey  of  the  Field  537 

do  not  seem  to  have  outgrown  the  child  stage,  where 
assertion  passes  over  into  conviction  without  warrant  of 
analysis  or  proof,  where  a  single  idea  dominates  the  mind 
to  the  exclusion  of  all  modifying  principles,  where  conse- 
quences are  not  calculated  in  advance,  and  where  results 
of  actual  achievements  are  neither  measured  nor  set  down 
for  the  guidance  of  others.  The  picture  of  ourselves  to 
be  seen  in  the  mirror  which  Dr.  Luther  Gulick  holds  up  to 
us  is  not  flattering.  In  a  recent  address  before  the  Con- 
gress of  the  American  School  Hygiene  Association  he 
says:  ^^What  is  the  best  age  for  a  child  to  enter  school? 
This  is  a  question  that  could  be  definitely  answered  if  we 
could  secure  adequate  data  on  the  subject.  Galton  and 
Karl  Pearson  have  given  us  the  tools — life  itself  gives  us 

the  material — of  obtaining  such  data. 
THINGS  WE  We  need  only  the  opportunity.  I  ven- 

SHOULD  KNOW       turc  the  assertion  that  almost  every 

person  in  this  room  has  convictions 
upon  the  subject,  and  yet  that  these  convictions  are  based 
upon  a  few  personal  experiences  in  each  case.  . 
My  point  is  this :  that  neither  school  men  nor  physicians 
nor  parents  are  competent  of  judging  such  questions  as 
this  ex-cathedra.  Theories  and  convictions  can  never 
solve  such  problems ;  their  only  solution  lies  in  a  search- 
ing analysis  of  existing  conditions;  in  measuring  results 
in  a  sufficient  number  of  cases  to  arrive  at  definite  con- 
clusions. Such  investigations  should  be  conducted  in  ac- 
cordance with  modem  scientific  methods.'' 

We  entirely  agree  with  Dr.  Gulick.  We  are  confronted 
in  our  public  schools  and  in  our  Catholic  schools  with 
many  weighty  problems  which  are  pressing  for  solution. 
They  cannot  be  solved  offhand  by  the  ex-cathedra  pro- 
nouncements of  sciolists,  nor  can  they  be  brushed  aside 
under  the  pretext  that  they  have  all  been  solved  in  the 
past,  for  the  problems  to  which  we  refer  are  the  direct 
outgrowth  of  the  profound  social  and  economic  changes 

^Journal  of  Education,  May  11,  1911,  p.  511. 


538  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

that  are  taking  place  in  our  own  generation.  Again,  the 
scientific  spirit  has  been  slow  in  its  invasion  of  the  field 
of  education  and  satisfactory  data  for  the  science  of  edu- 
cation are  still  very  meagre.  Dr.  Gulick  is  hardly  exag- 
gerating the  case  when  he  says  ^^It  is  concerning  the  most 
fundamental  questions,  moreover,  that  we  are  still  at  sea. 
We  do  not  know  the  number  of  hours  a  day  at  which  the 
child  can  make  the  most  progress  at  each  age.  There  is 
no  one  trying  to  find  out,  so  far  as  I  know.  We  do  not 
know  how  many  subjects  a  child  can  study  to  advantage 
at  each  age.  We  do  not  even  know  the  most  effective  and 
economic  size  of  a  class  at  various  ages.  It  might  be,  for 
example,  that  in  a  class  of  seventy  children  each  child 
would  get  so  little  instruction  that  a  number  of  them 
would  be  held  back ;  and  this  would  cost  the  school  system 
more  than  if  there  had  been  only  fifty  in  the  class.  We 
do  not  know  the  number  of  months  in  the  year  that  chil- 
dren should  attend  school;  yet  we  compel  all  children  to 
go  to  school  upon  the  assumption  that  we  do  know. '  *  To 
this  the  Doctor  adds  a  long  list  of  the  things  which  we  do 
not  know  in  the  field  of  education,  and  which  we  should 
know  if  we  used  ordinary  prudence  and  were  guided  by 
the  scientific  spirit.  He  points  out  the  fact  that  we  spend 
over  $500,000,000  a  year  on  public  education  and  fail  to 
make  any  provision  to  deal  with  the  scientific  side  of  the 
problems  presented.  ^^We  see  the  significance  of  exam- 
ining our  coal  to  be  sure  we  are  getting  the  best  and  the 
cheapest ;  we  do  not  see  the  significance  of  examining  the 
output  of  our  school  system  to  be  sure  that  we  are  getting 
the  best  results  from  our  expenditure. ' ' 

And  yet  from  the  Doctor's  own  testimony  the  present 
situation  is  not  without  hope,  since  there  is  evidently  a 

growing  consciousness  that  something  is 
A  HOPEFUL  wrong  and  that  it  should  be  set  right.  ^'Am 
sign  I  overstating  the  facts,  *'  he  asks,  ^'when  I 

say  that  there  is  scarcely  a  city  in  America 
that  is  satisfied  with  its  public  schools?     Here  in  New 


Survey  of  the  Field  539 

York  City  an  investigation  has  been  proposed ;  and  those 
who  follow  educational  matters  know  that  in  city  after 
city  severe  criticisms  of  the  school  system  are  constantly 
coming  up.  Even  school  men  themselves  disagree  when 
they  come  together  to  discuss  these  questions ;  you  cannot 
get  a  group  of  education  people  together  without  having 
a  controversy  upon  some  one  of  these  problems.  As  in- 
dividuals, in  fact,  we  cannot  settle  these  matters  to  our 
own  satisfaction.  They  can  only  be  settled  by  ascertain- 
ing results  by  measurements  of  what  we  are  doing. '  ^ 

There  is  scarcely  anything  in  the  field  of  education 
which  is  more  significant  of  the  unrest  of  the  present  than 

the  change  of  attitude  which  is  beginning 
A  SIGNIFICANT  to  manifest  itself  on  the  question  of  co- 
change  OF  education.  A  short  time  ago  it  would 
ATTITUDE  liave  been  difficult  to  find  any  one  amongst 

us  brave  enough  to  challenge  the  wisdom 
of  pursuing  the  policy  of  coeducation  in  all  our  schools. 
Our  state  supported  schools  are  for  all  the  people,  and 
hence  their  doors  should  be  open  alike  to  boys  and  girls. 
It  was  taken  for  granted  by  many  that  this  necessarily 
implied  coeducation.  Commissioner  Harris  tried  the  ex- 
periment of  coeducation  in  the  high  schools  under  his 
jurisdiction  in  St.  Louis  when  the  movement  began  and 
found  to  his  surprise  that  the  difficulties  anticipated  did 
not  appear.  From  that  time  to  the  end  of  his  career  he 
threw  all  the  weight  of  his  great  influence  into  the  scales 
in  favor  of  coeducation.  Our  educators,  in  a  full-throated 
chorus,  proclaimed  to  the  world  the  great  results  that  we 
were  achieving  through  this  policy :  economy,  close  grad- 
ing, the  emancipation  of  woman,  the  removal  of  immor- 
ality, etc.  That  the  nations  of  Europe  laughed  at  us 
seemed  to  have  no  other  effect  than  to  confirm  us 
in  the  belief  that  we  were  ahead  of  our  time.  During 
the  past  few  years,  however,  signs  of  discontent  with 
the  policy  of  coeducation  have  begun  to  appear  in  widely 
scattered  parts  of  the  field  of  education. 


540  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

In  1905  Dr.  Shields,  of  the  Catholic  University,  dis- 
cussed various  phases  of  coeducation  in  a  series  of  arti- 
cles* which  emphasized  the  unnatural- 
THB  policy  of      ucss  and  the  evil  effects  of  this  policy 
COEDUCATION  duriug  the  period  of  adolescence.     In 

the  following  year  Dr.  G.  Stanley  Hall, 
President  of  Clark  University,  wrote  a  strong  article 
against  coeducation  in  our  secondary  and  higher  institu- 
tions, which  was  answered  by  President  Jordan,  of  Leland 
Stanford  University.  About  the  same  time  the  Univer- 
sity of  Chicago  adopted  the  policy  of  segregation.  Boston, 
New  York  City,  Philadelphia,  Baltimore,  Charleston  and 
New  Orleans  never  wholly  yielded  up  their  high  schools 
to  coeducation.  In  New  England  the  sentiment  against 
coeducation  has  been  growing  steadily  during  the  past 
few  years.  In  1909  ten  coeducational  colleges  located  in 
New  England,  exclusive  of  Wesleyan  and  Tufts,  counted 
only  1,136  women  undergraduate  students,  as  against 
4,877  in  the  corresponding  departments  of  the  separate 
colleges  for  women.  In  the  same  year  Wesleyan  Univer- 
sity declared  against  coeducation,  and  in  the  year  follow- 
ing (1910)  Tufts  College  attracted  the  attention  of  the 
educators  of  the  nation  by  abandoning  the  plan  of  coed- 
ucation. ^^The  action  was  taken  in  accordance  with  the 
recommendations  of  a  committee  which  had  been  ap- 
pointed for  a  complete  investigation  of  the  problem  as 
related  to  this  institution.  In  pursu- 
TEiED  AND  aucc  of  their  purpose,  the  committee 

FOUND  WANTING  frccly  cousultcd  the  members  of  the 
faculty  of  Liberal  Arts,  and  also  repre- 
sentatives of  the  associations  of  graduates  of  both  sexes. 
The  report  submitted  comprised  a  full  statement  of  the 
reasons  for  the  change  recommended,  many  of  which  were 
peculiar  to  the  institution  immediately  concerned.  The 
conviction  was  expressed  by  the  committee  that  there  is 


♦Crackers  and  Cheese  papers,  syndicated  for  the  Catholic  Associated 
Press.  Published  in  book  form  under  the  title  "The  Education  of  Our 
Girls,"  New  York,  1907. 


Survey  of  the  Field  541 

a  fundamental  difficulty  4n  the  way  of  success  of  coedu- 
cation in  Tufts  College,  and  that  this  difficulty  lies  in  and 
pervades  the  whole  student  body,  growing  stronger  rather 
than  diminishing.'  It  appeared  from  the  investigation 
that  the  sentiment  against  coeducation  prevented  many 
staunch  supporters  of  the  college  from  sending  their  own 
daughters  to  Tufts,  and,  in  many  cases,  their  sons  also. 
Naturally,  such  persons  would  not  recommend  Tufts  to 
others.***  The  earnestness  of  the  committee  in  avoiding 
half-way  measures  is  made  evident  in  their  report,  from 
which  we  quote  the  following :  *  *  It  is  our  conviction  that 
if  and  when  any  move  for  the  segregation  of  the  women 
in  Tufts  College  is  undertaken  it  must  be  complete.  .  .  . 
Your  committee,  after  carefully  weighing  and  considering 
all  the  phases  of  the  matter  as  herein  set  forth,  respect- 
fully present:  That,  in  their  opinion,  the  best  interests 
of  this  institution  require  a  separation  of  the  sexes.  That 
the  best  way  of  accomplishing  this  is  by  the  establish- 
ment of  an  independent  college  for  women.  That  the 
importance  of  the  matter  is  so  great  that  even  though  the 
financial  resources  are  not  at  this  moment  at  hand  to  meet 
the  extra  cost,  the  action  should  be  taken  at  the  earliest 
possible  moment,  and  efforts  be  made  at  once  to  secure 
the  necessary  funds  therefor. '  * 

During  the  past  four  or  five  years  several  experiments 
in  segregation  in  the  high  schools  of  the  middle  west  have 
been  undertaken.     The  most  notable 
THE  ENGLEwooD        of  thcse  is  that  of  the  Englewood 
EXPERIMENT  High  School,  CMcago,  conducted  by 

Principal  Armstrong,  which  ^^has  not 
only  attratced  wide  attention,  but  has  been  followed  in 
several  other  high  schools;  hence  it  may  be  said  to  rep- 
resent a  tendency  of  more  than  passing  importance.  .  .  . 
There  are,  however,  certain  problems  pertaining  to  the 
instruction  of  young  people  during  the  adolescent  period 
which  have  been  recognized  by  all  teachers,  and  for  which, 


♦Report  of  the  Commissioner  of  Education,  1910,  Vol.  I,  p.  131. 


542  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

in  the  opinion  of  Mr.  Armstrong,  segregation  offers  the 
best  solution.  The  first  of  these  problems  is  that  of  the 
immaturity  of  boys  as  compared  with  girls  at  the  usual 
age  of  entrance  upon  the  high  school.  In  respect  to  this 
difference  Mr.  Armstrong  says:  ^When  the  boy  comes 
to  the  high  school  at  about  fourteen  he  is  from  one  to  two 
years  less  mature  than  the  girls  of  the  same  age,  and  so 
is  unable  to  approach  the  work  with  the  same  degrees  of 
seriousness  and  will  power.'  The  second  problem  to  be 
considered  is  the  difference  between  the  two  sexes  in 
respect  to  predominant  interests  and  mental  capacity. 
*In  all  the  languages,*  says  Mr.  Armstrong,  *the  girl 
excels.  The  power  of  verbal  memory  being  stronger  and 
her  patience  with  such  a  task  being  greater,  she  is  better 
adapted  to  learn  a  language.  ...  In  all  sciences 
the  boy  has  the  advantage  in  spite  of  his  lack  of  general 
maturity.  He  is  a  keener  observer  and  a 
DisTUEBiNG  morc  logical  reasoner.  The  girl  needs  a 
THE  BALANCE  morc  elementary  course  to  train  her  pow- 
ers to  see  and  classify.  The  boy  loves  to 
try  experiments,  and  so  is  capable  of  doing  much  more 
work  in  that  line. '  From  the  excess  of  girls  over  boys  in 
the  high  school  classes  it  follows,  according  to  Mr.  Arm- 
strong, that  ^the  methods  of  the  recitation  have  under- 
gone an  unconscious  evolution  to  adapt  them  to  the  girl 
type.'  This  explains  in  part,  he  thinks,  the  lack  of  In- 
terest shown  by  boys  in  high  school  studies  and  their  early 
withdrawal  from  the  schools.''* 

A  prominent  German  educational  expert,  after  devot- 
ing some  years  to  the  observation  and  study  of  the 

problem  of  coeducation  in  this  coun- 
EDUCATiNG  BOYS  try,  remarked  to  the  writer  that  he 
in  girls'  SCHOOLS    was  convinced  that  no  such  a  thing 

existed  in  the  United  States  as  co- 
educational high  schools  and  colleges,  that  the  institutions 


♦Report  of  the  Commissioner  of  Education,  1910,  Vol.  I,  pp.  126-7. 


Survey  of  the  Field  543 

which  bear  this  name  were  in  reality  women's  colleges  to 
which  Americans  very  foolishly  entrusted  the  education 
of  their  boys.  In  spite  of  all  such  objections,  however, 
the  policy  of  coeducation  would  be  likely  to  hold  its  own, 
so  much  a  part  of  our  educational  system  has  it  become, 
were  it  not  for  the  widespread  movement  for  vocational 
training.  '  ^  So  far  as  can  be  judged  at  this  incipient  stage 
of  the  movement,''  says  Commissioner  Brown,  ^'it  is 
likely  to  lead  to  the  provision  of  separate  schools  or  de- 
partments for  boys  and  girls  at  the  moment  when  voca- 
tional specialization  begins."  In  an  address  before  the 
New  England  Women's  Club,*  Dr.  Snedden,  State  Com- 
missioner of  Education  in  Massachusetts,  made  some 
very  suggestive  statements.  ^*  Vocational  education  for 
girls  is  no  less  necessary  in  modern  society  than  voca- 
tional education  for  boys.  All  women  in  civilized  society 
should  be  workers  and  producers,  and  in  order  that  they 
may  work  and  produce  well,  they  should  have  training 

along  the  special  lines  of  their  aptitudes  and 
VOCATIONAL  probablc  fields  of  vocational  effort.  When 
TRAINING  it  is  said  that  all  women  should  be  workers 
FOR  WOMEN    and  producers,  it  is,  of  course,  understood 

that  the  largest  single  vocation  for  women 
is  that  of  homemaking,  with  all  that  that  implies.  Con- 
sequently, vocations  for  women  may  be  divided  into  two 
classes — the  homemaking  and  the  wage  earning.  .  .  . 
A  few  conclusions,  then,  with  reference  to  the  vocational 
education  of  girls  are  manifest.  As  far  as  practicable 
the  period  up  to  sixteen  should  be  reserved  for  school 
life,  and  along  with  the  necessary  liberal  education  the 
latter  years  of  this  period  should  be  made  fairly  rich 
in  the  vocational  education  which  will  contribute  to  health 
and  mastery  of  the  home  arts  and  the  social  knowledge 
which  may  later  function  in  the  homemaking.    At  the 


*Boston  Evening  Transcript,  December  37,  1909. 


544  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

same  time,  it  must  be  realized  that  the  girl  must  become 
a  wage  earner  in  some  calling  which  will  claim  her  atten- 
tion for  anywhere  from  five  to  eight  or  ten  years.  As 
far  as  practicable,  those  vocations  should  be  sought  for 
girls,  preparation  for  which  is  not  too  far  removed  from 
ultimate  efficiency  in  the  home,  but  it  must  be  frankly 
recognized  that  the  vast  majority  of  wage-earning  call- 
ings to-day  opening  to  young  women  have  very  little  bear- 
ing on  home  efficiency.^'* 

What  could  not  be  brought  about  in  the  name  of  culture, 
of  morality,  of  religion,  or  by  an  appeal  in  the  name  of 
science  to  the  laws  of  mental  development  is  likely  to 
be  accomplished  without  difficulty  as  soon  as  it  is  asked 
for  on  economic  grounds.  The  increase  of  wage-earning 
capacity  and  industrial  efficiency  is  a  phrase  to  conjure 
with  in  this  land  of  dollars  and  cents.  When  money 
speaks,  we  are  willing  to  look  into  the  case,  and,  if  need 
be,  pronounce  our  nation-wide  experiment  a  failure. 

There  are  not  wanting  signs  of  dissatisfaction  with  the 
policy  of  coeducation  from  quite  another  point  of  view. 
In  the  Presidential  campaign  of  1896  it 
UNLOOKED  FOR  was  insisted  that  free  silver  would  in- 
RESULTS  evitably  result  in  driving  all  the  gold  out 

of  the  country.  In  a  somewhat  analogous 
manner,  coeducation  seems  to  be  resulting  in  preventing 
our  boys  from  going  through  the  high  schools,  which  are 
at  present  crowded  with  girls ;  it  resulted  also  in  banish- 
ing men  teachers  from  our  elementary  schools,  and  they 
are  rapidly  disappearing  from  our  high  schools.  A  more 
abundant  supply  and  a  lower  wage  seem  to  be  the  deter- 
mining factors  in  the  rapidly  growing  feminization  of  our 
elementary  and  high  school  faculties.     Miss  Porritt,  in 

*For  a  more  extended  discussion  of  this  phase  of  the  subject,  see  the 
last  four  chapters  of  The  Education  of  Our  Girls,  viz.,  The  Vocations  of 
Woman,  Domestic  Science,  The  Woman's  College  of  the  Future  and  The 
Homemakers  of  the  Future,  pp.  186-291. 


Survey  of  the  Field  545 

a  remarkably  forceful  article  in  the  Educational  Review, 
May,  1911,  points  out  the  inevitable  deterioration  in  the 
citizenship  of  the  country  resulting  from  entrusting  the 
education  of  our  boys  exclusively  to  women,  who  are 
not  enfranchised  and,  therefore,  are  not  citizens.  The 
objections  which  she  points  out  are  not  confined  to  the 
period  of  adolescence,  but  apply  with  equal  if  not  greater 
force  to  the  elementary  schools.  Her  arguments  are  well 
worth  considering.  ^' There  is  one  side  of  the  question 
which  is  curiously  neglected;  although  it  is  an  aspect  of 
the  most  serious  import  to  the  future  of  the  nation,  and 
that  is  the  political  consequence  of  putting  the  training 
of  our  citizens  and  voters — our  future  representatives  in 
the  state  legislatures  and  in  Congress,  our  future  Presi- 
dents and  Cabinet  Ministers — into  the  hands  of  a  class 
that  consists  of  individuals  who  in  the  full  sense  of  the 
word  are  not  citizens,  and  who  have  no  part  or  lot  in  the 
politics  and  government  of  the  country.  Greece  used  her 
slaves  as  tutors  for  the  sons  of  free  men.  Eome  also  put 
education  into  the  hands  of  a  slave  class,  and,  naturally 
enough,  as  these  slave-taught  youths  grew  up,  they  failed 
to  measure  up  to  the  traditions  of  their  free  forefathers ; 
they  lost  the  habit  of  government  and  the  power  of  ruling 
over  great  nations;  and  the  glory  of  Greece  departed, 
and  Rome  fell  beneath  the  onslaught  of  the  free  men  from 
the  north. '  ^ 

What  was  felt  from  the  remotest  times  to  be  true  and 
was  expressed  in  such  axioms  as  *^  Example  is  better  than 

precept''  has  been  set  forth  in  our 
COEDUCATION  AND  day  in  scientific  formulation.  We  are 
THE  LAWS  OF  assured  that  freedom  from  the  rigid- 

iMiTATioN  ity  of  instinct  is  gained  only  through 

imitation  and  that  imitation  is  the 
root  of  originality.  The  Romans  and  the  Greeks,  there- 
fore, should  have  foreseen  the  consequences  of  entrusting 


546  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

the  education  of  their  sons  to  men  whose  spirits  had  been 
broken  by  defeat,  and  from  whose  enchained  souls  cour- 
age had  departed.  But  if  they  were  blameworthy,  what 
should  be  said  of  us  who  have  before  our  eyes  the  expe- 
rience of  these  nations  and  the  clear  demonstrations  of 
biological  science?  It  is  true  that  we  do  not  entrust  the 
education  of  our  sons  to  slaves;  we  have  chosen  women 
instead.  Do  we  select  as  our  women  teachers  young  la- 
dies of  masculine  character  and  masculine  virtues?  We 
shrink  from  the  thought,  for  such  a  person  would  be  a 
caricature  on  both  men  and  women.  If  our  teachers,  on 
the  contrary,  are,  as  we  know  them  to  be,  the  purest  types 
of  womanhood  in  our  midst,  then  the  inevitable  con- 
sequence, unless  science  and  history  alike  lie  to  us,  is  the 
moulding  of  our  boys  on  feminine  models.  The  result  can 
hardly  fail  to  be  marked  by  deteriorations  in  many  direc- 
tions. 

Miss  Porritt,  commenting  on  the  English  educational 
system,  says,  ^^from  infancy  the  boys  of  the  governing 
classes  were  removed  from  feminine  in- 
FEMiNizATioN  fluencc  and  put  under  the  care  of  men. 
Their  training  and  traditions  were  wholly 
masculine,  and  all  through  their  boyhood  they  were  taught 
to  look  forward  to  taking  part  in  the  government  of  their 
country  as  their  natural  and  proper  career;  and  to  con- 
sider, in  the  words  of  Dr.  Arnold  of  Eugby,  one  of  the 
greatest  pedagogues  of  the  English-governing  classes  of 
the  nineteenth  century,  Hhe  desire  of  taking  an  active 
share  in  the  great  work  of  government  is  the  highest 
earthly  desire  of  the  ripened  mind.'  In  this  country  it 
can  hardly  be  said  that  there  is  any  tendency  to  rank 
politics  as  the  most  desirable  of  careers.  .  .  .  Politics 
is  frequently  considered  the  special  concern  of  the  ward- 
heeler  and  party-boss,  and  as  scarcely  worthy  of  the 
attention  of  the  young  man  who  is  making  choice  of 


Survey  of  the  Field  547 

his  life-work.  And  the  reason  is  not  far  to  seek.  During 
the  most  impressionable  years  of  the  life  of  our  boys  they 
are  left  almost  entirely  to  feminine  influence.  Fathers  in 
the  United  States  have  almost  abdicated  from  parental 
authority.  It  is  the  mother  who  rules  the  home,  who 
trains  the  boys  as  well  as  the  girls,  and  who  is  the  chief 
source  of  the  moral  ideals  and  aspirations  of  every  mem- 
ber of  the  rising  generation.  Nor  does  the  feminine 
regime  cease  when  the  boys  go  to  school.  .  .  .  Here 
women  teach  the  boys  and  girls,  not  only  in  the  primary 
and  grammar  grades,  but  also  in  the  high  schools.  It 
is  true  that  there  are  some  men  teachers  in  the  high 
schools  and  many  principals  in  the  grammar  schools; 
still,  at  the  age  of  fifteen  or  sixteen,  an  age  which  sees 
the  ending  of  school  life  for  by  far  the  larger  proportion 
of  our  future  voters,  the  boy's  education  has  been  begun, 
continued,  and  ended  by  women,  and  his  contact  with 
men — father,  teacher,  or  school  principal — has  so  far 
been  slight  and  distant,  in  comparison  with  his  contact 
with  his  mother  and  his  women  teachers.'' 

After  pointing  out  the  inherent  impossibility  of  form- 
ing citizens,  at  least  with  a  man's  idea  of  citizenship,  in 
schools  taught  by  women,  who  do  not 
THE  need  op  enjoy  the  franchise.  Miss  Porritt  puts 
MEN  teachers  the  pith  of  the  matter  in  this  brief  para- 
graph: *^This,  however,  is  a  small  mat- 
ter, because  whatever  line  she  takes,  it  may  safely  be 
concluded  that  she  will  make  very  little  impression  on  the 
minds  of  her  boy  pupils.  Boys  are  quick  to  distinguish 
shams  from  realities,  and  they  are  pretty  certain  to  set 
down  the  political  theories  and  high-sounding  lessons  of 
patriotism  that  come  from  the  lips  of  their  unenfran- 
chised teacher  as  all  right  for  her — she  is  not  in  the  game 
— ^but  in  no  way  applicable  to  themselves,  not  at  all  to 
be  remembered  or  acted  upon  when  they  step  out  into  the 
men's  world  of  politics  and  business." 


548  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Our  boys  in  schools  taught  by  women  are  not  furnished 
with  models  which  they  can  consistently  copy  as  to  manly 
bearing  and  civic  duty.  Their  masculine 
POLITICAL  nature  instinctively  rejects  the  woman- 

coNSEQUENCEs  modcl  in  these  respects,  and  when  they 
leave  school  the  only  guiding  force  within 
them,  in  either  of  these  essential  respects,  is  a  blind  re- 
action against  the  feminine  type  which  too  often  develops 
in  them  the  characteristics  of  the  hoodlum  and  the  ward- 
heeler.  Miss  Porritt  suggests  as  one  of  the  means  of 
remedying  this  situation  the  enfranchisement  of  the 
women  teacher.  While  this  might  help,  it  certainly  would 
not  correct  the  whole  evil.  The  fact  of  the  matter  re- 
mains, and  always  will  remain,  that  our  boys  need  the 
example  and  the  influence  of  men  teachers  if  they  are  to 
be  manly  men  and  patriotic  citizens.  Coeducation  and  the 
almost  exclusive  employment  of  women  teachers  in  the 
elementary  schools  are  two  experiments,  or  should  we  say 
one  experiment  on  a  gigantic  scale,  which  we  have  in- 
dulged in  with  our  usual  complacency  and  the  evil  results 
of  which  we  are  only  beginning  to  realize. 

The  Catholic  Church  has  always  aimed  at  providing 
her  children  with  teachers  of  their  own  sex,  and  if,  as  is 
the  case  at  present  in  this  country,  she  is 
THE  CATHOLIC  uuable  to  supply  a  sufficient  number  of  men 
IDEAL  teachers,  or  to  provide  the  financial  re- 

sources for  the  maintenance  of  separate 
schools,  she  at  least  realizes  that  she  is  dealing  with  com- 
promise in  so  far  as  she  indulges  in  coeducation.  She 
permits  it  only  as  a  temporary  expedient  while  she  prays 
for  the  increase  of  vocations  to  the  teaching  orders  of  men. 
But  even  as  the  case  stands,  with  the  heavy  financial  han- 
dicap under  which  our  schools  labor,  we  can  point  with 
pride  to  the  splendid  work  in  the  field  of  education  in 
this  country  that  is  being  carried  on  by  the  various  teach- 
ing orders  of  men. 


Survey  of  the  Field  549 

All  our  teaching  Brotherhoods  stand  in  need  of  a  large 
increase  in  their  membership,  to  meet  the  present  de- 
mands. That  the  grace  of  vocation  is 
the  cultivation  given  in  sufficient  measure  to  meet  the 
or  VOCATIONS  needs  of  the  Church  is  not  to  be  doubt- 
ed. All  that  is  necessary,  therefore,  in 
order  to  recruit  sufficiently  the  ranks  of  our  teaching 
Brotherhoods,  is  to  have  placed  before  our  boys  in  clear 
light  the  splendid  educational  work  that  awaits  them  as 
religious  teachers.  Their  enthusiasm  and  the  love  of  God 
and  country  which  fills  their  hearts  will  do  the  rest. 


DISCUSSION 

The  aim  of  this  department  of  the  Review  is  to  supply  our  teachers 
with  practical  suggestions  for  the  conduct  of  classroom  exercises.  Ex- 
perienced and  successful  teachers  may,  through  these  pages,  extend  a 
helping  hand  to  the  army  of  faithul  workers  in  the  field  of  education. 
Brief  discussions  of  practical  points  are  invited.  As  far  as  practica- 
ble, brief  answers  to  teachers'  questions  will  be  given  by  the  editors. 


ACTION  AND  THE  TEACHING  OF  LANGUAGE 

How  can  action  work  and  motor  training  in  general  he 
rendered  serviceable  in  the  teaching  of  language?* 

Action  work  and  motor  training  can  be  made  service- 
able in  the  teaching  of  language  because  both  bring  the 
child  into  actual  contact  with  things.  In  this  way  the 
sensations  and  perceptions  are  made  clear  and  strong; 
the  paths  of  the  nerve  currents  are  deepened;  the  apper- 
ception masses  enriched  and  completed.  Action  work  is 
especially  helpful  in  developing  the  imagination  and  in 
improving  the  memory.  The  more  perfect  the  mental 
picture  thus  produced  the  more  readily  and  surely  will 
the  child  learn  the  necessary  symbols,  since  they  bring 
back  memories  of  past  actions,  and,  in  accordance  with 
the  principle  '^the  presence  in  consciousness  of  appro- 
priate feeling  is  indispensable  to  mental  assimilation, ' ' 
these  pleasant  memories  aid  the  child  in  incorporating 
into  his  mental  life  the  new  materials  and  render  express- 
ion in  some  form  imperative.  The  child  is  rarely  willing 
to  express  himself  on  any  subject  until  his  knowledge  is 
ready  to  overflow  and  then  he  will  recite,  write,  draw,  or 
make  anything  that  will  give  expression  to  his  mental 
content.  This  points  to  the  necessity  of  giving  the  mind 
material  on  which  to  work,  which  is  normally  accom- 


*The  answers  to  this  and  the  following  question  were  submitted  as 
part  of  the  correspondence  work  on  Lesson  XXI  (Expression  Through 
Action),  of  the  Psychology  of  Education. 


Discussion  551 

plislied  through  the  functioning  of  the  senses.  Dr. 
Shields  tells  us  that  ^^  sentient  phenomena,  transfigured 
by  the  intellect,  issues  in  the  arts,  in  articulate  speech, 
and  in  moral  conduct, ''  and  Professor  Baldwin  says 
that  ^^  every  sensation  or  incoming  process  tends  to  bring 
about  action  or  outgoing  process. ' ' 

While  it  is  true  that  the  normal  and  immediate  motor 
path  of  sensation  in  general  leads  to  expression  through 
action,  nevertheless,  much  of  the  sentient  phenomena  that 
holds  the  interest  of  the  child  is  of  a  linguistic  nature  and 
therefore  finds  its  immediate  channel  of  expression  ter~ 
minating  in  oral  or  written  language.  The  value  of 
teaching  language  in  this  way  lies  not  only  in  the  fact 
that  it  is  more  pleasant  and  fruitful  but  in  the  further 
fact  that  it  gives  many  opportunities  for  simultaneous 
sense-training  and  muscular  exercise.  According  to  Pro- 
fessor O'Shea,  the  younger  the  child  the  greater  the  need 
of  giving  him  an  opportunity  to  freely  use  hands,  feet 
and  voice  in  educative  ways.  ^^When  the  child  begins  to 
study  language,  his  natural  activities  are  apparently  un- 
limited— he  wants  to  see  everything,  hear  everything, 
handle  everything.  These  activities,  under  wise  guid- 
ance, will  give  him  clear,  definite  and  effective  ideas  of  the 
world,  which  all  psychologists  say  can  be  best  done 
through  muscular  experience.  The  knowledge  thus  ac- 
quired gives  him  a  good  foundation  for  his  language 
work.  It  gives  and  coordinates  thought  without  which 
there  is  no  logical  expression.''  Not  only  during  the 
early  years  of  the  child's  life  are  his  physical  activities 
great.  *'The  demand  for  motor  expression,"  says  Dr. 
Shields,  *4s  most  urgent  during  the  years  of  physical 
development.  The  strength  of  heart  and  brain,  of  lung 
and  muscle,  in  the  adult  depends,  in  large  measure,  upon 
the  healthful  exercise  of  these  organs  in  the  running 
games  of  childhood." 


552  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

Psychology  is  making  it  clearer  every  day  that  lan- 
guage should  not  be  taught  to  children  as  a  thing  sepa- 
rate and  aloof  from  the  thoughts  which  the  child  should 
express  through  language.  The  organization  of  the 
thought  material  should  hold  a  central  place  in  the  child's 
endeavor  and  in  his  consciousness,  and  through  the  or- 
ganization of  the  thought-material  the  child  should  learn 
to  organize  his  language.  Now,  psychologists  tell  us  that 
the  child's  thought  is  never  dissociated  from  his  muscles; 
that  every  idea  has  a  motor  aspect;  that  mind  in  one 
sense  is  a  middle  term  between  the  senses  and  the  mus- 
cles; that  the  mind  functions  for  the  purpose  of  govern- 
ing conduct ;  that  an  idea  is  not  complete  until  it  is  real- 
ized in  action.  We  see  these  principles  embodied  in  the 
work  done  in  the  Massachusetts  School  of  Technology. 
According  to  Sir  Joshua  Fitch,  ^ '  The  student  is  required, 
as  soon  as  he  knows  anything,  to  do  something  which 
requires  the  application  of  the  knowledge,"  and,  speak- 
ing of  the  Yorkshire  College  of  Science,  he  says,  *  *  in  one 
room  you  may  see  a  group  of  students,  each  before  his 
own  table,  manipulating  his  apparatus  and  making  his 
own  experiments  in  the  application  of  different  coloring 
matters  to  different  fabrics.  Each  student  makes  a  writ- 
ten statement  of  the  nature  of  the  material  on  which  he 
works,  the  chemical  composition  of  his  pigments,  the  time 
occupied  by  the  process,  the  phenomena  of  change  ob- 
servable while  it  lasted.  Then  he  places  his  memoranda 
with  a  specimen  of  the  colored  piece  of  cloth  in  a  book 
as  a  permanent  record  of  the  experiment  for  future  ref- 
erence." What  can  be  more  serviceable  in  teaching  lan- 
guage than  these  and  like  exercises?  Through  them 
thought  is  developed,  the  vocabulary  is  proportionately 
enlarged,  while  the  demand  for  correct  and  systematic 
expression  stimulates  the  pupil  to  use  the  best  and  clear- 
est forms. 


Discussion  553 

English  literature  presents  many  a  sad  picture  of  the 
old-time  boarding  school  where  many  a  small  boy's  heart 
ached  and  his  spirit  sank  while  he  tried  to  conjugate  the 
Latin  verb.  The  room  cold  and  bare,  the  master  stern, 
the  boy  oft'  times  hungry  and  longing  for  home,  while 
vainly  striving  to  keep  his  attention  fixed  on  a  word  that 
brought  no  image  to  his  mind  unless,  perhaps,  that  of  the 
master's  ever-ready  rod  for  those  who  failed  to  remember 
its  modes  and  tenses.  Under  this  treatment  a  few  boys 
grew  up  to  be  great  men,  but  what  became  of  the  many 
who  had  their  minds  starved,  their  emotions  repressed, 
and  their  muscles  stunted?  Contrast  this  picture  with 
that  presented  by  the  leading  schools  of  to-day  where  the 
needs  of  the  whole  child,  soul  and  body,  are  seriously 
considered  and  where  the  teacher  endeavors  to  meet  all 
the  demands  of  both.  Here  the  child's  cognitive,  affect- 
ive, and  creative  powers  receive  their  fullest  development. 
Here  every  reasonable  means  of  expression  is  afforded  to 
the  children  whose  mental  assimilation  is  promoted  by 
the  presence  of  appropriate  feeling  in  consciousness  and 
whose  successes  are  made  stepping-stones  to  new  and 
greater  achievements.  The  static  method  of  teaching  lan- 
guage produced  some  good  writers,  or,  may  it  not  be  more 
correctly  stated  that  these  men,  following  some  happy 
inspiration,  became  great  in  spite  of  the  method  ? 

Modem  psychology  is  demanding  a  modification  of  the 
old-time  method  of  language  work.  It  is  insisting  on 
putting  the  natural  development  of  the  thought  materials 
and  association  of  ideas,  together  with  appropriate  af- 
fective states,  in  place  of  much  of  the  former  drills  in  the 
memorizing  of  unrelated  forms.  If  the  suggestions  of 
psychology  should  prove  operative  in  our  schools,  every 
exercise  in  every  branch  taught  will,  in  the  near  future, 
become  the  means  of  perfecting  the  language  of  the 
pupils. 


554  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

action  and  the  teaching  of  religion 

How  can  the  line  of  thought  developed  in  the  chapter, 
'^Expression  Through  Action/'  in  the  Psychology  of  Ed- 
ucation, he  applied  to  the  teaching  of  religion  and  of 
morality  in  our  schools? 

One  of  the  grave  questions  in  the  field  of  education 
to-day  is  concerned  with  the  preservation  of  the  balance 
in  the  spiritual  inheritance  of  the  child.  This  inheritance 
is  generally  conceded  by  educators  to  be  at  least  five- 
fold, viz.,  scientific,  institutional,  literary,  aesthetic  and 
religious.  '^A  secure  development  along  any  one  of  these 
lines,''  Dr.  Shields  tells  us,  '^demands  a  proportionate 
development  along  the  other  four.  It  is  therefore  appar- 
ent that,  apart  altogether  from  the  consideration  of  the 
hereafter,  no  one  can  be  considered  an  educated  man  who 
is  ignorant  of  the  nature  of  religious  phenomena  and  of 
the  role  it  has  played  in  the  history  of  the  race.  The 
early  literature  of  all  peoples  is  inseparably  associated 
with  their  religion.  Ignorance  of  religion,  therefore,  is 
prima  facie  evidence  of  incompetence  along  many  other 
lines."* 

To  the  Christian  religion  means  much  more  than  a  de- 
partment of  science  or  an  element  of  culture.  It  is  asso- 
ciated with  eternity  and  furnishes  the  only  means  through 
which  the  end  for  which  man  was  created  may  be  at- 
tained. Since,  therefore,  the  matter  is  of  such  paramount 
importance  for  both  time  and  eternity,  it  evidently  should 
be  taught  in  the  most  effective  way.  Within  the  past  few 
years  great  strides  have  been  made  in  the  methods  em- 
ployed in  teaching  various  subjects  in  the  school  curricu- 
lum. But,  strange  to  say,  in  many  of  those  schools  which 
have  been  characterized  by  progressive  methods  in  teach- 
ing all  the  secular  branches  but  little  progress  is  notice- 
able in  the  teaching  of  the  all-important  subject  of  re- 


♦Psychology  of  Education,  p.  120. 


Discussion  555 

ligion.  Teachers  cling  tenaciously  to  the  old  method  of 
question  and  answer  from  the  primary  grade  to  the  high 
school.  There  is  no  sign  of  development  in  the  thought 
presented  to  the  children  year  after  year  in  the  self-same 
formulae.  For  the  little  child  in  the  first  grade  and  for 
the  youth  in  the  high  school  the  question  and  the  answer 
is  the  same,  the  only  difference  being  in  the  greater  num- 
ber of  questions  that  the  latter  is  supposed  to  have  memo- 
rized. And  this  in  spite  of  the  fact  that  the  results  of 
such  teaching  are  alarming  all  those  who  watch  the 
careers  of  our  young  people.  The  tocsin  of  alarm  has 
often  been  sounded,  but  with  little  apparent  effect.  The 
faithful  lives  of  former  generations  of  Catholics  are 
pointed  to  as  proof  of  the  validity  of  the  old  method,  and 
it  is  asked  why  it  should  not  produce  similar  results 
to-day. 

It  is  to  be  feared  that  such  teachers  do  not  take  into 
consideration  the  dangers  that  threaten  the  children  of 
to-day.  They  look  out  upon  the  world  from  the  pro- 
tected homes  of  their  own  childhood  and  because  they 
never  came  in  contact  with  things  that  threaten  the  faith 
and  morals  of  the  child  of  the  present  they  refuse  to 
believe  that  such  things  exist.  Nevertheless,  the  children 
of  to-day  on  the  streets  and  later  on  in  the  mill  and  the 
factory,  or  the  higher  educational  institutions,  do  meet 
all  kinds  of  people,  hear  all  manner  of  topics  freely  dis- 
cussed without  either  faith  or  reverence ;  they  hear  virtue 
sneered  at  and  behold  indulgence  in  vice  held  up  as  lib- 
erty; they  are  told  that  God  is  a  myth,  that  religion  is 
a  fairy  tale.  Is  it  any  wonder,  therefore,  that  the  chil- 
dren, whose  only  knowledge  of  religion  consists  in  the 
memorized  answers  to  the  questions  of  the  catechism,  find 
themselves  totally  unprepared  for  their  surroundings  and 
fall  victims  to  the  prevalent  unbelief  if  not  to  the  preva- 
lent vices  ? 


556  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Religion,  if  taught  in  the  proper  manner,  would  pre- 
vent many  of  these  deplorable  results.  It  would  enter 
into  the  heart  and  the  imagination  of  the  child  and  regu- 
late his  attitude  towards  God  and  towards  his  neighbor 
instead  of  lying  inactive  in  his  soul  to  perish  there  for 
want  of  expression.  It  is  as  true  of  religion  as  of  all 
other  subjects  that  opportunity  to  express  the  thoughts 
acquired  is  necessary  to  the  child  if  his  work  is  not  to 
remain  barren.  When  Christ  taught  the  lawyer  what 
should  be  done,  He  bid  him  go  and  do  it.  And  the  reward 
of  the  Kingdom  was  promised  to  him  that  doeth.  Why 
refuse  to  adjust  our  methods  in  the  teaching  of  religion 
to  the  changed  conditions  of  the  child's  life?  Why  make 
the  subject  odious  to  the  child  by  the  retention  of  a  meth- 
od that  has  long  since  been  discarded  in  all  other 
branches?  Why  burden  the  child's  mind  with  so  much 
matter  that  he  cannot  assimilate?  Knowledge  does  not 
exist  for  itself  but  for  conduct.  And  if  this  be  true  else- 
where, it  is  preeminently  true  of  religious  knowledge. 
Self-expression  is  necessary  to  complete  and  perfect  in 
the  child's  life  the  lessons  of  the  Gospel.  Put  before  him 
the  life  of  Our  Lord;  let  him  see  how  He  acted  as  a 
child  and  in  His  public  life;  and  from  this  lead  him  to 
an  understanding  of  the  truths  of  Christian  Doctrine. 
Imitation  will  lead  to  the  proper  expression  and  both  will 
make  religion  fecund  in  the  mind  and  heart  of  the  child. 
The  lives  of  the  saints  furnish  splendid  material  which 
should  be  used  in  the  same  way. 

**The  child  knows  best  what  he  has  received  through 
the  greatest  number  of  senses  and  expressed  in  the  great- 
est number  of  ways,"  hence  in  the  lower  grades  the 
action-song,  the  religious-play,  the  picture  and  the  story, 
can  be  used  with  good  effect.  Bible  stories  in  which  the 
whole  class  takes  part  can  be  played.  Construction  work 
in  which  the  pupils  make  or  draw  a  miniature  of  the  Tem- 
ple, of  the  Cave  of  Bethlehem,  of  the  stars,  the  angels,  the 


Discussion  557 

camels,  the  king,  the  crosses,  Mount  Calvary,  etc.,  while 
the  teacher  tells  the  story  of  God's  love  for  man  in  a 
way  to  inspire  the  children  with  a  desire  to  give  God  a 
willing  service,  is  a  good  way  to  awaken  interest  in  re- 
ligious truths.  Somewhat  later  on  the  pupils  may  be 
called  upon  to  make  maps  of  Palestine,  showing  the 
routes  of  travel,  the  towns  visited  and  the  lakes  and 
rivers  by  Our  Lord  when  ''He  went  about  doing  good.'' 
The  physical  features  of  the  Holy  Land,  sanctified  by 
the  passion  and  death  of  Our  Lord,  should  receive  special 
attention,  even  if  there  be  not  sufficient  time  remaining 
in  which  the  children  may  be  taught  the  distance  from 
Timbuktu  to  Ujiji,  the  products  of  Liechtenstein  or  the 
latest  capital  of  Abyssinia. 

Sympathy  for  the  sufferings  of  Our  Lord  may  be  ex- 
pressed by  devoutly  following  the  Way  of  the  Cross.  All 
the  ceremonies  of  the  Church,  the  reception  of  the  Sacra- 
ments, the  devotions  proper  for  the  different  seasons,  call 
for  activities  which,  if  properly  utilized,  become  conscious 
modes  of  expression  of  the  great  truths  of  religion,  and 
they  produce,  consequently,  not  only  their  intrinsic  and 
characteristic  effect,  but  at  the  same  time  they  help  to 
perfect  the  child's  knowledge  of  the  doctrines  entrusted 
to  the  Church  and  of  the  language  in  which  she  expresses 
them.  The  Christian's  duty  of  contributing  to  the  finan- 
cial support  of  religion  and  of  Christian  education  may 
be  effectively  taught  by  having  the  children  occasionally 
give  a  small  share  of  their  own  spending  money  to  help 
pay  the  Church  debt,  to  furnish  flowers  for  the  altar,  to 
purchase  small  articles  needed  in  the  church,  etc.  A  sim- 
ilar line  of  action  may  be  followed  in  teaching  the  children 
charity  to  the  poor,  the  suffering,  the  orphan,  and  foreign 
missions.  These  modes  of  expression  will  clarify  the 
children's  minds  and  enable  them  to  gain  a  comprehen- 
sion of  the  meaning  of  Christian  Doctrine  as  no  amount 
of  verbal  memorizing  of  the  catechism  could  do.     In  a 


558  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

word,  the  child  ^s  mind  is  developed  and  with  its  develop- 
ment proceeds  the  development  of  Christian  Doctrine 
until  the  proper  time  comes  for  its  correct  and  explicit 
formulation.  The  claim  here  put  forth  is  that  the  mere 
memorizing  is  not  sufficient,  that  a  vitalizing  of  Christian 
Doctrine  is  demanded,  and  this  vitalization  can  take  place 
only  through  objective  methods  and  appropriate  modes 
of  expression. 

Sister  M.  Generose,  0.  M.  C. 
Delaware,  Ohio. 


CURRENT  EVENTS 

THE  CATHOLIC  UNIVERSITY  OP  AMERICA 

The  registration  for  the  University  Summer  School  for 
teaching  sisters  and  women  teachers  has  reached  a  gratifying 
figure,  and  the  success  of  the  school  in  point  of  numbers  seems 
assured.  So  far  the  students  come  from  more  than  twenty 
States  and  represent  over  fifty  teaching  communities.  The 
Dean  of  the  school  is  the  Rev.  Thomas  E.  Shields,  Ph.  D.;  the 
Vice-Dean,  Very  Rev.  Edward  A.  Pace,  Ph.  D.,  and  the  Secre 
tary,  Rev.  Patrick  J.  McOormick,  Ph.  D.,  all  three  professors 
of  the  University.  Many  of  the  Sisters  will  find  living  accom- 
modations in  the  vacant  colleges  that  are  to  be  conducted  as 
convents;  others  will  reside  in  the  various  convents  of  the 
city.  The  school  will  be  open  from  July  1st  to  August  7th, 
and  will  have  a  teaching  staff  of  twenty-two. 

The  Engineering  Building,  that  accommodates  also  the  new 
Heating,  Light  and  Power  Plant  of  the  University,  is  now  in 
full  operation.  The  professors  and  students  have  taken  pos- 
session of  their  commodious  and  elegant  quarters,  equipped 
with  all  the  latest  devices  for  the  teaching  of  these  sciences. 
The  classrooms,  drawing  rooms,  library,  and  professors'  offices 
are  excellent  in  every  respect.  The  new  building  is  an  artistic 
edifice,  and  with  its  125-foot  chimney  is  a  striking  landmark. 
It  is  also  the  first  University  building  to  be  erected  on  the  new 
Boulevard  Avenue  that  separates  the  University  grounds  from 
the  Baltimore  and  Ohio  Railroad. 

The  Trustees  of  the  University  met  in  Divinity  Hall  on  Wed- 
nesday, April  26.  Archbishop  Farley  was  elected  Vice-Presi- 
dent of  the  Board  in  succession  to  the  late  Archbishop  Ryan. 
The  plans  of  the  new  Cardinal  Gibbons  Memorial  Hall  were 
approved,  and  the  immediate  erection  of  one  wing  and  the 
basement  of  the  tower  was  authorized.  The  new  Departments 
of  Ascetic  and  Pastoral  Theology  and  of  Drawing,  the  latter 
to  include  all  the  drawing  common  to  the  various  classes  of 
the  School  of  Sciences,  were  created. 


560  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

The  teaching  staff  of  the  University  now  numbers  fifty.  Of 
these  19  are  full  professors,  5  associate  professors,  20  instruc- 
tors, and  6  assistants.  They  are  distributed  as  follows:  10 
in  the  School  of  Sacred  Sciences,  3  in  the  School  of  Law,  11 
in  the  School  of  Philosophy,  10  in  the  School  of  Letters,  and 
16  in  the  School  of  Science. 

The  Cardinal  Gibbons  Memorial  Hall  has  been  begun,  and 
one  wing  of  it  will  be  ready  for  the  opening  of  the  University 
in  October.  This  wing,  105  by  40  feet,  will  be  three  stories 
in  height,  and  will  be  fireproof  throughout.  It  will  contain 
rooms  for  sixty  students,  and  will  have  in  the  basement  a  large 
and  well-lighted  recreation  room.  The  basement  of  the  tower 
will  also  be  built,  and  will  give  room  for  a  commodious  tem- 
porary chapel  for  the  lay  students  of  Gibbons  and  Albert 
Halls.  The  material  used  is  Port  Deposit  granite,  and  the 
trimmings  are  Bedford  limestone. 

On  Wednesday  morning,  June  7,  the  Annual  Conferring  of 
Degrees  and  Commencement  Exercises  of  the  University  took 
place  in  McMahon  Hall,  in  the  presence  of  His  Excellency,  the 
Most  Rev.  Diomede  Falconio,  Apostolic  Delegate.  The  Rt. 
Rev.  Thomas  J.  Shahan,  Rector  of  the  University,  delivered 
the  principal  address,  and  the  Delegate  closed  the  exercises 
with  benediction. 

The  Deans  of  the  several  schools  of  the  University  presented 
the  following  students  for  degrees: 

In  the  School  of  Sacred  Sciences,  for  the  degree  of  Bachelor 
of  Sacred  Theology  (S.  T.  B.)  :  Rev.  Dominic  Joseph  Cannon, 
of  the  Congregation  of  the  Holy  Cross;  Rev.  Wendell  Phillips 
Corcoran,  of  the  Congregation  of  the  Holy  Cross ;  Rev.  Patrick 
Francis  Crawley,  of  Scranton,  Pa.;  Rev.  Edward  Patrick 
Dalton,  of  Albany,  N.  Y.;  Rev.  Aloysius  Charles  Dineen,  of 
New  York,  N.  Y.;  Rev.  Sigourney  Webster  Fay,  of  Baltimore, 
Md. ;  Rev.  John  Joseph  Finn,  of  Albany,  N.  Y. ;  Rev.  Michael 
Ambrose  Gilloegly,  of  Scranton,  Pa.;  Rev.  William  Anthony 
Hemmick,  of  Baltimore,  Md. ;  Rev.  Francis  Henry  Kehlenbrink, 
of  St.  Louis,  Mo. ;  Rev.  William  Peter  McNally,  of  Philadelphia, 
Pa. ;  Rev.  Joseph  Aloysius  Nelson,  of  New  York,  N.  Y. ;  Brother 
James  O'Keefe,  of  the  Order  of   St.   Benedict;   Rev.   James 


CuREENT  Events  561 

Francis  Palmowski,  of  the  Marist  Congregation;  Rev.  Joseph 
Michael  Sullivan,  of  the  Marist  Congregation ;  Rev.  John  Paul 
Ritchie,  of  St.  Louis,  Mo. ;  Rev.  Andrew  Aloysius  Walls,  of  the 
Marist  Congregation ;  Brother  Celestine  Smith,  of  the  Order  of 
St.  Benedict. 

For  the  degree  of  Licentiate  in  Sacred  Theology  (S.  T.  L.)  : 

Rev.  Walter  Thomas  Bazaar,  of  Albany,  N.  Y. ;  Dissertation : 
The  Power  of  the  Human  Reason  to  Know  God ;  a  Critical  De- 
fense. 

Rev.  Eugene  Paul  Burke,  of  the  Congregation  of  the  Holy 
Cross ;  Dissertation :  Some  Notes  on  the  Christology  of  St. 
Paul. 

Rev.  Robert  Emmet  B.  Gardiner,  of  Scranton,  Pa.;  Disser- 
tation :  Pope  Leo  XIII  and  Anglican  Orders. 

Rev.  John  Francis  Georgelin,  of  the  Marist  Congregation; 
Dissertation:  The  Authority  of  the  Vulgate  according  to  the 
Council  of  Trent. 

Rev.  Michael  Joseph  Keyes,  of  the  Marist  Congregation; 
Dissertation:  The  Doctrine  of  the  Church  on  Frequent  Com- 
munion. 

Rev.  Francis  Michael  O'Reilly,  of  New  York,  N.  Y. ;  Disser- 
tation: The  Catholic  Doctrine  of  Atonement:  a  Reply  to  A. 
Sabatier. 

Rev.  John  Michael  Ryan,  of  the  Congregation  of  the  Holy 
Cross ;  Dissertation :  The  Social  and  Economic  Teaching  of 
Clement  of  Alexandria. 

Rev.  John  Carter  Smith,  of  the  Paulist  Congregation;  Dis- 
sertation: Substitution,  and  the  Doctrine  of  Atonement. 

For  the  degree  of  Bachelor  of  Canon  Law  (J.  C.  B.)  : 

Rev.  John  Ignatius  Barret,  of  Baltimore,  Md. ;  Rev.  Walter 
Thomas  Bazaar,  of  Albany,  N.  Y. ;  Rev.  Andrew  Joseph  Carroll, 
of  San  Francisco,  Cal.;  Rev.  Edward  Patrick  Dalton,  of 
Albany,  N.  Y. ;  Rev.  Aloysius  Charles  Dineen,  of  New  York, 
N.  Y. ;  Rev.  Thomas  Joseph  Finnegan,  of  Sioux  City,  Iowa; 
Rev.  Michael  Galvin,  of  Los  Angeles,  Cal. ;  Rev.  William  Hum- 
phries, of  Baltimore,  Md. ;  Rev.  Felix  McCarthy,  of  Omaha, 
Neb.;  Rev.  Thomas  Ligouri  McEntee,  of  Harrisburg,  Pa.,  Rev. 
Leo  Ligouri  McVay,  of  Providence,  R.  I. ;  Rev.  Thomas  Aloysius 


562  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Needham,  of  Scranton,  Pa.;  Rev.  Thomas  Joseph  Toolen,  of 
Baltimore,  Md. 

In  the  School  of  Law,  for  the  degree  of  Doctor  of  Law 
(J.  D.)  :  Joseph  Lepaspi  Villaflor,  of  Manila,  P.  I.;  Dis- 
sertation :  The  Authority  and  Sanction  of  International  Law. 

In  the  School  of  Philosophy,  for  the  degree  of  Doctor  of 
Philosophy  (Ph.  D.) :  Rev.  Cornelius  Joseph  Hagerty,  of  the 
Congregation  of  the  Holy  Cross;  Dissertation:  The  Problem 
of  Evil.  ^      ■„,   j 

Rev.  Patrick  Joseph  McCormick,  of  Norwich,  Conn. ;  Disser- 
tation :  The  Education  of  the  Laity  in  the  Middle  Ages. 

Rev.  Patrick  Joseph  Waters,  of  Boston,  Mass. ;  Dissertation : 
Studies  in  the  Principle  of  Apperception. 

Rev.  Vigil  Daeger,  of  the  College  of  the  Holy  Land ;  Disser- 
tation: The  Origin,  Primitive  Meaning  and  History  of  the 
Dagesh  Forte. 

Rev.  Francis  Xavier  O'Neill,  of  the  Order  of  St.  Dominic; 
Dissertation :  Some  Aspects  of  the  Medieval  Miracle  Play. 

For  the  degree  of  Bachelor  of  Philosophy  (Ph.  B.)  : 

Louis  Joseph  Bour,  of  the  Paulist  Congregation. 

For  the  degree  of  Master  of  Arts  (A.  M.)  : 

Rev.  Daniel  Joseph  MacDonald,  of  Antigonish,  Nova  Scotia ; 
Dissertation:  Radicalism  and  Some  English  Poetry  of  the 
Nineteenth  Century. 

William  Augustus  Maguire,  of  South  Bethlehem,  Pa.;  Dis- 
sertation: On  the  Fate  Passages  in  the  First  Three  Books  of 
the  Aeneid  of  Virgil. 

For  the  degree  of  Bachelor  of  Arts  (A.  B.)  :  Timothy  Vin- 
cent O'Donnell,  of  Albion,  N.  Y. ;  John  Joseph  Daly,  of  Phoe- 
bus, Va. 

For  the  degree  of  Bachelor  of  Science  (B.  S.)  :  James  Joseph 
Boillin,  of  Clarksville,  Tenn. ;  John  James  Cantwell,  of  Wash- 
ington, D.  C,  in  Electrical  Engineering;  Thomas  Hackman 
Carter,  of  Washington,  D.  C. ;  Joseph  Roland  Devries,  of  Ar- 
lington, Md. ;  Charles  Stephen  McCarthy,  of  Brookland,  D.  C, 
in  Civil  Engineering;  Peter  Leo  McGeady,  of  Wanamie,  Pa. 
Pa. 


Current  Events  563 

THE    children's    BUREAU. 

On  May  18,  the  Senate  Committee  on  Education  and  Labor, 
through  its  chairman.  Senator  Borah,  reported  favorably  the 
bill  to  establish  a  Children's  Bureau  in  the  Department  of 
Commerce  and  Labor.  The  Bureau  is  intended  "to  investigate 
and  report  on  all  matters  pertaining  to  the  welfare  of  children 
and  child  life,  and  shall  especially  investigate  the  questions 
of  infant  mortality,  the  birth  rate,  orphanage,  juvenile  courts, 
desertions,  dangerous  occupations,  accidents  and  diseases  of 
children,  employment,  legislation  affecting  children  in  the  va- 
rious States  and  Territories." 

While  it  is  said  that  this  legislation  is  endorsed  by  several 
national  organizations  concerned  in  the  welfare  of  children, 
such  as  the  National  Child  Labor  Committee,  and  the  National 
Federation  of  Women's  Clubs,  it  is  of  note  that  the  National 
Congress  of  Mothers  has  taken  some  exception  to  the  proposed 
management  of  the  Bureau.  One  of  the  resolutions  passed  at 
the  last  meeting  of  the  Congress  held  in  Washington,  was: 
"Whereas,  There  is  a  bill.  No.  253,  presented  by  Mr.  Borah, 
before  the  Senate,  to  establish  under  the  Department  of  Com- 
merce and  Labor  a  Bureau  to  be  known  as  The  Children's 
Bureau' ;  Resolved,  That  we  endorse  this  bill  for  the  establish- 
ment of  a  Children's  Bureau,  with  the  exception  that  we  should 
substitute  the  words,  The  Interior,'  in  the  bill  instead  of 
^Commerce  and  Labor,'  wherever  these  words  are  used,  so  that 
it  should  read,  ^A  bill  to  establish  in  the  Department  of  the 
Interior  a  Bureau  to  be  known  as  the  Children's  Bureau.' " 

PERSONAL   LETTER   FROM   THE    HOLY    FATHER 

Mrs.  Ann  Elisa  McCaddin  Walsh,  of  Brooklyn,  N.  Y.,  found- 
ress of  the  Henry  McCaddin  Junior  Fund,  has  lately  been 
honored  by  receiving  a  personal  letter  of  commendation  from 
our  Holy  Father,  Pope  Pius  X.  The  fund  created  by  Mrs. 
Walsh  in  memory  of  her  brother  is  an  endowment,  the  interest 
of  which  is  devoted  to  the  education  of  ecclesiastical  students 
of  poor  dioceses  in  this  country  and  other  parts  of  the  world. 
The  students  are  at  present  located  in  many  American  and 
European  seminaries. 


564  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

The  letter  was  communicated  through  Kev.  Charles  P.  Gran- 
non,  D.  D.,  of  the  Catholic  University  of  America,  who  is  Vice- 
President  and  one  of  the  Trustees  of  the  Fund.  It  is  in  part 
as  follows: 

"To  the  beloved  daughter,  Ann  Elisa  McCaddin  Walsh,  who 
has  deserved  so  well  for  the  education  of  so  many  young  men 
called  to  the  priesthood.  Hoping  that  the  Lord  may  reward 
her  with  His  choicest  graces  especially  for  this  work  of  charity 
and  religion;  in  token  of  gratitude  and  good  will  we  heartily 
impart  the  apostolic  benediction." 

FAILURES   OP   FRATERNITY   MEN 

According  to  a  statement  of  the  President  of  the  Cornell 
University  the  fraternity  men  continue  to  furnish  by  far  the 
greater  percentage  of  failures  among  the  students.  Of  the 
3,587  students  at  the  University,  1,048  belong  to  the  fraterni- 
ties. The  number  of  failures  this  spring  was  88,  of  which  40 
were  members  of  fraternities,  or  as  it  was  pointed  out,  the 
fraternity  men  who  constituted  29  per  cent  of  the  total  number 
of  male  undergraduates  furnished  45  per  cent  of  those  dropped. 
Last  year  the  fraternities  enrolled  31  per  cent  of  the  total 
number  of  students  and  furnished  44  per  cent  of  the  failures. 
The  critical  period  for  most  of  the  unsuccessful  students  was 
the  second  or  sophomore  year. 

NEW   PRESIDENT  OP   CATHOLIC   COLLEGE. 

A  few  weeks  ago  the  Rev.  John  H.  O'Rourke,  S.  J.,  was  ap- 
pointed to  the  presidency  of  Brooklyn  College,  Brooklyn,  N.  Y., 
to  succeed  the  first  President,  Rev.  F.  X.  O'Connor,  S.  J. 
Father  O'Rourke  is  widely  known  as  a  writer,  educator  and 
missionary.  For  many  years  he  filled  the  office  of  Rector  and 
Master  of  Novices  of  the  Jesuit  Novitiate,  Frederick,  Md.,  and 
it  was  during  his  administration  that  the  institute  was  trans- 
ferred to  St.  Andrew-on-Hudson,  near  Poughkeepsie,  N.  Y. 
His  latest  assignments  have  been  to  the  directorship  of  the 
Apostleship  of  Prayer,  and  editorial  staff  of  the  Messenger 
of  the  Sacred  Heart. 


Current  Events  565 

NATIONAL  CONGRESS  OF  MOTHERS 

Among  the  most  significant  of  the  resolutions  passed  at  the 
recent  meeting  of  the  National  Congress  of  Mothers  held  in 
Washington,  were  those  in  regard  to  the  National  and  State 
Departments  of  Education.  The  Congress  recommended  an 
enlargement  of  the  scope  of  the  Department  of  Education,  and 
the  appointment  therein  of  Departments  on  Parenthood  and 
Child  Welfare.  As  it  was  believed  that  "no  such  department 
can  be  adequately  administered  unless  mother-thought  goes 
into  it,"  it  was  further  resolved  that  a  woman  should  be  chosen 
as  its  head.  All  matters  relating  to  probation  the  Congress 
desired  to  have  removed  from  the  Departments  of  Charities 
and  Corrections  and  placed  under  the  Department  of  Educa- 
tion. It  condemned  the  arresting  and  imprisonment  of  chil- 
dren, and  recommended  that  places  more  suitable  than  the 
police  stations  and  prisons  be  established  for  the  care  of  those 
who  for  any  reason  may  be  detained,  awaiting  hearing  and 
trial.  The  Congress  also  urged  the  embodiment  of  moral 
training  in  the  school  curriculum,  the  special  training  of 
teachers  to  care  for  the  backward  and  retarded  school  children, 
believing  "that  at  least  twelve  per  cent  of  the  primary  pupils 
in  the  regular  schools  are  retarded  two  or  more  years,"  and 
that  the  establishment  of  special  classes  for  backward  children 
is  a  distinct  necessity. 

CONGRESS   OF    CATHOLIC    WOMEN 

On  May  1  the  Fourth  Annual  Congress  of  the  National  Cath- 
olic Women's  Circle  met  in  Washington.  A  banquet  followed 
the  meeting,  the  presiding  hostess  being  Mrs.  James  P.  Cooper. 
The  foundress  and  president  of  the  Circle,  Mrs.  Margaret 
Coope,  received  the  guests,  Mrs.  Thomas  H.  Carter  gave  the 
greetings,  and  Mrs.  Sarah  T.  Andrew  acted  as  toastmistress. 
Addresses  were  made  by  Rt.  Rev.  Mgr.  Shahan,  Rector  of  the 
Catholic  University,  very  Rev.  A.  P.  Doyle,  Rector  of  the 
Apostolic  Mission  House,  Representative  William  Sulzer,  of 
New  York,  Rev.  J.  J.  Cooper,  of  St.  Matthew's  Church,  Wash- 
ington, and  P.  J.  Haltigan,  editor  of  the  National  Hibernian. 


566  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Members  of  the  Circle  spoke  on  ''The  Book  of  Kells,"  'The 
Rosary,"  "St.  Rose  of  Lima,"  "St.  Francis  of  Assisi,"  and  "The 
Catholic  Encyclopedia."  Mrs.  Coope  gave  a  history  of  the 
organization,  and  in  the  course  of  her  remarks  said:  "The 
spirit  of  our  Circle  is  social,  educational  and  missionary,  and 
we  feel  that  we  in  our  simple  way,  have  not  only  driven  the 
entering  wedge  into  that  vexed  problem — social  intercourse 
among  Catholic  women  of  the  laity — but  have  grasped  hands 
and  linked  minds  with  what  Maurice  Francis  Egan,  our  poet 
with  true  vision  claims  is  exercising  the  greatest  minds,  the 
most  far-seeing  brains  of  the  world  to-day,  namely,  a  union 
of  faith  with  practical  life." 

SAINT-MARY-OF-THE- WOODS 

May  opened  with  the  Crowning  of  Our  Blessed  Lady.  The 
beautiful  ceremony  was  held  in  the  Convent  Chapel,  the  teach- 
ers, students,  and  invited  guests  participating.  After  an  elo- 
quent sermont  on  the  Blessed  Virgin  by  the  Rev.  P.  H.  GriflSn, 
of  St.  John's  Church,  Indianapolis,  the  Procession  moved 
through  the  east  and  south  campuses  to  the  academy,  where 
at  the  shrine  of  Our  Lady  of  Grace,  the  coronation  took  place 
with  prayer  and  the  singing  of  hymns.  At  the  conclusion,  the 
procession  returned  to  the  chapel,  and  benediction  of  the  Most 
Blessed  Sacrament  closed  the  day. 

Special  studies  in  the  aesthetics  of  Greek  architecture  were 
concluded  with  the  stereopticon  lecture,  "Athens,  the  Violet- 
Crowned."  The  topics,  Egyptian  Influence,  the  Topography 
of  Greece,  the  Spirit  of  the  People  and  Their  Building,  as 
exemplified  in  the  Acropolis,  were  presented  in  a  manner  at 
once  attractive  and  impressive. 

The  rare  opportunity  of  hearing  "The  Dream  of  Gerontius," 
by  the  Sheffield  Choir,  under  the  personal  direction  of  Dr. 
Elgar,  was  eagerly  embraced  by  all  of  the  students.  A  novel 
ceremony  was  arranged  for  the  installation  in  the  chemical 
laboratory  of  a  fine  copy  of  Edelfeldt's  Pasteur.  It  consisted 
of  short  biographical  sketches,  some  pieces  of  historical  re- 
search, and  experiments  in  organic  chemistry  bearing  on  the 
work  of  the  great  French  chemist. 


Current  Events  567 

The  bi-weekly  lectures  on  Liturgy  and  Church  History,  given 
in  the  school  auditorium  by  the  Rev.  Dr.  Ryan,  Chaplain,  are 
attended  with  keen  interest  by  the  entire  student  body.  The 
course  at  present  includes  a  series  of  lectures  on  St.  Francis 
of  Assisi. 

TRINITY  COLLEGE  NOTES 

The  Literary  Society  of  Trinity  College  marked  the  close  of 
a  successful  year's  work  by  a  lecture  on  "The  Mission  of  Hu- 
mor," by  Miss  Agnes  Repplier,  the  recipient  of  the  Laetare 
Medal  for  1911.  The  large  audience  filling  the  O'Connor  Audi- 
torium to  overflowing  greatl}^  appreciated  a  discourse  that 
might  be  called  one  of  Miss  Repplier's  charming  essays  in  the 
making.  The  freshman  French  classes  and  the  students  of 
music  united  in  a  happy  presentation  of  the  comic  opera,  "La 
Treille  du  Roi,"  and  piano  selections,  at  the  end  of  May.  A 
most  enjoyable  hour  was  that  of  a  piano  recital  by  Miss 
Veronica  Murphy,  of  Chicago. 

Patrick  J.  McCormick. 


REVIEWS  AND   NOTICES 

Reports  of  the  School  Board  and  Superintendent  of  Parish 
Schools;    Diocese  of  Pittsburgh :  1909-1910. 

No  more  interesting  or  welcome  document  can  come  to  our 
hands  than  the  annual  report  of  a  diocesan  school  board  or 
of  the  superintendent  of  one  of  the  diocesan  school  systems. 
As  in  the  present  instance,  the  actual  conditions  of  the  schools 
of  a  large  diocese  are  vividly  depicted,  and  one  is  shown  such 
interesting  details  as  the  number  of  teachers  and  their  propor- 
tion to  the  enrollment  of  children,  the  distribution  of  children 
in  the  grades,  the  text-books  used,  selections  from  the  course 
of  study,  and  even  the  allotment  of  time  for  the  various 
subjects  and  in  the  different  grades. 

There  is  a  very  laudable  tendency  evident  in  the  writings  of 
many  of  the  superintendents  to  develop  in  the  teachers  a  full 
appreciation  of  their  own  powers  and  of  the  strong  features 
of  our  educational  system.  At  the  present  time  this  would 
seem  to  be  as  necessary  as  indicating  our  weaknesses  and 
deficiencies,  since  the  inclination  is  too  often  manifested  of 
readily  abandoning  what  we  have  for  something  possessed  by 
our  neighbors.  Father  Boyle,  in  speaking  of  the  religious 
teachers  and  their  rare  advantages,  says:  "It  is  doubtful  if 
we  realize  to  the  full  the  asset  we  possess  in  the  religious 
character  of  the  men  and  women  who  labor  day  by  day  to 
serve  Almighty  God  in  the  education  of  our  children.  Their 
enthusiasm  draws  on  an  inexhaustible  fountain,  their  expe- 
rience and  knowledge  ripen  as  the  years  of  their  teaching 
increase,  their  efficiency  is  constantly  growing,  and  they  leave 
a  lasting  impress  on  their  pupils.  .  .  .  The  very  founda- 
tion of  their  worth  to  the  Catholic  school  system  is  the  spiritual 
quality  of  their  lives.  For  that,  if  it  were  destroyed  or  dimin- 
ished, nothing  could  compensate.  But  the  supreme  importance 
of  this  spiritual  quality  does  not  make  the  need  of  mere  human 
knowledge,  nor  the  knowledge  of  the  best  methods  of  imparting 
it,  any  the  less  imperative.  Our  teachers  have  not  been  slow 
to  see  that  an  increase  in  their  efficiency  in  the  school   is 


Eeviews  and  Notices  569 

entirely  consistent  with  spiritual  growth,  indeed,  that  it  is, 
with  those  whose  work  calls  them  there,  not  the  least  of  the 
factors  that  contribute  to  spiritual  perfection.  In  practically 
all  of  our  religious  houses,  normal  schools  are  conducted,  and 
every  facility,  consistent  with  the  discipline  and  order  of  the 
house  and  with  the  rule  of  its  founder,  is  afforded  teachers  for 
perfecting  themselves  in  their  work." 

He  encourages  the  study  of  educational  science  and  the 
adoption  of  those  methods  of  teaching  which  "the  example 
of  the  best  schools,  the  traditions  of  the  best  teaching,  and  the 
selective  process  of  centuries  of  school  experience  have  held  in 
good  repute  at  one  time  or  another."  Education  is,  however, 
a  progressive  science,  and  when  experience  of  an  intelligent 
kind  has  done  its  best  work  of  testing  and  examination  there 
"is  a  residuum — small,  perhaps,  but  very  real — that  is  pure 
progress."  Undoubtedly  our  teachers  need  direction  in  their 
efforts  to  keep  abreast  with  every  real  advance,  for  many  of 
the  current  theories  and  methods  which  have  been  hailed  as 
great  achievements  of  modern  pedagogy  are  not  reconcilable 
with  the  principles  of  Catholic  psychology  and  ethics.  As 
Father  Boyle  says:  "Some  Catholic  periodical  dealing  with 
them  as  they  are  advanced,  and  doing  in  addition  constructive 
work  on  its  own  account,  should  be  taken  by  every  Catholic 
concerned  in  the  work  of  Catholic  schools,  and  indeed,  by 
anyone  who  is  interested  in  getting  the  Catholic  point  of  view 
in  educational  matters."  He  also  urges  the  formation  of  con- 
vent libraries  well  supplied  with  the  literature  necessary  for 
private  and  class  study. 

The  diocese  of  Pittsburgh,  with  its  143  schools  and  824 
teachers,  now  provides  educational  facilities  for  45,617  chil- 
dren. In  the  past  year  the  enrollment  of  children  increased 
3,046;  three  new  schools  were  opened,  and  eight  others  were 
in  process  of  construction.  With  these  certain  indications  of 
growth  and  progress  the  Report  gives  assurances  of  a  corre- 
sponding zeal  and  interest  on  the  part  of  those  in  charge. 

Patrick  J.  McCormick. 


570  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Laggards  in  Our  Schools;  a  Study  of  Retardation  and 
Elimination  in  City  School  Systems,  by  Leonard  P. 
Ayres,  A.M.,  New  York,  Charities  Publication  Committee 
(Russell  Sage  Foundation),  pp.  252. 
We  should  welcome  every  genuine  test  of  efficiency  which 
can  be  applied  to  our  schools,  and  particularly  in  respect  to 
their  serving  the  wants  of  the  majority  of  the  pupils.  There 
are  other  indications  of  efficiency  in  the  common  schools  be- 
sides the  superior  quality  of  instruction  or  administration, 
a  large  enrollment  of  pupils  and  good  reputation  of  the  gradu- 
ates. All  these  indications  might  be  present  in  a  given  school, 
and  yet  its  success  would  not  be  assured.  An  important  item 
might  be  easily  overlooked,  as,  for  example,  how  well  the 
school  is  fulfilling  its  mission  to  give  an  elementary  edu- 
cation to  all  the  children  it  receives.  Mr.  Ayres  has  under- 
taken in  his  work  to  test  the  efficiency  of  city  school  systems 
in  this  respect,  by  studying  the  problems  connected  with  the 
backward  and  retarded  children,  those  who  are  behind  their 
normal  grades  or  classes,  and  with  the  eliminated,  those  who 
leave  school  before  completing  the  course.  He  informs  us  that 
the  general  tendency  in  American  school  systems  is  to  keep  all 
of  the  children  for  the  fifth  grade,  to  drop  half  by  the  eighth, 
and  to  carry  one  in  ten  to  the  high  school.  The  public  schools  are 
supplying  an  education  not  to  all  the  children  they  receive, 
but  to  about  one-half  of  them;  while  all  are  compelled  by 
law  to  attend  school,  and  the  course  prescribed  covers  a  period 
of  eight  years,  the  great  majority  of  pupils  attend  for  five  or 
six  years,  and  do  not  complete  the  course.  He  examines  the 
causes  of  retardation  and  elimination,  and  finds  that  although 
the  prevalence  of  these  two  processes  is  a  great  menace  to 
school  systems  in  many  parts  of  the  country,  their  most  im- 
portant causes  can  be  removed  when  intelligently  combatted. 

Owing  to  the  unsatisfactory  condition  of  the  statistics  avail- 
able for  this  study  many  of  the  calculations  are  based  on 
hypotheses  and  supposititious  cases,  and  while  some  of  the 
computations  have  been  questioned  in  regard  to  the  extent 
of  retardation  and  elimination  in  various  cities,  the  lessons 
they  give  are  indeed  very  instructive,  and  have  been  productive 


Eeviews  and  Notices  571 

of  a  movement  to  get  at  the  facts  regarding  the  double  ques- 
tion under  consideration. 

The  leading  causes  of  both  evils  which  are  found  to  be  much 
the  same  everywhere  are  worthy  of  study  by  all  engaged  in 
school  work,  and  although  the  present  investigation  has  been 
made  in  reference  to  public  schools,  it  can  be  recommended  as 
most  enlightening  for  the  interpretation  of  facts  in  regard  to 
our  Catholic  institutions.  The  money  cost  of  the  repeater  is 
estimated  by  Mr.  Ayres  for  fifty-five  cities  at  the  "astounding 
sum  of  thirteen  and  a  half  million  dollars.  If  the  school  sys- 
tems of  these  cities  are  fairly  representative  of  American  city 
school  systems,  then  we  are  spending  each  year  about  twenty- 
seven  millions  of  dollars  in  the  wasteful  process  of  repetition 
in  our  cities  alone."  We  have  to  wrestle  with  many  of  these 
same  problems  in  our  schools,  as,  for  instance,  that  of  promo- 
tions, and  of  over-age  children,  which  are  factors  working 
towards  retardation  and  elimination.  Their  treatment  here 
in  a  scientific  and  readable  manner,  enhanced  by  remedies  sug- 
gested to  overcome  the  evils,  will  aid  considerably  in  deter- 
mining methods  for  increasing  the  etficiency  of  our  elementary 
schools. 

Patrick  J.  McCormick. 

Seventh  Annual   Report  of   the  Superintendents  of  Catholic 
Schools  in  the  Archdiocese  of  New  York,  Year  of  1910. 

The  Reverend  Superintendents  of  Schools  in  the  Archdiocese 
of  New  York  published  in  April  their  report  covering  the  cal- 
endar year  of  1910.  Their  supervision  extends  over  the  schools 
in  the  boroughs  of  Manhattan,  Bronx,  and  Richmond  in  the 
City  of  New  York,  over  those  in  the  City  of  Yonkers,  and 
indirectly  over  the, remaining  schools  of  the  Archdiocese  which 
are  inspected  by  the  members  of  the  School  Board.  They 
report  a  constant  growth  of  schools  and  expansion  of  the 
diocesan  system.  Going  back  a  few  years  to  the  installation 
of  the  present  head  of  the  Archdiocese,  Most  Rev.  John  M. 
Farley,  D.  D.,  it  is  shown  that  the  number  of  schools  has 
almost  doubled — in  eight  years  they  have  increased  from  59 
to  105,  a  gain  of  46  schools.  There  are  now  156  schools  in  the 
Archdiocese,  representing  a  property  valuation  of  |13,186,000, 
whose  cost  of  maintenance  in  1910  was  estimated  at  |891,705. 


572  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

The  pupils  number  77,363,  the  teachers,  1,723,  of  whom  1,069 
are  religious,  476  lay,  and  178  are  classified  as  special.  The 
report  offers  in  general  a  most  optimistic  and  gratifying  ac- 
count of  the  present  condition  of  this  great  educational  system. 

A  considerable  portion  of  the  report  is  devoted  to  the  recom- 
mendations of  the  superintendents.  We  note  that  New  York 
needs  a  Central  Catholic  High  School.  The  present  number 
of  high  schools  is  inadequate  for  the  demands  of  secondary 
education.  Of  the  1,878  graduates  in  1910,  54  entered  Catholic 
and  508  public  high  schools,  and  one  of  the  Catholic  institu- 
tions was  obliged  to  receive  pupils  from  39  different  parishes. 
It  is  to  be  hoped  that  this  very  important  plea  of  the  super- 
intendents for  a  necessary  addition  to  their  school  system  will 
soon  be  productive  of  the  desired  results. 

The  question  of  the  Regents'  Examinations  is  a  very  perti- 
nent one  with  the  New  York  schools.  Over  six  thousand  chil- 
dren underwent  these  tests  last  year.  The  direction  of  the 
Superintendents  on  this  point  appeals  to  us  as  most  prudent 
and  timely.  After  discussing  the  character  of  the  preparation 
advisable  for  the  examinations,  they  say:  "While  deeply  sen- 
sitive of  the  standardizing  effect  of  the  Regents'  Examina- 
tions, we  are  opposed  to  making  them  or  any  other  test  the 
absolute  requisite  for  our  pupils'  graduation.  We  have  a 
strong,  concordant,  perfectly  organized  school  system,  and  we 
have,  or  should  have,  our  own  criteria  for  graduation."  There 
is  here  a  consciousness  of  the  danger  of  accepting  from  with- 
out the  standards  for  our  schools,  and  permitting  them  to  lose 
their  characteristics  as  Catholic  and  separate  institutions. 
On  the  questions  of  promotions,  retardation  and  elimination 
of  pupils,  the  teaching  of  religion  and  other  topics,  their 
counsel  is  admirable  and  ought  to  produce  fine  results  in  the 
system  under  their  care. 

Patrick  J.  McCormick. 

The  Chief  Ideas  of  the  Baltimore  Catechism,  by  Rev. 
John  E.  Mullett.  New  York,  Benziger  Bros.,  1911,  pp.  96. 
Pastors  and  catechists  will  welcome  the  appearance  of  this 
new  work,  which  combines  all  the  essential  elements  of  the 
Baltimore  Catechism,  with  some  timely  additions,  put  in  the 
form  of  simple  questions  and  answers.    This  catechism  has  all 


Reviews  and  Notices  573 

the  advantages  of  the  older  ones  hitherto  in  use,  and  possesses 
in  addition  a  simplicity  and  directness  of  presentation  which 
greatly  facilitates  the  labor  of  the  teacher  by  enabling  the 
child-mind  easily  to  grasp  and  retain  the  matter  proposed. 
The  success  of  the  method  of  catechetical  instruction  intro- 
duced by  Father  John  Furniss,  C.  S.  S.  R.,  has  long  been 
recognized  and  appreciated;  and  it  has  been  the  aim  of  the 
author  of  the  present  new  catechism  to  arrange  his  work  along 
the  same  lines.  This  little  book,  therefore,  is  highly  worthy 
of  recommendation. 

Chas.  J.  Callan. 

The  Story  of   the  Mountain;  begun   by   Mary   M.  -Maline 
and  continued  by  Rev.  Edw.  F.  X.  McSweeny,  S.  T.  D.; 
Vol.  I,  Emmitsburg,  Md.     The  Weekly  Chronicle,  1911 ;  pp. 
XV,  555. 
As  Cardinal  Gibbons  says  in  the  introduction,  "the  History 
of  Mt.  St.  Mary's  College  and  Seminary  should  be  welcomed 
with  pleasure  by  all  who  are  interested  in  the  educational  in- 
stitutions of  the  United  States.    It  will  make  a  special  appeal 
to  the  clergy,  since,  for  upwards  of  a  hundred  years,  this  ven- 
erable seat  of  piety  and  learning  has  been  at  once  the  nursery 
and  sanctuary  in  which  many  priestly  vocations  were  care- 
fully fostered,  and  even  more  carefully  developed.     Indeed,  she 
has  sent  out  so  many  and  so  distinguished  priests  and  pre- 
lates that  she  is  proudly  called  the  Mother  of  Bishops." 

The  publication  of  this  work  is  a  fitting  sequel  to  the  Cen- 
tenary of  Mt.  St.  Mary's  which  was  observed  in  1908,  and  to 
the  dedication  of  the  new  church  which  took  place  in  October, 
1910.  On  both  these  occasions,  the  Alumni  of  the  Mountain 
reviewed  its  century  of  achievement,  presenting  as  it  were 
loose  pages  from  its  history.  It  must  therefore  be  the  more 
gratifying  to  them  that  a  complete  and  connected  account 
is  now  available  and  that  it  has  been  prepared  by  competent 
hands. 

This  first  volume  covers  the  period  from  the  foundation  of 
the  College  in  1808  to  the  semi-centennial  in  1858.  The  chap- 
ters follow  year  by  year  the  development  of  the  work  through 
its  pioneer  stage  and  through  the  vicissitudes  of  trial  and 
success  that  marked  its  later  growth.    The  book  contains  page 


574  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

after  page  of  incident  and  reminiscence  that  give  life  and  color 
to  the  whole  narrative;  but  it  also  abounds  in  extracts  from 
the  College  records,  from  diaries,  letters  and  other  documents 
that  make  it  a  source  of  information  regarding  many  distin- 
guished graduates.  No  one  can  read  without  interest  an 
account  which  brings  forward  the  names  of  Dubois,  Brute, 
Hughes,  Purcell,  McCloskey,  Elder  and  Corrigan,  and  tells  of 
their  student  experience.  Nor  is  it  surprising  that  the  College 
should  have  come  safely  through  days  of  storm  and  stress 
when  one  considers  the  earnest  endeavors  of  its  presidents  and 
professors.  To  the  labors  of  these  men  not  only  Mt.  St.  Mary's 
and  its  alumni,  but  all  who  have  at  heart  the  furthering  of 
Catholic  education,  are  deeply  indebted.  How  well  they  did 
their  work  is  evident  from  the  careers  of  those  whom  they 
prepared  for  service  either  in  the  Church  or  in  the  various 
departments  of  public  and  professional  life.  Laymen  and 
ecclesiastics  educated  side  by  side  at  the  Mountain  have  writ- 
ten out  in  their  lives  and  achievements  the  best  tribute  that 
could  be  paid  to  their  Alma  Mater;  and  it  is  instructive  to 
study  in  these  pages  the  influences  by  which  they  were  trained 
both  in  the  methods  of  right  thinking  and  in  the  practice  of 
right  doing.  Mt.  St.  Mary's  has  had  its  reverses;  but  it  has 
not  wavered  in  respect  of  its  chief  purpose,  the  making  of 
men. 

To  the  many  who  read  this  volume  it  will  be  matter  for 
sincere  regret  that  Dr.  McSweeny  did  not  live  to  complete 
what  was  evidently  a  labor  of  love.  In  the  more  recent  de- 
velopment of  the  College  he  was  an  important  factor,  and  it 
is  to  be  hoped  that  this  History  may  be  brought  to  comple- 
tion with  the  same  spirit  of  loyalty  that  prompted  its  under- 
taking and  witii  the  fullness  of  knowledge  which  its  execution 
thus  far  reveals. 

Edward  A.   Pace. 

The  Eucharlstic  Liturgy  in  the  Roman   Rite.      Its    History 
and    Symbolism    adapted    from    the    Italian  of  Rev.  Gio- 
vanni Semeria,  by  Rev.  E.  S.  Berry.    New  York,  F.  Pustet 
&  Co.,  1911,  p.  287. 
The  work  before  us  is  an  adaptation  rather  than  a  transla- 
tion.   It  departs  in  many  respects  from  the  original,  but  these 


Eeviews  and  Notices  575 

departures  add  to  the  value  of  the  work  for  the  English-speak- 
ing reader  of  to-day.  The  clear  print  and  excellent  paper  add 
no  little  to  the  pleasure  which  every  Catholic  will  find  in  the 
persual  of  this  very  meritorious  work.  There  is  a  widespread 
and  growing  desire  on  the  part  of  Catholics  and  non-Catholics 
as  well  to  learn  the  history  of  the  liturgy  of  the  Catholic 
Church,  and  particularly  to  learn  the  meaning  of  the  cere- 
monies of  the  Mass.  Father  Berry  has  earned  the  lasting 
gratitude  of  the  English-speaking  world  by  placing  in  accessi- 
ble form  and  in  simple,  clear  language  the  history  and  the 
inward  meaning  of  the  Eucharistic  liturgy.  The  author  is  de- 
scribing a  very  general  condition  when  he  says:  "Ignorance 
of  the  historical  origin  and  the  literal  significance  of  the 
various  parts  of  the  Mass  results  in  a  lack  of  that  devotion 
and  edification  which  the  ceremonies  of  their  very  nature 
ought  to  produce.  This  ignorance  may  even  result  in  a  real 
injury  by  giving  room  for  a  feeling  which,  perhaps,  we  would 
not  confess  even  to  ourselves ;  a  hazy  impression  that,  after  all, 
these  ceremonies — the  peculiar  vestments,  the  movements  of 
the  priest,  the  prayers  now  chanted,  now  murmured — make 
up  but  a  beautiful  extravaganza.  But  let  us  grant  that  we  do 
not  experience  this  rather  irreverent  feeling,  because,  being 
profoundly  Catholic,  we  regard  with  reverence  whatever  the 
Church  does,  even  though  we  do  not  understand  it  all.  Yet,  if 
a  non-Catholic  were  to  question  us  concerning  the  Mass  and  its 
ceremonies,  would  we  be  able  to  answer  him?  Would  we  be 
able  to  explain  to  him  the  origin  and  meaning  of  what  he  saw  ? 
Both  propriety  and  Christian  duty  require  that  we  give  a  rea- 
son for  what  we  do  and  what  we  think  as  Christians."  The 
need  referred  to  here  has  long  been  felt  by  the  Catholic  laity 
who  constantly  seek  for  some  convenient  source  of  informa- 
tion on  these  topics.  The  Catholic  Encyclopedia  offered  the 
first  available  source  of  information,  and  if  it  rendered  no 
other  service  but  this  to  the  cause  of  Catholicism,  it  would  have 
justified  its  existence.  Naturally,  however,  the  matter  is 
treated  in  the  Encyclopedia  under  a  multitude  of  different 
headings  and  the  busy  Catholic  desires  some  more  convenient 
form.  The  Encyclopedia  is  still  beyond  the  reach  of  many,  and 
it  is  somewhat  too  cumbersome  and  elaborate  for  children. 
The  present  volume,  moreover,  is  peculiarly  suited  to  the  needs 


576  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

of  those  who  are  groping  their  way    towards    the    Catholic 
Church. 

Thomas  Edward  Shields. 

Industrial  Studies,  United  States,  Nellie  B.  Allen,  Boston, 
Ginn  &  Co.,  1910,  pp.  X-335. 
This  volume  gives  a  very  readable  account  of  the  industries 
carried  on  in  this  country.  The  titles  of  its  seventeen  chap- 
ters give  a  good  idea  of  the  practical  character  of  the  work: 
Introduction,  Position  and  Size,  Surface  and  Drainage,  Cli- 
mate and  Soil,  Waterways  and  Railroads,  Cotton,  Sugar,  Fruit, 
Wheat,  Corn,  Coal,  Iron,  Gold  and  Silver,  The  Cattle  and 
Beef  Industry,  The  Sheep  and  Wool  Industry,  Lumbering  and 
Allied  Industries,  Fisheries.  The  work  has  a  comprehensive 
alphabetical  index  and  one  hundred  and  twenty-five  excellent 
illustrations.  It  cannot  fail  to  render  valuable  service  in  the 
classroom.  It  will  prepare  the  children  for  a  more  extended 
study  of  economics  as  well  as  for  industrial  training  and  it  will 
clothe  the  study  of  geography  with  interest.  The  language  is 
simple,  the  style  clear,  and  the  facts  are  presented  in  a  way 
to  hold  the  attention  of  the  reader.. 

Thomas  Edward  Shields. 


The  Catholic 
Educational  Review 


SEPTEMBER,  1911 

THE  SEMINAEY  AND  THE  EDUCATIONAL 
PEOBLEM* 

At  first  glance,  this  title  seems  to  be  artificial.  It 
implies,  apparently,  an  attempt  to  bring  into  direct  rela- 
tion twovtbings  which  have  little  or  nothing  in  common. 
And  it  may  even  suggest  that  the  purpose  of  this  discus- 
sion is  to  discover,  perhaps  to  devise  the  function  which 
the  seminary  does  or  should  perform  in  the  general  work 
of  education. 

Such,  however,  is  not  the  scope  of  this  paper ;  and,  if  I 
may  speak  in  advance  for  those  who  will  present  different 
aspects  of  the  subject,  they  have  no  such  undertaking  in 
hand.  We  are  all,  I  think,  agreed  that  the  priest,  and 
therefore  his  training,  and  therefore  again  the  institution 
which  gives  that  training,  are  very  closely  related  to  the 
whole  educational  movement.  There  is  hardly  a  phase, 
positive  or  negative,  in  this  movement  that  does  not  in 
some  way  affect  religion  and  consequently  demand  the 
attention  of  those  with  whom  the  cause  of  religion  is  the 
supreme  consideration.  Nor  can  we,  on  the  other  hand, 
point  to  any  institution  which  in  the  nature  of  things 
and  their  normal  course,  has  richer  opportunities  for 
influencing  education  than  the  seminary  has.  Passing 
over  the  various  details  of  its  work,  let  this  essential  fea- 
ture be  emphasized :  the  seminary  realizes  on  the  highest 
plane  that  Christian  ideal  according  to  which  the  whole 


♦Read  in  the  Seminary  Department  of  the  Catholic  Educational  Asso- 
ciation, Chicago,  June  27,  1911. 


578  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

man  is  educated.  Its  one  purpose  is  to  fit  men  for  right 
thinking  and  righteous  action  in  order  that  they  in  turn 
may  impart  the  truth  of  salvation  to  others  and  walk  be- 
fore them  in  the  way  of  life.  In  a  word  the  seminary  is 
engaged  in  the  training  of  teachers  and  for  this  very  rea- 
son it  can  neither  of  its  own  accord  hold  aloof  from  educa- 
tion in  general  nor  be  legitimately  excluded  from  its  due 
share  in  giving  to  education  its  direction  and  character. 

It  is  true  that  the  function  of  the  seminary  is  a  special 
one;  it  admits  but  one  class  of  students  and  that  by  no 
means  the  largest ;  it  offers  a  course  of  study  that  includes 
a  well-defined  series  of  subjects ;  and  it  is  in  no  hurry  to 
modify  its  curriculum  or  to  depart  from  its  traditional 
methods.  Add  to  these  conservative  elements  the  neces- 
sity of  a  discipline  which  withdraws  the  student  in  large 
measure  from  every-day  contact  with  the  world,  and  it 
will  be  readily  seen  why  the  seminary  is  often  thought  of 
as  an  out-of-the-way  place  in  which  young  men,  by  some 
archaic  mysterious  process,  are  gradually  transformed 
into  preachers  and  priests.  But  it  is  no  less  intelligible 
that  the  secular  educator  should  regard  the  seminary,  if 
he  give  it  any  thought  at  all,  as  a  negligible  quantity  in 
his  reckoning.  He  is  so  accustomed  to  dealing  with  fac- 
tors that  are  flexible,  his  idea  of  progress  is  so  fully  bound 
up  with  the  idea  of  perpetual  motion,  and  his  concept  of 
life  lays  such  emphasis  on  change  in  adaptation  to  change, 
that  with  his  rather  vague  notion  of  the  seminary,  he  is 
apt  to  pass  it  over  as  an  institution  which  neither  cares 
to  advance  in  its  own  line  nor  takes  much  concern  of  the 
forward  movement  in  any  other  line. 

This  misunderstanding  arises  from  the  application  of  a 
right  principle  to  a  wrong  statement  of  fact  as  alleged. 
We  all  admit  that  the  chief  symptom  of  vitality  is  adjust- 
ment and  that  any  institution  that  aims  either  at  service 
or  at  influence  must  possess  and  manifest  the  power  of 
adjustment.    Now,  it  would  be  strange  indeed  if  the  semi- 


The  Seminary  and  Educational  Problem        579 

nary,  with  its  intensely  practical  purposes,  were  lacking 
in  this  vital  power  of  shaping  its  work  with  a  view  to 
actual  conditions.  That  in  point  of  fact  it  does  possess 
this  power,  I  now  take  for  granted.  And  I  further  insist 
that  the  seminary  has  in  itself  the  capacity  not  only  to 
meet  the  demands  that  may  reasonably  be  made  upon  it, 
but  also  to  affect  in  a  helpful  way  the  movement  by  which 
those  demands  are  created.  In  my  view,  then,  our  ques- 
tion reduces  to  this:  How  shall  the  seminary  use  its 
abilities  and  its  opportunities  to  the  best  advantage? 
Or  again,  and  more  directly,  how  shall  it  contribute  its 
share  to  the  solution  of  the  general  educational  problem? 

Here  again,  we  encounter  the  difficulty  of  vagueness, 
but  this  time  it  looms  up  from  the  opposite  quarter.  For 
when  we  call  on  the  general  problem  to  come  forward, 
we  find  ourselves  confronted  by  a  multitude  of  problems 
each  of  which  has  its  claims  and  more  than  one  advocate 
to  support  them.  There  are  questions  of  finance  and 
administration,  of  organization  and  control,  of  ideals  and 
principles  and  curricula  and  methods — to  say  nothing  of 
theories  and  experiments.  All  these  clamor  for  settle- 
ment and  no  doubt  a  good  deal  of  thought  will  be  spent 
in  the  settling.  But  back  of  them  all  and  giving  to  each 
its  relative  value  there  is  a  problem  that  is  more  than 
general ;  it  is  essential ;  and  that  is  precisely  how  to  edu- 
cate. Given  an  ideal,  however  exalted,  and  the  question 
is  how  to  attain  it.  Given  the  requisite  material  means 
and  the  best  possible  organization — ^we  have  still  to  ask 
to  what  uses  they  shall  be  applied.  And  when  any  method 
is  proposed  which  assures  speedy  or  brilliant  results,  we 
have  to  subject  it  to  the  one  final  test — does  it  really 
educate  ? 

Mark  well;  I  do  not  say  that  this  is  the  problem  of 
absolutely  highest  importance,  as  though  the  means 
should  rank  before  the  end  or  the  processes  count  for 
more  than  the  final  outcome.    Much  less  is  it  my  intention 


580  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

to  say  that  skill  in  teacliiiig  can  dispense  with  a  knowl- 
edge of  the  things  that  are  to  be  taught.  But  when  we 
survey  the  whole  range  of  actual  discussion  and  single 
out  its  really  pivotal  issues,  we  find  that  these  all  turn 
upon  the  central  inquiry — how  shall  we  educate  1 

If,  for  a  moment,  we  emphasize  the  narrower  meaning 
of  *  ^  education, "  it  may  then  appear  that  the  question  as 
here  formulated  is  quite  irrelevant  to  the  seminary.  If 
by  educating  we  are  to  understand  the  development  of 
intellectual  and  volitional  power  or  the  training  of  the 
mind  or  the  imparting  and  acquiring  of  culture,  we  are 
forthwith  reminded  that  we  should  turn  our  attention  to 
the  college  and  preparatory  school  rather  than  to  the 
seminary.  The  student  on  entering  the  seminary  is  sup- 
posed to  be  educated.  Presumably,  he  has  acquired, 
along  with  a  certain  amount  of  knowledge,  the  ability  to 
think,  the  power  to  express  his  thought  and  at  least  the 
essential  means,  such  as  the  languages,  to  pursue  studies 
of  a  higher  sort.  But  in  that  case,  what  interest  can  the 
seminary  have  in  the  educational  problem  or  the  educa- 
tive process? 

The  answer,  of  course,  is  plain,  and  some  of  those  who 
are  engaged  in  seminary  work  may  wish  perhaps  that  the 
interest  were  always  sustained  by  pleasant  or  satisfac- 
tory experience.  For  it  stands  to  reason  that  the  semi- 
nary cannot  undertake  to  do  over  again  the  work  which 
the  college  is  supposed  to  have  done.  Nor  does  it  seem 
desirable  to  establish  a  system  of  conditions  like  that 
which  is  so  largely  maintained  by  the  colleges  themselves 
in  admitting  students  to  undergraduate  courses.  This 
plan  might  be  feasible  where  college  and  seminary  are 
under  the  same  roof  or  are  parts  of  one  institution;  but 
even  then  there  are  obvious  inconveniences — drawbacks 
for  the  student  himself  and  unevenness  in  the  arrange- 
ment of  classes.  The  desirable  thing  is  that  the  student 
coming  up  from  college  should  be  really  equipped  not  only 


The  Seminaey  and  Educational  Peoblem        581 

with  a  liberal  education  in  tlie  ordinary  sense  of  the  term, 
but  also  with  that  special  sort  of  education  which  will 
enable  him  to  get  the  full  profit  of  semuiary  teaching  from 
the  first  day  he  enters. 

I  am  not  here  to  present  an  indictment  against  the 
college  nor  a  brief  in  the  seminary  *s  defence.  I  merely 
wish  to  show  that  whether  the  seminary's  complaints  are 
well  founded  or  not,  it  must  of  necessity  concern  itself 
with  a  very  large  section  of  the  educational  field  that  lies 
outside  its  walls.  As  a  matter  of  fact,  the  college  with 
equal  right  can  refer  us  back  to  the  preparatory  school 
and  lay  the  blame,  if  any  blame  there  be,  at  its  doors. 
This  may  not  be  the  wisest  or  fairest  course  to  pursue ; 
but  so  far  as  it  is  a  possible  course,  it  only  brings  out 
more  clearly  the  dependence  of  each  institution  upon  the 
others  and  the  need  of  more  thorough  articulation. 

But  here  let  me  point  out  the  phase  of  the  situation 
that  bears  most  directly  on  our  question.  The  moment 
the  seminary  enters  into  consultation  with  the  college  and 
preparatory  schools,  it  comes  inevitably  upon  the  prob- 
lem of  education,  and  it  is  hard  to  see  how  good  results 
can  be  got  from  such  consultation  unless  there  be  an 
understanding  on  all  sides  of  the  question  at  issue.  The 
college  and  the  school  are  constantly  engaged  in  the  dis- 
cussion of  those  questions  which  arise  in  the  field  of  gen- 
eral education,  and  in  the  endeavor  to  reach  their  solu- 
tion. Of  necessity  our  teachers  in  school  and  college  must 
take  note  of  the  educational  movement  that  is  going  on 
around  them,  of  new  theories  whether  well  founded  or 
not,  of  methods  that  may  be  useful  or  worthless,  of  ideas 
and  even  of  terms  that  quickly  become  current  in  the 
educator's  thought  and  language.  Now  the  result  of  this 
contact  with  the  general  movement  affects,  in  the  first 
instance,  our  schools  and  colleges  themselves ;  but  it  also 
helps  to  shape  the  education  of  those  who  are  to  enter  the 
seminary ;  and  it  therefore  affects,  in  a  very  serious  way, 
the  work  of  the  seminary  also. 


582  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Let  us  look  at  one  or  two  matters  in  detail.  A  question 
of  considerable  importance  just  now  is  the  relative  value 
of  the  cultural  and  vocational  elements  in  education. 
Shall  either  of  these  predominate?  Or,  how  shall  they 
be  adjusted  with  a  view  to  their  mutual  advantage?  How 
soon  shall  we  allow  the  pupil  to  take  up  studies  that  are 
intended  to  fit  him  for  a  particular  sort  of  work,  or  busi- 
ness, or  calling?  These  assuredly  are  points  of  discussion 
that  seem  to  lie  below  the  horizon  of  the  seminary  teacher. 
And  yet  we  all  know  that  he  is  deeply  concerned  both  with 
cultural  studies  and  with  vocational  studies  of  a  very  spe- 
cial kind.  Now  suppose  that  our  schools  in  some  consid- 
erable number  and  to  some  appreciable  degree  should  fall 
in  with  the  tendency  that  prefers  the  vocational  work  to 
the  cultural.  May  it  not  happen  that  some  who  would 
otherwise  go  to  the  seminary  will  be  drawn  away  into 
other  callings  ?  May  not  the  early  specialization  which  is 
now  styled  ^'vocational''  interfere  with  vocation  in  the 
stricter  ecclesiastical  sense?  But  if  we  grant  that  such  a 
result  is  possible,  the  significance  for  the  seminary  of 
such  problems  is  at  once  obvious. 

Take  a  further  illustration,  from  an  issue  that  is  by 
no  means  out  of  date,  but  is  simply  passing  into  a  new 
phase.  Whatever  be  the  merits  of  the  elective  system  or 
its  shortcomings,  it  certainly  commands  the  attention  of 
our  college  faculties  and  sets  before  them  a  question 
which  they  are  bound  to  answer  one  way  or  another. 
Assume  for  our  present  purpose,  that  the  college,  acting 
in  view  of  the  educational  situation  at  large  rather  than 
of  what  the  seminary  interests  may  require,  should  give 
a  wider  range  to  electivism  and  that  the  student  in  conse- 
quence should  elect  his  courses,  as  so  often  happens,  in 
accordance  with  his  present  tastes  or  inclinations  and 
with  little  thought  as  to  what  may  best  equip  him  for 
subsequent  work.  Has  the  seminary  any  concern  in  this 
selection;  and  if  so,  can  it  waive  aside  as  of  little  or  no 


The  Seminaby  and  Educational  Problem        583 

importance  the  practice  of  electi^dsm  and  the  principles 
on  which  it  is  based? 

Even  where  some  value  is  attached  to  cultural  studies 
and  where  electivism  is  kept  within  reasonable  bounds, 
one  frequently  encounters  the  tendency  to  omit  one  or 
both  of  the  classic  languages  from  the  list  of  prescribed 
subjects  and  to  replace  them  with  one  or  several  of  the 
modem  languages.  By  this  arrangement,  a  larger  place 
in  the  curriculum  is  secured  for  the  natural  sciences  and 
the  length  of  the  undergraduate  course  is  reduced  to  a 
minimum  or  at  least  to  the  limits  that  professional  studies 
demand.  It  would  be  superfluous,  of  course,  to  insist  that 
the  candidate  for  the  seminary  must  have  both  Latin  and 
Greek.  But  may  it  not  be  profitable  to  consider  the  advisa- 
bility of  allowing  more  time  for  French  and  German  and 
of  providing  more  thorough  instruction,  say  in  physics, 
chemistry  and  biology?  Is  there  not  some  economy  of 
time  or  condensation  of  class-work  in  the  college,  or 
perhaps  some  reapportioning  of  courses  as  between  col- 
lege and  seminary,  that  will  provide  a  better  preparation 
for  philosophy  and  theology?  The  question  occurs  here, 
not  to  be  discussed  on  its  own  merits,  but  merely  to 
furnish  one  more  illustration  of  the  bearing  that  educa- 
tion in  general  has  and  must  have  on  things  that  are 
essential  to  the  seminary.  And  these  several  illustrations 
may  suffice  to  bring  out  the  meaning  of  the  statement 
with  which  I  would  answer  the  first  part  of  our  question ; 
the  seminary  naturally  and  inevitably  is  concerned  with 
general  educational  problems  because  the  solution  of 
these,  by  school  and  college,  determines,  in  a  very  signifi- 
cant way,  the  fitness  of  the  student  to  undertake  the  work 
of  the  seminary  and  to  accomplish  that  work  in  a  man- 
ner that  will  do  justice  to  the  seminary  as  well  as  to  his 
own  high  vocation.  In  other  words,  the  seminary  cannot 
shirk  the  general  problems  of  education  without  hamper- 
ing or  even  impairing  its  own  efficiency,  either  by  allow- 


584  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

ing  students  who  are  not  properly  qualified  to  follow  its 
courses,  or  by  modifying  its  standards  and  methods  to 
meet  the  needs  of  such  students.  Whichever  alternative 
it  may  choose,  it  runs  the  risk  of  sending  out  men  whose 
education  has  not  fitted  them  on  the  intellectual  side  for 
their  priestly  functions. 

n 

When  we  come  to  consider  these  functions  somewhat 
more  in  detail,  and  try  to  define  the  attitude  that  the  semi- 
nary should  take,  the  general  educational  problem 
appears  in  a  new  and  more  searching  light.  The  student, 
we  have  said,  carries  with  him  into  the  seminary  certain 
qualifications  that  are  determined  by  the  general  educa- 
tional movement.  But  now  it  must  further  be  noted  that 
the  priest  on  leaving  the  seminary  is  brought  into  contact 
with  that  movement  at  various  points.  So  far  as  he  may 
attempt  to  escape  such  contact,  he  impairs  his  usefulness 
to  the  Church;  and  so  far  as  he  may  be  expected  to  do 
his  full  duty  in  this  respect  as  in  all  others,  he  should 
receive  in  the  seminary  the  necessary  preparation.  It  is, 
therefore,  a  matter  both  of  prudence  and  of  justice  on 
the  part  of  the  seminary  teacher  to  survey  the  field  which 
lies  ahead  of  the  student  and  to  equip  him  betimes  with 
the  knowledge  and  skill  which  he  will  eventually  need. 

Among  the  effects  produced  by  modem  education  is  a 
certain  way  of  looking  at  things,  perceiving  their  rela- 
tions, connecting  new  ideas  with  old,  stimulating  and 
sustaining  interest,  translating  thought  into  action  and 
consolidating  action  into  habit.  It  is,  if  you  please,  the 
particular  way  of  working  or  functioning  which  charac- 
terizes the  mind's  development  and  makes  other  modes 
of  thinking  either  difficult  or  impossible.  It  is  not  so 
much  a  content  that  has  been  acquired  as  a  form  into 
which  all  later  acquisition  is  cast;  not  primarily  a  set- 
tled and  definite  store  of  information  but  rather  a  power 


The  Seminary  and  Educational  Problem        585 

to  grasp  and  put  to  use  such  knowledge  as  later  expe- 
rience may  offer. 

This  is  true  of  the  graduates  of  non-Catholic  schools 
and  colleges ;  and  I  do  not  undertake  to  say  whether  the 
result  is  one  to  be  desired  or  not.  It  is  also  true  of  those 
who  are  educated  in  Catholic  institutions ;  and  it  is  need- 
less to  ask  just  here  whether  the  result  might  or  might 
not  be  more  satisfactory.  The  essential  thing  to  note  is 
this:  the  general  trend  of  education  determines,  in  the 
main,  the  habitual  methods  of  thought  in  the  average 
man  and  woman,  that  is  to  say,  in  the  very  people  to 
whom  the  priest  brings  his  ministration.  He  is  called  to 
teach  them  divine  truths,  not  as  these  are  expounded  in 
manuals  of  theology,  but  in  forms  and  terms,  in  explana- 
tions and  arguments,  that  are  suited  to  the  capacity  of 
his  hearers.  His  aim  should  not  be  to  make  them  feel  that 
the  truth  he  imparts  is  something  foreign  to  their  ordi- 
nary interests,  and  he  surely  will  not  attempt  to  make 
them  give  up  their  modes  of  thought  in  order  to  follow  the 
course  of  his  thinking.  His  only  hope  of  success  lies  in 
following  the  example  of  Christ  Himself  by  adapting  his 
thought  and  his  discourse  to  the  needs  of  the  people.  But 
if  they  have  been  trained  to  one  way  of  thinking  and  he 
to  another,  his  task  is  evidently  a  hard  one.  He  will  not 
at  any  rate  accomplish  the  chief  purpose  of  his  teaching 
which  should  be  to  make  religious  thought,  the  beliefs 
of  our  Faith  and  the  divine  commands  so  thoroughly  a 
part  of  the  ordinary  thought  and  volition  of  his  hearers 
that  no  contrary  motive  or  persuasion  can  determine 
their  conduct. 

We  may,  of  course,  suppose  that  his  earlier  training 
was  the  same  as  that  of  the  people  whom  he  has  to  teach ; 
and  so  far  as  this  is  the  case,  he  will  be  fairly  equipped 
to  discourse  on  matters  that  come  within  the  range  of  that 
earlier  education.  As  a  matter  of  fact,  it  not  rarely  hap- 
pens that  a  priest  is  more  lucid  and  forceful — ^more 


586  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

teacher-like  in  his  treatment  of  ordinary  subjects  than 
in  what  he  says  from  the  pulpit.  But  this  simply  goes  to 
show  that  differences  in  modes  of  thinking  exist  not  only 
between  him  and  his  hearers  but  also  in  his  own  mind. 
He  has  not  acquired  the  ability  to  put  his  theology  into 
those  forms  of  thought  and  expression  which,  as  we  now 
suppose,  were  part  of  his  own  development  and  which 
are  the  only  and  the  permanent  result  of  the  education 
his  people  received.  That  education  is,  at  any  period,  con- 
trolled by  the  general  movement  which  we  are  consider- 
ing; and  this  movement,  in  turn,  cannot  fail  to  interest 
those  whose  duty  it  is  to  prepare  young  men  for  the 
ministry  of  the  word. 

The  priest,  however,  has  duties  outside  the  pulpit  which 
bring  him  into  more  direct  contact  with  educational  work. 
While  he  may  not  be  called  on  to  teach  in  school  or  col- 
lege, he  is  none  the  less  in  a  position  to  help  the  teachers, 
and  it  often  becomes  his  duty  to  help  them.  As  to  those 
who  are  charged  with  the  office  and  responsibility  of 
superintendence,  a  mere  reference  is  sufficient.  For  it 
seems  plain  that  what  they  need  is  the  most  thorough 
training  that  can  be  given  in  all  that  pertains  to  educa- 
tion. Their  preparation  should  be  of  the  strictly  technical 
and  professional  sort  that  means  a  separate  course  of 
study  with  every  possible  facility.  They  ought  to  be  spe- 
cialists in  the  science  and  art  of  education,  its  literature 
and  the  discussions  to  which  it  gives  rise.  And  it  would 
probably  be  overshooting  the  mark  if  we  should  expect 
them  to  get  this  preparation  along  with  the  usual  pre- 
scribed studies  of  the  seminary  course. 

But  it  is  equally  clear  that  the  superintendent's  task  is 
lightened  when  his  colleagues  are  able  to  lend  him  their 
support  and  to  co-operate  intelligently  with  him  in  set- 
tling the  various  and  complex  problems  which  the  school 
presents.  On  the  other  hand,  nothing  contributes  more  to 
the  efficiency  of  the  school  than  the  confidence  which  the 


The  Seminaky  and  Educational  Problem        587 

teacher  feels  in  a  priest  whose  knowledge  of  educational 
matters  enables  him  to  realize  the  difficulties  of  the  situa- 
tion, to  give  wholesome  and  practical  advice,  to  take  the 
initiative  in  correcting  or  improving  the  methods  of  work, 
and,  above  all,  in  securing  competent  teachers.  It  is 
surely  better  to  bring  about  and  maintain  this  mutual 
understanding  and  co-operation  than  to  have  our  Catholic 
teachers  dependent  on  institutions  and  advisors  whose 
principles  are  opposed  to  the  very  things  for  which  our 
schools  exist.  And  it  is  certainly  a  curious  situation  that 
confronts  us  when  the  priest  from  the  pulpit  inveighs 
against  a  philosophy  or  theory  because  he  knows  it  to  be 
false,  while  in  the  adjoining  parochial  school  the  same 
theory  in  its  practical  consequences  is  daily  applied 
because  the  teachers  are  not  aware  of  its  influence  or  even 
perhaps  of  its  existence  in  the  philosophical  form  which 
the  preacher  condemns.  No  Catholic  teacher  would  place 
in  the  children's  hands  a  book  that  explicitly  taught 
agnosticism  or  materialism,  that  gave  a  false  historical 
statement  regarding  the  Church  or  tended  in  the  least  to 
weaken  the  moral  sense.  But  these  errors  are  often  dis- 
guised ;  the  principles  are  kept  in  the  background,  and  the 
injurious  effect  is  wrought  under  the  harmless  name  of 
method  or  a  scarcely  noticeable  perversion  of  fact.  So  it 
may  come  to  pass  that  the  school,  without  knowing  it,  is 
undoing  implicitly  the  very  work  which  the  seminary 
endeavors  to  accomplish  in  its  philosophical  and  theologi- 
cal teaching.  And  where  this  final  result  does  not  actually 
ensue,  it  is  averted  by  the  accident  of  a  fortunate  incon- 
sistency rather  than  by  a  clear  perception  and  a  deliberate 
avoidance  of  danger.  In  any  case,  it  seems  unnecessary 
to  inquire  whether  the  seminary  has  anything  at  stake. 
The  duties  of  the  priest  in  regard  to  the  Catholic  school 
are  so  absorbing  that  it  may  appear  unfair  to  ask  of  him 
any  further  service  in  the  line  of  education.  And  yet 
there  is  a  wider  field  open,  or  at  least  opening,  to  his 


588  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

zeal  and  ability.  It  may  not  offer  him  tlie  encouragement 
that  springs  from  community  of  ideals  and  principles; 
and  frequently  enough  he  thinks  of  it  only  as  a  source 
of  opposition  and  a  possible  ground  of  conflict.  Still  it  is 
just  there — in  that  larger  field  of  public  discussion — that 
he  sometimes  finds  the  best  opportunity  of  using  his 
knowledge  in  the  right  cause.  To  state  it  at  once  and 
plainly:  I  believe  that  a  great  deal  can  be  done  by  the 
priest  towards  giving  the  people  of  this  country  at  large 
a  fairer  and  fuller  understanding  of  Catholic  education, 
of  its  aims  and  ideals  and  characteristic  methods.  The 
occasion,  I  think,  is  now  more  frequently  offered  the 
priest  as  the  exponent  of  our  principles,  to  share  in  the 
discussion  of  matters  which  all  acknowledge  to  be  of 
grave  import  for  the  welfare  of  the  nation.  On  the  lecture 
platform,  in  gatherings  of  educators,  in  the  columns  of 
the  press  or  the  pages  of  technical  reviews,  there  is  a 
better  opportunity  than  ever  before  to  present  our  claim 
and  correct  wrong  impressions.  We  have  furthermore 
not  only  the  right  but  the  duty  as  well  to  point  out  the 
defects  from  which  our  public  school  system  suffers,  to 
suggest  the  remedies  and  to  see  that  they  are  applied. 
Now  that  these  defects  are  so  generally  recognized,  what 
we  chiefly  need  is  constructive  criticism  that  will  save  us 
from  adopting  the  mistaken  or  even  cast-off  policy  of  the 
public  schools,  and  that  may  possibly  bring  those  schools 
somewhat  nearer  to  our  own  ideals  of  complete  educa- 
tion. 

But  no  such  advantage  is  to  be  reaped  unless  our  repre- 
sentatives are  familiar  with  the  problems  in  debate,  and 
with  the  proposed  solutions.  A  reiteration  of  our  prin- 
ciples in  general  terms  will  avail  but  little  if  they  are  not 
brought  to  bear  on  the  actual  situations.  And  it  is  the 
easiest  thing  in  the  world  to  weaken  one's  own  position 
by  showing  an  imperfect  acquaintance  with  this  or  that 
phase  of  the  general  movement. 


The  Seminaby  and  Educational  Problem        589 

Briefly,  then,  the  priest,  willingly  or  reluctantly,  must 
take  hold  of  the  general  educational  problem.  In  the 
pulpit,  in  the  school-room,  in  the  arena  of  discussion,  it 
compels  his  attention.  It  appeals  to  him  as  to  one  whose 
mission  is  that  of  a  teacher.  It  gives  him,  both  in  its 
difficulties  and  in  its  possibilities,  the  widest  possible 
scope  for  the  employment  of  the  powers  which  the  semi- 
nary has  trained  and  the  application  of  the  knowledge 
which  the  seminary  has  imparted. 

Ill 

In  respect  of  the  educational  problem,  the  seminary 
looks  on  one  side  toward  the  school  and  the  college,  on  the 
other,  towards  the  work  of  the  priest  in  the  ministry.  In 
the  former  relation  much  remains  to  be  done  by  way  of 
adjustment  and  always  with  a  view  to  securing  unity  in 
the  student's  career,  stricter  economy  of  time  and  more 
thorough  preparation  for  seminary  studies.  Our  sub- 
ject, however,  lays  the  emphasis  on  the  other  relation  in 
so  far  as  the  seminary  is  to  provide  for  the  future  needs 
of  its  students.  What  concrete  form  shall  this  pro- 
vision take,  and  by  what  means  shall  the  student  be  taught 
how  to  educate! 

In  answer,  I  should  like  to  offer  a  few  suggestions  if 
only  to  have  them  considered  by  the  other  contributors 
to  this  discussion  and  to  elicit  the  views  of  this  conference. 

1.  The  student,  it  seems  to  me,  can  and  should  be  made 
to  realize  that  there  is  such  a  thing  as  an  educational 
problem  and  that  it  is  part  of  his  duty  to  help  in  solving  it. 
The  seminarian,  as  we  know,  tends  to  lay  much  stress  on 
some  things  and  less  on  others :  within  the  range  of  his 
personal  interests,  he  establishes  a  kind  of  elective  system 
on  his  own  account.  Partly  from  inclination  and  partly 
from  the  estimate  he  forms  of  priestly  activity,  he  regards 
some  studies  as  indispensable  because  they  are  required 
for  such  functions  as  preaching  and  administering  the 


590  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

sacraments;  and  he  is  very  apt  to  pass  over  or  around 
other  subjects  which  promise  no  such  obvious  applica- 
tions. It  is,  therefore,  important  to  impress  upon  him  the 
fact  that  the  welfare  of  religion  and  his  own  success  are 
to  a  great  extent  dependent  on  the  Catholic  school,  and 
that  in  no  small  measure  the  prosperity  of  the  school  is 
determined  by  the  way  it  meets  the  educational  problem. 
In  particular,  he  should  be  warned  against  the  mistake 
of  avoiding  the  educational  field  because  it  abounds  in 
follies  and  fads.  Of  these  there  is  surely  no  lack;  but 
how  is  he  to  recognize  them  and  to  keep  them  apart  from 
the  elements  of  real  progress  if  he  have  no  concept  of 
what  education  is  or  should  be? 

2.  Besides  arousing  his  interest,  the  seminary  might 
well  point  out  to  the  student  the  educational  significance 
of  the  subjects  included  in  the  usual  course.  There  are 
innumerable  questions  in  philosophy  which  have  not  only 
a  theoretical  import,  but  also  a  practical  meaning,  and 
this  meaning  is  nowhere  so  practical  as  in  the  results  for 
education.  Psychology,  ethics  and  the  history  of  philos- 
ophy offer  at  nearly  every  chapter  an  opportunity  to  show 
what  the  consequences  are  for  life  where  the  conclusions 
of  Catholic  philosophy  are  accepted  and  what  different 
consequences  must  follow  if  other  philosophies  are 
allowed  to  prevail.  In  fact,  an  excellent  means  of  giving 
the  student  a  grasp  of  principles  is  to  let  him  see  how  they 
are  applied  in  education,  and  conversely,  the  best  way  to 
appreciate  any  process  or  method  of  education  is  to  trace 
it  back  to  the  philosophic  principles  on  which  it  is  based. 
The  same  is  true,  in  due  proportion,  of  other  subjects^as 
for  instance  of  Church  history  and  theology;  but  it 
applies  in  a  special  way  to  the  study  of  Scripture,  notably 
of  the  New  Testament  where  the  world  ^s  greatest  Teacher 
gives  us  so  many  examples.  It  would  seem  to  be  quite 
in  keeping  with  the  direct  purpose  of  this  study  if  atten- 
tion were  called  to  our  Lord's  method  and  to  the  profound 


The  Seminary  and  Educational  Problem        591 

psychological  laws  which  it  involves  and  which,  as  we 
are  coming  to  realize,  are  the  basis  of  all  education. 

3.  These  laws  the  student  has  occasion  to  apply  when- 
ever the  seminary  arranges  to  have  him  take  part  in  the 
work  of  the  Sunday  school  or  to  get  by  any  other  means 
some  practice  in  teaching  religion.  Once  he  has  mas- 
tered the  principles  which  this  teaching  implies,  and  has 
learned  from  experience  how  to  work  them  out  in  the 
class-room,  he  will  be  in  a  fair  way  to  understand  their 
application  to  the  ordinary  school  subjects.  This,  as  you 
see,  takes  for  granted  that  the  same  methods — ^not  special 
devices  but  essentials  of  method — must  guide  all  our 
teaching  whether  of  the  so-called  secular  branches  or  of 
Christian  doctrine.  And  in  fact  I  cannot  conceive  any 
better  answer  to  one  difficulty  that  is  urged  against  the 
teaching  of  religion  in  the  public  schools,  to-wit:  that  its 
method  is  radically  different  from  that  which  is  applied  to 
other  subjects.  We  obviate  the  difficulty  not  by  forcing 
on  one  subject  a  method  that  belongs  to  another,  but  by 
adopting  a  method  that  is  applicable  to  all,  because  all 
truth,  so  far  as  it  is  learned,  must  become  the  possession 
of  one  and  the  same  human  mind,  and  must  enable  that 
mind  to  see  even  in  its  fragmentary  knowledge  the  reflec- 
tion of  the  infinite  truth. 

4.  As  a  final  suggestion,  I  would  add,  though  with  no 
intention  of  increasing  the  seminary's  burden — the  possi- 
bility of  prescribing  a  course  of  reading  in  the  science  of 
education.  It  should  not  attempt  to  cover  the  whole 
ground  and  much  less  to  go  into  those  minute  questions 
which  presuppose  an  acquaintance  with  the  results  of 
technical  investigation.  It  should  rather  seek  to  open  up 
the  subject  in  its  chief  outlines,  to  exhibit  its  relations 
with  other  departments  of  knowledge  and  to  show  how  the 
growth  of  these  has  affected  the  development  of  educa- 
tional theory  and  practice.  For  these  several  purposes, 
the  History  of  Education  is  admirably  adapted,  first 


592  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

because  of  its  close  connection  with  philosophy  and 
Church  history,  and  then  because  it  serves  as  a  founda- 
tion for  specialized  studies  which  the  student  may  desire 
to  take  up  after  completing  the  seminary  course. 

So  much  at  any  rate  lies  well  within  the  scope  of  the 
seminary's  work  as  it  is  now  conducted.  That  work  would 
undergo  no  sudden  or  radical  change ;  but  by  such  slight 
modifications  it  would  easily  and  naturally  adjust  itself  to 
the  conditions  in  the  educational  field  and  would  event- 
ually make  its  influence  felt  in  the  solution  of  the  prob- 
lems which  confront  all  our  institutions. 

Edwakd  a.  Pace. 


THE  SUMMER  SCIIOOL 

Under  a  separate  heading,  the  present  number  of  the 
Review  contains  a  report  by  the  Secretary  of  the  Summer 
School  which  was  conducted  at  the  University  during  the 
month  of  July.  The  items  of  this  report  deserve  careful 
consideration  as  exhibiting  in  detail  a  new  phase  of  the 
University  ^s  efforts  in  behalf  of  Catholic  education.  They 
show  that  for  the  Faculties  of  Philosophy,  Letters  and 
Science,  the  Summer  School  was  practically  a  summer 
term  of  regular  university  teaching,  and  that  during  this 
term  the  entire  equipment  of  libraries  and  laboratories 
was  brought  into  requisition.  Of  the  44  departments  at 
present  in  operation,  18  contributed  to  the  work,  engaging 
the  services  of  18  instructors  and  of  6  lecturers  who  are 
not  members  of  the  University  staff.  As  most  of  the 
instructors  gave  more  than  one  course,  the  total  number  of 
courses  amounted  to  36,  given  in  825  lectures,  with  labora- 
tory work  in  Physics,  Chemistry  and  Biology,  50  hours 
each. 

These  figures  are  the  more  significant  because  the 
School  was  not  open  to  all  classes  of  students,  but  only  to 
the  teaching  Sisterhoods  and  to  other  women,  not  relig- 
ious, who  are  teachers  in  public  or  private  schools.  As 
shown  in  the  report,  the  enrollment  was  a  representative 
one  both  as  regards  the  number  of  religious  communities 
whose  members  were  in  attendance  and  in  respect  of  the 
various  sections  of  the  United  States  and  Canada  from 
which  the  students  came.  With  Quebec  and  San  Antonio, 
Portland,  Oregon,  and  Key  West  as  extreme  points,  with 
31  states  of  the  Union  represented,  the  school  took  on  a 
national  and  even  an  international  character.  And  as  the 
teachers  are  engaged  in  parochial  schools,  academies  and 


594  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

colleges,  the  Summer  School  was  also  representative,  in 
no  small  degree,  of  our  Catholic  educational  system. 

This  statement  of  fact  shows  plainly  that  the  Summer 
School  was  a  move  in  the  right  direction  and  that,  within 
the  limits  assigned  to  this  first  session,  it  was  a  success. 
But  while  the  results  as  exhibited  by  the  statistics  are 
gratifying,  their  full  significance  can  be  appreciated  only 
in  view  of  certain  larger  considerations  some  of  which 
determined  the  undertaking  while  others  have  been  sug- 
gested in  the  course  of  its  execution. 

It  has  often  been  said,  and  with  good  reason,  that  the 
University  ought  to  bring  its  work  within  reach  of  our 
Catholic  people,  and  that  while  it  must  be  primarily  con- 
cerned with  the  students  who  actually  follow  its  courses, 
it  could  and  should  render  service,  at  least  indirectly,  to 
every  Catholic  educational  institution  in  our  land.  Such 
a  widening  of  its  sphere,  it  was  pointed  out,  would  involve 
neither  a  lowering  of  its  standards  nor  a  hampering  of  the 
distinctive  university  work  for  which  it  was  established. 
On  the  contrary,  it  is  an  essential  part  of  that  work  to  deal 
with  educational  problems,  to  establish  the  principles  and 
to  discuss  the  methods  which  find  their  application  in  the 
school.  Whether  we  speak  of  the  *^art  of  education'*  or 
of  the  *^  science  of  education, '*  the  plain  fact  of  the  matter 
is  that  the  training  of  teachers  is  one  of  the  most  impor- 
tant functions  that  any  university  can  perform.  It  is  also 
the  most  practical  far-reaching  benefit  that  can  be  con- 
ferred on  the  thousands  of  our  people  who  are  anxious  to 
secure  for  their  children  the  best  possible  education. 
^*Give  us  good  schools"  means  in  reality  **give  us  good 
teachers, ' '  and  if  the  university  cannot  undertake  to  pro- 
vide elementary  instruction,  it  can  and  must  equip  the 
teacher  through  whom  it  will  help  and  influence  the  child. 

It  is  to  the  parochial  school  in  the  first  instance  that 
Catholic  parents  turn  when  the  time  has  come  to  begin 
the  systematic  education  of  their  children.  This  school  is 


The  Summeb  School  595 

the  immediate  continuation  of  the  training  which  is  given 
in  the  home,  and  it  takes  over  in  a  very  important  sense 
the  responsibilities  which  primarily  rest  upon  the  father 
and  mother.  The  more  zealous  the  parents  are  in  impart- 
ing the  earliest  lessons,  the  more  deeply  will  they  be  con- 
cerned about  the  formal  lessons  that  follow,  and  that  aim 
not  only  at  developing  the  child's  intelligence  but  also  at 
building  up  its  character.  Many  of  our  Catholic  children 
indeed  have  no  opportunity  of  pursuing  studies  beyond 
the  grades ;  the  parochial  school  must  give  them  whatever 
they  are  to  get  in  the  way  of  education.  Hence  the  greater 
need  of  efficiency  on  the  part  of  the  elementary  teacher 
and  the  greater  importance  of  the  preparation  which  she 
receives.  While  she  has  a  decided  advantage  so  far  as 
religion  and  morality  are  concerned,  she  must  be  no  less 
thoroughly  equipped  on  the  intellectual  side,  so  that  the 
parochial  school  may  be  in  all  respects  the  best  and,  more- 
over, be  recognized  as  such  by  Catholic  parents.  Our 
people,  in  other  words,  must  feel  that  in  doing  their  duty 
by  sending  their  children  to  the  Catholic  school  they  are 
also  securing  for  them  advantages  that  no  other  school 
can  offer.  And  since  this  confidence  depends  very  largely 
on  knowing  that  the  teachers  have  had  the  best  training 
available,  it  can  only  be  strengthened  by  the  fact  that  the 
University  is  taking  a  practical  interest  in  the  teachers* 
preparation  and  giving  them  such  facilities  as  the  Sum- 
mer School  offers.  Assistance  of  this  kind  is  the  sincerest 
recognition  of  the  sacrifices  made  by  our  people  in  sup- 
port of  the  Catholic  school;  it  is  also  one  of  the  most 
effectual  means  of  proving  that  the  sacrifice  is  really 
worth  while. 

Quite  naturally,  the  success  of  the  parochial  school  is 
a  matter  of  deep  concern  to  the  diocesan  authorities,  the 
superintendent,  and  especially  the  pastor.  As  the  organi- 
zation and  maintenance  of  the  school  devolves  upon  them, 
it  is  their  right  as  well  as  their  duty  to  make  sure  that 


596  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

the  teachers  are  efficient.  They,  too,  will  be  the  first  to 
recognize  that  efficiency  is  not  always  the  result  of  natural 
aptitude  but  that  it  presupposes  careful  preparation. 
Once  this  is  secured,  the  various  problems  connected  with 
school  work  find  a  ready  solution ;  and,  furthermore,  cer- 
tain duties  which  the  priest  has  so  deeply  at  heart,  e.  g., 
regarding  the  preparation  of  children  for  the  reception  of 
the  sacraments  and  their  proper  training  in  the  practices 
of  religion — are  considerably  lightened.  Hence,  while 
every  priest  in  the  country  has  a  primary  interest  in  the 
theological  and  philsophical  courses  of  the  University,  the 
work  of  the  Summer  School  has  for  our  clergy  a  practical 
significance  as  affecting  one  of  the  essential  functions  of 
parochial  ministration.  In  proportion  as  this  fact  is  real- 
ized, it  will  become  more  evident  that  the  aim  of  the  Uni- 
versity is  not  simply  to  encourage  scholarly  research  and 
production  but  also  to  co-operate  with  pastor  and  people 
in  laying  the  foundations  of  a  thoroughly  Catholic  educa- 
tion. 

This  indeed  is  the  indispensable  means  of  preparing  the 
pupil  for  advanced  study  in  college  or  university.  Our 
higher  institutions  of  learning  have  often  to  deplore  the 
fact  that  candidates  for  admission  are  not  up  to  the  mark, 
and  that  it  is  only  through  leniency  that  they  are  allowed 
to  enter — usually  with  a  heavy  bill  of  conditions  to  their 
account.  Then  comes  a  whole  series  of  questions  and  dis- 
cussions regarding  the  adjustment  of  school  and  college, 
the  modification  of  entrance  requirements,  the  balancing 
of  curricula,  and  so  forth.  Now  it  is  needless  to  say  that 
these  are  problems  of  vital  importance  and  that  they 
ought  to  be  discussed  as  fully  as  possible.  But  the  main 
thing  after  all  is  to  have  the  candidate  for  college  rightly 
prepared,  and  this  means  that  we  must  begin  at  the  begin- 
ning. Not  much  is  to  be  gained  by  insisting  that  the 
elementary  school  must  bring  its  pupils  to  this  level  or 
that,  unless  the  teachers  be  given  an  insight  into  the 


The  Summer  School  597 

higher  education  and  a  training  that  will  enable  them, 
without  pressure  or  persuasion,  to  maintain  the  desired 
standard.  They  are  certainly  anxious  to  fit  their  pupils, 
at  least  such  as  may  have  the  opportunity,  for  taking 
courses  in  high  school  and  college,  and  they  will  do  this 
preparatory  work  quite  thoroughly  once  they  get,  by  per- 
sonal experience,  a  fair  knowledge  of  the  subjects  and 
the  methods  which  those  courses  include,  and  still  more 
when  they  understand  the  principles  which  underlie  edu- 
cation as  a  whole  and  which  should  determine  the  rela- 
tions between  primary,  secondary  and  advanced  institu- 
tions. It  may  then  be  said  without  exaggeration  that  the 
work  of  the  Summer  School  is  in  a  measure  helpful  to  our 
colleges,  and  that  it  contributes  somewhat  to  the  solution 
of  a  rather  difficult  problem. 

The  need  of  such  coordination  has  been  emphasized  on 
many  occasions  during  the  past  decade,  and  it  almost 
invariably  comes  to  view  at  the  meetings  of  the  Catholic 
Educational  Association.  A  careful  analysis  of  the  papers 
read  at  these  gatherings  and  of  the  discussions  which  fol- 
lowed, shows  plainly  enough  that  the  central  problem  is 
that  of  training  the  teacher.  Many  valuable  suggestions 
on  this  point  are  scattered  throughout  the  annual  reports 
of  the  Association,  and  they  have  doubtless  proved  helpful. 
At  the  same  time,  it  seemed  clear  that  their  real  value 
could  be  brought  out  only  by  a  more  complete  and  sys- 
tematic treatment  and  even  by  a  critical  appreciation  in 
regular  courses  of  study.  The  interest  which  our  teaching 
communities  have  shown  in  the  crowded  program  of  the 
Association,  justified  a  more  deliberate  handling  of  each 
subject,  and  though  the  Summer  School,  limited  to  a  few 
weeks,  could  not  pretend  to  cover  the  entire  ground  of  any 
subject,  it  accomplished  a  great  deal  by  opening  up  a  per- 
spective in  which  the  relations  of  science  to  science  and  of 
theory  to  practice  were  fairly  presented.  Eventually  this 
survey  should  be  so  extended  as  to  include  every  one  of 


598  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

the  problems  which  confronts  the  Association;  we  may 
then  expect  at  its  annual  meetings  an  increasing  clearness 
of  statement  and  a  closer  concentration  upon  well  defined 
issues.  The  articulation  of  our  Catholic  school  system 
will  require  but  little  in  the  way  of  formal  agreement  once 
the  teachers  from  various  institutions  become  accustomed 
to  working  together  with  a  common  purpose  and  a  mutual 
understanding.  From  this  point  of  view,  it  may  be  said 
that  the  Summer  School  is  a  concrete  instance  of  coordi- 
nation so  far  as  regards  the  institutions  that  are  con- 
ducted by  our  Sisterhoods. 

By  confining  the  membership  of  the  School  to  certain 
classes  of  teachers,  the  University  was  able  to  give  the 
courses  a  specialized  character.  The  curriculum  was 
drawn  up  in  such  a  way  as  to  combine  in  due  proportion 
the  academic  and  the  professional  subjects.  A  very  wide 
range  of  instruction  was  thus  offered,  and  in  each  depart- 
ment the  particular  needs  of  the  students  were  kept  stead- 
ily in  view.  Six  courses  of  twenty-five  lectures  each,  dealt 
with  the  subject  of  education,  its  principles,  history  and 
general  methods,  and  five  shorter  courses  were  devoted  to 
the  methods  of  teaching  the  more  important  school  sub- 
jects. These  might  well  be  called  the  fundamental  courses 
since  they  took  up  those  problems  on  the  solution  of  which 
the  spirit  and  character  of  education  depends.  It  is  just 
here  that  we  come  upon  the  real  difference  between  the 
Catholic  school  and  other  schools ;  it  is  here  also  that  the 
issue  is  clearly  drawn  between  the  philosophy  that  recog- 
nizes neither  soul  nor  God  nor  future  life,  and  the  Chris- 
tian principle  that  education  must  prepare  for  complete 
living  in  accordance  with  Diviae  law  and  in  view  of  an 
eternal  destiny.  When  the  difference  is  presented  in  these 
terms  there  can  be  no  doubt  as  to  the  duty  of  the  Catholic 
teacher.  But  frequently  enough  it  is  thought  that  one 
may  hold  to  the  Christian  ideal  as  the  ultimate  aim  of 
education  and  yet  adopt  for  immediate  purposes  certain 


The  Summer  School  599 

theories  that  emanate  from  the  opposite  source;  and  more 
frequently  still  it  is  supposed  that  one  may  safely  apply  a 
method  without  much  concern  for  the  theories  on  which 
it  rests  or  the  principles  which  it  embodies.  This  mis- 
taken notion  may  be  traced  to  two  causes :  first,  the  failure 
to  note  the  connection  between  philosophical  principles 
that  are  false  and  their  practical  application  in  a  method 
that  seems  to  be  harmless;  second,  the  impression  that 
such  a  method  is  based  on  the  findings  of  exact  research, 
that  it  is  not  only  scientific  but  is  also  the  one  admissible 
interpretation  of  science  as  related  to  educational  prac- 
tice. 

To  expose  these  fallacies  is,  in  our  present  circum- 
stances, to  render  valuable  service  to  our  teachers.  But 
besides  this  negative  procedure,  it  is  needful  to  bring  out 
the  bea.rings  of  Christian  philosophy  on  the  theories  and 
methods  of  education.  A  general  principle  may  be 
accepted  and  held  quite  firmly  and  yet  may  not  point 
obviously  to  any  special  application.  A  teacher,  for 
instance,  may  be  thoroughly  convinced  that  the  soul  is  a 
spiritual  substance  and  that  the  will  is  free,  and  neverthe- 
less fail  to  see  how  these  truths  atfect  the  methods  which 
she  employs.  The  method  again  may  be  philosophically 
correct  and  productive  of  good  results;  but  it  cannot  be 
rightly  appreciated  or  used  to  the  best  effect  unless  the 
principles  and  their  application  be  understood.  And  so 
it  may  happen  that  the  teacher,  with  a  fund  of  true  prin- 
ciples in  her  possession,  is  not  aware  of  their  value  or  able 
to  profit  by  their  meaning — a  mental  situation  which  she 
certainly  would  not  desire  to  create  in  the  minds  of  her 
pupils. 

Parallel,  if  not  identical,  is  the  case  with  the  history  of 
education.  From  the  treatment  this  subject  receives  in 
most  of  the  text-books  one  would  infer,  where  it  is  not 
stated  in  so  many  words,  that  the  Church  had  nothing  to 
do  with  education  except  to  hinder  it  or  make  it  a  means 


600  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

of  repression.  For  many  writers,  the  Middle  Ages  are 
still  the  ^^Dark  Ages,''  and  if  some  credit  is  given  to  the 
teaching  orders  that  were  founded  in  the  sixteenth  cen- 
tury and  afterwards,  their ^ '  activity  "  is  explained  as  evi- 
dence of  political  craft  and  shrewdness,  while  men  of  the 
Rousseau  type  are  applauded  as  the  creators  of  modern 
education.  Even  where  there  is  no  perversion  of  facts,  it 
is  easy  to  minimize  here  and  exaggerate  there  in  such  a 
way  that  the  true  proportions  disappear  and  the  final 
result  is  misrepresentation. 

In  correcting  abuses  of  this  sort,  it  is  by  no  means 
necessary  to  disparage  the  work  that  non-Catholics  have 
done,  nor  is  it  sufficient  merely  to  recite  the  narrative  of 
what  the  Church  has  accomplished.  The  student  needs 
rather  a  training  in  the  principles  of  historical  criticism 
that  will  serve  as  a  guide  in  discerning  the  true  from  the 
false  and  as  a  standard  in  appraising  the  merits  of  any 
system  or  theory  or  individual  writer.  It  will  also  be 
useful  as  a  test  of  what  are  called  progressive  movements. 
In  education,  as  in  all  other  spheres  of  human  activity, 
^^ progress"  is  an  elastic  term.  Sometimes  it  denotes  real 
advance,  but  again  it  is  equivalent  to  novelty  of  any  kind 
and  even  to  schemes  that  imply  retrogression.  Every 
teacher  naturally  desires  improvement  in  her  own  work 
and  in  that  of  her  school ;  but  her  very  eagerness  in  this 
respect  makes  it  necessary  that  she  be  qualified  to  recog- 
nize the  difference  between  methods  that  really  go  for- 
ward and  those  that  under  the  guise  of  better  things  would 
only  result  in  deterioration. 

For  these  reasons,  it  was  encouraging  to  note  the  large 
proportion  of  our  Summer  School  students  who  followed 
the  courses  in  the  professional  subjects.  Their  interest 
and  earnestness  showed  that  they  realized  the  importance 
of  basing  their  work  on  thoroughly  Catholic  principles 
and  of  thereby  bringing  into  harmony  their  religious  con- 
victions and  their  adoption  of  methods  that  are  justified 


The  Summer  School  601 

by  the  teachings  of  sound  philosophy  and  by  the  verdict 
of  history.  They  evidently  felt  that  they  were  consistent 
in  accepting  the  guidance  of  instructors  who  hold  the  same 
views  of  education  and  strive  for  the  same  purpose  in 
furtherance  of  our  Catholic  schools.  And  such  consist- 
ency is  wholesome  both  for  the  teacher  herself  and  for 
many  others  who  will  be  influenced  by  her  example  in 
selecting  university  or  college. 

It  is  not  less  significant  that  each  of  the  courses  in 
science,  language,  history  and  art  was  well  attended. 
These  are  subjects  that  find  a  place  in  the  school  and  col- 
lege curricula,  and  that  require  in  the  teacher  a  special 
training.  They  furnish  the  content,  as  it  were,  to  which 
principle  and  general  method  are  applied;  and  each  of 
them  has  methods  of  its  own  which  the  teacher,  from  the 
elementary  school  onward,  must  not  only  employ  but  must 
also  adapt  to  the  pupiPs  capacity.  Beyond  the  informa- 
tion that  is  actually  given  to  her  class,  the  teacher  needs 
a  wide  margin  of  knowledge ;  and,  needless  to  say,  no  one 
is  regarded  as  a  teacher  who  merely  keeps  her  own  study 
a  chapter  or  two  in  advance  of  the  lesson  she  assigns. 
Without  the  requisite  supply  of  knowledge,  the  ^'formal 
steps''  will,  to  say  the  least,  be  faltering,  and  they  may 
perhaps  be  steps  in  the  direction  of  failure.  On  the  other 
hand,  a  thorough  possession  of  both  content  and  method 
secures  freedom  in  handling  the  subject  and  leaves  scope 
to  the  teacher 's  initiative. 

It  has,  however,  been  urged  that  these  subjects,  from 
the  religious  viewpoint,  are  indifferent,  that  there  is  no 
specifically  Catholic  physics  or  chemistry  or  mathemat- 
ics, that  Latin  and  Greek,  pagan  in  origin,  need  not  be 
studied  under  Christian  masters,  and  that  history,  as  a 
record  of  facts,  should  be  common  property,  impartially 
shared  by  all  teachers  and  all  learners. 

This  view  would  be  more  plausible  if  the  teaching  of 
science  and  literature  were  a  purely  impersonal  affair, 


602  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

and  if  every  statement  were  as  colorless  as  a  simple  quad- 
ratic equation.  But  such  is  not  the  case.  Experience 
shows  too  plainly  that  facts,  however  ^  ^  stubborn, ' '  become 
very  pliable  when  they  are  arranged  and  interpreted.  To 
this  sort  of  manipulation  history  lends  itself  easily.  The 
sciences  also  can  be  treated  in  such  wise  as  to  make  it 
appear  that  they  have  developed  in  spite  of  the  Church 
and  that  they  are  in  perpetual  conflict  with  religion.  The 
most  effectual  answer  to  such  charges  is  offered  by  insti- 
tutions in  which  Catholic  doctrine  is  taught  side  by  side 
with  the  sciences ;  and  this  indeed  is  one  of  the  principal 
purposes  for  which  the  University  exists.  Its  students 
are  led  to  see  that  they  can  pursue  scientific  research  in 
the  true  sense  of  the  term  and  at  the  same  time  hold  firmly 
to  the  teachings  of  their  faith.  The  assurance  which  is 
thus  given  proves  a  valuable  aid  to  the  teacher  whose  duty 
it  is  to  direct  her  pupils  in  the  elementary  study  of  nature. 
At  every  step  she  finds  ample  opportunity  to  inculcate, 
not  merely  a  love  of  nature  and  respect  for  its  laws,  but, 
what  is  still  more  important,  a  spirit  of  reverence  and 
gratitude  for  Him  whose  power  and  wisdom  are  mani- 
fested in  the  ordering  of  the  physical  world.  To  the  child 
who  is  thus  instructed,  and  later  to  the  student  in  college 
or  university,  science  will  be,  as  it  really  is,  a  source  not 
of  distrust  but  of  greater  loyalty  to  his  Catholic  belief. 

The  Summer  School,  then,  embodied  in  definite  shape 
a  vital  element  of  method  concerning  the  way  in  which 
religion  and  the  other  branches  of  knowledge  should  be 
taught  in  the  grades  as  well  as  in  the  higher  classes.  It 
was  brought  out  clearly  that  religious  truth  should  not  be 
held  apart  from  the  general  body  of  knowledge  or  treated 
as  a  mere  appendage  to  the  regular  course  of  study.  It 
is  possible,  and  it  is  necessary,  to  make  religion  the  cen- 
tral subject  and  to  make  every  other  subject  tributary  to 
it.  For  each  abounds  with  ideas  that  can  and  should  help 
the  mind  to  a  better  knowledge  of  God  and  His  attributes. 


The  Summee  School  603 

Each  is  intended  to  further  the  mind's  development,  to 
influence  judgment  and  action  and  to  build  up  character 
on  a  sound  basis  of  morality.  When  every  item  of  knowl- 
edge is  vitalized  with  religious  truth  imparted  by  right 
methods,  education  will  be,  in  a  very  true  sense,  a  prepa- 
ration for  life. 

In  this  phase  of  the  Summer  School  our  teachers  found 
much  that  was  helpful  and  suggestive.  They  saw  that  the 
very  problems  which  are  of  chief  concern  to  them  are 
receiving  careful  attention  from  the  University  profes- 
sors, and  that  the  solution  is  to  be  found  in  giving  heed  to 
the  example  of  Christ  and  to  the  long-tested  practice  of 
the  Catholic  Church.  When  one  considers  the  very 
obvious  fact  that  the  methods  of  teaching  religion  can 
be  studied  only  under  Catholic  auspices,  and  when  one 
further  reflects  that  religious  truth  must  permeate  the 
teaching  of  everything  else,  it  is  not  difficult  to  infer  where 
and  from  whom  our  teachers  ought  to  receive  guidance 
and  assistance. 

While  the  University  welcomed  the  students  of  the 
Summer  School  for  the  purpose  of  instruction,  it  was  felt 
that  the  presence  of  so  many  whose  lives  are  consecrated 
to  God's  service  in  the  field  of  education,  could  not  but 
prove  beneficial  to  all  concerned  m  the  work.  As  a  matter 
of  fact,  if  zeal  and  devotion  to  study  are  the  essentials  of 
university  atmosphere,  there  is  every  reason  to  place  this 
brief  session  on  record  as  one  of  the  most  valuable  in  our 
educational  history.  No  stronger  incentive  for  a  contin- 
uation of  the  work  could  be  supplied  than  was  found  in 
the  earnest,  appreciative  attitude  and  efforts  of  those  who 
<5ame  from  far  and  near  to  seek  the  means  of  accomplish- 
ing more  fully  what  they  are  doing  for  education  and 
religion. 

The  students,  on  their  part,  gained  from  their  actual 
contact  with  the  University,  a  clearer  idea  of  its  aims  and 
a  fairer  understanding  of  its  spirit.    They  realized  that 


604  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

amid  the  variety  of  special  pursuits  necessitated  by  scien- 
tific study,  a  common  devotion  to  the  cause  of  Catholic 
truth  unites  our  instructors,  and  that  when  the  occasion 
offers  each  is  ready  to  take  up,  after  the  regular  duties  of 
the  year,  such  additional  courses  as  may  be  found  useful 
to  our  teachers.  It  was  volunteer  work  that  meant  the 
sacrifice,  or  at  least  the  postponement,  of  the  usual  vaca- 
tion plans;  but  it  was  well  worth  doing,  and  it  deserved 
the  gratitude  which  the  students  unanimously  expressed. 
In  a  special  manner  also,  grateful  recognition  is  due  to 
His  Eminence,  the  Chancellor  of  the  University,  and  to  His 
Excellency,  the  Apostolic  Delegate,  for  the  interest  they 
took  in  the  School  and  its  students.  Their  words  of 
approval  were  not  only  a  source  of  encouragement  but 
also  a  further  proof  of  the  importance  which  the  under- 
taking possesses  in  the  judgment  of  those  whose  high 
offices  enable  them  to  discern  the  most  pressing  needs  of 
religion.  Already  indebted  to  them  for  inspiration  and 
direction,  the  University  is  quickened  by  their  commenda- 
tion to  strive  with  even  greater  energy  for  the  attainment 
of  the  scope  which  the  Holy  See  assigned  it  and  which, 
according  as  it  is  realized,  must  extend  to  all  our  people 
the  benefits  of  Catholic  education. 

Thomas  J.  Shahan. 


REPORT  OF  THE  COMMITTEE  ON  HIGH 
SCHOOLS* 

At  the  eighth  annual  meeting  of  the  Catholic  Educa- 
tional Association  the  committee  previously  appointed  to 
prepare  a  report  upon  Catholic  High  Schools  for  boys 
submitted  the  following  report : 

SCOPE  AND  METHOD  OF  INQUIRY 

During  the  fall  of  1910  a  list  of  the  schools  which  were 
to  be  the  object  of  the  committee's  investigation  was 
made  out.  This  took  much  time,  as  the  schools  had  to  be 
carefully  selected.  Inasmuch  as  the  primary  purpose  of 
the  study  was  to  ascertain  the  strength  of  the  Catholic 
high  school  movement,  in  so  far  as  this  was  an  outgrowth 
of,  or  at  least  connected  with,  the  parish  schools,  prepara- 
tory departments  of  colleges  were  excluded  from  the 
inquiry,  as  were  also  academies  and  schools  for  girls  only. 
It  was  felt,  moreover,  that  the  subject  of  our  Catholic 
academies  and  schools  for  girls  was  so  large  and  impor- 
tant as  to  demand  a  special  study  by  a  committee  specially 
selected  and  qualified  for  the  task.  The  scope  of  the 
inquiry  included,  therefore,  only  those  secondary  schools 
which  are  for  boys  only,  or  which  are  for  boys  as  well 
as  girls,  but  it  was  not  intended  to  include  college  prepara- 
tory departments. 

A  preliminary  list  of  schools  was  made  out  by  the  Sec- 
retary with  the  aid  of  the  Catholic  Directory  so  as  to 
include  all  parish  schools  which  had  six  teachers  or  more, 
as  experience  had  shown  that  a  parish  school  which  was 

*Presented  at  the  Chicago  meeting  of  the  Catholic  Educational  Asso- 
ciation by  the  Chairman.  The  committee  appointed  at  the  Boston  meet- 
ing of  the  Association,  in  1909,  consisted  of  Rev.  James  A.  Burns, 
C.  S.  C,  Chairman;  Rev.  Walter  Stehle,  O.  S.  B.;  Rev.  James  J.  Dean, 
O.  S.  A.;  Bro.  John  S.  Waldron,  S.  M.,  and  Rev.  Francis  W.  Howard, 
Secretary. 


606  The  Catholic  Educational  Keview 

so  large  as  to  require  six  teachers  was  likely  to  have  more 
than  the  eight  elementary  grades.  The  list,  as  made  out, 
included  1,474  schools.  To  these,  about  January  1st  a 
letter  of  inquiry  was  sent. 

THE  RESULTS 

As  was  expected,  it  was  found  that  a  very  large  propor- 
tion of  these  parish  schools  had  high-school  grades  and 
were  doing  high-school  work,  in  addition  to  the  work  of 
the  eight  elementary  grades.  Of  the  1,474  schools  to 
which  the  letter  was  sent,  886  responded.  Two  hundred 
and  ninety-five  of  these,  or  33  per  cent,  have  high-school 
grades.  If  this  proportion  were  to  hold  for  the  588 
schools  that  did  not  reply,  the  figures  would  mean  that 
one-third  of  all  our  large  parish  schools  have  high-school 
grades.  It  is  certain  that  a  very  large  number  of  schools 
with  high-school  grades  did  not  reply  to  the  letter  of  the 
committee.  Thus,  in  the  Archdiocese  of  Cincinnati,  the 
latest  report  of  the  Superintendent  of  Schools  shows  that 
29  of  the  parish  schools  have  high-school  grades,  while 
only  8  of  these  answered  the  inquiry.  In  the  Archdiocese 
of  Philadelphia,  7  such  schools  reported  to  the  committee, 
but  the  Superintendent's  report  shows  the  existence  of  11. 
It  may  be  said  with  certainty  that  there  are  from  100  to 
200  parish  schools  with  high-school  grades  from  which 
the  committee  has  as  yet  received  no  report.  The  total 
number  of  our  parish  schools  that  have  high-school  grades 
may,  therefore,  be  safely  set  down  as  between  four  and 
five  hundred. 

It  is  evident  that  we  are  here  face  to  face  with  a  move- 
ment of  the  most  prp found  significance  for  the  future  of 
Catholic  education  in  the  United  States.  This  large  num- 
ber of  Catholic  parish  high  schools  actually  in  existence — 
between  four  and  five  hundred,  representing  every  section 
of  the  country  and  almost  every  diocese,  is  a  spontaneous 
growth  resulting  from  the  silent  maturing  development  of 


Eeport  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools      607 

the  parish  school  system.  It  is  not  due  to  personal 
influence,  it  has  not  sprung  from  local  conditions.  It  is 
simply  the  outcome  of  our  general  educational  attitude. 
The  parish  school  stands,  after  a  hundred  years  of  effort 
and  sacrifice,  as  the  necessary  expression  of  that  attitude 
with  regard  to  the  child.  The  Catholic  college  stands  as  its 
expression  with  regard  to  the  young  men.  The  parish  high 
school  is  rising  between  the  two  as  its  inevitable  expres- 
sion in  the  case  of  the  boy.  It  is  the  creation  of  the  logic 
of  the  situation.  The  sons  of  the  Irish  and  German  immi- 
grants of  a  half  century  ago,  no  longer  dwell,  as  did  their 
fathers,  on  the  lowest  economic  levels.  They  can  afford  to 
give  to  their  children  at  least  a  middle-class  education, 
and,  soundly  Catholic  as  they  are,  they  would  prefer  to 
obtain  this  education  under  Catholic  auspices.  It  is  in 
answer  to  this  condition  and  this  appeal  that  parish 
priests  and  teaching  communities  have  been  seeking  to 
build  up,  grade  by  grade,  the  Catholic  local  high  school, 
as  the  crowning  and  perfection,  as  well  as  the  necessary 
complement,  of  the  parish  school.  The  parish  priest  sees 
better  than  any  one  else  that  he  cannot  hold  the  boys  of 
the  coming  generation  to  his  parish  school,  if  he  permits 
indiscriminately  the  boys  of  the  present  to  get  the  most 
important  part  of  their  education  from  non-Catholic 
hands. 

This  is  the  situation,  this  the  condition.  It  is  surely  a 
matter  of  vital  concern  to  this  Association  to  Imow  that 
this  condition  exists,  and  to  understand  thoroughly  the 
efforts  which  are  being  put  forth  by  the  organized  Cath- 
olic conscience  of  the  community  to  meet  it.  The  detailed 
statistics  of  this  report  will,  the  committee  feels  sure,  be 
of  interest  to  every  member  of  the  Association.  While 
commending  these  to  your  earnest  study,  however,  it  will 
be  useful  here  to  consider  certaia  phases  of  this  high- 
school  movement  that  have  a  special  significance,  as  well 
as  to  point  out  certain  problems  and  difficulties  that  stand 
in  its  way. 


608  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

complete  and  incomplete  high  schools 

The  total  number  of  boys  and  girls  doing  work  above 
the  elementary  grades  in  these  295  high  schools,  is  14,062. 
The  number  of  boys  is  7,902.  One-half  of  the  high  schools 
have  four  grades.  Of  the  remaining  half,  64  have  three 
grades ;  57  have  two  grades,  and  27  have  only  one  grade. 

It  is  plain  that  our  growing  system  of  high  schools  is 
passing  through  a  stage  of  development  which  is  easily 
discernible  in  studying  the  history  of  the  public  high 
schools.  Many  cities  and  towns  were  able  at  once  to  start 
full-fledged  four-year  public  high  schools.  In  many  places, 
however,  the  public  high  school  came  into  being  only 
grade  by  grade.  In  fact,  a  condition  analagous  to  that 
which  we  are  considering  exists,  even  in  the  public  high 
school  system  of  today.  Of  the  10,213  public  high  schools 
given  in  the  Eeport  of  the  Bureau  of  Education  for  the 
year  ending  June,  1910,  3,792,  or  over  one-third,  had 
courses  of  only  from  one  to  three  years.^  In  view  of  the 
comparatively  recent  origin  of  the  Catholic  high-school 
movement,  it  is,  therefore,  highly  creditable  as  well  as 
significant  that  fully  one-half  of  these  high  schools  have 
at  present  a  full  course  of  four  years. 

TEACHEBS 

Not  quite  so  creditable  a  showing  is  made  in  the  matter 
of  teachers.  The  148  schools  with  four  grades  average  a 
little  less  than  four  teachers  to  the  school.  But  these 
schools  engage  174  teachers  for  part  of  the  time ;  so  that 
if  the  time  given  by  these  latter  to  high-school  work  were 
counted  in,  there  would  probably  be  an  average  of  four 
teachers  to  a  school.  For  the  147  schools  with  less  than 
four  grades,  having  a  total  of  333  grades,  there  are  only 
214  teachers  giving  their  whole  time  to  high  school  work, 
which  means  an  average  of  about  two  teachers  to  every 
three  grades.     There  are  also,  in  these  147  schools,  97 


Eeport  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools      609 

teachers  who  give  part  of  their  time  to  high-school  work. 
Here,  then,  in  the  matter  of  the  number  of  teachers,  there 
is  undoubtedly  a  weak  spot.  Yet,  if  comparison  be  made 
with  the  public  schools,  the  weakness  may  not  appear  so 
great,  for  if  the  9,375  public  high  schools  outside  the  cities 
of  8,000  population  and  over  are  considered,  the  averages 
for  this  large  number  of  schools — constituting,  in  fact, 
nine-tenths  of  all  our  public  high  schools — show  a  little 
less  than  three  teachers  to  the  school.^ 

Nearly  all  the  Catholic  high  schools  are  conducted  by 
religious.  Brothers  teach  in  68  schools,  and  Sisters  in  220. 
Without  entering  into  the  question  as  to  whether  it  would 
not  be  best  to  have  men  rather  than  women  as  teachers 
for  boys  of  high-school  age — a  question  that  most  Catholic 
educators  would  answer  in  a  decided  affirmative —  it  may 
simply  be  noted  that  the  leading  sisterhoods  are  exten- 
sively engaging  in  the  work  of  the  parish  high  schools. 
Men  teachers  may  be  preferable,  but  men  teachers  cannot 
in  most  cases  be  had.  The  parish  priest  finds  himself  con- 
fronted by  a  practical  dilemma.  He  cannot  get  Brothers, 
and  he  cannot  afford  to  hire  laymen.  On  the  other  hand, 
if  his  boys  go  to  the  public  high  school,  most  of  their 
teachers  will  probably  be  women.^  No  one  can  blame  him 
for  drawing  the  practical  conclusion  that,  if  women  are 
competent  to  furnish  efficient  secondary  instruction  in  the 
public  schools,  Catholic  Sisters  are  not  less  competent 
for  this  work  in  the  Catholic  high  schools.  The  sister- 
hoods, moreover,  with  their  steady  advance  in  educational 
efficiency,  are  undeniably  prepared,  so  far  as  intellectual 
equipment  is  concerned,  to  take  charge  of  the  work  of 
secondary  schools. 

While  all  this  is  true,  the  fact  remains,  nevertheless,  that 
men  teachers  are,  by  general  consent,  preferable  for  boys 

^Rep.  Commissioner  of  Ed.  for  1910,  p.  1131. 

'The  majority  of  the  teachers  in  the  public  high  schools  today  are 
women.  Cf.  Rep.  Commissioner  of  Ed.,  1910,  p.  1131. 


610  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

of  high-school  age,  and  that  the  only  or  at  least  the  chief 
reason  why  we  have  not  a  larger  number  of  Brothers' 
high  schools  is  that  we  have  not  a  larger  number  of  teach- 
ing Brothers.  The  greatest  boon  that  could  come  to  the 
Catholic  high-school  movement  at  the  present  time  is  an 
increase  of  vocations  to  the  teaching  brotherhoods.  There 
is  no  one  of  our  half-dozen  teaching  brotherhoods  which 
does  not  receive  every  year  urgent  calls  to  open  Catholic 
high  schools,  and  there  is  no  one  of  them  which  would  not 
gladly  accept  these  appeals  if  there  were  subjects  enough 
for  the  work.  The  future  must  witness  a  larger  growth 
of  vocations  to  the  teaching  brotherhoods  than  there  has 
been  in  the  past,  if  the  interests  of  Catholic  education 
are  not  to  suffer.  The  field  of  secondary  education  for 
boys  appears  to  be  marked  off  in  the  designs  of  Provi- 
dence for  the  teaching  Brothers,  as  that  of  the  parish 
schools  and  academies  for  girls  is  predestined  for  the 
Sisters.  Pastors  can  contribute  in  no  more  efficacious 
way  to  the  promotion  of  the  high- school  movement  than 
by  fostering  vocations  to  the  brotherhoods. 

There  seems  to  be  no  good  reason  why,  in  central  Cath- 
olic high  schools  in  the  larger  cities,  several  religious 
communities  may  not  cooperate  in  the  formation  of  the 
teaching  staff.  This  is  the  plan  that  is  contemplated  in 
the  case  of  the  Central  Girls'  Catholic  High  School  that 
is  now  rising  in  Philadelphia.  The  idea  is  new,  but  it  is 
fruitful  in  suggestion  of  the  good  that  may  be  effected  by 
a  closer  cooperative  union  of  all  our  educational  forces. 

connection  with  paeish  schools 

If  we  are  to  have  a  system  of  Catholic  high  schools,  it 
is  supremely  important  that  these  schools  should  fit  in 
with  our  existing  well-established  systems  of  parish 
schools  and  colleges,  and  form  a  connecting  bond  between 
them.  The  statistics  which  have  been  gathered  furnish 
some  illuminative  information  here.    Two  hundred  and 


Eepoet  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools      611 

fifty-two  of  these  high  schools  are  directly  connected  with 
only  a  single  parish  school,  while  only  15  of  them  are 
directly  connected  with  several  parish  schools.  Perhaps 
no  other  fact  so  clearly  reveals  the  inchoate  character  of 
this  secondary  school  development.  Nearly  all  these  high 
schools  are  the  offshoots  of  single  parish  schools.  Even 
in  towns  and  cities  which  boast  of  a  number  of  large  and 
well-equipped  parish  schools,  with  thousands  of  pupils, 
no  attempt  is  made,  as  a  rule,  to  build  up  a  central  high 
school  with  which  all  the  existing  parish  schools  would  be 
made  to  fit  in.  What  is  even  more  strange  is,  that  where 
a  large-minded  and  progressive  pastor  has  had  the  cour- 
age to  take  the  initiative  and  build  up  the  high  school 
himself,  he  has  not  been  able  to  rely  upon  his  fellow- 
pastors  to  send  the  graduates  of  their  elementary  schools 
up  to  his  high  school.  On  the  contrary,  such  a  pastor  too 
often  finds  that  his  high  school  is  regarded  merely  as  a 
parish  affair. 

At  the  St.  Louis  meeting  of  this  Association,  several 
years  ago,  this  phase  of  the  secondary  school  problem  was 
thoroughly  discussed  in  the  Eeport  of  the  Committee  on 
High  Schools,  and  a  plan  was  proposed  for  the  adjust- 
ment of  the  relations  of  the  Catholic  high  school  to  the 
parish  schools  round  about  it.  It  may  be  that  the  time 
was  not  then  ripe  for  the  adoption  of  that  plan.  It  may  be 
that  the  time  is  not  yet  ripe  for  its  general  adoption.  It 
is,  at  any  rate,  a  hopeful  sign  that  it  has  been  successfully 
carried  out  in  several  places.  With  the  perfection  of 
organization  that  the  parish  school  system  has  now 
attained,  and  with  the  large  number  of  high  schools 
now  existing  as  well  as  the  steady  demand  for  more,  it 
may  reasonably  be  hoped  that  this  plan  or  some  similar 
one  will  be  adopted  in  the  cities  and  larger  towns,  for  the 
purpose  of  coordinating  the  work  of  the  high  schools  with 
that  of  the  parish  schools.  But  this  can  only  be  accom- 
plished by  the  exercise  of  the  strong  arm  of  episcopal 


612  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

authority.  The  Catholic  high  school,  if  it  is  to  be  a  central 
and  common  superior  school,  coordinated  with  the  parish 
schools  surrounding  it,  must  be  established  by  or  adopted 
by  the  bishop  and  be  directly  under  diocesan  control. 

CONNECTION  WITH  COLLEGES 

How  far  are  our  Catholic  colleges  and  universities 
profiting  by  this  new  high-school  movement?  Are  the 
boys  who  graduate  from  these  four  hundred  and  more 
Catholic  high  schools  and  who  go  on  to  college  worS, 
drawn  to  our  higher  academic  institutions,  or  do  they  tend 
rather  towards  the  non-Catholic  colleges  and  state  univer- 
sities I  It  would  indeed  be  a  sad  situation,  if  this  develop- 
ment of  our  system  of  secondary  education  only  resulted 
in  strengthening  the  already  existing  drift  towards  the 
non-Catholic  higher  institutions. 

The  annual  reports  of  the  Catholic  Superintendent  of 
Schools  of  the  Archdiocese  of  New  York  show  that  the 
graduates  of  the  Catholic  schools  there  tend  to  go  in  about 
equal  numbers  to  Catholic  and  to  non-Catholic  higher 
institutions.  The  statistics  gathered  by  the  committee  do 
not  enable  us  to  ascertain  just  what  proportion  of  the 
graduates  of  our  schools  in  other  dioceses  go  to  non- 
Catholic  colleges.  But  they  do  show  that  certain  of  the 
non-Catholic  institutions  are  alive  to  the  opportunity 
offered  by  the  growth  of  our  secondary  schools.  Thirty- 
four  of  these  Catholic  high  schools  are  affiliated  with  the 
University  of  the  State  of  New  York.  It  is  not  so  much  to 
this  that  I  would  direct  attention,  for  it  is  practically  a 
necessity  for  every  secondary  school  in  the  State  of  New 
York  to  be  affiliated  to  the  University  of  the  State,  under 
the  Board  of  Regents.  The  same  necessity,  however,  does 
not  exist  in  other  states.  Yet  we  find  that  13  of  our  high 
schools  in  other  states  are  connected  with  non-Catholic 
colleges  or  state  universities;  9  are  connected  with  non- 
Catholic  normal  schools ;  and  only  19  have  any  direct  con- 


Eeport  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools      613 

nection  with.  Catholic  colleges.  Here  surely,  is  a  situa- 
tion that  is  full  of  significance.  For  it  means  that  our 
secondary  schools,  which  ought  to  form  a  natural  and 
easy  passage-way  from  the  parish  schools  to  the  Catholic 
colleges,  are,  in  steadily  increasing  numbers,  being  drawn 
into  such  academic  relationship  as  will  make  it  a  most 
easy  if  not  an  inevitable  thing  for  the  Catholic  boy,  on 
finishing  his  course  in  our  schools,  to  pass  up  into  a  non- 
Catholic  college. 

This  tendency  is,  doubtless,  only  in  its  incipiency.  I 
need  not  point  out  that  it  is  full  of  danger  for  the  future 
of  our  colleges.  And  yet,  strange  to  say,  it  has  been 
indirectly  fostered  by  the  attitude  of  Catholic  college 
men  themselves.  Their  attitude  towards  this  new  Cath- 
olic high  school  movement  has  been,  to  a  great  extent,  one 
of  calm  aloofness.  Trusting  to  the  sufficiency  of  their 
well-developed  preparatory  departments,  they  have  felt 
abundantly  able  to  provide  for  the  needs  of  Catholic  boys 
going  on  to  college  in  their  own  institutions.  There  was 
even  a  fear  that  the  establishment  of  diocesan  high 
schools  might  diminish  the  attendance  in  the  preparatory 
departments.  Time  has  shown,  however,  that  the  prepara- 
tory departments  are  not  sufficient.  They  cannot  be  made 
to  cover  the  territory  that  has  to  be  covered.  Multiply 
them  by  ten,  and  they  would  still  be  insufficient  in  number. 
The  law  of  distance,  as  the  late  President  Harper  showed, 
is  one  of  the  primal  factors  in  the  adjustment  of  attend- 
ance at  educational  institutions,  and  even  religious  con- 
victions must  respect  this  law.  A  well-known  pastor  in 
Michigan  was  asked  by  a  member  of  the  committee  why  he 
went  to  the  trouble  and  expense  of  establishing  and  sup- 
porting a  high  school,  in  addition  to  his  parish  school: 
could  he  not  induce  his  high  school  boys  to  go  either  as  far 
as  Detroit  College  on  the  north  or  as  far  as  Notre  Dame 
on  the  south  ?  ^ '  They  would  not  go, ' '  he  answered ;  ^  ^  they 
will  not  ordinarily  leave  home  until  they  have  to;  they 


614  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

do  not  have  to  leave  here  to  get  a  high  school  training,  for 
there  is  the  public  high  school,  and  there  is  also  right  at 
our  doors  a  flourishing  non-Catholic  college.'*  This  is  the 
condition  confronting  the  Catholic  boy  of  high-school  age 
in  hundreds  of  places  today. 

Experience  has  shown,  too,  that  this  new  high  school 
movement  is  not  a  menace  to  the  attendance  in  the  pre- 
paratory departments.  True,  there  is  a  growing  feeling 
among  Catholic  college  men  that  the  collegiate  depart- 
ment would  be  stronger  and  more  attractive  if  it  stood  by 
itself.  I  have  heard  men  high  in  the  administrative  coun- 
cils of  a  number  of  our  leading  colleges  express  the  hope 
that  they  might  soon  be  able  to  see  the  preparatory  school 
separated  completely  from  the  college  proper,  and  the 
latter  standing  by  itself.  Holy  Cross  College,  Worcester, 
enjoys  the  distinction  of  being  the  first  of  our  colleges, 
after  the  Catholic  University  and  Trinity  College,  actu- 
ally to  effect  this  separation.  If  such  a  separation  is  to 
come  universally,  it  can  only  be  brought  about  safely  in 
conjunction  with  the  multiplication  of  Catholic  secondary 
schools,  and  it  is  significant  that  Holy  Cross  College  has 
affiliated  to  itself  a  number  of  these  new  Catholic  high 
schools.  It  would  be  beyond  the  scope  of  this  study  to 
enter  into  the  question  of  the  desirability  of  this  separa- 
tion, but  the  experience  of  our  colleges  in  the  matter  of 
preparatory  attendance  surely  warrants  the  conclusion 
that  the  growth  of  Catholic  high  schools,  so  far  from  di- 
minishing, tends  rather  to  increase  the  number  of  pre- 
paratory students,  if  the  colleges  will  have  it  so. 

There  are  three  things  that  the  Catholic  college  may 
do  at  present  in  order  to  attract  to  itself  the  boys  who 
are  going  through  the  Catholic  high  schools  round  about 
it,  and  to  prevent  their  being  drawn  to  the  non-Catholic 
colleges  and  universities.  They  may  allow  these  schools — 
the  stronger  ones  I  mean,  to  affiliate  with  them,  so  that 
the  high-school  diploma  would  admit  without  examination 


Eepokt  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools      615 

to  college.  The  Catholic  high  schools  would  welcome  this, 
at  least  in  the  case  of  the  stronger  colleges.  This  is  pre- 
cisely what  some  of  the  big  non-Catholic  colleges  are  doing. 
Or,  the  college  may  attach  these  Catholic  high  schools  to 
itself  by  founding  a  number  of  scholarships  in  each  of  them. 
This  would  be  a  very  effective  and  fruitful  kind  of  relation- 
ship. The  competition  for  a  single  scholarship  is  sufficient 
to  turn  the  attention  and  interest  of  the  entire  school  per- 
manently in  the  direction  of  the  college  to  which  the  fortu- 
nate winner  of  the  prize  is  to  go.  Finally,  there  is  the 
simple,  easy  and  universally  applicable  means — the  most 
efficient  of  all,  perhaps,  for  the  purpose — of  the  cultivation 
of  close,  friendly,  personal  relations  between  the  college 
administration  and  the  high  school.  It  is  this  that  really 
counts,  more  than  anything  else,  in  the  final  determina- 
tion of  the  choice  of  a  college  by  the  high  school  student. 
College  men  who  may  be  specially  interested  in  this  phase 
of  the  subject  will  find  it  profitable  to  study  the  relations 
of  Harvard  College  to  the  New  England  high  schools 
from  which  it  draws  the  bulk  of  its  student  body,  as  exhib- 
ited in  the  annual  reports  of  the  president  of  that  institu- 
tion. Catholic  colleges,  with  some  few  exceptions,  have 
done  little  or  nothing  up.  to  the  present  to  cultivate  this 
kind  of  relationship  with  our  parish  schools  and  high 
schools. 

ACADEMIC   STANDING 

But,  it  may  be  asked,  are  these  new  high  schools  compe- 
tent to  do  the  work  of  the  preparatory  departments  !  Our 
colleges  have,  generally  speaking,  added  to  their  entrance 
requirements  in  recent  years,  and  lengthened  out  their 
own  preparatory  curriculum  to  four  years. 

The  entrance  requirements  of  our  stronger  colleges 
are,  I  think  it  may  be  said,  quite  as  high  and  rigid  as  those 
of  the  big  non-Catholic  colleges  and  state  universities. 
Can  our  high  schools — even  the  strongest  of  them — 
measure  up  to  the  standard  of  such  requirements  ? 


616  The  Catholic  Educational  EevIew 

A  ready  answer  might  be  offered  by  pointing  to  the  fact 
that  34  of  these  high  schools  are  recognized  by  the  Board 
of  Regents  of  New  York ;  13  are  connected  with  reputable 
non-Catholic  colleges  or  state  universities,  19  with  Cath- 
olic colleges,  and  9  with  state  normal  schools.  But  the 
Committee,  realizing  the  importance  of  this  question  and 
its  special  interest  to  college  men,  has  made  a  closer  study 
of  the  matter.  It  has  ascertained  just  what  subjects  are 
taught  in  each  of  these  295  high  schools,  with  the  number 
of  semesters  covered  by  each  subject.  The  results  formed 
one  of  the  clearest  evidences  of  the  strength  and  perma- 
nency of  this  new  high  school  movement,  as  well  as  one 
of  the  most  hopeful  signs,  in  the  judgment  of  the  com- 
mittee, for  the  future  of  Catholic  higher  education. 

Of  the  295  schools  investigated,  209  are  found  to  have 
courses  in  Latin.  How  many  of  these,  now,  offer  a  cur- 
riculum of  studies  that  is  practically  equivalent  to  the 
preparatory  curriculum  of  our  colleges'?  Or,  in  other 
words,  how  many  of  them  can  prepare  boys  to  enter  the 
freshman  year  of  our  colleges?  By  the  term  ^^practically 
equivalent"  is  meant  the  offering  of  such  courses  as  would 
enable  the  boy  to  gain  freshman  standing,  although  he 
might,  in  some  instances,  be  conditioned  for  lack  of  a 
year's  study  in  some  particular  branch,  such  as  a  science 
or  a  modern  language,  algebra  or  geometry.  Again,  it 
is  necessary  to  distinguish  between  the  colleges.  Many  of 
our  colleges  will  not  admit  without  Greek,  and,  in  the  case 
of  these,  comparatively  few  of  the  high  schools  could  offer 
the  equivalent  of  the  preparatory  department,  for  not 
many  of  them  teach  Greek.  But  some  of  our  stronger 
colleges  do  not  require  Greek,  and  permit  the  offering  of 
the  modern  languages  in  its  place.  We  will  select  one  of 
these  colleges,  therefore,  and,  as  a  matter  of  convenience, 
it  shall  be  the  University  of  Notre  Dame,  as  I  am  more 
familiar  with  the  entrance  requirements  there,  both  as  to 
quality  and  quantity. 


Eeport  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools      617 

Taking,  then,  the  Department  of  Letters  and  the  Depart- 
ment of  History  and  Economics  in  Notre  Dame  Univer- 
sity, which  require,  for  entrance,  four  years  of  Latin,  four 
of  English,  three  of  history,  three  of  mathematics,  three 
of  modern  languages,  and  two  years  of  science,  and  bear- 
ing in  mind  the  quality  of  the  matter  required  under  each 
of  these  subjects,  I  find  that  101  of  these  high  schools  oifer 
a  curriculum  that  is  practically  equivalent  to  the  prepara- 
tory curriculum  or  the  entrance  requirements  of  Notre 
Dame  University  in  these  two  departments.  Twenty-eight 
of  these  schools,  moreover,  offer  Greek,  generally  from 
two  to  three  years.  The  total  number  of  boys  following 
high  school  courses  in  these  101  schools  is  3,541.  There 
are,  in  addition,  a  considerable  number  of  schools  which 
offer  a  curriculum  that  would  enable  a  boy  to  enter  the 
freshman  year  in  the  General  Science  Course  at  Notre 
Dame,  for  which  only  two  years  of  Latin  are  required. 

It  may  be  said,  then,  that  fully  one-half  of  our  high 
schools  which  teach  Latin  are  competent  to  prepare  boys 
for  the  freshman  year  of  those  of  our  colleges  that  do  not 
require  Greek  for  entrance,  or  for  the  non-Catholic  col- 
leges generally.  It  should  not  be  forgotten  that  many  of 
these  schools  are  of  very  recent  establishment,  and  that 
many  of  the  schools  that  are  now  able  to  give  only  two 
years  to  Latin  will,  undoubtedly,  within  a  few  years,  be 
offering  a  full  four-years '  course  in  Latin  and  a  full  high 
school  curriculum  of  four  years.  The  ideal  appears  to  be 
everywhere  a  full  four-years'  curriculum,  and  with  the 
pressure  from  the  people  from  behind,  and  the  demands 
of  the  colleges  from  above,  it  is  certain  that  Catholic  four- 
year  high  schools  will  multiply  rapidly  during  the  coming 
decade. 

Nearly  all  the  high  schools  have,  in  addition  to  the 
regular  academic  curriculum  and  paralleling  it,  a  com- 
mercial course  of  from  two  to  three  years. 


618  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

cost  op  catholic  high  schools 

The  question  of  cost  is  an  all-important  one,  in  consider- 
ing the  future  of  Catholic  secondarj^  education.  It  may  be 
admitted  at  once  that  we  could  not  afford  to  erect  and  main- 
tain a  system  of  popular  high  schools  of  our  own,  if  it  were 
to  cost  as  much  as  in  the  case  of  the  public  schools.  I  say 
^^ popular  high  schools,"  and  a  ^^ system"  of  such.  We 
have  some  secondary  schools  that  are  fully  as  costly  as 
the  public  schools,  and  to  this  class  belong  many  of  the 
preparatory  departments  of  the  colleges.  But  it  is  evi- 
dent that  if  we  are  to  have  a  system  of  secondary  schools 
paralleling  the  public  high  schools  and  supported  by  the 
parishes,  instead  of  being  content  with  a  secondary  school 
here  and  there,  wherever,  for  instance,  there  is  a  Catholic 
college  or  wherever  some  generous  donation  or  other 
specially  favorable  circumstance  appears,  then  it  is  indis- 
pensable that  the  cost  of  our  high  schools  be  made 
far  below  the  cost  of  the  public  high  schools.  The  ^ 'popu- 
lar" Catholic  high  school  ought  to  be  a  free  school.  As  a 
matter  of  fact,  many  of  our  secondary  schools  are  at 
present  supported  by  tuition-fees.  Only  the  more  newly 
established  ones  are,  as  a  rule,  supported  directly  by  the 
parishes. 

It  costs,  generally  speaking,  only  about  one-third  as 
much  to  maintain  a  parish  school  as  it  does  to  maintain  a 
public  elementary  school,  even  when,  as  is  ordinarily  the 
case,  the  parish  school  is  just  as  efficient  educationally  as 
the  public  school.  It  has  thus  come  about  that,  owing 
chiefly  to  the  self-sacrificing  devotion  of  the  religious  com- 
munities. Catholics  would  have  little  financial  advantage 
to  gain  by  changing  to  a  system  of  state  support  for  the 
parish  schools,  for  the  money  that  would  be  saved  to  them 
directly  would  be  demanded  of  them  indirectly  by  the 
state  in  the  way  of  increased  taxation.  What,  now,  would 
be  the  cost  of  Catholic  high  schools,  as  compared  with  the 


Report  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools      619 

cost  of  public  high  schools?  We  should  expect  a  priori 
that  the  same  ratio  would  hold  good — that  the  Catholic 
high  school  would  cost  only  about  one-third  as  much  as 
the  public  high  school,  for  the  factors  that  make  for  a  low- 
ering of  the  cost  of  education  in  the  case  of  the  element- 
ary parish  school  are  operative  also  in  the  case  of  the 
Catholic  high  school.  But  it  will  be  well  to  consider  the 
matter  somewhat  more  in  the  concrete. 

We  may  assume  that  our  typical  popular  high  school, 
with  its  four  regular  grades  and  its  two  commercial  grades, 
will  require  seven  teachers.  The  Boys  Catholic  Central 
High  School  at  Grand  Rapids,  Mich.,  affords  a  good 
example  of  such  a  school.  It  reports  seven  teachers,  an 
attendance  of  158,  and  besides  four  years  of  Latin  and 
three  years  of  Greek  it  has  all  the  courses  that  regularly 
belong  to  the  secondary  school,  including  a  commercial 
course  of  two  years.^ 

The  recently  established  Central  Catholic  High  School 
at  Fort  Wayne  is  another  typical  example,  although  it  is 
content  with  ^ve  teachers,  as  the  two  upper  grades  have 
not  yet  been  started.  Now,  if  the  teachers  are  Brothers, 
the  salaries,  at  $400  each,  will  amount  to  $2,800  annually. 
If  we  allow,  for  all  other  expenses,  35  per  cent  of  the  sal- 
ary-total— these  expenses  are  about  45  per  cent  of  the  sal- 
ary-total in  the  case  of  the  public  high  schools — ^we  have 
the  estimated  sum  of  $980  for  all  expenses  outside  of  sal- 
aries. The  total  estimated  expense,  therefore,  of  our 
typical  Catholic  high  school  would  be  $3,780  annually. 
Thirty  pupils  would  be  about  the  normal  quota  to  each 
teacher.  With  a  normal  attendance,  then,  of  210  and  a 
total  expense  of  $3,780,  the  per  capita  annual  expense 
would  be  $18.  The  per  capita  annual  expense  of  public 
high  school  education  throughout  the  country  generally, 
exclusive  of  the  Southern  States,  is  fully  three  times  as 
much  as  this.    We  can,  then,  provide  a  high  school  educa- 


*For  a  further  description  of  this  School,  cf.  this  Review,  I,  p.  387. 


620  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

tion  as  efficient  as  that  given  in  the  public  high  schools  for 
one-third  of  the  cost. 

Were  the  teachers  to  be  Sisters,  with  salaries  of  $300 
each,  the  total  cost  would  be  reduced  to  less  than  $3,000, 
and  the  per  capita  expense  to  about  $14.  We  have, 
indeed,  high  schools  at  present  which  cost  even  less  than 
$2,000.  But  this  may  generally  be  taken  as  a  sign  that  the 
teaching  staff  is  insufficient,  or  the  teachers  are  over- 
worked, or  the  curriculum  is  weak;  and  in  such  cases  all 
three  of  these  conditions  are  apt  to  be  at  hand,  each  to  a 
greater  or  lesser  degree. 

An  annual  expense  of  from  $3,000  to  $4,000  for  a 
Catholic  high  school  is  more  than  any  single  parish  is 
able  to  bear.  But  in  a  city  containing  a  number  of  Cath- 
olic parishes,  where  all  would  unite  in  support  of  a  central 
high  school,  the  expense  devolving  upon  each  parish 
would  be  comparatively  slight,  amounting  to  only  a  few 
hundred  dollars  a  year.  This  is  the  plan  which  has  been 
realized  at  Grand  Eapids,  where  eleven  parishes — four 
English  speaking,  three  Polish,  one  German,  one  Hol- 
land, one  Lithuanian,  and  one  of  mixed  nationalities,  co- 
operate harmoniously  in  support  of  the  Catholic  high 
school  for  boys  as  well  as  of  that  for  girls. 

CUKRICULUM  AND  WORK  OF  THE  CATHOLIC  HIGH  SCHOOL 

It  may  be  concluded,  then,  that  it  is  not  only  possible 
but  very  easy  for  Catholic  parishes,  cooperating  harmo- 
niously to  this  end,  to  build  up  strong  and  thoroughly  effi- 
cient central  high  schools,  which  shall  supplement  the 
work  of  the  parish  schools  for  the  constantly  increasing 
body  of  Catholics  who  can  afford  to  give  to  their  children 
something  more  than  the  mere  elements  of  education,  and 
which  shall,  at  the  same  time,  provide  a  preparatory  train- 
ing for  those  boys  who  are  destined  to  go  on  to  college. 
The  parish  schools  have  all  but  ceased  to  be  a  burden — 
except  to  the  devoted  religious  communities,  and  the 


Eeport  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools      621 

burden  of  high  school  support,  if  properly  distributed, 
will  be  but  slight  and  felt  very  little,  if  it  be  felt  at  all. 
There  is  a  very  acute  danger  here,  however,  which  it  is 
necessary  to  point  out  and  carefully  consider,  if  the  Ee- 
port of  this  Committee  is  not  to  fail  of  its  full  purpose. 
The  danger  is  that,  in  building  up  our  system  of  Catholic 
high  schools,  we  should  model  them  upon  the  present 
public  high  schools.  We  leave  out  of  consideration,  of 
course,  all  that  pertains  to  religious  instruction  and  the 
formation  of  moral  character.  There  is  no  very  pressing 
danger  from  this  side,  although  the  adoption  of  certain 
non-Catholic  textbooks  and  the  tendency  to  affiliate  with 
non-Catholic  colleges  and  universities  might  well  occasion 
some  alarm.  The  danger  to  which  I  refer  is  in  regard  to 
the  curriculum  of  strictly  secular  subjects. 

It  ought  to  be  clearly  recognized  that  our  high  schools 
cannot  be  expected  to  maintain  manual  training  depart- 
ments. We  may  have  manual  training  departments  in 
some  of  our  larger  and  more  specially  favored  schools 
like  the  great  Catholic  high  school  of  Philadelphia.  We 
may  have  special  manual  training  schools  like  those  of 
the  Christian  Brothers.  The  more  of  such  schools  and 
departments  under  like  conditions  we  can  have,  the  better. 
But  in  the  ordinary  Catholic  high  school,  manual  training 
departments  are  practically  impossible.  The  matter  of 
expense  alone  would  forbid  them.  There  is  an  even  more 
urgent  reason  than  this,  however,  and  that  is  their  un- 
desirability.  It  is  not  only  undesirable  that  our  Catholic 
high  schools  should  take  on  manual-labor  or  industrial 
departments,  but  it  is  quite  undesirable  that  they  should 
include  in  their  cirricula  a  number  of  other  subjects 
that  are  now  taught  in  the  public  high  schools.  Too 
many  things  are  being  taught  today  in  the  public  high 
schools  to  allow  of  any  one  thing  being  well  taught.  It  is 
just  here,  in  fact,  that  our  entire  public  high  school  system 
is  in  imminent  danger  of  academically  breaking  down. 


622  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

The  crying  need  is  for  simplification  of  the  curriculum 
and  thoroughness  in  the  work. 

Not  that  there  may  not  be  need,  and  urgent  need,  of  indus- 
trial training  through  public  manual  training  schools  and 
trade  schools.  Not  that  industrial  departments  or  courses 
may  not  be  advantageous,  especially  in  the  case  of  the 
larger  and  stronger  high  schools  in  the  cities.  But,  the 
high  school  being  what  it  is,  a  school  mainly  for  the  educa- 
tion of  the  children  of  the  middle  classes,  its  purpose  and 
function  must  necessarily  exclude  industrial  training, 
except  in  the  case  of  the  special  boy  or  in  the  case  of  a 
special  purpose  in  view.  We  are  speakuig  now  only  of 
the  boy.  And  the  same  principle  forbids  the  inclusion  in 
the  regular  high  school  curriculum  of  a  number  of  other 
subjects  which  now  overload  and  burden  it,  such  as  psy- 
chology, advanced  courses  in  mathematics,  advanced 
courses  in  the  sciences,  in  history,  in  English,  in  art  and 
other  things.  These  subjects  belong  to  the  college.  There 
is  not  time  for  them  in  the  high  school,  except  by  shorten- 
ing or  by  superficially  hurrying  through  the  essential  sub- 
jects which  by  themselves  fully  fill  out  the  four  years. 
The  inclusion  of  such  subjects  in  the  high  school  curricu- 
lum, with  the  resultant  superficializing  of  the  teaching  of 
the  essential  subjects,  has  undermined  the  academic  effi- 
ciency of  our  public  high  schools  and  is  frustrating,  to  a 
very  serious  extent,  their  every  purpose. 

It  is  important  to  make  it  clear  that  criticism  such  as 
this  does  not  spring  from  any  attitude  of  hostility  to  the 
public  schools.  They  are  our  schools  as  much  as  they  are 
anybody  else's.  Our  money  goes  to  their  upbuilding  and 
support.  They  are  not  such  as  we  would  have  them  to  be, 
but  many  of  our  children  attend  them.  We  retain  our  full 
rights  and  responsibilities  as  citizens  and  tax-payers  in 
regard  to  them.  We  cannot  be  divested  of  these  rights 
and  responsibilities — we  could  not,  in  fact  divest  our- 
selves of  them,  even  if  we  would — by  the  fact  that  we  have 


Eepoet  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools      623 

chosen  to  build  up  and  support  a  system  of  schools  of  our 
own,  in  addition  to  what  we  pay  for  the  public  schools. 
If  we  cannot  make  the  public  schools  such  as  we  would 
wish,  we  can  at  least  help  to  prevent  their  becoming  alto- 
gether such  as  they  ought  not  to  be.  This  is  not  only  a 
right,  but  a  duty  that  we  owe  both  to  ourselves  and  to  the 
common  good. 

That  the  public  high  schools  do  not  prepare  thoroughly 
and  efficiently  for  the  work  of  the  college,  has  long  been 
generally  recognized  by  college  men  throughout  the  coun- 
try. That  they  do  not  thoroughly  and  efficiently  prepare 
even  the  great  bulk  of  their  pupils,  who  do  not  go  on  to 
college,  for  the  responsibilities  of  the  citizenship  that  is  of 
right  expected  of  them  and  for  their  place  and  work  in 
life,  is  a  conclusion  that  is  fast  fixing  itself  as  a  certainty 
in  the  minds  of  most  thinking  men.  Dr.  Henry  S. 
Pritchett,  President  of  the  Carnegie  Foundation  for  the 
Advancement  of  Teaching,  devotes  a  large  share  of  his 
latest  report  to  a  consideration  of  the  work  of  the  Amer- 
ican public  high  school;  ^and  whatever  may  be  one's 
opinion  of  the  Carnegie  Foundation,  there  can  be  little 
question,  I  think,  of  the  value  of  his  discussion  of  the  rela- 
tions of  colleges  and  secondary  schools,  a  discussion  that 
has  been  characterized  by  the  Educational  Review  as  *^the 
most  comprehensive  and  sanest  statement  of  the  causes 
that  have  contributed  to  bring  about  the  present  unsatis- 
factory conditions  that  largely  prevail. '  '^  In  our  haste  to 
enrich  the  curriculum  of  the  secondary  school.  Dr.  Pritch- 
ett says,  '^We  have  to  some  extent  lost  our  ideal  of  what 
education  means.  To  learn  a  little  about  many  subjects, 
to  dip  superficially  into  the  study  of  English  and  Latin 
and  chemistry  and  psychology  and  home  economics,  and 
a  dozen  other  things,  is  not  education.  Only  that  human 
being  has  gained  the  fundamentals  of  an  education  who 

*Fifth  Ann.  Rep.  of  the  Carnegie  Foundation  for  the  Advancement  of 
Teaching. 
'April,  1911,  p.  422. 


624  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

has  acquired  soundly  a  few  elementary  branches  of  human 
knowledge,  and  who,  in  acquiring  these,  has  so  disci- 
plined his  mind  that  it  is  an  efficient  instrument  ready  to 
be  turned  to  whatsoever  task  is  set  before  it.  The  high 
school  student  is  led  to  believe  that  education  is  attained 
by  learning  a  little  of  each  of  many  things;  he  gains, 
therefore,  a  superficial  knowledge  of  many  subjects  and 
learns  none  with  thoroughness.  He  lacks  the  hard  fibre 
of  intellectual  discipline.  Such  a  youth  has  not  been 
educated.  That  only  is  education  which  sets  a  boy  on  the 
way  to  use  his  own  mind  for  his  pleasure  and  his  profit ; 
which  enables  him  to  attack  a  problem,  whether  it  be  in 
school  or  in  business,  and  to  think  out  the  right  answer. 
Education,  rightly  understood,  is  a  power-producing 
process ;  and  the  serious  indictment  against  the  secondary 
school  system  today  is  that  its  graduates  do  not  acquire 
either  discipline  or  power.  The  real  struggle  in  the  Amer- 
ican high  school  is  between  that  influence  which  makes 
toward  thoroughness  and  that  which  makes  toward  super- 
ficiality; and  if  the  high  school  is  to  become  the  true 
training  place  of  the  people,  the  ideal  of  thoroughness 
must  supplant  the  ideal  of  superficiality. ' '  Dr.  Pritchett 
concludes  that  the  high  school  breaks  down  in  both  its 
functions  and  for  the  same  reasons.  ^'The  boy  who 
desires  to  enter  college  and  the  boy  who  desires  to  enter 
business  alike  need  to  be  well  grounded  in  fundamental 
studies  and  to  gain  a  real  mastery  of  a  few  things.  It 
appears  equally  clear  that  the  educational  ideal  which 
makes  for  a  simple  and  thorough  curriculum  for  the  indi- 
vidual serves  equally  well  the  boy  who  looks  toward 
college  and  the  boy  who  goes  directly  from  the  high 
school  into  a  vocation. ' ' 

Here,  then,  is  our  opportunity.  Here  is  the  work  for 
our  rising  secondary  schools — to  do  that  which  the  public 
high  schools  have  been  founded  to  do,  and  have  to  such 
a  large  extent  failed  to  accomplish.    So  far  from  bewail- 


Eeport  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools      625 

ing  our  poverty  or  our  inability  to  rival  the  large  public 
high  schools,  with  their  extensive  and  expensive  equip- 
ment and  numerous  teaching  staff,  we  might  not  unrea- 
sonably feel  that  our  poverty  is  our  security.  The  Cath- 
olic high  school  does  not  need  much  in  the  way  of  material 
equipment.  It  does  not  need  a  large  teaching  staff.  It 
demands,  first  of  all  and  above  all  else,  competent,  earnest, 
and  enthusiastic  teachers.  A  staff  of  from  four  to  seven 
such  teachers  is  amply  sufficient  for  all  but  the  largest 
schools.  It  ought  to  have  a  business  or  commercial  course, 
as  well  as  the  academic  course.  It  should  aim — to  use  the 
words  of  Dr.  Pritchett — at  teaching  only  a  few  subjects, 
and  at  teaching  them  well.  There  can  be  little  if  any 
difference  of  opinion  as  to  what  these  subjects  ought  to 
be,  once  we  are  agreed  that  they  are  to  be  few  and  that 
they  are  to  be  fundamental.  Latin,  English,  history, 
mathematics,  modem  languages,  elementary  science  will 
form  a  simple  but  substantial  curriculum.  The  first  two 
will  be  taught  for  four  years  each,  the  next  three  for  from 
two  to  three  years  each,  while  from  one  to  two  years  will 
be  given  to  the  elementary  sciences.  The  Catholic  high 
school  should  also,  wherever  possible,  embody  in  the  cur- 
riculum the  study  of  Greek ;  and  this  will  be  easily  possi- 
ble, m  many  cases,  through  the  cooperation  of  the  parish 
clergy.  For  the  boy  who  is  going  on  to  college  or  to  a 
semiuary,  the  study  of  Greek  for  two  or  three  or  even  four 
years  is  eminently  desirable.  It  will  frequently  be  much 
easier  for  the  Catholic  high  school  to  provide  courses 
in  Greek  than  courses  in  the  modem  languages  or  in 
science;  and,  for  the  boy  who  is  looking  forward  to  a 
college  or  seminary  course,  Greek  will  be  far  more  profit- 
able than  either  modem  languages  or  science. 

CONCLUSION 

The  data  that  have  been  gathered  by  the  committee 
show  that  the  Catholic  high  school  has  fairly  won  for 
itself  a  right  to  be  considered  as  an  important  factor  in 


626  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

the  general  Catholic  educational  scheme.  It  has  come  to 
stay,  springing  as  it  does  from  the  actual  necessities  of 
the  situation.  It  will  be  the  part  of  wisdom  so  to  foster 
its  growth  and  shape  its  development  that  it  may  fit  in  with 
the  parish  schools  on  the  one  side  and  with  the  colleges  on 
the  other.  There  is  a  duty  here  as  well  as  an  opportu- 
nity for  the  diocesan  authorities  and  for  the  heads  of  our 
colleges.  It  will  require  the  exercise  of  the  supreme 
authority  in  the  diocese  to  fix  the  place  of  the  high  school 
in  its  relations  to  the  parish  schools.  The  sympathy  and 
cooperation  of  college  men  are  indispensable  to  bring  the 
high  school  into  harmonious  and  healthful  relations  with 
the  college.  Firmly  established  as  an  organic  part  of  our 
educational  structure,  and  rightly  adjusted  to  the  other 
parts,  the  Catholic  high  school  will  usher  in  a  new  era 
in  the  development  of  Catholic  education  in  the  United 
States.  It  will  keep  our  children  longer  at  school,  and 
swell  the  number  of  those  aspiring  to  a  higher  education. 
It  will  quicken  the  interest  of  both  pupils  and  people  in 
the  parish  schools,  by  strengthening  and  consolidating 
their  work.  It  will  foster  vocations  for  both  the  semina- 
ries and  the  religious  orders.  It  will,  in  a  word,  complete 
and  round  out  our  whole  vast  scheme  of  education,  and 
be  the  final  step  towards  the  full  attainment  of  that  ideal 
which  has  been  cherished  from  the  beginning  and  which 
has  become  part  of  the  heritage  of  our  holy  faith  itself — 
the  providing  of  a  thorough  education  for  every  Catholic 
child,  under  Catholic  auspices,  from  the  most  primary 
class  work  up  to  and  through  the  university. 

James  A.  Burns,  C.  S.  C, 

ChairmoM,     . 


THE  SISTERS  OF  THE  HOLY  CROSS 

As  France  led  Europe  in  intellectual  development  dur- 
ing tlie  eighteenth  century,  so  she  led  the  world  in  the 
development  and  perfecting  of  the  apostolic  or  mission- 
ary spirit  in  the  nineteenth.  And  if  to  her  leadership  in 
the  first,  we  ascribe  the  French  Revolution  and  all  that 
it  stands  for,  to  the  second  is  due  in  large  measure  the 
possibility  of  religious  education  in  our  country  today. 
We  are  so  apt  to  attribute  to  the  French  Revolution  the 
disaster  and  ruin  of  the  Reign  of  Terror,  the  violence  of 
the  frenzied  mob,  and  other  destructive  forces  that  fol- 
lowed in  its  wake,  that  we  fail  to  see  the  constructive 
forces  and  the  permanent  good  which  grew  out  of  them. 
Whether  the  present  republics  and  constitutional  monar- 
cies  of  Continental  Europe — one  of  the  outgrowths — are 
an  improvement  upon  the  Ancien  regime,  we  leave  for 
historians  and  writers  on  economics  to  decide.  But  there 
can  be  no  doubt  in  the  mind  of  the  student  of  church  his- 
tory that  the  Kingdom  of  Christ  was  extended,  its  ram- 
parts strengthened,  its  standard — the  Cross — raised  in 
triumph  during  this  period. 

For  out  of  those  dark  days  of  French  upheaval  shines 
the  light  of  faith  in  the  lives  of  heroic  men  and  saintly 
women  who  felt  their  country  ^s  crying  need — the  educa- 
tion of  ,its  youth  and  its  character-formation  on  true 
religious  principles.  Hence  the  saintly  Dujarie,  the  apos- 
tolic Morean,  the  venerated  Sophie  Barat,  the  blessed  Julie 
Billiart  (to  mention  only  a  few)  and  their  spiritual  chil- 
dren— the  institutes  and  congregations  of  men  and 
women  founded  in  those  trying  days,  and  since  approved 
by  the  Holy  See  to  carry  on  the  work  of  Christian  edu- 
cation. 

To  measure  their  influence  upon  the  religious  and  men- 
tal life  of  our  own  times  and  in  our  own  country,  we  need 


628  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

only  glance  at  the  pages  of  the  Catholic  directory. 
Therein  we  shall  find  an  almost  unbroken  chain  of 
schools  running  through  our  great  cities  and  larger 
towns,  through  our  villages  and  suburbs,  from  ocean  to 
ocean,  from  the  lakes  to  the  gulf.  These  homes  of  prayer 
and  learning — colleges,  academies  and  primary  schools — 
are  the  fruitful  heritage  of  those  French  apostles  and 
founders,  bequeathed  to  us  through  their  followers — the 
Ladies  of  the  Sacred  Heart,  the  Sisters  of  Notre  Dame 
de  Namur,  the  Sisters  of  Providence,  the  Sisters  of  the 
Holy  Cross  and  scores  of  others. 

Although  the  Congregation  of  the  Holy  Cross  is  a  gen- 
eration removed  from  the  Revolution,  it  is  closely  linked 
with  those  days  through  the  Reverend  Jacques-Frangois 
Dujarie,  the  founder  of  the  Brothers  of  St.  Joseph,  a 
teaching  body  later  incorporated  in  the  Society  of  Auxil- 
iary Priests  formed  by  the  Very  Reverend  Basile-Antoine 
Moreau  to  preach  retreats  and  missions.  Abbe  Moreau 
(born  11  February,  1791;  died  20  January,  1873)  was 
Canon  of  the  Cathedral  at  Le  Mans  and  professor  of 
divinity  in  the  Grand  Seminnaire.  He  was  an  eloquent 
speaker  and  was  so  successful  in  giving  retreats  that  his 
services  were  in  constant  demand.  With  the  sanction  of 
his  bishop,  he  banded  his  fellow-professors  together  for 
the  same  laudable  work,  and  they  led  a  regular  commu- 
nity life  for  more  than  a  year  in  the  Seminary.  The  union 
of  these  clerics  and  the  Brothers  of  St.  Joseph,  approved 
by  Mgr.  Bouvier,  formed  the  nucleus  of  the  ^*  Association 
of  the  Holy  Cross''  to  which  in  time  the  saintly  founder 
added  a  third  branch:  the  *' Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross,''  to 
co-operate  with  other  branches  in  their  pious  labors,  and 
to  labor  themselves  in  a  particular  manner  for  the  benefit 
of  the  youth  of  their  own  sex. 

Leocadie  Gascoin  (born  1  March,  1818:  died  29  Jan- 
uary, 1900)  shared  with  the  illustrious  Moreau  the  work 
of  founding  the  Sisterhood.    At  his  hands,  September  29, 


The  Sistees  of  the  Holy  Cross  629 

1841,  she  with  three  companions  received  the  habit  of  the 
Congregation  of  the  Seven  Dolors  (as  it  was  then  called) 
in  the  Convent  of  the  Good  Shepherd  which  Abbe  Moreau 
had  also  founded  at  Le  Mans.  Here  they  entered  upon  the 
duties  of  the  novitiate  as  Sister  Mary  of  the  Seven 
Dolors,  Sister  Mary  of  the  Holy  Cross,  Sister  Mary  of 
the  Compassion,  and  Sister  Mary  of  Calvary — ^names  all 
breathing  tender  love  to  the  Mother  of  Sorrows  which 
ever  since  has  been  the  characteristic  devotion  of  the 
order.  They  were  formed  in  the  religious  life  by  the 
saintly  superior  of  the  convent.  Mother  Mary  of  St.  Doro- 
thea ;  and  a  year  later  they  made  their  profession  as  *^  Sis- 
ters of  the  Holy  Cross''  under  the  patronage  of  Our  Lady 
of  the  Seven  Dolors.  They  took  possession  of  their  new 
convent  at  Holy  Cross  where  the  Fathers  had  already 
established  a  college.  Sister  Mary  of  the  Seven  Dolors 
(Leocadie  Gascoin)  became  the  first  superior  and  opened 
the  novitiate. 

Until  her  death  in  1900,  she  was  affectionately  spoken 
of  as  Mother  Seven  Dolors  even  by  those  who  claim  St. 
Mary's,  Notre  Dame,  instead  of  Le  Mans,  for  their  mother 
house.  In  1860,  as  Mother  General,  she  visited  the  founda- 
tions at  Notre  Dame,  Indiana. 

Abbe  Moreau  left  nothing  undone  to  perfect  his  three- 
fold community  which  he  hoped  would  be  a  great  power 
for  good  in  the  work  of  Christian  education.  His  instruc- 
tions breathe  a  truly  apostolic  spirit  which  he  demanded 
of  his  teachers — the  Sisters  as  well  as  the  Priests  and 
Brothers.  He  insisted  that  the  Congregation  should  be 
prepared  to  meet  the  demands  of  the  times  by  giving  to 
the  people  only  the  best  that  a  well-trained  educational 
body  could  offer.  These  lessons  soon  bore  fruit  and  the 
apostolic  spirit  was  carried  into  the  wilds  of  Indiana  by 
Eeverend  Edward  Sorin,  a  young  priest,  who,  inspired  by 
Bishop  Brute's  appeal  for  missionaries,  joined  Abbe 
Moreau 's  band  of  priests.    In  1841,  he  and  six  brothers 


630  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

raised  the  Holy  Cross  at  Notre  Dame — a  spot  made 
sacred  by  the  footsteps  of  the  proto-priest,  Stephan 
Badin. 

Scarcely  a  year  passed  before  Father  Sorin  was  urging 
upon  Father  Moreau,  the  Superior  General,  the  necessity 
of  sending  Sisters  to  Indiana  to  help  in  the  educational 
work.  On  June  6, 1843,  the  first  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross 
left  France  for  this  country.  They  were  Sister  Mary  of 
the  Sacred  Heart,  Sister  Mary  of  Calvary,  Sister  Mary 
of  Bethlehem  and  Sister  Mary  of  Nazareth.  A  second 
story  was  added  to  the  log  chapel  at  Notre  Dame  to 
accommodate  the  Sisters.  In  the  following  November, 
Sister  Mary  of  Providence  arrived,  and  to  these  five 
brave  women,  whose  very  names  are  suggestive  of  suf- 
fering and  strength,  we  owe  the  foundation,  if  not  the 
upbuilding,  of  the  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross  in  America. 

This  little  colony  was  destined  to  grow.  New  subjects 
presented  themselves  to  join  the  ranks  of  Holy  Cross, 
but  the  mother  house  and  its  training  school  were  thou- 
sands of  miles  away.  Travel  was  tedious  and  expensive. 
Father  Sorin,  seeing  that  there  could  be  no  lasting  founda- 
tion until  there  was  an  American  novitiate,  consulted  the 
Bishop  of  Vincennes,  Mgr.  de  La  Hailandiere,  with  the 
hope  of  being  permitted  to  open  one  at  Notre  Dame.  This 
the  Bishop  refused,  fearing  it  would  conflict  with  the 
work  already  begun  in  the  diocese  by  the  Sisters  of  Provi- 
dence who  had  left  France  at  his  invitation  and  were  mak- 
ing as  heroic  a  struggle  at  Sainte  Marie  des  Bois  as  the 
Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross  were  at  Sainte  Marie  des  Lacs. 
Even  the  most  sanguine  might  fail  to  foresee  the  phe- 
nomenal growth  of  two  communities  in  one  diocese — espe- 
cially when  the  diocese  was  an  almost  trackless  wilder- 
ness. Undaunted  by  his  failure,  Father  Sorin  turned  his 
iattention  to  Bertrand,  Michigan,  a  mission  attended  by 
the  Holy  Cross  priests  and  under  the  jurisdiction  of  the 
Bishop  of  Detroit.     Permission  being  granted.   Sister 


The  Sisters  op  the  Holy  Cross  631 

Sacred  Heart,  with  four  postulants  who  had  been 
sent  by  Father  St.  Palais  from  Chicago,  opened  the  first 
novitiate,  July  16, 1844,  in  a  rented  house.  The  Bishop  of 
Vincennes  objected  to  even  this  expedient  and  caused 
Bishop  Lefevre  to  withdraw  his  permission.  By  the 
timely  interference  of  Bishop  (afterward  Archbishop) 
Purcell  of  Cincinnati,  who  happened  to  be  present  dur- 
ing the  second  conference  between  Bishop  Lefevre  and 
Father  Sorin,  the  prohibition  was  removed  and  the  work 
of  the  novitiate  continued. 

On  September  8,  the  first  American  candidates  received 
the  habit  from  Father  Sorin  in  the  village  church.  These 
were  Sister  Nativity,  Sister  Holy  Cross  and  Sister  Mt. 
Carmel.  Shortly  after,  another  band  of  Sisters  arrived 
from  France.  On  December  8,  the  habit  was  again  given, 
and  the  final  vows  were  made  by  those  who  had  entered 
the  order  in  France  and  finished  their  probation  at  Notre 
Dame.  Thus  Bertrand  became  the  seat  of  the  Mother 
House — a  rented  cottage  containing  five  rooms. 

The  following  year,  1845,  a  donation  of  five  thousand 
francs  from  the  Society  of  the  Propagation  of  the  Faith, 
in  addition  to  a  large  tract  of  land  (seventy-seven  acres) 
from  their  neighbors  in  Bertrand,  enabled  the  Sisters  to 
carry  out  their  original  plans  of  opening  a  boarding 
school.  A  new  building,  ^  ^  Our  Lady  of  the  Seven  Dolors, '  ^ 
was  ready  for  occupancy  in  1846.  The  community  chapel 
was  the  log  church  built  by  Father  Badin  and  sanctified 
by  the  Holy  Sacrifice  which  he  had  offered  so  often  within 
its  humble  walls. 

This  was  the  formative  period  in  the  young  commu- 
nity. Classes  were  conducted  by  the  priests  and  profes- 
sors from  Notre  Dame  College;  the  more  competent 
among  the  Sisters  were  preparing  the  younger  teachers 
for  their  life  work;  the  French  were  mastering  the  Eng- 
lish language;  the  American  novices  were  studying  the 
dialect  of  the  Potto wattomies  whom  they  were  determined 


632  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

to  teach;  those  showing  decided  talent  for  music  and 
painting,  perfected  themselves  in  these  arts  at  Loretto 
Convent,  Kentucky;  still  others,  whose  aptitude  for  the 
work  was  marked,  went  to  France  to  study  the  latest 
and  best  methods  of  instructing  deaf  mutes.  This  spirit 
of  study  still  lives  in  the  community  and  every  year  hun- 
dreds of  members  from  all  parts  of  the  United  States 
attend  the  summer  school  at  St.  Mary's. 

In  1845,  the  first  Indian  school  was  opened  at  Pokagon, 
Michigan.  This  was  followed  by  foundations  at  St. 
John's,  Mackinac,  Louisville,  Lowell,  Laporte,  Michigan 
City  aT.d  Mishawaka.  Of  these  only  Laporte  and  Lowell 
(Eafeft  South  Bend)  continue  to  the  present  day.  It  was 
not  the  want  of  the  bare  necessities  of  life  which  the  Sis- 
ters often  felt  that  led  to  the  abandoning  of  these  mis- 
sions, nor  even  the  hostility  of  the  Know  Nothing  party 
which  prevented  pupils  from  attending  the  schools  in 
Miskawaka,  but  the  lack  of  everything  spiritual.  Owing 
to  the  scarcity  of  priests,  the  Sisters  were  deprived  of 
mass  and  the  sacraments  for  weeks  at  a  time. 

In  1847,  four  sisters  from  Bertrand  with  others  from 
Le  Mans  opened  a  convent  at  St.  Laurent,  Canada.  Two 
years  later  a  foundation  was  made  in  New  Orleans,  and 
from  there  in  1854  houses  were  opened  in  Chicago  and 
Philadelphia.  In  the  former  city  they  taught  the  Cathedral 
School,  St.  Joseph's  German  School  and  the  Industrial 
School.  In  1856,  at  Bishop  Neuman's  request,  they  opened 
an  industrial  school  in  Philadelphia  and  they  were  soon 
after  given  charge  of  St.  Paul's  and  St.  Augustine's 
schools.  A  select  school  for  boarders  and  day  scholars  in 
West  Philadelphia  was  the  next  venture.  Just  as  this 
material  growth  was  pointing  to  success,  the  misunder- 
standing between  the  General  Chapter  at  Le  Mans  and 
the  Provincial  Chapter  at  Notre  Dame  caused  the  Sisters 
to  withdraw  from  these  cities  in  1862. 


The  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross  633 

In  the  meantime  the  humble  beginners  at  Bertrand  had 
won  recognition ;  the  teachers  were  gaining  a  reputation ; 
the  school  was  overcrowded ;  and  the  legislature  of  Mich- 
igan granted  its  charter  in  1851.  Two  years  previous 
Mother  Mary  du  Sauveur,  a  woman  of  rare  ability  and 
exceptional  education,  was  brought  from  St.  Laurent, 
Canada,  to  assume  charge  at  Bertrand.  Her  influence  was 
felt  at  once  in  the  school  work.  A  new  building  was 
erected  and  the  name,  ^'St.  Mary's  Academy,''  adopted. 

This  leads  us  to  the  most  interesting  character  in  the 
annals  of  Holy  Cross — Mother  Angela — whose  person- 
ality dominated  the  community  for  thirty-five  years; 
whose  memory  is  its  richest  inheritance;  whose  culture 
and  charm  won  all  who  came  in  contact  with  her ;  whose 
brilliant  mind  and  literary  achievements  added  lustre  to 
her  order;  and  whose  farsightedness  and  rare  discern- 
ment made  possible  the  great  successes  of  later  years. 

Eliza  Maria  Gillespie  was  -born  at  ^'Indian  Hill," 
Washington  County,  Pennsylvania,  February  21,  1824. 
Later  the  family  moved  to  Lancaster,  Ohio,  and  Eliza's 
early  training  was  received  from  the  Dominican  Sisters 
at  Somerset.  She  completed  her  education  in  the  Visita- 
tion Convent,  Georgetown.  Her  heart  ever  yearned  for 
the  quiet  of  the  cloister,  even  when  she  was  forced  by 
circumstances  and  by  the  social  position  of  her  family 
to  take  part  in  the  life  around  her.  She  was  a  Dominican 
Tertiary  and  lived  up  to  her  obligations  as  such.  She  was 
deeply  interested  in  all  charitable  works;  taught  poor 
children;  helped  every  cause  with  her  needle  or  pen — 
sewing  for  the  destitute  in  the  city 's  institutions,  or  writ- 
ing articles  for  publication  and  turning  over  the  earnings 
of  her  pen  to  the  hungry. 

Such  was  Eliza  Gillespie.  So  it  is  not  to  be  wondered 
at  that  she  decided  to  leave  the  world  and  become  a  Sister 
of  Mercy  in  Chicago.  She  left  Lancaster  with  her  mother 
and  stopped  at  Notre  Dame  to  see  her  brother  (Rev.  Neal 


634  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

Gillespie,  C.  S.  C.)  who  was  preparing  to  become  a  priest 
of  the  Holy  Cross. 

Father  Sorin  was  introduced  to  the  relatives  of  the 
young  seminarian  and  with  his  wonderful  discernment  of 
souls,  he  felt  that  the  future  of  Miss  Gillespie  was  bound 
up  in  the  struggling  community  of  which  he  was  Superior 
in  America.  After  a  few  days  spent  in  retreat  at  the  con- 
vent in  Bertrand,  she  decided  to  cast  in  her  lot  with  the 
Sisters  whose  hidden  strivings  she  had  seen,  whose  pov- 
erty she  admired,  whose  hardships  made  their  daily  life 
truly  the  ^^Way  of  the  Cross.  ^' 

On  the  feast  of  the  Patronage  of  St.  Joseph,  1853,  Eliza 
Gillespie  received  the  habit  and  immediately  after  sailed 
for  France  accompanied  by  Sister  Emily.  Sister  Angela, 
as  she  was  now  known,  made  her  novitiate  under  the  per- 
sonal directions  of  the  founder  and  Superior  General, 
Father  Moreau.  This  was  indeed  a  privilege  and  one 
that  has  a  double  significance  for  the  Sisters  of  the  Holy 
Cross  in  this  country  who  look  upon  Mother  Angela  as 
their  foundress.  She  made  her  religious  profession  at 
the  close  of  her  novitiate  and  shortly  after  returned  to  St. 
Mary^s,  Bertrand,  as  directress  of  the  academy.  From 
that  time  until  her  death  in  1887,  her  name  is  synonymous 
with  all  that  is  biggest  and  best  in  the  educational  world 
at  large  as  well  as  in  the  intellectual  and  the  religious  life 
of  the  teachers  and  pupils  entrusted  to  her  care. 

Of  Mother  Angela  it  may  be  truly  said  that  she  was 
part  of  all  she  had  met.  She  met  the  highest  and  absorbed 
the  best.  All  this  she  gave  out  most  generously  to  others. 
What  a  delight  it  was  to  sit  at  her  feet  and  learn  wisdom ; 
to  get  her  clear  insight  into  a  mystery  of  faith  or  a  diffi- 
cult problem  in  science;  to  hear  her  read  and  explain  an 
obscure  passage  in  French  or  English ;  to  seek  her  advice 
in  dealings  with  a  refractory  child.  In  these  and  a  hun- 
dred other  ways.  Mother  Angela  was  all  in  all  to  her  teach- 
ers— she  was  their  mother !    Nor  did  this  beautiful  spirit 


The  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross  635 

die  with  her.  It  has  lived  in  her  successors,  particularly 
in  the  late  Mother  Annunciata,  who,  from  her  earliest 
years  in  religion,  endeared  herself  to  all — sisters  and 
pupils — ^by  her  wonderful  gifts  of  heart  and  mind. 

Through  the  generosity  of  Mr.  William  Phelan,  Mother 
Angela's  stepfather,  the  sisters  were  enabled  in  1855  to 
take  possession  of  the  Rush  property  on  the  St.  Joseph 
river — the  site  of  the  present  Mother  House.  All  opposi- 
tion to  the  foundation  of  a  novitiate  in  Indiana  having 
been  removed,  it  was  decided  to  leave  Bertrand  and  estab- 
lish ^^St.  Mary's  of  the  Immaculate  Conception."  In 
August  of  the  same  year,  twenty-five  Sisters  moved  from 
the  old  St.  Mary's  to  the  new  and  there  took  up  the  work 
which  obedience  assigned  in  Convent  or  Academy,  in  the 
School  of  Industrial  Arts  or  the  School  for  Deaf  Mutes. 
Five  of  the  twenty-five  are  still  on  active  duty  there  and 
keep  alive  the  sacred  traditions  of  those  early  days. 

St.  Mary's  was  chartered  February  28,  1855,  under  an 
act  of  the  General  Assembly  of  the  State  of  Indiana  and 
was  empowered  *Ho  confer  such  degrees  as  are  used  in 
academies  of  the  highest  standing."  Having  secured 
recognition  for  the  school  in  the  field  of  letters  and 
science.  Mother  Angela  turned  her  attentions  to  music 
and  art.  Mrs.  Redman  and  her  daughter.  Sister  Eliza- 
beth, members  of  a  family  noted  in  England  for  their 
musical  ability,  had  laid  the  foundation  for  the  present 
Conservatory  of  Music  by  their  high  grade  of  work  even 
in  Bertrand.  For  more  than  forty  years  Sister  Elizabeth 
continued  to  direct  this  department ;  her  pupils  won  glory 
at  home  and  abroad,  playing  before  distinguished  audi- 
ences— even  before  Franz  Liszt ! 

Eliza  Allen  Starr  trained  the  novices  in  art.  Later 
Signor  Gregori,  a  noted  painter  of  Rome,  directed  their 
classes.  Mother  Angela  visited  the  art  galleries  of  Europe 
and  brought  back  ideas  for  her  own  studio.    She  was  a 


636  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

member  of  the  Armidel  Society  of  London  and  thus  se- 
cured, year  by  year,  copies  of  the  world's  masterpieces. 

All  things  seemed  now  to  point  to  the  steady  growth  of 
the  institution  and  to  the  quiet  that  such  growth  demands. 
In  1857  the  founder  visited  his  religious  family  in  Canada 
and  the  United  States  for  the  first  time,  and,  in  accord- 
ance with  the  decision  of  Rome,  he  promulgated  the 
decree  of  separation  in  temporal  affairs  between  the  Sis- 
ters and  the  other  branches  of  Holy  Cross.  Up  to  this 
time  the  property  of  the  whole  Congregation  was  held  in 
common.  In  1862  the  division  was  finally  made,  the  Sis- 
ters taking  one-third  of  the  assets  and  liabilities  of  the 
community. 

The  relations  between  the  Provincial  House  at  Notre 
Dame  and  the  Mother  House  at  Le  Mans  became  strained, 
as  mentioned  above.  This  was  due  principally  to  the 
point  of  view  taken  by  the  French  authorities  in  matters 
purely  local,  viz,  the  reception  and  profession  of  new  sub- 
jects in  the  American  provinces;  the  appointment  of 
officers,  and  such  problems  as  could  be  handled  more 
quickly  and  with  more  satisfaction  to  those  immediately 
concerned  by  the  Superiors  at  Notre  Dame  and  St. 
Mary's.  The  loss  of  the  promising  schools  in  Chicago, 
Philadelphia  and  West  Philadelphia  at  this  time,  made 
the  Bishop  of  Fort  Wayne  take  measures  to  prevent  a 
similar  one  in  future.  He  petitioned  Rome  in  the  name 
of  the  Sisters  to  recognize  the  American  community  as 
an  independent  order.  Archbishop  Purcell  seconded  the 
petition  and  the  proposed  new  Constitutions  were  for- 
warded for  approval.  In  1869,  seven  years  after,  the 
Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross  in  the  United  States  became  a 
distinct  congregation  with  the  Mother  House  at  St. 
Mary's.  The  Sisters  were  given  their  choice  to  affiliate 
with  either  branch.  The  foundations  made  direct  from 
France  (those  in  Canada,  New  Orleans  and  New  York) 


The  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross  637 

naturally  remained  united  to  Le  Mans.  Those  founded 
from  St.  Mary's  were  loyal  to  the  new  Mother  House. 

Meanwhile  (1866)  Abbe  Moreau  had  resigned  as  Supe- 
rior General,  and  Father  Sorin,  who  was  elected  to  suc- 
ceed him,  was  named  by  Eome  the  ecclesiastical  superior 
of  the  Sisters,  which  office  he  held  until  the  community 
was  placed  directly  under  the  Propaganda.  The  Constitu- 
tions having  been  approved  he  was  appointed  to  rewrite 
the  rules  to  agree  with  them.  In  essentials,  these  rules 
are  the  same  as  those  learned  and  loved  for  the  quarter  of 
a  century  previous.  They  provide  for  a  Superior  General 
who  visits  all  the  houses  regularly.  She,  with  the  mem- 
bers of  the  council,  decides  all  important  questions, 
admits  subjects  to  the  novitiate  and  to  profession, 
appoints  the  local  superiors,  assigns  the  Sisters,  employ- 
ments, etc.  The  community  is  consecrated  to  Our  Lady 
of  Seven  Dolors  and  ^4ts  special  end  is  the  Christian 
education  of  young  girls. '* 

The  very  first  rule  teaches  that  ^'the  chief  aim  of  the 
members  is  to  study  the  glorious  standard  after  which  the 
Congregation  is  named  and  to  become  living  copies  of  the 
Divine  Mother  who  stood  by  it  at  Calvary. ' ' 

The  Sisters  are  urged  to  cultivate  the  virtues  of  the 
religious  life,  especially  humility,  charity,  obedience  and 
devotion  to  duty.  The  spiritual  helps  given  for  their 
advancement  in  perfection  are,  meditation,  mass,  exam- 
ination of  conscience  twice  a  day,  the  visit  in  common  to 
the  Blessed  Sacrament,  spiritual  reading,  the  rosary,  the 
Chaplet  of  the  Seven  Dolors,  the  Little  Office  of  the 
Blessed  Virgin,  a  day  of  retreat  every  first  Sunday, 
weekly  confession  and  frequent  Communion.  As  becomes 
followers  of  the  Cross,  there  is  no  distinction  in  dress  or 
condition,  in  rank  or  title;  all  meet  on  terms  of  perfect 
equality. 

These  Constitutions  and  rules  were  approved  in  1889 
for  a  period  of  seven  years  at  the  end  of  which  time  the 


63:  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

decree  of  approbation  was  granted  to  the  Institute,  and 
its  Constitutions  approved  in  perpetuum. 

The  clouds  that  hung  over  our  country  in  1861  caused 
many  parents,  especially  those  in  the  South,  to  send  their 
daughters  to  boarding  schools.  St.  Mary's  was  soon 
taxed  to  its  utmost  capacity,  and  in  1862  the  first  of  the 
present  group  of  buildings  was  erected.  This  marks  the 
beginning  of  the  brick  and  stone  age  as  all  previous  struc- 
ture^ were  frame.  During  the  next  decade  or  two,  follow 
in  rapid  succession  the  music  hall,  Lourdes  hall,  kitchen, 
laundry,  dairy,  west  wing  and  convent.  Later,  additions 
were  made  to  some  of  these  and  to  the  rectory;  a  new 
novitiate  was  planned ;  a  larger  steam  house  was  decided 
upon.  St.  Angela's  Hall,  a  well-equipped  gymnasium, 
was  the  next  venture,  followed  by  the  Sisters'  Infirmary, 
St.  Joseph's  hall  and  Collegiate  hall.  The  gem  of  the 
group  is  the  chapel  of  Our  Lady  of  Loreto,  a  church  in 
Eomanesque  style,  of  which  any  city  parish  might  justly 
be  proud. 

Besides  the  material  prosperity  which  the  Civil  War 
period  brought  to  the  Academy,  it  furnished  an  outlet  for 
a  new  line  of  activities — the  care  of  the  sick — which  has 
been  carried  down  to  the  present  day.  In  October,  1861, 
when  Governor  Morton  of  Indiana,  at  the  suggestion  of 
General  Lew  Wallace  (a  life-long  friend  of  the  com- 
munity) asked  for  Sisters  to  go  to  the  front  to  take  care 
of  the  sick  and  wounded  soldiers,  Mother  Angela,  with 
five  companions,  started  at  once  for  Paducah,  Kentucky. 
The  next  few  days  saw  others  hastening  south,  and 
before  peace  was  restored  to  the  land  eighty  Sisters  of 
Holy  Cross  had  exchanged  the  work  of  the  classroom  and 
cloister  for  the  stirring  scenes  and  grewsome  experiences 
of  war-hospitals.  Two  laid  down  their  lives  the  first  year, 
martyrs  to  duty,  and  the  ranks  are  gradually  thinning  out 
until  only  twelve  remain.  These  have  been  pensioned  by 
a  grateful  government  and  decorated  with  medals  of 


The  Sisteks  of  the  Holy  Cross  d39 

honor  by  the  Grand  Army  of  the  Eepnblic.  Archbishop 
Ireland  ,who  saw  active  service  as  chaplain  during  the 
war,  and  who  consequently  knows  the  work  done,  has 
said:  ^^The  soldiers  venerated  the  Sisters,  and  never 
since  have  they  ceased  repeating  their  praise.  There  were 
other  priests  and  other  Sisters  in  the  war;  those  of  the 
Holy  Cross  made  up  the  greater  part  of  the  roster;  none 
excelled  them  in  daring  feats  and  religious  fervor;  no 
other  order  made  for  the  purpose  sacrifices  as  dii  the 
Holy  Cross.'' 

This  story  was  repeated  in  the  Spanish- Americm  .  ar, 
but  instead  of  untrained  volunteers,  the  Sisters  who 
responded  to  this  call  were  trained  nurses  and  skilled 
druggists.  Before  the  Civil  War  the  community  confined 
itself  to  teaching.  After  the  war  they  continued  caring 
for  the  sick,  built  up-to-date  hospitals  and  opened  train- 
ing schools  for  nurses  in  connection  with  these. 

The  growth  along  educational  lines  has  been  steady  and 
satisfactory.  Many  openings  have  had  to  be  refused  on 
account  of  the  scarcity  of  vocations — ^the  cry  of  all  com- 
munities. There  are  one  thousand  Sisters  of  Holy  Cross 
working  in  the  archdioceses  of  Baltimore,  New  York, 
Chicago,  and  San  Francisco,  and  in  the  dioceses  of  Alton, 
Belleville,  Boise,  Columbus,  Dallas,  Davenport,  Fort 
Wayne,  Galveston,  Harrisburg,  Los  Angeles,  Peoria, 
Richmond,  Sacramento,  and  Salt  Lake.  They  conduct 
over  sixty  institutions  including  one  college,  two  normal 
schoolfe,  sixteen  boarding  schools,  forty  acadamies  and 
parish  schools,  seven  hospitals  and  four  orphanages. 

Since  the  opening  of  Collegiate  Hall  at  St.  Mary's,  in 
1904,  eighty  young  women  have  taken  their  degrees  and 
the  classes  show  a  marked  increase  in  numbers  and  effi- 
ciency every  year.  The  academies  offer  the  usual  four- 
year  high-school  course  with  the  alternative  of  a  two  or 
three  year  commercial  course.  Some  of  the  boarding 
academies  carry  the  pupils  two  years  beyond  the  high- 


640  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

school  work.  Where  the  teachers  are  engaged  in  parish 
schools  they  plan  their  classes  as  required  by  the  diocesan 
school  board.  In  all  schools  conducted  by  the  Holy  Cross 
Sisters,  the  first  half  hour  of  the  day  is  given  to  religious 
instruction  by  every  teacher  in  her  own  class.  Once  a 
week  general  instructions  in  Christian  Doctrine  are  given 
by  a  priest. 

The  Sisters  are  trained  during  their  novitiate  and 
scholastic  for  their  future  work  as  religious  and  as  teach- 
ers. The  Congregation  has  drawn  up  a  plan  of  study 
based  upon  the  best  principles  of  pedagogy.  The  Great 
Teacher  is  their  Model.  They  are  shown  His  method  of 
imparting  knowledge;  His  use  of  the  story  or  parable; 
His  object  lessons;  His  nature-studies. 

To  gain  strength  for  the  active  life  demanded  of  relig- 
ious teachers  in  these  days,  the  Sisters  depend  upon  the 
Heart  of  Jesus  in  the  Sacrament  of  His  love.  All  day  long 
from  sunrise  to  sunset,  there  are  '^Sisters  Adorers'* 
before  the  Blessed  Sacrament.  Two  and  two,  they  take 
their  places  every  hour  daily  before  the  altar.  At 
St.  Mary's,  in  every  house  of  the  Holy  Cross — the  weekly 
hour  of  adoration  is  made,  thus  insuring  perpetual  adora- 
tion. This  custom  dates  back  to  1854  when  nocturnal 
adoration  was  established.  The  Sisters  in  this  exercise 
pray,  not  for  individual  needs,  but  for  the  community,  that 
through  its  members  and  its  teachings  the  Kingdom  of 
God  may  be  spread  throughout  our  beautiful  land,  and 
the  little  ones  of  Christ  suffered  to  come  unto  Him 
through  Christian  education! 

This  is  perhaps  the  secret  of  whatever  little  success  has 
blessed  the  work  of  the  Sisters  of  Holy  Cross  in  the 
United  States  during  the  past  seven  decades. 

S.  M.  A. 


RETARDATION  AND  ELIMINATION  OF  PUPILS 
IN  OUR  SCHOOLS  ^ 

The  zealous  worker  in  the  educational  field  welcomes 
every  genuine  test  of  efficiency  which  can  be  applied  to 
our  schools  and  school  systems.  He  knows  how  inade- 
quate and  unsuitable  are  some  of  the  standards  by  which 
success  or  failure  of  the  elementary  schools  is  often  meas- 
ured. While  in  a  given  case,  through  deference  to  estab- 
lished criteria  of  judgment,  he  may  refer  to  such  indica- 
tions of  efficiency  as  excellent  equipment,  superior  quality 
of  instruction,  and  success  of  the  graduates,  he  realizes 
that  these  points  do  not  give  complete  assurance  of  the 
success  of  the  school.  He  is  inclined  to  feel  that  the  test 
implied  by  their  enumeration  is  more  appropriate  to  a 
higher  and  more  specialized  form  of  education  such  as  the 
college  or  university. 

The  elementary  school  with  its  definite  aim  to  provide 
instruction  in  the  rudiments  of  learning  should  be  pri- 
marily tested,  it  would  seem,  as  to  how  well  or  ill  it  fulfills 
its  mission  to  educate  the  majority  of  the  children  it 
receives.  Apart  from  such  important  questions  as  the 
quality  of  the  instruction  given  in  the  school,  the  character 
of  its  administration,  and  the  success  of  those  who  have 
completed  the  course,  this  significant  item  remains  to  be 
accounted  for,  viz.  what  percentage  of  the  pupils  have 
received  the  full  benefit  of  the  school?  Or  perhaps  the 
question  may  be  stated  more  clearly  in  this  way.  If  all 
other  elements  are  present  in  a  given  school  or  system 
such  as  are  implied  by  superior  equipment,  administra- 
tion, and  scholarship,  and  only  a  small  proportion  of  the 
pupils  receive  the  full  course,  while  the  majority  receive 


'Paper  read  at  the  Eighth  Annual  Meeting  of  the  CathoUc  Educational 
Association,  Chicago,  111.,  June  26-29,  1911. 


642  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

only  one-half  or  two-thirds  of  it,  the  school  is  in  that  pro- 
portion failing  in  its  mission  to  do  its  full  duty  to  all. 

The  study  of  all  the  processes  of  retardation  and  elimi- 
nation sets  about  to  determine  the  efficiency  of  the  school 
in  this  respect.  It  purposes  to  ascertain  the  number  of 
those  whom  the  elementary  school  has  educated  only  in 
part,  the  reasons  why  these  pupils  have  failed  to  enjoy 
the  entire  benefits  of  the  course,  and  to  propose  means 
for  a  more  satisfactory  fulfilment  of  the  mission  of  the 
school — to  give  an  elementary  education  to  all  the  chil- 
dren. That  interest  in  the  study  is  widespread,  and  that 
the  greatest  importance  is  attached  to  it,  is  evident  from 
the  number  of  publications  and  treatises  dealing  with  it, 
and  from  the  attention  commanded  by  it  in  the  reports 
of  school  superintendents  and  civil  authorities  throughout 
this  country.  In  a  bibliography  courteously  supplied  by 
the  National  Bureau  of  Education  at  Washington  for  the 
preparation  of  this  paper  are  found,  under  the  heading  of 
Backward  and  Retarded  Children,  references  to  fifty-two 
treatises  on  various  phases  of  the  subject,  and  in  another, 
under  Retardation  and  Elimination,  sixty-two  treatises, 
all  of  which  have  been  written  within  the  last  decade, 
since  1900. 

The  results  of  this  study  have  shown  that,  in  this  coun- 
try particularly,  the  public  schools  are  supplying  an  edu- 
cation not  to  all  of  the  children  they  receive,  but  to  about 
one-half  of  them,  that  while  all  are  compelled  by  law  to 
attend  school  and  the  course  prescribed  covers  a  period 
of  eight  years,  the  great  majority  of  pupils  attend  for  five 
or  six  years  and  do  not  complete  the  course.  According  to 
one  student  of  the  problem,  Mr.  Leonard  P.  Ayres,  author 
of  ^  ^  Laggards  in  Our  Schools, ' '  ten  per  cent  of  the  children 
leave  when  thirteen  years  of  age,  forty  per  cent  when 
fourteen,  fifty  per  cent  of  the  remainder  when  fifteen,  and 
fifty  per  cent  of  that  remainder  when  sixteen ;  or  in  speak- 
ing of  them  by  grades,  the  general  tendency  in  American 


Eetaedation  and  Elimination  of  Pupils        643 

school  systems  is  to  keep  all  of  the  cMldren  for  the  fifth 
grade,  to  drop  half  by  the  eighth,  and  to  carry  one  in  ten 
to  the  high  school.  It  is  found  that  conditions  vary 
greatly  in  different  parts  of  the  country,  and  that  retarda- 
tion and  elimination  are  not  known  in  certain  localities  to 
the  same  extent  as  in  others.  For  instance,  in  Qnincy, 
Mass.,  for  every  ten  beginners  in  the  elementary  school 
eight  reached  the  eighth  grade,  whereas  in  Camden,  N.  J., 
for  every  ten  beginners  only  two  completed  the  eighth 
grade.  The  various  studies,  however,  have  awakened  the 
educational  world  to  the  existence  of  a  most  serious 
problem,  and  have  been  fruitful  in  encouraging  further 
efforts  looking  towards  its  solution.  As  there  are  many 
important  phases  of  this  twofold  subject,  any  of  which 
could  profitably  occupy  our  entire  time,  we  shall  here  try 
to  see,  first,  the  application  of  the  subject  to  our  schools, 
second,  the  most  potent  factors  working  towards  retarda- 
tion and  elimination,  and  finally,  the  remedies  suggested 
to  overcome  them. 

Every  teacher  is  familiar  with  the  dull,  the  backward, 
the  defective,  and  the  retarded  children,  and  anxious  for 
suggestions  to  ameliorate  their  condition.  So  are  all 
teachers,  principals  and  pastors  conscious  of  the  great 
number  of  the  eliminated,  those  who  for  one  reason  or 
another  leave  school  before  reaching  the  last  grade. 
As  one  factor  affects  the  other  very  perceptibly — the 
retarded  being  among  the  most  ready  to  leave  school — 
and  as  both  are  an  index  of  the  efficiency  of  our  schools 
in  giving  an  elementary  education  to  our  children,  the 
causes  producing  them,  and  the  conditions  aggravating 
them  ought  to  be  our  first  concern,  that  knowing  them 
we  may  intelligently  combat  and  overcome  them.  For 
obvious  reasons  we  shall  confine  our  attention  to  the 
elementary  schools. 

The  retarded  we  accept  to  include  all  those  children 
who  are  behind  their  proper  or  normal  grades.  They  may 


644  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

have  begun  school  late,  or  have  failed  of  promotion;  at 
any  rate,  they  are  all  over  age  for  their  grades,  and  when 
they  reach  the  age  of  fourteen  have  not  completed  the 
entire  course.  Those  who  leave  before  finishing  the 
course  are  the  eliminated,  and  it  would  appear  from  the 
data  we  possess  for  our  Catholic  school  systems  that  both 
classes  of  children  are  with  us  to  an  alarming  extent. 

The  statistics  available  for  the  study  of  this  condition 
in  our  schools  are  very  meager.  Comparatively  few  of 
the  reports  of  the  diocesan  superintendents  and  school 
boards  are  made  public,  and  these  few  are  wanting  in  the 
most  essential  details  for  the  study  of  this  problem.  We 
are  not  criticizing  the  reports,  for  they  are  excellent  in 
many  and  most  respects,  and  are  of  the  greatest  utility 
to  the  dioceses  concerned  and  the  Catholic  system  gener- 
ally, and  we  could  scarcely  expect  that  they  would  incor- 
porate at  this  early  stage  in  the  study  of  a  new  problem 
the  details  which  are  deemed  necessary.  They  do,  how- 
ever, throw  light  on  the  situation,  and  although  those  at 
hand  for  the  preparation  of  this  paper  were  representa- 
tive of  the  eastern  portion  of  the  country,  perhaps  they 
can  be  said  to  picture  the  general  condition  of  our  schools. 

To  take  one  point  alone  on  which  some  of  the  diocesan 
reports  offer  information,  i.  e.,  the  distribution  of  children 
in  the  different  grades  of  a  diocesan  system.  We  cannot 
tell  from  this  either  the  number  retarded,  or  the  num- 
ber eliminated,  but  we  can  derive  some  idea  of  the  preva- 
lence and  extent  of  the  two  processes.  In  one  diocese 
there  are  over  62,000  children  enrolled  in  the  elementary 
schools;  37,000,  or  over  half  of  the  entire  enrollment  are 
contained  in  the  first  three  grades,  and  the  greatest  enroll- 
ment is  in  the  first  grade.  The  decrease  in  numbers  is 
very  marked  from  the  fourth  to  the  fifth  grade,  almost 
a  half,  and  from  the  sixth  to  the  seventh  the  falling  off  in 
numbers  is  one-half,  as  it  is  also  from  the  seventh  to  the 


Eetardation  and  Elimination  of  Pupils        645 

eighth  grade.  At  the  time  these  numbers  were  recorded 
there  were  ninety-two  per  cent  more  children  in  the  first 
than  in  the  highest  or  eighth  grade. 

In  another  diocese  very  similar  conditions  obtain. 
Sixty-three  per  cent  of  the  entire  number  of  children  in 
the  schools  are  in  the  first  three  grades,  and  the  largest 
number  for  any  grade  is  in  the  first.  Those  in  the  eighth 
grade  are  eight  per  cent  of  the  number  in  the  first  grade. 
The  falling  off  in  numbers  is  most  marked  from  the  sixth 
to  the  seventh  grade,  the  latter  containing  less  than  half 
as  many  as  the  former.  The  numbers,  however,  for  the 
seventh  and  eighth  grades  are  not  so  variant;  there  is  a 
decrease,  but  not  nearly  as  great  as  between  the  two  pre- 
vious grades.  These  statistics  have  been  compared  with 
those  of  two  other  dioceses  which  show  practically  the 
same  characteristics  in  the  distribution  of  children  by 
grades. 

Of  course  it  is  expected  that  the  greatest  number  of 
children  will  be  recorded  in  grade  one.  That  is  the  general 
condition  in  elementary  school  systems.  We  do  not  intend 
to  infer  by  making  these  comparisons  of  figures  that  since 
the  number  of  those  in  the  higher  grades  is  so  much 
smaller  than  those  in  the  lower,  retardation  or  elimination 
has  occurred  in  inverse  proportion,  or  caused  the  thinning 
out.  Owing  to  the  increase  in  population  there  are  more 
in  the  first  grade  now  than  there  were  eight  years  ago 
when  the  older  children  entered,  and  the  ranks  of  the 
latter  could  have  been  affected  by  death.  And  we  know 
also  that  those  in  grade  one  are  not  all  beginners,  some 
have  been  in  the  grade  previous  to  the  present  school 
year,  for  it  is  estimated  that  in  no  other  grade  is  there 
such  a  large  percentage  of  repeaters. 

The  figures  nevertheless,  in  addition  to  other  items  of 
information,  indicate  a  condition  of  vital  interest  for  the 
process  of  retardation.  The  swollen  numbers  in  the  pri- 
mary grades  may  be  partly  caused  by  retardation,  but 


646  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

they  certainlj  are  in  turn  a  means  of  promoting  the  evil. 
Indirectly  they  mean  overcrowding,  according  to  the 
reports  of  our  superintendents.  Were  they  supplemented 
with  details  as  to  the  ages  of  the  pupils  in  the  grades  and 
the  number  of  beginners  each  year,  the  calculation  of  the 
number  of  the  retarded  would  not  be  difficult.  The  estima- 
tion of  the  number  eliminated  and  the  determining  of 
their  relation  to  the  whole  number  of  pupils,  would  also 
be  rendered  possible.  From  the  present  condition  of  the 
statistics  it  does  not  seem  feasible  to  construct  even  the 
supposititious  cases  such  as  were  used  by  Mr.  Ayres  and 
Dr.  Thorndike  in  making  their  calculations  for  public 
schools.  Some  comfort  may  be  had  in  the  present  unfor- 
tunate situation,  however,  and  that  is  that  while  the 
supposititious  case  may  be  instructive,  and  may  often 
approach  the  actual,  ^^de  facto,''  it  shot  far  of  the  mark 
in  regard  to  some  city  systems  of  schools. 

Mr.  Frank  P.  Bachman,  Assistant  Superintendent  of 
Schools,  Cleveland,  Ohio,  in  the  Educational  Eeview, 
June,  1910,  supplies  the  facts  connected  with  those  two 
processes  for  the  schools  of  the  city  of  Cleveland,  and 
compares  them  with  the  calculations  of  Mr.  Ayres  and 
Dr.  Thorndike  for  the  same  city.  Mr.  Bachman  says: 
'*Both  Dr.  Thorndike  and  Mr.  Ayres  estimate  the  per  cent 
of  retention  or  of  elimination  in  any  given  system  through 
using  the  number  of  probable  beginners  as  the  basis  of 
determining  the  number  that  should  be  in  any  given  grade 
and  through  finding  what  per  cent  the  membership  of  a 
given  grade  is  of  the  number  of  probable  beginners.  To 
find  the  probable  number  of  beginners  in  any  system. 
Dr.  Thorndike  takes  the  average  of  the  membership  of  the 
first  three  grades.  To  be  sure  he  assumes  to  employ  an 
elaborate  system  of  correctives,  yet  the  above  is  the 
essence  of  his  method.  On  the  other  hand,  Mr.  Ayres 
finds  the  number  of  probable  beginners  in  a  given  system 
by  taking  the  *^  average  of  the  generations  of  the  ages 
seven  to  twelve  in  the  school  membership  of  the  system. ' ' 


Eetabdation  and  Elimination  of  Pupils        647 

'*If  determined  by  Dr.  Thorndike's  method,  the  num- 
ber of  beginners  in  the  elementary  schools  of  Cleveland 
for  1908-09  would  be  9,848;  and  if  estimated  by  Mr. 
Ayres's  method,  it  would  be  6,608;  whereas,  in  fact,  the 
number  of  beginners  was  8,504.  In  this  particular  case  it 
appears  that  Dr.  Thorndike's  method  gives  1,344  or  15.8 
per  cent  too  many,  while  Mr.  Ayres's  yields  1,896  or  22.3 
per  cent  too  few  beginners. 

^*When  the  per  cent  of  retention  in  the  eighth  grade  is 
determined,  in  the  case  of  Cleveland  for  1908-09  in  view 
of  Dr.  Thorndike's  method,  it  is  37.6  per  cent,  while  Mr. 
Ayres's  method  gives  the  per  cent  remaining  as  56; 
whereas  taking  the  actual  number  of  beginners  as  the 
basis  of  determining  the  degree  of  retention  would  indi- 
cate 5.9  per  cent  greater  holding  power  than  the  use  of 
Dr.  Thorndike's  method,  and  12.5  per  cent  less  than  Mr. 
Ayres's  method — difference  in  holding  power  not  insig- 
nificant in  judging  of  the  efficiency  of  a  school  system. '^ 

Mr.  Bachman  also  shows  that  in  regard  to  the  number 
of  retarded  there  is  a  great  variance  between  fact  and 
theory,  the  number  of  those  repeating  being  14.5  per  cent 
of  total  registration  as  contrasted  with  20.2  per  cent 
estimated  by  Mr.  Ayres. 

In  offering  this  contrast  between  fact  and  theory  it 
may  be  well  to  note  that  had  not  the  theorists  furnished 
us  with  their  calculations  the  masters  of  facts  might  not 
have  been  stirred  to  action.  The  so-called  theorists  served 
a  good  purpose  in  opening  the  new  field  and  commanding 
study  of  these  problems.  Since  it  is  easy  to  ascertain 
the  exact  number  of  beginners  in  any  system,  the  num- 
ber of  retarded,  and  the  number  of  eliminated,  we  may 
repeat  with  the  writer  quoted  above,  ^4t  ought  not  to  be 
long  before  there  would  be  no  need  of  a  theoretical  method 
of  determination. ' ' 

The  study  of  this  aspect  of  the  problem  i.  e.,  the  extent 
of  retardation  and  elimination  in  our  Catholic  schools 


648  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

should' be  one  of  our  earliest  and  most  productive  tasks. 
It  would  most  logically  be  assigned  to  the  community 
inspectors  and  local  principals  for  the  schools  under 
their  care,  and  not  to  the  superintendents  of  great  dio- 
cesan systems,  although  the  direction  and  encouragement 
of  the  latter  would  be  required.  Knowledge  of  the  extent 
in  various  localities  and  in  the  schools  of  different  com- 
munities would  furnish  the  finest  material  for  the  calcula- 
tions of  the  superintendent,  and  from  the  studies  of  the 
latter  a  basis  would  be  established  for  calculation  on  a 
larger  scale.  The  means  would  then  be  at  hand  for  mak- 
ing a  comparative  study  in  Catholic  and  public  school 
systems.  Until  such  data  are  supplied  for  separate  and 
distinct  localities  nothing  more,  it  appears  to  uS,  can  be 
done  than  approach  the  question  by  means  of  hypotheses 
and  supposititious  cases. 

The  factors  working  towards  retardation  and  elimina- 
tion are,  however,  very  much  the  same  in  all  our  schools, 
and  if  the  evil  consequences  are  to  be  averted  their  causes 
must  be  recognized,  and,  if  possible,  removed.  The  respon- 
sibility entailed  rests  upon  all  engaged  in  school  work, 
upon  superintendents,  inspectors,  principals  and  teachers. 
It  calls  for  such  efficient  school  management  that  shall  not 
lose  sight  of  any  child,  that  shall  study  and  record  his 
progress  from  the  time  he  enters  school  until  he  leaves, 
for  this  is  a  problem  with  immediate  and  serious  effects 
both  for  the  child  and  for  the  school.  For  the  child 
retardation  often  means  the  beginning  of  his  dislike  for 
school,  the  decline  of  interest  in  his  work,  the  loss  of 
confidence  in  his  mental  powers,  the  preference  for  other 
occupations,  and  the  desire  to  leave;  for  the  school, 
retardation  means  the  crowded  classes,  the  problem  of  the 
repeaters,  the  thinning  of  ranks  in  the  higher  grades ;  and 
most  important  of  all  for  the  Catholic  child  and  the  Cath- 
olic school,  the  prevalence  of  these  two  processes  means 
that  of  that  Christian  training,  intellectual,  moral  and  re- 


Ketardation  and  Elimination  of  Pupils         649 

ligious,  which  in  our  elementary  schools  is  already  reduced 
to  a  minimum,  only  a  portion  can  be  imparted.  In  other 
words,  for  us  the  question  of  retardation  and  of  elimina- 
tion has  an  added  significance  in  affecting  the  efficiency 
of  the  most  important  auxiliary  of  the  Church  in  her 
conquest  of  souls. 

The  factors  causing  retardation  and  elimination  we 
have  said  are  much  the  same  everywhere,  but  as  all 
schools  and  localities  have  their  own  peculiar  problems  so 
particular  circumstances  will  arise  to  affect  this  question 
which  will  demand  special  study  and  treatment.  Our 
immediate  occupation,  then,  must  be  to  study  and  investi- 
gate in  the  various  parts  of  our  country  and  in  the 
different  systems  of  schools,  why  children  fail,  why  they 
are  dull,  and  why  they  leave  school.  These  facts  when 
obtained  will  be  assuredly  of  the  highest  directive  value, 
and  may  perhaps  determine  a  method  of  procedure  in 
treating  the  problem  not  yet  contemplated  by  its  present 
students. 

**  When  we  seek  to  analyze  the  causes  which  are  respon- 
sible for  the  conditions  which  have  been  discussed, ' '  says 
Mr.  Ayres,  ^^we  find  the  field  a  difficult  one.  There  is  no 
one  cause  for  retardation  nor  can  we  say  that  any  one 
cause  is  preponderant.  Late  entrance  is  a  potent  factor, 
irregular  attendance  is  another.  In  both  cases  time  lost 
through  illness  plays  an  important  part.  Certain  physical 
defects  are  responsible  for  a  part  of  the  backwardness. 
On  the  basis  of  the  investigation  conducted  in  New  York 
we  can  say  that  in  general  children  suffering  from  physi- 
cal defects  which  are  recorded  in  that  city  by  the  school 
physicians  make  nearly  nine  per  cent  slower  progress 
than  do  the  children  who  are  found  on  examination  to 
have  no  defects,  (children  having  some  sort  of  defects, 
adenoids,  for  instance,  are  retarded  still  more." 

For  Catholic  schools  most  of  the  above  can  be  repeated, 
excepting  perhaps  the  item  of  late  entrance.  We  have  not 


650  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

the  same  difficulty  in  obtaining  children  at  an  early  age. 
In  fact  very  often  the  age  for  admission  in  our  schools 
prevents  some  who  desire  to  register  even  earlier. 
Another  factor,  which  has  not  been  found  a  potent  cause 
of  retardation  in  some  public  schools,  although  alleged 
as  such  in  others,  and  in  ours,  is  the  number  of  foreign 
children.  On  this  point  Mr.  Ayres  informs  us  as  the 
result  of  investigation  in  New  York:  *^It  has  been  con- 
clusively shown  that  ignorance  of  the  English  language 
is  a  handicap  that  is  quickly  and  easily  overcome,  and  has 
little  influence  on  retardation.'' 

In  our  enquiries  as  to  the  causes  of  retardation  in 
Catholic  schools  this  was  one  of  the  most  commonly 
reported.  These  children  were  found  hard  to  grade. 
Many  of  them  had  begun  their  education  En  foreign 
schools  and  entered  ours  at  the  age  of  ten  or  twelve.  The 
great  error  which  accounts  for  the  number  of  retarded  in 
this  class,  is  placing  the  newcomers  in  grades  lower  than 
those  in  which  they  normally  belong,  merely  on  account 
of  their  ignorance  of  English.  The  recommendations  and 
the  actual  experience  of  those  who  have  been  most  suc- 
cessful with  them,  direct  that  they  be  given  the  benefit  of 
special  instruction  in  English  without  neglect  of  their 
other  studies,  and  not  that  they  be  placed  with  much 
younger  children  in  the  lower  grades,  where  with  the 
beginnings  of  the  study  of  English  they  must  repeat  the 
rudiments  they  had  elsewhere  learned. 

The  customary  systems  of  promotion  are,  furthermore, 
fruitful  sources  of  retardation  and  elimination.  Failure 
means  repetition,  and  frequent  repetition  tends  to  swell 
the  number  of  the  eliminated.  Since  we  know  what  is  the 
extent  of  failure  in  the  public  schools — one-sixth  of  all 
the  children,  according  to  some  estimates — and  see  that 
in  ours  in  different  schools  and  classes  it  is  as  much  as 
one-sixth  or  one-eighth,  and  are  at  a  loss  to  know  whether 
it  be  caused  by  an  overcrowded  curriculum,  by  lack  of 


Retardation  and  Elimination  of  Pupils        651 

attention  to  the  backward,  by  the  method  of  grading,  we 
ought  to  be  most  attentive  to  the  movements  in  progress 
for  the  revision  of  the  courses  of  study  and  the  system  of 
promotion,  so  as  to  adjust  the  elementary  education  to 
the  needs  of  the  average  and  normal  child.  In  the  situa- 
tion at  present  it  is  generally  admitted  that  there  is  too 
much  rigidity,  and  too  strong  an  effort  to  make  the  child 
suit  the  system,  rather  than  the  system  suit  the  child. 

Alarmed  at  the  number  of  non-promotions  in  New  York 
City,  the  Bureau  of  Municipal  Research  recently  under- 
took an  investigation  of  the  question,  and  consulted  some 
seventy-six  educators  of  the  country  as  to  their  views  and 
experience  in  the  matter.  As  the  result  of  this  co-opera- 
tive study  it  was  concluded :  ^  ^  that  the  one  and  only  solu- 
tion of  the  problem  of  retardation  is  individual  atten- 
tion— not  individual  instruction  in  the  general  sense  of 
the  term,  but  a  study  by  the  teacher  of  each  child's  defic- 
iences  and  their  causes,  the  elimination  of  these  causes, 
and  perhaps  irregular  individual  promotions,  in  addition 
to  the  stated  regular  promotions.'' 

As  an  evidence  of  the  importance  attached  to  the  ques- 
tion of  promotions,  we  may  add  that  forty-six  out  of  the 
seventy-six  superintendents  consulted  signified  their 
intention  to  discuss  it  in  their  next  report.  Almost  all 
have  departed  from  the  older  systems  of  promotion, 
and  employ  various  methods  to  prevent  retardation  and 
failure  of  promotion.  ^'Of  the  seventy-six  educators, 
sixty- six  require  that  special  attention  be  given  to  the 
pupils  in  danger  of  failing,  fourteen  have  special  *  catch 
up'  classes,  and  ten  have  vacation  school  classes  for  non- 
promoted  children."  In  reference  to  the  efficiency  of  the 
vacation  school  the  superintendent  of  Rutland,  Vt.,  is 
quoted  as  saying  that  ninety  per  cent  of  the  school  chil- 
dren who  attend  four  weeks  of  vacation  school  are  pro- 
moted, and  about  ninety  per  cent  of  those  thus  promoted 
make  good  in  the  advanced  grade  the  following  year.  In 


652  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

this  way,  it  was  said,  very  few  pupils  in  the  fifth  grade 
and  above  really  failed  in  doing  one  year's  work. 

It  is  noteworthy  that  forty-five  of  the  educators  expect 
the  principal  to  see  each  pupil  before  marking  him  for 
non-promotion.  Thirty-two  expect  the  principal  to  require 
written  explanation  by  the  teacher  as  to  each  child  before 
it  may  be  held  back.  Thirty  report  that  the  written 
explanation  gives  the  name  of  each  child  and  the  cause  or 
causes  of  his  non-promotion. 

We  should  agree  most  eagerly  with  these  regulations  in 
regard  to  the  office  and  duties  of  the  principal  in  supervis- 
ing all  promotions,  maintaining  the  standards  established 
by  his  school,  and  preventing  the  grave  consequences 
which  come  from  repeated  failures.  With  him  would  also 
rest  the  duty  of  recording  the  school  history  of  the  child, 
and  averting  in  each  case  the  possibility  of  leaving  school 
before  the  course  has  been  completed.  The  teacher,  we 
judge,  can  also  show  his  best  influence  here.  Not  waiting 
until  the  last  year  of  school  life  to  develop  it,  he  should 
by  his  constant  association  with  the  child  seek  to  fasten 
upon  him  the  power  of  the  school  and  school  surround- 
ings, so  that  he  will  regret  to  leave — regret  to  part  with 
the  good  things  and  noble  teachers  he  has  learned  to 
respect  and  to  love,  and  whose  sympathy  he  has  under- 
stood. Someone  has  said  that  the  highest  qualification  of 
the  teacher  is  sympathy — sympathy  with  the  child's 
wants  and  needs,  knowing  them  and  administering  unto 
them.  On  this  standard  could  any  teacher  hope  to  be 
better  qualified  than  the  Catholic  and  especially  the 
religious,  whose  life  is  dedicated  to  the  service  of  others, 
sympathy  with  whom  is  impossible  without  love,  and 
service  incomplete  without  sacrifice? 

And  what  school  should  be  more  attractive  than  ours, 
or  to  take  firmer  hold  on  the  affections  of  the  child !  An 
integral  part  of  a  great  teaching  institution,  its  best 
lessons  are  associated  with  the  deepest  things  in  child 


Retardation  and  Elimination  of  Pupils        653 

life  and  nature,  and  its  rudest  tasks  are  blessed  and  made 
holy  by  the  approval  of  a  Master  whose  infinite  love 
embraces  first  the  innocent  and  the  young.  With  efficient 
teachers,  and  it  is  our  sacred  duty  to  have  no  other  kind, 
the  Catholic  school  should  be  the  children's  paradise,  the 
^  ^  Paradisetto, ' '  as  an  ancient  Catholic  school  was  called, 
or  the  ''Casa  Jocosa,"  like  a  famous  Italian  school  of  the 
Eenaissance,  where  the  brightest  years  of  life  were  not 
darkened  by  dull  or  uninteresting  tasks,  but  made 
brighter  and  happier  in  a  wholesome  Catholic  environ- 
ment. With  its  noble  traditions  for  free  elementary  edu- 
cation which  go  back  to  early  apostolic  times,  to  the 
parish  school  of  Edessa,  where  in  the  second  century  the 
priest  Protegenes  taught  little  children  the  elements  of 
learning  and  Christian  Doctrine,  our  Catholic  school  of 
today  ought  to  be  in  this,  as  in  any  other  question  affect- 
ing the  efficiency  of  the  common  schools,  the  first  to  profit 
by  every  worthy  effort  for  advancement. 

Patrick   J.   McCormick. 


THE  FIEST  SESSION  OF  THE  SUMMER  SCHOOL 
OF  THE  CATHOLIC  UNIVERSITY. 

If  the  perfect  whole  of  truth  is  to  be  attained  in  eternity 
alone,  then  all  life  is  made  np  of  a  series  of  approxima- 
tions to  truth.  To  me,  the  Summer  School  of  the  Catholic 
University  was  one  of  these  approximations,  a  marked 
and  brilliant  one.  Though  a  Catholic  all  my  life  and  a 
religious  for  twenty-five  years,  this  Summer  School  of  the 
Catholic  University  of  America  was  a  new  revelation  to 
me  of  the  Holy  Catholic  Church. 

Among  the  Sisters  gathered  there  from  north  to  south 
and  from  ocean  to  ocean  of  this  vast  continent  and  trained 
in  Orders  and  Congregations  owing  their  existence  to 
founders  and  foundresses  from  all  over  the  world, 
amongst  the  reverend  professors  and  their  co-workers 
brought  from  many  lands  and  many  alma  maters,  there 
yet  breathed  forth  but  one  spirit,  one  heart,  one  soul,  a 
truly  divine  unity  in  all-embracing  Catholicity. 

The  Catholic  University  has  had  its  vicissitudes,  not 
unknown  to  those  afar,  and  it  was  with  wondering  ques- 
tion in  their  minds  that  many  accepted  of  this  first  tenta- 
tive hospitality  to  nuns,  waiting  to  learn  of  it  through 
personal  contact.  But  three  days  had  hardly  passed 
before  a  general  confidence  was  won,  a  confidence  which 
united  all  hearts  and  continued  to  deepen  on  unto  the  end 
of  those  fruitful  ^ve  weeks.  And  frequent  subject  of  con- 
versation among  the  Sisters  was  the  general  growing 
sense  of  all  that  the  Catholic  University  now  means,  of 
the  orthodoxy,  mental  power,  fervor  of  spirit  and  gen- 
erous devotedness  amongst  the  faculties;  best  of  all,  of 
the  unity,  holiness.  Catholicity  and  apostolicity  reigning 
there. 


The  First  Session  op  the  Summer  School       655 

As  Monsignor  Shahan  received  those  streams  of  Sisters 
pouring  into  the  University  grounds  on  the  two  days  pre- 
vious to  the  actual  opening  of  the  Summer  School,  there 
may  well  have  flashed  across  his  mental  vision  the  simili- 
tude of  the  river-lock  withdrawn  and  the  consequent  pour- 
ing forth  of  all  the  waters.  The  Catholic  University  has 
withdrawn  its  barriers,  and  the  teaching  Sisters  of  the 
United  States  and  Canada  have  joyfully  entered  and  over- 
flowed its  halls!  But  this  is  hardly  a  fair  comparison, 
because  the  Catholic  University  has  done  so  much  more 
than  merely  open  its  gates;  it  has  extended  us — we  will 
not  say  a  royal,  but  a  Christian  welcome.  The  sense  of 
the  timeliness  of  this  Summer  School,  of  the  gaping  need 
it  now  begins  to  fill,  of  the  great  promise  it  holds  forth, 
and  the  consequent  feelings  of  relief,  contentment,  even 
joy,  seemed  to  rise  from  all  hearts  like  an  essence,  per- 
vading the  atmosphere.  How  many  of  us  said,  first  to  our 
own  souls,  and  then  more  expansively  to  each  other: 
^*  Happily  now,  no  more  universities  and  professors  and 
correspondence  courses  for  us  but  those  provided  by  Holy 
Mother  Church!'' 

The  exigencies  of  the  times  are  making  such  demands 
upon  the  teaching  Sisters  as  to  strain  their  endurance  to 
the  snapping  point.  To  save  the  faith  of  our  children,  and 
often,  indeed,  of  their  parents,  the  grade  schools  are  not 
enough.  The  Catholic  Educational  Association  in  Chicago 
last  July  sufficiently  demonstrated  that  Catholic  high 
schools  must  follow  in  every  city  and  town  over  this  vast 
country;  and  high  school  and  academy  teachers  should 
themselves  have  had  a  college  education.  Hence,  for 
another  twenty-five  years  to  come,  in  order  to  prepare 
the  needed  teachers  and  establish  the  new  high  schools, 
labors  even  heroic  are  called  for  and  every  assistance 
possible  from  God  and  Holy  Mother  Church.  They  have 
come  to  our  aid  in  this  present  action  of  the  Catholic  Uni- 
versity of  America. 


656  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

The  classes  of  the  Summer  School  began  promptly,  as 
scheduled,  at  eight  o'clock  Monday  morning,  July  third, 
and  continued  in  an  orderly  and  systematic  way  not 
expected  in  the  initial  stage  of  any  undertaking.  The  thir- 
teen courses  in  Education  were  especially  rich:  Princi- 
ples of  Education  and  Primary  Methods  by  Dr.  Shields, 
with  his  widely  known  erudition,  experience  and  conta- 
gious enthusiasm;  the  valuable  History  of  Education  I 
and  II  by  such  able  scholars  as  Dr.  Turner  and  Dr. 
McCormick;  the  intensely  interesting  Psychology  of  Edu- 
cation, full  of  stimulation  and  suggestion  to  teachers, 
from  the  original  genius  of  Dr.  Moore;  and  Miss 
Maguire's  excellent  and  most  helpful  course  in  Methods 
of  Training  the  Backward  Child;  while  the  charm  of  the 
one  subject  supreme  in  all  hearts.  Methods  of  Teaching 
Religion,  and  its  masterly  development  by  Dr.  Pace,  were 
attested  by  the  largest  gathering  of  any  of  the  individual 
classes,  quite  overflowing  the  great  capacity  of  McMahon 
Hall's  Museum,  and  despite  the  necessary  absence  of  the 
Geometry,  English  and  Latin  students,  whose  classes  were 
in  session  at  the  same  hour.  There  were  large  and  enthu- 
siastic classes  for  both  the  Philosophy  Courses:  Dr. 
Pace's  originality  and  concrete  method  of  presentation  in 
the  General  Psychology  and  Dr.  Turner's  crystal  clear- 
ness in  his  method  of  imparting  Logic,  were  frequent  sub- 
jects of  conversation  and  praise  among  the  student  Sis- 
ters. Of  the  Science  courses  I  had  no  personal  experience 
but  heard  only  praise  of  the  professors,  and  the  same  of 
the  Art,  Music,  and  Library  Science  Courses.  The  Sisters 
had  full  benefit  of  all  the  advantages  of  a  great  university 
— of  its  well-filled  laboratories,  its  unusually  fine  libra- 
ries, the  assiduous  attention  of  the  Registrar  and  all 
the  officials  of  the  University,  thoughtful  consideration 
everywhere — while  the  Rt.  Rev.  Rector  and  the  Faculty 
seemed  to  give  themselves  up  unreservedly  to  providing 
for  our  every  need. 


The  Fikst  Session  of  the  Summer  School       657 

But  perhaps  what  touched  the  Sisters  most  of  all  was 
the  evident  solicitude  of  the  Et.  Eev.  Eector  and  his  Eev- 
erend  Associates  that  all  should  be  carried  on  with  rever- 
ent regard  to  the  consecrated,  religious  life  of  the  Sisters. 
They  were  given  full  opportunity  for  their  various  relig- 
ious exercises,  at  least  morning  and  evening,  and,  at  any 
time,  intercourse  with  Our  Blessed  Lord  in  the  tabernacle. 
The  beautiful  chapel  of  Divinity  Hall  is  endeared  to  them 
by  precious  graces  received  there,  not  the  least  of  which 
were  the  fervent  exhortations  delivered  by  the  Et.  Eev. 
Eector  on  the  duties  and  privileges  of  the  religious  life. 

Of  the  professors  it  is  only  truth  to  say  that  their  evi- 
dent ability,  their  devotion  to  their  work,  and  the  gener- 
osity with  which  they  gave  their  time  are  beyond  praise. 
It  was  palpable  that  God^s  blessing  hovered  lovingly  over 
this  first  session  of  the  Summer  School.  Peace  pervaded 
all  its  halls,  *'that  peace  which  the  world  cannot  give,'' 
and  even  joy.  Cause  enough  for  rejoicing!  It  was  a 
great  need  supplied ;  it  was  a  new  work  begun  for  God  and 
souls ;  divine  love  united  all  hearts  and  held  forth  rainbow 
promise  of  God's  continued  benediction.  One  of  the  Sis- 
ters remarked  that  it  seemed  as  if  something  of  the  spirit 
of  the  first  Christians  lived  amongst  us  there  in  Divinity 
and  McMahon  Halls,  and  who  will  gainsay  her?  It 
remains  now  for  all  to  do  what  they  can  to  further  the 
success  of  the  Sisters'  College,  already  begun  under 
immense  difficulties  but  with  the  indefatigable  zeal  of 
those  whose  labors  and  prayers  have  at  last  brought  it 
about.  Every  great  work  has  its  pioneers,  and  we  all 
know  to  whose  untiring  zeal  the  Correspondence  Courses 
and  the  Summer  School  and  the  Sisters  College  are  espe- 
cially due.  God  prosper  them  all  and  the  Catholic  Uni- 
versity of  America,  now  truly  our  alma  mater ! 

Uesulines  of  St.  Ursula  Convent, 
1339  East  McMillan  St., 

Cincinnati,  Ohio. 


THE  SUMMEE  SCHOOL 


REPORT  OF  THE  SECRETARY 


The  first  session  of  the  Summer  School  at  the  Catholic  Uni- 
versity was  officially  opened  Sunday  July  2,  and  was  closed 
Sunday,  August  8.  On  both  occasions  all  the  members  of  the 
School  attended  Solemn  High  Mass,  celebrated  in  the  Chapel 
of  Divinity  College  by  the  Rt.  Rev.  Rector,  who  also  delivered 
an  appropriate  address.  Lectures,  laboratory  work  and  other 
exercises  began  Monday^  July  3,  and  continued,  on  five  days  of 
each  week,  until  August  5.  With  the  exception  of  a  few  courses 
given  in  Caldwell  Hall,  the  work  was  conducted  in  McMahon 
Hall.  The  school  day  lasted  from  8.  a.  m.  to  6  p.  m.,  with  a 
recess  of  two  hours  at  noon. 

A  list  of  instructors  and  a  program  of  the  courses  were  pub- 
lished in  the  May  number  of  the  Review.  It  was  later  found 
necessary  to  supply  courses  in  Greek  and  these  were  given  by 
Rev.  George  W.  Hoey,  S.  S.  An  additional  instructor  in  Latin 
was  also  secured.  Rev.  Benjamin  F.  Marcetteau,  S.  S.  The 
total  number  of  instructors  was  24,  including  6  lecturers  who 
are  not  members  of  the  University  stajff.  The  officers  of  the 
Summer  School  Faculty  were :  Rev.  Thomas  E.  Shields,  Ph.  D., 
Dean;  Rev.  Edward  A.  Pace,  Ph.  D.,  Vice-Dean;  Rev.  Patrick 
J.  McCormick,  Ph.  D.,  Secretary;  Mr.  Charles  F.  Borden,  Reg- 
istrar. In  all,  36  courses  were  given :  32  of  25  lectures  each,  3 
of  five  lectures  each,  and  1  course  of  ten  lectures — a  total  of  825 
lectures.  The  laboratory  exercises  included  50  hours  each  in 
Physics,  Chemistry  and  Biology.  At  the  close  of  each  course, 
a  written  examination  was  taken  by  students  who  desired 
academic  credits  counting  for  degrees,  A  series  of  evening  lec- 
tures (illustrated)  was  given  by  Very  Rev.  A.  P.  Doyle,  Su- 
perior of  the  Apostolic  Mission  House. 

STUDENTS 

In  accordance  with  the  preliminary  announcement,  the 
School  was  open  only  to  the  teaching  Sisterhoods  and  to  women 


The  Summer  School — Keport  of  Secretary      659 


teachers  in  public  or  private  schools.  The  total  registration 
was  284 ;  of  this  number  255  were  religious,  representing  23  or- 
ders or  congregations ;  29  were  lay  teachers.  According  to  na- 
tionality: the  United  States  had  274  representatives;  Canada, 
9;  England,  1. 

CLASSIFICATION    OP   STUDENTS 


Religious  (23)  : 

Benedictines 36 

Blessed  Sacrament   3 

Charity    11 

Charity  of  the  B.  V.  M,.     6 
Charity  of  the  Incarnate 

Word    4 

Divine   Providence    9 

Dominicans     27 

Gray  Nuns  of  the  Cross.     6 

Holy  Child   2 

Holy  Cross   9 

Holy  Names   8 

Humility  of  Mary    2 

Immaculate  Heart    7 

Jesus   Mary    7 

Loretto     4 

Mercy   52 

Missionary  Helpers  of  S. 

H 4 

Notre    Dame,    Congrega- 
tion of   2 

Providence    8 

St.    Francis    5 

St.   Joseph    31 

St.  Mary 6 

tJrsulines     6 

Lay  Teachers 29 

Dioceses  (56)  : 

Albany   7 

Alton    3 

Baker   City 1 

Baltimore    46 

Boston 1 

Brooklyn     8 

Buffalo 11 

Chicago    4 


Cincinnati    4 

Cleveland    6 

Concordia    4 

Covington    5 

Dallas    3 

Davenport     2 

Detroit  5 

Dubuque    6 

Duluth    2 

Erie 6 

Fall  River 1 

Galveston 1 

Harrisburg    8 

Hartford    6 

Indianapolis    8 

Kansas   City 2 

La  Crosse 2 

Lead    2 

Leavenworth   2 

London,  Ontario 2 

Louisville 1 

Manchester 1 

Mobile    4 

Montreal    4 

Nashville   2 

Newark 17 

New  Orleans 4 

New  York 15 

Ogdensburg  2 

Oklahoma 5 

Oregon  City 2 

Peoria 6 

Philadelphia   14 

Pittsburgh 4 

Providence 1 

Quebec    3 

Richmond    4 

St.  Augustine 2 


660 


The  Catholic  Educationaij  Eeview 


St.  Louis  

St.  Paul  

San  Antonio 

Scranton    

Toledo 

Tucson    

Westminster  (Eng.) 

Wheeling   

Wilmington 

Vic.  Ap.  North  Carolina, 


States  (31) : 

Alabama 4 

Arizona    1 

Connecticut  6 

District  of  Columbia 29 

Florida 2 

Illinois   13 

Indiana    8 

Iowa 8 

Kansas   6 

Kentucky  6 

Louisiana 4 


Maryland  17 

Massachusetts 2 

Michigan    5 

Minnesota    4 

Missouri 9 

New  Hampshire 1 

New  Jersey  17 

New  York 43 

North  Carolina   5 

Oklahoma 5 

Ohio    12 

Oregon    3 

Pennsylvania   36 

Khode  Island 1 

South  Dakota 2 

Tennessee 2 

Texas    12 

Virginia  6 

West  Virginia 3 

Wisconsin    2 

Canada  9 

England  1 


The  religious  were  accommodated  in  Albert  Hall,  Caldwell 
Hall,  St.  Thomas'  College  and  the  Apostolic  Mission  House,  on 
the  grounds  of  the  University ;  in  Trinity  College,  Holy  Cross 
Academy,  the  Benedictine  Convent,  the  Dominican  Convent, 
Sacred  Heart  Academy,  St.  Catherine's,  the  Immaculata  Sem- 
inary and  Georgetown  Convent.  They  were  provided  with  every 
facility  for  the  performance  of  their  religious  duties  and  of 
the  exercises  special  to  each  community.  The  usual  weekly  de- 
votions, with  Benediction  of  the  Blessed  Sacrament,  were  held 
in  the  chapel  of  Divinity  College. 

Efficient  assistance  was  rendered  by  the  Welcome  Committee 
of  the  National  Catholic  Woman's  Circle  who  met  the  Sisters 
on  their  arrival  and  directed  them  to  their  respective  places 
of  residence.  For  courtesies  extended  in  the  way  of  transpor- 
tation, acknowledgement  is  due  the  City  and  Suburban  Line  of 
the  Washington  Kailway  and  Electric  Company  and  the  Mt. 
Vernon  and  Marshall  Hall  Steamboat  Company. 

Pleasant  and  instructive  excursions  were  conducted  for  the 
sisters  on  the  holidays.     The  Capitol,  Library  of  Congress, 


The  Summeb  School — Eeport  of  Secretary      661 

U.  S.  Treasury,  Bureau  of  Printing  and  Engraving,  were  each 
visited  and  their  features  pointed  out  by  efficient  guides.  On 
July  8,  all  enjoyed  a  delightful  sail  to  Mount  Vernon,  where 
they  were  cordially  received  by  the  superintendent  of  the 
grounds  who  personally  showed  them  over  the  historic  site. 
The  Sisters  placed  a  beautiful  wreath  on  the  tomb  of 
George  Washington.  July  13,  President  Taft  received  the  entire 
student  body  at  the  White  House,  and  greeted  each  sister  and 
lay  teacher  individually.  His  Excellency,  the  Apostolic  Dele- 
gate, Diomede  Falconio,  favored  the  School  with  his  presence 
on  the  afternoon  of  Sunday,  July  9.  On  this  occasion  the  stu- 
dents congregated  in  the  Chapel  of  Divinity  Hall  and  listened 
to  an  inspiring  address  from  the  Delegates  who  afterward 
imparted  the  Apostolic  Benediction.  Benediction  of  the  Most 
Blessed  Sacrament  followed  at  which  His  Excellency  presided. 
Tuesday,  August  1,  His  Eminence,  James  Cardinal  Gibbons, 
Chancellor  of  the  University,  visited  the  Summer  School,  and 
was  tendered  a  reception  by  the  professors  and  students.  The 
Et.  Eev.  Rector  made  the  address  of  welcome  to  the  Cardinal 
who  responded  with  an  enthusiastic  discourse  on  the  signifi- 
cance of  the  First  Session  of  the  University  Summer  School. 
At  the  close  of  the  exercises  each  student  was  presented  to  the 
Cardinal. 

Patrick  J.  McCormick^ 

Secretary. 


CURRENT  EVENTS 

CHICAGO    MEETING    OF    CATHOLIC    EDUCATORS 

The  Eighth  Annual  Convention  of  the  Catholic  Educational 
Association,  held  in  Chicago  June  25-29,  has  been  declared  the 
most  successful  meeting  in  the  history  of  the  Association.  Dele- 
gates from  all  parts  of  the  country  attended,  representing  the 
principal  archdioceses  and  dioceses,  the  teaching  orders  of 
men  and  women,  and  the  leading  Catholic  educational  insti- 
tutions from  the  universities  down  to  the  elementary  schools. 
The  sessions  took  place  at  De  Paul  University,  the  General 
Assembly  and  the  Parish  School  Department  occupying  the 
College  Theater,  an  immense  auditorium,  which  was  crowded 
daily. 

At  the  opening  Mass  Most  Rev.  Archbishop  Quigley,  of  Chi- 
cago, tendered  the  delegates  a  cordial  welcome,  and  paid  a 
notable  tribute  to  the  great  work  of  the  Association.  He  said 
in  part:  "We  of  the  pulpit  are  constantly  holding  before  the 
eyes  of  our  people,  and  urging  upon  them  the  attainment  of  the 
highest  ideals  of  Catholic  religious  and  social  life  in  old  and 
young,  especially  the  young  upon  whom  we  rely  for  the  better 
realization  of  these  ideals  in  Catholic  life.  If  Catholic  ideals 
are  ever  to  be  realized,  by  what  agency  shall  it  be  effected  ?  By 
our  Catholic  schools  mainly,  though  not  wholly.  Church, 
family  and  school  are  co-operating  for  the  creation  of  the  ideal 
Catholic  life,  but  of  this  trinity  of  forces,  hardly  separable  in 
action,  the  school  is  the  most  potent  and  far-reaching.  True 
it  is  that  the  school  cannot  exert  fully  its  powers  for  good 
without  the  support  of  the  clergy  and  people  from  whom  are 
to  come  the  children  and  the  material  means  to  carry  on  the 
work  of  education  with  a  success  commensurate  with  the  ability 
of  the  teacher.  It  is  our  part  to  build  the  schools  and  to  equip 
them,  so  as  to  give  the  teacher  the  most  favorable  environment, 
and  above  all  to  place  under  the  teacher  the  best  possible 
children,  prepared  in  home  and  Church  for  the  formative  work 
of  the  teacher. 


CuKEENT  Events  663 

"You  teachers  will  admit  that  clergy  and  people  are  giving 
you  the  best  possible  aid  in  the  prosecution  of  your  work.  Our 
schools  are  admirably  built  and  equipped.  Our  children  are 
the  best  in  the  world,  even  in  the  environment  of  our  American 
cities,  bright,  docile,  respectful  of  authority,  obedient,  affec- 
tionate, and  altogether  lovable.  With  these  conditions  existing 
generally,  what  shall  I  say  of  the  results  of  your  work,  as  it 
has  been  my  duty  and  opportunity  to  observe  them?  From 
the  kindergarten  up  through  the  graded  school,  high  school 
and  college  to  the  university,  it  gives  me  pleasure  to  say,  in  the 
name  of  clergy  and  people,  to  you  delegates,  teachers  and 
friends  of  Catholic  education,  of  which  you  are  the  exponents, 
that  its  results  have  been  in  every  department  most  gratifying 
and  worthy  of  the  highest  commendation.  The  masses  are 
being  trained  in  the  knowledge,  love  and  service  of  God.  Young 
hearts  are  being  filled  with  holy  thoughts,  and  young  minds 
with  the  knowledge  of  holy  things,  and  our  whole  national  life 
is  being  leavened  with  Christian  principles." 

Rt.  Rev.  Mgr.  Thomas  J.  Shahan,  president  of  the  Associa- 
tion, delivered  an  inspiring  address  at  the  opening  session.  He 
reviewed  the  work  of  the  Association,  and  showed  its  practical 
effects  in  gathering  together  and  harmonizing  the  Catholic 
educational  forces  of  this  country.  Although  without  any  legis- 
lative power,  the  Association^  he  declared,  had  been  the  most 
potent  agent  in  the  movement  for  a  thorough  systematization 
of  Catholic  schools. 

The  first  paper  to  be  read,  "The  Report  of  the  Committee  on 
Secondary  Education,"  by  the  Very  Rev.  James  J.  Burns, 
C.  S.  C,  Ph.  D.,  sounded  the  keynote  for  one  of  the  most  fruitful 
discussions  of  the  meeting.  The  present  state  of  Catholic  sec- 
ondary education  in  this  country  was  clearly  depicted  with 
the  aid  of  statistics  gathered  by  the  committee,  and  the  means 
for  the  development  of  a  system  of  central  Catholic  high  schools 
were  enthusiastically  considered.  This  question  recurred  fre- 
quently in  the  general  and  departmental  meetings,  and  invari- 
ably elicited  an  interesting  expression  of  opinion  and  expe- 
rience. "The  Pastor  and  Education  in  Advance  of  the  Grade 
School,"  by  Very  Rev.  James  F.  Green,  O.  S.  A.,  sustained  inter- 
est in  the  same  question  and  like  the  first  paper  treated  of  the 


664  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

matter  of  affiliation  with  non-Catholic  institutions.  In  the 
discussion  of  these  papers  the  following  were  heard :  Very  Rev. 

E.  A.  Pace,  of  the  Catholic  University ;  Rev.  Robert  W.  Brown, 
of  Grand  Rapids,  Mich.;  Rt.  Rev.  Mgr.  P.  R.  McDevitt,  of 
Philadelphia,  Penn.;  Rev.  M.  J.  Dorney,  of  Chicago,  and  the 
Rt.  Rev.  Joseph  Schrembs,  Auxiliary  Bishop  of  Grand  Rapids. 

The  Seminary  Department  throughout  all  of  its  meetings 
considered  the  Relation  of  the  Seminary  to  Our  Educational 
Problem.  Papers  were  supplied  by  Very  Rev.  Dr.  E.  A.  Pace, 
Rev.  Francis  V.  Corcoran,  C.  M.,  D.  D.,  of  Kenrick  Seminary, 
St.  Louis,  Mo.,  and  by  Rev.  Francis  J.  Van  Antwerp,  of  Detroit, 
Mich.,  on  various  phases  of  this  subject  Which  for  three  days 
was  very  freely  discussed. 

The  College  Department  opened  with  the  paper  of  Rev.  Tim- 
othy Brosnahan,  S.  J.  (of  Loyola  College,  Baltimore,  Md.),  on 
^'The  Carnegie  Foundation  for  the  Advancement  of  Teaching; 
Its  Aims  and  Tendencies."  The  administration  of  the  fund 
established  by  Andrew  Carnegie  in  1905,  was  severely  criticized 
as  "furthering  the  interests  of  non-sectarian  teaching,  and 
tending  to  put  the  teaching  profession  in  a  condition  of  aca- 
demic subservience  and  slavish  subjection."  In  this  department 
also,  the  Rev.  Alphonsus  Dress,  of  St.  Joseph's  College, 
Dubuque,  Iowa,  read  a  paper  on  "The  Position  Which  Music 
Should  Occupy  in  a  College  Course."  The  different  sections  for 
the  study  of  questions  pertaining  to  Greek  and  Latin,  Modem 
Languages,  History  and  the  Sciences,  had  their  separate  papers 
and  discussions. 

In  the  Parish   School  Department  Brother  Luke  Joseph, 

F.  S.  C,  of  La  Salle  Academy,  Kansas  City,  Mo.,  read  the  first 
paper  entitled :  "Our  Children  and  Their  Life  Work."  Brother 
Marcellinus,  of  Fort  Wagne,  Md.,  and  Brother  Julian  Xavier, 
of  St.  Xavier's  College,  Louisvillle,  Ky.,  opened  the  discussion. 
Two  other  papers  which  prepared  the  delegates  for  an  interest- 
ing exchange  of  opinion  were :  "Some  Educational  Errors,"  by 
Rev.  Robert  B.  Condon,  D.  D.,  of  La  Crosse,  Wis.,  and  "Retarda- 
tion and  Elimination  of  Pupils  in  Our  Schools,"  by  Rev.  P.  J. 
McCormick,  Ph.  D.,  of  the  Catholic  University.  Rev.  Aloysius 
Garthoeffner,  Superintendent  of  Catholic  Schools,  St.  Louis, 
Mo.,  and  Brother  George  Ebert,  S.  M.,  of  Dayton,  Ohio,  read 
very  practical  papers  in  this  discussion. 


CuRBENT  Events  665 

The  Superintendent's  Section  of  the  Parish  School  Depart- 
ment held  two  important  meetings.  "Vocational  Teaching  in 
the  Grammar  Schools,"  on  which  Very  Rev.  T.  E.  Shields, 
Ph.  D.,  of  the  Catholic  University  reported,  and  "Should  the 
Grammar  School  Course  Be  Shortened?"  contributed  by  Rev. 
E.  A.  Lafontaine,  chairman  of  the  section,  gave  point  and  direc- 
tion to  the  deliberations  of  the  superintendents  and  community 
inspectors  who  are  members  of  this  section. 

The  Local  Teachers'  Meetings  on  Wednesday  and  Thursday 
afternoons  were  largely  attended  by  the  sisters,  brothers  and 
clergy.  With  the  exception  of  the  paper  on  "Frequent  Com- 
munion of  Students  Promoted  by  Organization,"  contributed 
by  one  of  the  Fathers  of  the  Society  of  Jesus,  all  of  the  papers 
were  supplied  by  the  teaching  sisters  attending  the  convention. 
They  dealt  with  the  practical  problems  of  elementary  school 
work,  and  a  series  of  five  treated  the  Aim  of  Elementary 
Education  from  different  viewpoints. 

The  resolutions  of  the  Association  embodied  a  deep  appre- 
ciation of  the  cordial  reception  given  by  the  Most  Rev.  Arch- 
bishop, the  clergy  and  people  of  Chicago,  and  tendered  thanks 
to  the  Vincentian  Fathers  for  the  use  of  De  Paul  University. 
Those  of  the  General  Association  were  as  follows : 

1.  Whereas,  the  Catholic  Educational  Association  recog- 
nizes as  its  mission  the  furthering  of  Catholic  education 
under  the  guidance  of  the  Church ;  be  it 

Resolved,  That  we  hereby  pledge  to  His  Holiness,  the  one 
accredited  and  infallible  teacher  of  Truth,  our  fealty,  our 
service  and  our  devotion. 

2.  Whereas,  the  Carnegie  Foundation  for  the  Advancement 
of  Teaching  is  a  private  educational  agency  which  is  attempt- 
ing to  exercise  an  undue  and  an  irresponsible  supervision 
over  the  institutions  of  higher  learning  in  this  country,  which 
aims  at  dechristianizing  American  education,  which  is,  there- 
fore, a  menace  to  our  intellectual  and  moral  wellbeing  as  a 
people;  be  it 

Resolved,  That  this  Association  deprecate  the  illiberal  and 
sectarian  attitude  of  the  Foundation  toward  American  uni- 
versities and  colleges  of  standing  and  established  repute. 


666  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

3.  Whereas,  the  desire  of  Catholic  teachers  to  obtain 
advanced  training  is  a  healthy  sign  of  progress ;  be  it 

Resolved,  That  in  the  judgment  of  this  Association  the 
interests  of  Catholic  education  can  be  safeguarded  against 
the  prevailing  naturalistic  tendencies  only  by  such  instruc- 
tion being  had  under  Catholic  auspices. 

4.  Whereas,  excellent  work  is  being  done  in  the  field  of 
Catholic  secondary  education;  be  it 

Resolved,  That  this  Association  recognize  and  approve  the 
development  of  the  Catholic  high  school  movement. 

5.  Whereas,  grave  danger  confronts  our  people  in  the 
unsound  economic  and  sociological  theories  of  the  day  and 
in  the  irreligious  tendencies  of  modern  educational  methods ; 
be  it 

Resolved,  That  this  Association  urge  upon  Catholic  teach- 
ers the  necessity  of  directing  their  pupils  to  Catholic  institu- 
tions of  higher  learning. 

6.  TMiereas,  the  University  Extension  Movement,  the  Read- 
ing Circle  Movement,  and  the  Catholic  Summer  School  Move- 
ment, constitute  an  educational  fact  of  great  importance  and 
promise,  insofar  as  they  supplement  the  work  of  Catholic 
schools,  academies  and  colleges;  be  it 

Resolved,  That  we  recognize  and  commend  these  movements 
to  the  Catholic  public. 

Resolutions  of  the  Parish  School  Department: 

1.  We  testify  to  and  recognize  with  filial  gratitude  the 
excellent  results  that  have  followed  the  recent  legislation  of 
our  Holy  Father,  Pius  X,  in  the  matter  of  the  early  admis- 
sion of  our  children  to  the  Sacrament  of  the  Holy  Eucharist. 

2.  We  urge  upon  pastors  and  teachers  solicitous  care  of 
those  children  who  seem  to  be  especially  favored  by  grace, 
that  from  their  number  there  may  come  priestly  and  religious 
vocations  to  bless  their  work  and  to  contribute  to  the  spread 
of  the  kingdom  of  God  in  human  life. 

3.  We  desire  to  emphasize  the  fact  that  the  aim  of  elemen- 
tary education  is  discipline — the  training  of  the  will  to  habits 
of  virtue,  study,  and  industry.   We  protest  against  any  ten- 


CuKRENT  Events  667 

dency  to  replace  it  by  seeking  to  procure  in  the  first  place 
mere  information  or  mere  manual  or  mental  efficiency. 

4.  We  recognize  the  need  of  reverence  and  respect  for 
authority,  if  religious  and  civil  institutions  are  to  be  firmly 
grounded.  We  demand  them  as  the  portion  of  the  products 
of  a  Catholic  system  of  education. 

5.  Anxious  to  preserve  the  fruits  of  Catholic  education  in 
our  parochial  schools,  and  recognizing  the  imperative  needs 
of  the  continued  training  of  our  Catholic  youth  in  faith  and 
morals  during  the  perilous  years  of  adolescence,  we  urge 
upon  pastors  and  parents  the  establishment  and  development 
of  Catholic  secondary  schools  wherever  existing  conditions 
permit. 

6.  Since  good  drawing  and  good  penmanship  give  adequate 
training  to  eye  and  hand  for  elementary  education  and  serve 
as  efficient  preparation  for  vocational  training,  we  strongly 
recommend  that  these  branches  receive  careful  and  constant 
attention  in  our  schools. 

7.  We  protest  against  those  influences  that  would  lessen 
the  attachment  of  the  child  to  its  home ;  against  the  debase- 
ment of  its  moral  nature  by  vicious  or  indecent  spectacles 
that  seek  the  patronage  of  children,  and  we  urge  that  the 
child's  love  of  home  be  fostered  in  every  possible  way,  and 
that  he  be  taught  to  appreciate  and  to  love  the  art  that  has 
grown  out  of  religion,  the  Christian  art  of  this  and  of  other 
centuries. 

DIOCESAN   teachers'   INSTITUTE 

Over  170  teachers  of  the  Catholic  schools  of  the  diocese  of 
Monterey  and  Los  Angeles  attended  the  Eighth  Annual  Teach- 
ers' Institute  of  the  diocese,  which  was  held  July  5-9,  at 
Columbia  Hall,  Santa  Monica.  The  Et.  Rev.  Thomas  J.  Conaty, 
Bishop  of  Monterey  and  Los  Angeles,  presided  over  all  of  the 
sessions  of  the  Institute,  and  delivered  many  of  the  lectures. 
The  program  of  lectures  follows : 

July  5.  Bishop  Conaty,  Opening  Address. 

Prof.  T.  H.  Kirk,  A.  M.,  formerly  Superintendent  of  State 
Schools,  Minn.,   "The  Art  of  Reading."    Miss  Mary  Boyd 


668  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Ludlow,  "Ear  and  Lip  Training,  and  Phonics  in  the  First 
Grade."  Mr.  Thomas  Lawler,  Ph.  D.,  of  New  York  City,  "The 
Teaching  of  American  History."  Mr.  H.  P.  Conway,  A.  M., 
formerly  Professor  of  Mathematics,  St.  Thomas  College,  St. 
Paul,  Minn.,  "Arithmetic."  Brother  Leo,  St.  Mary's  College, 
Oakland,  Cal.,  "What  is  Literature?" 

July  6.  Brother  Leo,  "The  Teaching  of  Composition."  Miss 
Carrie  Truslow,  Assistant  Superintendent  of  Schools,  Los 
Angeles,  Cal.,  "Demonstration  Class,  and  Music  in  the  Pri- 
mary Grades."  Miss  Ludlow,  "Reading  and  Literature: 
Story  Telling  in  the  Primary  Grades."  Bishop  Conaty, 
"Church  Symbolism."  Prof.  Kirk,  "The  Meaning,  Form,  and 
Spelling  of  Words."  Mr.  Lawler,  "The  Philippines  (Illus- 
trated). 

July  7.  Brother  Leo,  "The  Basis  of  Correctness  in  English." 
Bishop  Conaty,  "First  Communion  of  Children."  Mr.  Con- 
way, "High  School  Mathematics."  Miss  Ludlow,  "Dramatiza- 
tion and  Busy  Work  in  the  Primary  Grades."  Rev.  John  J. 
Ford,  S.  J.,  of  St.  Ignatius  College,  San  Francisco,  Cal., 
"Catechetics  and  Character."  Mr.  Lawler,  "Japan."  (Illus- 
trated.) 

July  8.  "The  Religious  Element  in  the  Teaching  of  Literature." 
Prof.  Kirk,  "Organized  Civics."  Miss  Truslow,  "Selections 
and  Music  in  the  Grades."  Father  Ford,  "The  Methods  of 
Catechetics."    Bishop  Conaty,  "Literature." 

DEATH  OF  EMINENT  EDUCATOR 

The  Rt.  Rev.  Denis  J.  Flynn,  President  Emeritus  of  Mt.  St. 
Mary's  College,  Emmitsburg,  Md.,  who  died  July  7,  after  a 
long  illness,  had  been  for  many  years  one  of  our  most  active 
educational  workers.  While  President  of  the  College,  from 
1894  until  June  of  this  year,  he  was  a  prominent  figure  in 
Catholic  College  circles,  and  an  enthusiastic  promoter  of  the 
Catholic  Educational  Association  on  whose  executive  board  he 
long  held  oflSce.  During  his  presidency  Mt.  St.  Mary's  has 
grown  steadily,  and  invariably  maintained  its  excellent  tradi- 
tions for  scholarship  and  Catholic  training. 

Monsignor  Flynn  was  a  native  of  Titusville,  Ky.  He  studied 
at  "The  Mountain,"  making  there  his  collegiate  and  seminary 


CuREENT  Events  669 

courses.  As  a  young  priest  he  labored  in  St.  Mary's  parish, 
and  afterward  in  St.  Patrick's  Cathedral,  Wilmington,  where 
he  was  pastor  until  1899  when  called  to  the  faculty  of  Mt.  St. 
Mary's.  His  elevation  to  the  rank  of  Domestic  Prelate  with 
the  title  of  Monsignor,  made  public  October  12,  1910,  by  Cardi- 
nal Gibbons,  was  received  with  universal  satisfaction,  and 
called  forth  many  notable  expressions  of  admiration  for  his 
work  as  a  churchman  and  educator. 

IMPORTANT  DECISION  FOR  CATHOLIC  SCHOOLS 

The  question  of  allowing  children  of  Catholic  schools  to 
attend  the  city  or  state  schools  for  the  purpose  of  obtaining 
instruction  in  manual  training,  has  received  renewed  attention 
because  of  an  important  opinion  rendered  by  the  Attorney 
General  of  Massachusetts.  Eev.  S.  P.  Dunphy,  pastor  of  St. 
Francis  Church,  Boston,  had  requested  the  local  authorities  to 
allow  the  pupils  of  a  parish  school  to  attend  the  manual  train- 
ing lessons  at  Mark  Hopkins  School,  a  city  and  state  institu- 
tion. The  matter  was  referred  to  Dr.  David  Snedden,  State 
Commissioner  of  Education,  who  called  a  meeting  of  the  State 
Board  to  consider  it.  The  Board  asked  for  an  opinion  from  the 
Attorney  General.    In  his  decision  the  latter  said : 

"If  the  pupils  of  the  parochial  school  are  to  use  the  rooms 
and  equipment  of  the  normal  school  or  of  the  public  schools,  as 
classes  to  be  formed  and  controlled  by  their  teachers  and  sent 
to  the  normal  school  or  to  the  public  schools  for  instruction  as 
a  part  of  or  supplementary  to  the  course  of  instruction  at  the 
parochial  school,  it  might  well  be  held  to  be  obnoxious  to  the 
spirit  if  not  to  the  letter  of  the  constitutional  provision  above 
(18  amendment),  especially  if  such  use  were  made  at  times 
when  the  rooms  of  the  normal  school  or  the  public  schools  are 
not  open  to  persons  other  than  the  class  in  question. 

"On  the  other  hand,  if  the  pupils  of  the  parochial  schools  are 
to  attend  at  times  when  facilities  of  the  normal  school  or  the 
public  schools  are  open  to  other  pupils  to  avail  themselves  of 
the  privilege  and  share  with  other  children  the  instruction,  if 
any  such  instruction  is  given,  I  do  not  think  that  because 
at  other  hours  they  have  been  at  a  parochial  school,  and  not 


670  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

at  a  public  school,  is  any  ground  for  refusing  them  the  benefit 
of  attending.  They  should,  however,  attend  as  individuals  and 
be  subject  to  the  control  only  of  the  school  authorities  who 
undertake  to  give  the  instruction  desired. 

^'That  is,  if  the  school  board  thinks  it  wise  to  admit  special 
students  who  are  not  required  to  attend  public  schools  for  any 
other  instruction  to  special  courses  in  manual  training,  I  see 
no  reason  why  they  may  not  do  so  under  reasonable  restric- 
tions. The  fact  that  the  pupils  so  admitted  obtain  the 
remainder  of  their  education  at  a  parochial  school  would  not 
necessarily  debar  them." 

GIFTS  TO  CATHOLIC  COLLEGE 

At  the  Commencement  Exercises  of  the  College  of  Mount 
Saint  Vincent-on-Hudson,  held  June  6,  announcement  was  made 
of  the  following  generous  gifts  received  during  the  year : 

The  Elizabeth  Seton  Scholarship,  presented  in  honor  of  the 
Golden  Jubilee  of  Mother  Mary  Kose,  by  the  Alumnae  Asso- 
ciation. The  Louise  Le  Gras  Scholarship,  also  a  Jubilee  gift 
from  several  friends.  Our  Lady  of  Good  Counsel  Scholarship, 
presented  by  the  Misses  Mackey,  of  New  York.  An  endowment 
fund  of  |1,000,  by  Mrs.  Joseph  J.  Donohue,  of  New  York,  for 
a  prize  of  |50  to  be  awarded  annually.  An  endowment  fund 
of  |1,000,  by  Miss  Mary  Hogan,  of  New  York,  for  an  annual 
prize  of  |50.  A  purse  of  |50,  for  1911,  by  the  Rev.  James  W. 
Powers,  of  New  York.  A  purse  of  |25  for  1911,  by  Mr.  William 
P.  O'Connor,  of  New  l^ork.  A  donation  of  |500,  from  Rev. 
Charles  W.  Corley,  of  Yonkers,  N.  Y.,  the  first  contribution 
to  the  Building  Fund.  A  purse  of  $25  for  excellence  in  the 
course  in  Religion,  from  a  reverend  friend.  A  valuable  paint- 
ing from  Miss  Anna  Dunphy.  Several  rare  books  from  Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Julian  Detmer,  besides  2,000  volumes  d'^iated  by  various 
persons  interested  in  the  College  library. 

AN  efficient  superior  AND  ORGANIZER 

Rev.  Mother  Scholastica  Kerst,  who  died  June  11  at  Duluth, 
Minn.,  was  the  foundress  of  the  Benedictine  institutions  con- 
ducted by  sisters  in  the  diocese  of  Duluth,  and  one  of  the  most 


CuREENT  Events  671 

widely  known  religious  of  the  Northwest.  In  1892,  a  few  years 
after  the  creation  of  the  diocese  of  Duluth,  the  Rt.  Rev.  James 
McGolrick,  D.  D.,  invited  Mother  Scholastica  to  establish  her 
order  in  the  diocese.  From  a  very  modest  beginning  the  com- 
munity has  grown  rapidly,  and  now  numbers  175  members. 
Under  Mother  Scholastica's  administration  many  important 
foundations  were  made,  among  which  were  five  hospitals,  the 
Sacred  Heart  Institute,  the  Villa  Sancta  Scholastica,  mother 
house  of  the  order  and  academy  for  young  ladies,  and  several 
parish  schools. 

Mother  Scholastica  was  born  in  Mueringen,  Germany.  Her 
parents  came  to  this  country  in  1852,  when  she  was  five  years 
old,  and  settled  in  St.  Paul,  Minn.  She  entered  the  Benedictine 
Order  when  fifteen  years  old,  spending  her  early  years  prin- 
cipally in  Shakopee,  and  St.  Joseph,  Minn.  Elected  Mother 
Superior  of  the  Benedictines  of  St.  Cloud  diocese  in  1880,  she 
was  there  engaged  in  the  constructive  work  of  her  order  until 
called  in  1892  to  her  long  and  fruitful  mission  in  the  diocese 
of  Duluth. 

SUMMER  SCHOOL   AT  DB   PAUL   UNIVERSITY 

The  success  of  the  first  session  of  the  De  Paul  University 
Summer  School  held  in  Chicago,  has  induced  the  faculty  to 
announce  that  the  same  will  be  continued  next  year  and  that 
during  the  coming  school  year  educational  courses  will  be 
offered  to  teachers  of  the  public  and  parish  schools.  The  latter 
will  be  known  as  the  University  Extension  Work  to  distinguish 
it  from  the  Summer  School  courses.  The  registration  of  the 
Summer  School  was  125  and  included :  Sisters  of  Charity  of  the 
Blessed  Virgin  Mary  from  Chicago,  111.,  and  Dubuque,  Iowa; 
Franciscan  Sisters  from  Joilet,  111.;  Dominican  Sisters  from 
New  York;  Sinsinawa,  Wis.;  Springfield,  111.;  Adrian,  Michi- 
gan, and  Chicago ;  Sisters  of  Mercy  from  Ottawa,  111. ;  Sisters  of 
Notre  Dame  from  West  Pullman,  111.;  Sisters  of  St.  Benedict 
from  Nauvoo,  111. ;  Sisters  of  Providence  from  St.  Mary-of-the- 
Woods,  Ind. ;  and  lay  teachers  from  Chicago  and  various  places 
in  Ohio  and  Kentucky. 


672  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

The  professors  of  the  different  courses  were  as  follows: 
Philosophy,  Dr.  Corcoran,  of  Kenrick  Seminary,  St.  Louis,  Mo. ; 
English,  Dr.  Osthoff,  of  St.  Thomas  Seminary,  Denver,  Col.; 
History,  and  Literature,  Dr.  O'Hagan,  editor  of  the  New 
World,  Chicago;  History,  Very  Rev.  F.  X.  McCabe,  President 
of  De  Paul  University ;  Astronomy,  Rev.  D.  J.  McHugh,  of  the 
University;  Latin,  Rev.  William  J.  Kelly,  Johhn  E.  Green, 
James  E.  Lilley,  of  the  University;  Mathematics,  Martin  V. 
Moore  and  John  E.  Green,  and  James  E.  Lillie,  Director  of 
Studies  of  the  University;  Oratory,  Miss  Farrell,  formerly  of 
Northwestern  University ;  French,  Miss  Garnier ;  Drawing,  Mr. 
George  W.  Barnard,  of  the  University;  Chemistry,  Mr.  G.  W. 
Heise,  Dr.  Arden  J.  Johnson,  Mr.  G.  W.  Lawson ;  Biology,  Dr. 
N.  A.  Alcock,  of  the  University  faculty. 

Patrick   J.   McGormick. 


The  Catholic 
Educational  Review 


OCTOBER,  1911 


WHAT  THE  FIRST  SUMMER  SCHOOL  AT  THE 
CATHOLIC  UNIVERSITY  OF  AMERICA 
WAS  TO  THE  STUDENTS 

For  years  my  friends  and  I  had  longed  with  a  great 
longing  to  attend  a  Summer  School.  The  attainment  of 
our  desire,  at  first,  seemed  most  indefioaitely  remote,  and, 
finally,  began  to  look  as  if  it  was  to  be  reserved  as  the 
very  special  triumph  of  a  later  generation.  Yet  we  still 
dared  to  hope,  even  in  the  hour  of  deepest  darkness. 
Then  the  unexpected  happened.  Some  God-inspired  men 
took  thought  of  us,  the  army  of  struggling  Convent- school 
teachers ;  they  examined  our  work  closely  and  deemed  it 
worthy  of  encouragement.  How  good  it  was  to  feel  that 
we  no  longer  stood  alone  and  unchampioned !  The  climax 
of  our  happiness  came  in  the  spring  of  1911.  It  seems  to 
me  the  joy  we  experienced  when  our  Mother  General  an- 
nounced the  Summer  School  a  fact,  and  we,  her  students, 
chosen  to  attend,  could  not  be  exceeded  on  this  side  of 
eternity.  May  God  bless  everyone,  from  the  Apostolic 
Delegate  and  the  Cardinal  down,  who  had  anything  to  do 
with  permitting,  or  promoting,  or  organizing  the  Summer 
School  is,  I  am  confident,  the  oft-repeated  prayer  of  every 
teaching  Sister  in  America. 

Years  of  waiting  added  zest  to  enjoyment.  But  no 
words  of  mine  can  ever  tell  what  the  Summer  School  was 
to  us  when  it  did  come.  In  the  first  place,  it  far  surpassed 
all  our  hopes.    Not,  indeed,  in  the  equipment,  nor  in  the 


674  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

spacious  halls  of  the  University,  not  in  the  beautiful 
grounds  with  hill  and  dale,  with  their  vastness  and 
country  solitude,  and  their  remoteness  from  bustle  and 
hurry — these  were  delightful,  but  they  were  only  the  set- 
ting fair  and  lovely  of  the  richer  jewels  of  culture,  scholar- 
ship and  kindness  which  we  found  in  Brookland.  It  was 
these  that  went  beyond  our  fondest  hopes,  and  to  such  an 
extent  that  we  began  to  think  that  at  last  we  understood 
a  little  of  the  things  the  angels  know,  and  something  of 
what  the  Israelites  must  have  felt  when  God  manifested 
Himself  to  them  on  Sinai. 

^^The  happiness  of  Heaven  must  be  intellectual  enjoy- 
ment,'^  I  said  to  a  friend  in  an  awed  whisper  as  one  of 
these  soul-stirring  lecturers  left  the  platform,  ^^an  eter- 
nity like  this  could  never  pall  on  me. ' ' 

**It  is  perfectly  grand,"  she  replied  as  thoroughly 
wrapt  in  spirit  as  myself,  *'yet  I  think  there  should  be 
more  than  intellectual  delight  in  the  life  beyond  life.*' 

It  was  good  to  be  there  in  the  calm  of  that  higher, 
holier  atmosphere,  to  compare  the  products  and  results 
of  an  age  run  mad  with  the  erudition  and  earnestness, 
with  the  zeal  and  simplicity  and  faith  of  those  who  were 
spending  themselves  that  we,  also,  might  drink  of  the  deep 
Pierian  waters.  Language  could  not  be  extravagant  when 
applied  to  the  Faculty  of  the  Summer  School  of  the  Cath- 
olic University.  We  did  expect  to  find  ripe  scholarship  at 
that  central  seat  of  learning,  else  why  travel  across  a  con- 
tinent, or  from  ^neath  another  flag  to  profit  by  what  it  had 
to  offer?  But  we  did  not  expect  to  find  with  ^ ' the  wisdom 
of  all  the  ages,"  the  zeal  of  the  early  Christians,  an 
abiding  love  for  souls,  and  the  sweet  lowliness  and  sim- 
plicity of  Christ  the  King.  We,  who  were  strangers  to 
the  home-life  of  the  University,  were  captivated  from  the 
start  by  the  rare  Catholic  spirit  of  the  place.  The  Univer- 
sity deserves  to  bear  its  name.  Truly,  in  its  establish- 
ment, God  must  have  again  looked  over  the  void  and 


The  First  Summer  School  675 

repeated :  *  *  Let  there  be  light ! ' '  and  light  came  to  make 
new  men  of  our  and  succeeding  generations ;  to  raise  up 
new  Adams  from  the  slime.  Aptly,  indeed,  do  people  call 
Brookland:  ^^The  Holy  City!'^ 

I  listened  to  eminent  professors  every  hour  of  the 
school  day  for  five  weeks  of  days ;  I  listened  to  the  com- 
ments of  my  fellow-students  on  their  professors,  and  thus 
it  was  I  learned  to  know  the  manner  of  men  with  whom 
we  had  to  do.  Highest  culture  and  the  blessed  humility 
of  Christ  make  an  admirable  combination.  Tell  me,  you 
who  can,  how  did  every  professor  of  the  Summer  School 
succeed  in  acquiring  both?  We  knew  these  men  had 
searched  the  universities  of  Europe  and  America  for  the 
best  scholarly  acquirements.  But  where  did  the  Catholic 
University  Professors  receive  their  training  in  all  priestly 
virtues  and  manly  accomplishments  ?  Religion  dominated 
the  lectures.  We  found  God  wherever  we  turned — God, 
wedded  to  His  laws  of  nature  in  those  ever-to-be-remem- 
bered lectures  in  science;  God  in  His  own  proper  place 
in  history,  languages,  education,  aesthetics.  The  Church 
ceremonies  made  us  realize  in  a  degree  the  meaning  of: 
*  ^  the  eye  of  man  hath  not  before  seen,  nor  his  ear  heard,  ^  * 
so  perfect  were  High  Mass  and  Benediction  in  every 
detail;  so  grand  the  singing  under  the  able  direction  of 
Abbe  Gabert. 

We  were  there  three  hundred  students.  Those  whom 
I  had  the  pleasure  to  meet  were  women  of  experience. 
They  came  from  the  Far  West  and  the  South — from  Ore- 
gon, Texas  and  Canada ;  from  the  States  of  the  Mid- West 
and  those  of  the  East.  They  were  women  whom  it  was  a 
pleasure  to  know,  representing  upwards  of  sixty  separate 
houses,  and  some  twenty-six  distinct  Religious  Orders. 
It  ''was  good  to  be  there"  with  them,  with  that  body  of 
mature-minded  women  who  were  versed  in  values,  who 
held  intellectual  pursuits  only  secondary  to  holiness.  All 
were  so  eager  to  learn  so  ready  to  assist  and  impart,  so 


676  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

sisterly  and  considerate  in  their  relations  with  one 
another  that  they  rendered  the  social  conditions  of  the 
School  exquisite.  In  the  free  hours,  when  scattered  over 
the  grounds,  or  resting  under  the  beautiful  trees,  we  dis- 
cussed at  leisure  questions  of  interest,  resolved  our  doubts 
and  made  friends.  The  interchange  of  ideas  was  well 
worth  another  month  of  school. 

There  were  other  lessons  to  be  learned  that  were  not 
less  helpful.  Every  casual  meeting  with  a  member  of  the 
Faculty  was  a  new  source  of  inspiration.  One  fortunate 
encounter  with  the  Eight  Eeverend  Eector  turned  his 
steps  and  ours,  the  eight  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Names 
group,  to  the  Power-House  the  center  of  engineering 
activity.  The  work  of  the  last  June  classes  was  on  the 
black-boards,  and  as  we  examined  it  our  thoughts  ran  on 
as  usual  to  the  great  things  the  Catholic  University  was 
doing  for  the  nation. 

^^If  we  only  had  a  Henry  VII  to  found  and  endow  all 
the  colleges  you  need, ' '  one  among  us  said  to  the  Eector. 

The  remark  drew  forth  a  most  interesting  account  of 
the  political,  social,  and  religious  conditions  that  made 
Oxford  and  Cambridge  possible.  How  we  enjoyed  that 
talk  as  we  wended  our  way  back  to  Divinity  Hall!  We 
were  going  through  the  University  ^  *  farm, ' '  and  had  come 
to  a  small  ravine  under  overhanging  trees,  the  air  was 
what  that  of  Eden  might  have  been  before  the  Fall  of 
Adam,  the  Eector  paused  on  the  further  side  of  the  incline 
to  complete  the  subject,  while  we  drank  in  the  interesting 
narrative,  beautifully  recounted  with  all  the  charming 
simplicity  that  makes  true  greatness  fascinating.  I  cite 
this  incident  out  of  many,  only  to  give  the  uninitiated  a 
peep  into  the  ideal  life  of  the  Summer  School  at  the  Cath- 
olice  University. 

We  intentionally  waylaid  the  Dean  of  the  School,  Eev. 
Dr.  Shields,  one  of  the  greatest  educators  of  our  day,  on 
every  available  occasion,  *Ho  hear  something  more  about 


The  First  Summer  School  677 

education.'*  We  knew  through  others  that  he  was  tired 
and  grief- stricken,  bereaved  the  previous  week  of  a 
brother;  but  not  in  deed  or  word  of  his  could  we  have 
known  of  his  sorrow.  His  endurance,  like  his  patience 
and  his  erudition,  was  inexhaustible.  Never  shall  we  for- 
get the  hours  we  spent  thrilled  through  and  through  by 
the  rare  qualities  of  his  eloquence,  or  the  delightful  charm 
of  his  conversation. 

I  had  heard  so  much  of  the  other  Professors  from  my 
fellow-students  that  I  resolved,  when  I  could,  to  hear  each 
one  lecture  on  his  own  special  branch.  Following  out  my 
resolution,  I  went  to  the  sanctum  where  Dr.  Turner's 
logic  held  his  audience  spell-bound,  but  I  failed  to  find  a 
vacant  seat.  I  next  turned  to  the  Assembly  Hall  where 
Dr.  Pace  was  lecturing  on  psychology,  and  both  he  and 
his  listeners  looked  radiantly  happy.  The  merry  twinkle 
in  his  eye  convinced  me  that  where  he  was,  there  could  be 
no  monotony,  and  I  recalled  the  Educational  Meeting  at 
Detroit.  The  lecture  was  in  its  last  quarter,  I  regret  to 
say,  but  like  some  weird  creature  the  lecturer  actually 
attacked  the  subject  of  heredity,  on  which  I  had  had  a 
recent  burning  discussion.  I  was  pleased  when  the 
learned  Doctor  upheld  the  arguments  I  had  used,  but  1 
was  more  delighted  still  with  his  manner,  his  style  and  his 
strength.  The  enthusiasm  of  his  students  was  justified. 
Professor  Landry  seemed  to  me  a  source  of  central  light, 
and  all  mathematics  but  the  emanations  of  his  brain ;  and 
after  listening  repeatedly  to  Professor  McCarthy  I  came 
away  dreaming  dreams  of  historical  charts,  and  planning 
a  scientific  anatomical  basis  for  every  important  period 
in  American  history,  to  be  clothed  later  with  the  nerve  and 
sinew,  the  muscle  and  flesh  of  well-correlated  details.  Mr. 
Hemelt,  versed  in  Anglo-Saxon  and  Old  English,  in  Mil- 
ton, and  Byron,  and  Wordsworth,  made  the  beauty  and 
strength  of  our  mother  tongue  very  attractive.  Clear  and 
expansive  in  his  lectures,  we  were  enabled  to  bring  away 


678  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

with  us  system  as  well  as  knowledge,  methods  whereby 
we  can  improve  our  own  work  in  the  school-room.  After 
lecture  hours  he  was  always  ready  to  help  the  many  stu- 
dents who  wished  to  appeal  to  his  judgment  on  their  liter- 
ary efforts.  His  candor  and  the  enlightened  encourage- 
ment he  gave,  were  alone  well  worth  the  weeks  spent  at 
the  Summer  School.  Mr.  Crook  was  another  of  these 
indefatigable  men  who  could  not  do  enough  for  the  Sis- 
ters. From  early  morn  till  late  he  was  in  the  laboratory 
preparing  the  experiments  for  his  physics  class,  or  help- 
ing on  some  student  in  her  work,  always  ready  to  answer 
the  multitude  of  questions  that  was  raised.  The  one 
regret  of  the  entire  class  seemed  to  be  that  we  could  not 
have  three  years  of  such  work  under  such  direction  and 
guidance. 

These  lecturers  it  was  given  me  to  enjoy.  At  the  dinner 
hour  and  elsewhere  I  heard  much  of  Dr.  McCormick  and 
Dr.  Moore,  of  Professor  Parker,  Professor  Doolittle  and 
Professor  Teillard,  of  Dr.  Wagner  and  Dr.  Weber  and 
of  Dr.  Marcetteau  and  I  know  not  of  how  many  others. 
The  students  of  each  class  came  away  convinced  that  they 
had  the  best  lecture  of  the  day.  It  did  my  heart  good  to 
listen  to  the  whole-souled  praise  around  me,  feeling  that 
each  student  had  found  more  than  she  had  come  to  seek. 

We  never  realized  before  as  we  did  at  the  University, 
that  to  Catholics  belong  the  riches  of  the  ages,  and  that 
as  the  Church  in  the  past  saved  the  effete  Eoman  civiliza- 
tioi;!,  and  refined  barbarian  nations  and  tribes  and  peo- 
ples, so  it  will  again  save  a  pagan  age.  Eev.  Father  Doyle 
added  strength  to  this  conviction.  By  his  lectures  on  the 
Life  of  Christ  we  saw  that  the  missionary  spirit  is  still 
as  energetic  as  ever,  and  as  vital  and  effective. 

The  culture  at  the  University  is  not  the  mere  culture  of 
the  refined  animal,  but  the  deep-seated  soul-culture  that 
comes  from  the  charity  of  Christ.  There,  the  Master  is 
the  model  held  up  for  imitation.    To  Christ,  the  Divine 


The  Fiest  Summer  School  679 

Educator,  these  guardians  of  youth  go  to  learn  wisdom; 
their  methods  are  based  on  Christ  ^s  teachings  in  Galilee 
and  on  the  Jordan.  Of  all  the  three  hundred  who  fed  and 
feasted  at  the  banquet  of  the  Summer  School,  I  feel  per- 
suaded that  there  is  not  one  who  will  not  emphatically 
endorse  my  verdict  of  its  organization,  its  spirit,  and  its 
results. 

I  marveled  how  so  many  kind  men  could  be  found  on  the 
staff  of  any  one  institution,  and  as  I  write  this  the  memory 
of  Dr.  Dougherty ^s.  Father  Vieban^s  and  Mr.  Borden's 
thousand  and  one  kindnesses  come  to  mind.  But  I  under- 
stand this  is  the  normal  atmosphere  of  the  place.  Dr. 
Dumont,  S.  S.,  a  son  of  France  of  the  old  school,  answered 
my  friend's  interrogatory  in  this  wise:  ^*I  have  been 
here  seventeen  years,  Sister,  and  courtesy  and  kindness 
have  always  reigned.'' 

What  the  Summer  School  has  been  to  us  it  is  impos- 
sible to  say.  I  have  been  now  a  fortnight  at  home,  and  1 
cannot  shake  off  the  spell  that  was  cast  upon  me  at  Wash- 
ington. To  me  and  to  many  the  Summer  School  has  been 
worth  more  than  a  retreat,  for  practical  religion  was 
beautifully  blended  with  all  we  heard  and  saw.  To  us  the 
University  Faculty  was  a  Providence.  Whithersoever  we 
turned  for  spiritual  and  intellectual  food  we  found  men 
who  apparently  had  freed  themselves  from  the  shackles 
of  self,  ready  and  willing  to  answer  our  call  for  help. 

**We  owe  so  much  to  you  for  this  Summer  School,"  we 
repeatedly  remarked  to  the  Eector,  ^Hhat  we  can  never 
repay  you." 

The  Rector  began  immediately  to  say  that  everybody 
but  himself  was  instrumental  in  making  the  School  the 
success  it  was.  I  told  Dr.  Shields  of  this  conversation. 
''Mgr.  Shahan,"  the  Dean  replied,  ''has  always  been  an 
ardent,  loyal  supporter  of  the  movement,"  and  so  the 
story  ran  on.  How  could  any  one  fail  to  admire  men 
humble  enough  to  be  great? 


680  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

It  means  mucli  and  very  much  to  come  in  contact  with 
the  intellectual  and  the  manly;  with  the  Galahads  of  the 
nation,  and  absorb  mental  food  in  an  atmosphere  purified 
and  permeated  by  religion.  I  know  whereof  I  speak,  for 
I  have  taken  lecture  courses  at  other  universities  and  1 
am  proud  of  the  degrees  they  conferred  on  me.  I  have 
passed  the  days  of  youthful  enthusiasm,  and  still  I  can 
say  in  all  sincerity  of  soul,  that  the  Catholic  University 
seems  to  me  to  be  the  greatest  blessing  God  has  ever 
bestowed  on  America.  As  a  Summer  School  center  it  is 
unequaled.  It  has  the  buildings  and  the  equipment  neces- 
sary. Its  nearness  to  the  Federal  Capital  affords  stu- 
dents many  excellent  opportunities  to  perfect  knowledge. 
There  was  our  trip  to  Mount  Vernon,  for  instance,  and 
as  I  stood  near  the  tomb  of  Washington,  I  thanked  God 
that  there  were  such  men  as  those  who  were  with  us  to 
save  the  great  nation  founded  by  him  whom  we  had  come 
to  honor.  Our  reception  at  the  White  House  by  President 
Taft  is  a  memory  to  cherish.  The  visit  of  Mgr.  Falconio 
to  the  School  and  that  of  the  Cardinal  added  color  to  the 
most  precious  days  of  life.  The  Physics  class,  accompa- 
nied by  Father  Doyle  and  Professor  Crook,  learned  much 
that  is  valuable  at  the  Bureau  of  Standards  through  the 
kindness  of  Mr.  Fisher  and  his  assistants.  What  we 
saw  at  the  Capitol,  the  Congressional  Library,  the  Bureau 
of  Engraving,  the  Smithsonian  Institute,  etc.,  help  to  com- 
plete a  liberal  education. 

We  went  to  Washington  realizing  our  needs;  we 
returned  more  than  satisfied  with  our  brief  school  days, 
and  strong  in  the  belief  that  there  is  no  educational  insti- 
tution superior  to  the  Catholic  University.  From  8  a.  m. 
to  6  p.  m.  may  seem  long  hours  of  class  and  study,  but 
they  were  not  long  enough  for  students  of  the  Summer 
School.  We  burrowed,  when  we  dared,  into  the  night  to 
complete  the  studies  of  the  day.  These  long  hours  of 
work  were  made  easy  and  possible  for  us  through  the 


The  First  Summer  School  681 

devotedness  and  kindness  of  the  dear  Sisters  who  pre- 
sided in  the  Halls,  and  saw  to  our  comfort.  The  Sisters 
of  Divine  Providence  in  Divinity  Hall,  where  our  rooms 
were,  deserve  every  praise.  Even  our  little  Saturday 
excursions  had  their  kind  leaders  in  Captain  and  Mrs. 
Coope,  and  Miss  Eeilly.  In  giving  these  details  I  am  not 
telling  how  refined  their  attentions  were,  no  one  could,  1 
am  only  stating  that  the  Summer  School  was  an  organized 
unit,  every  feature  of  which  was  characterized  by  culture 
and  courtesy.  Let  me  add  that  the  courtesy  did  not  end 
with  closing  day  or  at  Washington.  Eev.  Father  Vieban, 
S.  S.,  with  the  innate  delicacy  that  is  his,  accompanied  the 
students  to  Baltimore,  to  enable  us  without  loss  of  pre- 
cious time,  to  see  what  the  old  Maryland  capital  has  to 
show  its  visitors.  The  world  is  not  a  hard  world,  or  a 
bad  world  after  all,  when  it  can  retain  the  best  charm  of 
the  past  combined  with  the  highest  good  of  the  present — 
the  perfection  of  spiritual  and  mental  growth.  All  I  could 
say  would  give  only  a  dull,  dim  reflection  of  what  the  Sum- 
mer School  was  to  me — to  all  its  members.  The  beauty 
of  it  is,  the  effects  are  abiding.  We  go  back  to  our  school- 
rooms with  increased  knowledge,  with  methods  perfected, 
with  the  ideal  of  Catholic  education  in  broader,  bolder 
relief,  with  a  frequent:  **God  bless  every  member  of 
the  Summer  School  Faculty ! ' '  on  our  lips.  The  intellec- 
tual and  spiritual  loveliness  that  moved  our  souls  to  their 
very  depths  in  this  summer  of  1911,  give  a  new  joy  to  life 
that  cannot  pass  away. 

A  Sister  of  the  Holy  Names. 
Montreal, 
Canada. 


DOCTOE  LORENZ  KELLNEE  ^ 

The  centenary  of  the  birth  of  Dr.  Lorenz  Kellner,  which 
was  lately  celebrated  at  Trier,  united  representatives  of 
all  the  different  groups  and  branches  of  Catholic  teachers 
and  educationalists  in  Germany.  To  the  elementary 
teachers  he  is  the  ideal  of  one  of  their  own,  a  progressive 
pedagogue  and  yet  faithful  to  the  good  old  traditions,  a 
reformer  of  the  method  in  teaching  children  their  mother- 
tongue,  not  by  grammatical  exercises,  but  by  the  use  of 
the  best  models  of  literature,  the  model  of  an  inspector 
and  administrator.  Educationalists  consider  him  their 
master  who  has  shown  them  how  the  details  of  their  work 
must  be  based  on  the  fundamental  principles  of  education, 
how  the  technical  elements  of  school  work  may  be  made  a 
useful  instrument  for  the  training  of  body,  mind  and  will ; 
they  see  in  him  their  model  in  dealing  with  the  teachers 
and  children  by  showing  justice,  kindness  of  heart,  sym- 
pathy and  encouragement,  so  as  to  make  the  visitation  of 
the  school  a  pleasure  to  all  and  an  incentive  to  enthusiasm 
and  new  activity.  Priests,  professors,  and  others  inter- 
ested in  education,  are  grateful  to  him  that  by  his  writings 
he  not  only  helped  to  reopen  the  treasures  of  the  traditions 
of  Catholic  education  to  all,  but  that  he  gathered  also 
from  modern  educationalists  all  the  real  good  and  sound 
results  and  combined  the  nova  with  the  Vetera  in  harmo- 
nious union  at  a  time  when  Catholic  educationalists  in 
Germany  were  only  just  awakening  to  the  fact  that  they 
were  in  danger  of  being  left  behind  by  the  non- Catholic 
educational  movement  aroused  by  Pestalozzi,  Salzmann 
and  Basedow. 

One  trembles  to  think  of  what  would  have  become  of 


^  Born  January  29,  1811,  died  August  18,  1892.  A  list  and  description 
of  Kellner's  works  is  given  in  Erinnerungsblatter  by  Adam  Goergen, 
Trier,  Paulinus-Druckerei,  1910. 


Doctor  Lorenz  Kellner  683 

Catholic  training  colleges  and  consequently  of  Catholic 
elementary  schools  in  Prussia  and  other  parts  of  Ger- 
many during  the  years  of  the  Kulturkampf  had  Kellner 's 
writings  not  helped  to  secure  beforehand  a  body  of  loyal 
Catholic  teachers  who  in  those  trying  years  upheld  the 
principles  of  Catholic  education  in  spite  of  the  many 
temptations  on  the  part  of  the  authorities  to  make  the  vil- 
lage schoolmaster  the  antagonist  of  the  priest,  as  the 
burgomaster  was  usually  no  match  for  him  by  want  of 
education.  It  is,  therefore,  rather  an  understatement  to 
say  that  Kellner  was  for  the  German  Catholic  teachers 
what  Windhorst  was  for  the  Centre  party,  inasmuch  as 
Kellner  exercised  his  influence  almost  single-handed  at 
least  for  a  number  of  years. 

His  influence  was,  however,  not  limited  to  Prussia  nor 
to  the  new  German  Empire,  nor  even  to  the  German- 
speaking  countries  in  its  neighborhood,  but  extended  also 
to  other  countries  where  his  original  works  were  not 
understood  by  the  majority  of  educationalists.  Father 
Bernard  Dillinger  writes  from  Scutari  in  Albania :  ^  ^  No 
other  pedagogue  is  for  teachers  of  such  significance  as 
Kellner ;  no  one  deserves  better  to  be  studied  and  consid- 
ered, to  be  explained  and  discussed;  he  towers  above  all 
pedagogues  of  the  present  time.''  The  Catholic  Teachers' 
Association  of  Tyrnan  in  Hungary  predicts:  ''Your 
name  will  shine  amongst  the  stars  in  the  sky  of  Catholic 
education  forever,  and  posterity  will  be  blessed  through 
it."  The  Catholic  teachers  in  Holland  acknowledge  with 
gratitude  the  help  and  encouragement  they  have  derived 
from  Kellner 's  writings  in  times  of  stress  and  struggle, 
and  they  profess  that  he  has  inspired  them  with  a  super- 
natural view  of  their  vocation,  a  strictly  Catholic  spirit 
and  a  joyful  enthusiasm  in  the  performance  of  their 
duties.  Professor  Parmentier,  of  Poitiers  states :  ''Kell- 
ner is  a  personality  whom  Frenchmen  can  no  longer 
ignore.    The  principles  of  education  which  he  laid  down 


684  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

will  secure  permanency  to  his  work  and  secure  to  his  name 
one  of  the  first  places  in  the  history  of  education.  His 
rules  of  inspection  are  a  model  of  practical  pedagogy. 
Principles  like  his  have  the  character  of  universality; 
they  are  applicable  in  all  countries  wherever  there  are 
schools." 

To  some  critical  spirit  it  might  appear  that  these 
praises  by  his  own  coreligionists  are  perhaps  due  chiefly 
to  the  Catholic  spirit  and  example,  and  not  so  much  to  the 
general  educational  value  of  his  writings  and  his  work. 
It  will,  therefore,  be  well  to  quote  a  few  testimonials  of 
non-Catholics.  The  Protestant  Preussische  Lehrerzeitung 
was  fully  aware  that  Kellner  was  not  in  harmony  with 
the  tendency  of  their  4mmortaP  Falk  (the  author  under 
Bismarck  of  the  KuUurkampf  laws),  yet  the  editors 
acknowledge  that  amongst  Catholic  educationalists  who 
by  their  efforts  and  works  have  gained  in  a  high  degree 
the  appreciation  and  respect  of  non-Catholic  teachers 
Dr.  Kellner  ranks  foremost;  that  he  secured  their  grati- 
tude and  love  by  his  clear  conception  of  the  purpose  and 
end  of  elementary  education,  by  his  excellent  handling 
of  practical  school  questions,  by  his  epoch-making  method 
of  instruction  in  the  mother-tongue,  by  his  ideal  concep- 
tion of  the  teaching  profession,  and  by  his  unshaken  loy- 
alty to  elementary  teachers.  Although  he  opposed  the 
union  of  all  German  teachers  into  one  association  and 
promoted  the  combination  of  Catholic  teachers,  the  organ 
of  the  former  finds  many  things  in  his  writings  which 
are  beneficial  and  worthy  of  imitation,  and  agrees  that 
he  deserves  to  be  ranked  with  the  great  educationalists 
of  the  nineteenth  century. 

Schubert  Polack,  who  knew  him  chiefly  by  his  writings 
and  by  the  work  of  the  teachers  Kellner  helped  to  train 
at  Heilingenstadt,  calls  him  without  reservation:  ^*The 
model  for  all  German  Christian  educators." 

Perhaps  the  most  striking  testimony  to  Dr.  Kellner 's 


DocTOE  LoKENz  Kellner  685 

work  and  worth  is  that  of  Dr.  Dittes,  the  anti-Catholic 
director  of  the  Pedagogium  in  Vienna.  We  cannot  resist 
the  temptation  to  quote  in  full  what  Dr.  Dittes  wrote  in 
1886  for  Dr.  Kellner  ^s  seventy-fifth  birthday  and  his 
retirement  from  his  official  position:  ** Although  we  do 
not  share  Dr.  Kellner 's  views  on  ecclesiastical  and  school- 
political  questions,  we  acknowledge  fully  and  unre- 
servedly the  great  value  of  Dr.  Kellner 's  literary  and 
official  work  by  which  he  benefited  the  schools  both  as  to 
special  method  and  as  to  general  pedagogical  matters. 
Whilst  we  pay  our  sincere  homage  to  the  jubilarian  as  to 
one  of  the  most  prominent  German  schoolmen,  we  wish 
him  a  long  and  cheerful  time  of  rest  and  God's  richest 
blessing." 

A  wish  has  been  expressed  that  a  collection  of  Dr.  Kell- 
ner's  writings  should  be  published,  containing,  however, 
only  those  topics  which  are  of  general  and  lasting  interest. 
If  this  were  done,  it  would  be  a  great  boon  to  have  a  por- 
tion of  the  collection  translated  into  English.  Catholic 
education  in  North  America,  Australia,  South  Africa  and 
the  British  Isles  would  gain  considerably  if  Kellner 's 
principles  were  everywhere  studied  and  applied  and  his 
example  imitated.  In  the  meantime  it  may,  perhaps,  be 
interesting  and  stimulating  to  those  who  are  not  able  to 
read  his  works  to  know  something  of  his  life  and  of  the 
way  in  which  he  gained  so  much  influence  on  Catholic 
education  in  German- speaking  countries.^ 

1.  EARLY  LIFE  AND  EDUCATION  (1811  TO  1836) 

Dr.  Kellner 's  father  was  a  Catholic  schoolmaster  who 
later  on  became  Director  of  the  Training  College  at  Heili- 
genstadt  in  Prussian  Saxony.    He  was  brought  up  in  a 


^  The  writer  takes  this  opportunity  to  express  his  indebtedness  to  the 
different  works  of  Kellner  in  his  boyhood,  in  the  training  college,  and  in 
his  professional  work.  His  only  regret  is  that  during  the  six  weeks  he 
spent  in  Trier  in  1885  he  had  no  opportunity  of  seeing  the  great  man 
face  to  face. 


686  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

simple  and  strict  way  and  developed  early  a  strength  of 
character  which  an  effeminate  education  is  unable  to 
produce.  His  parents  were  not  blessed  with  riches  but 
made  great  sacrifices  to  give  him  a  good  education.  From 
his  twelfth  year  Dr.  Kellner  attended  the  Gymnasium  at 
Heiligenstadt,  but  as  he  showed  an  inclination  to  become 
a  priest  and  as  his  father  hoped  he  might  obtain  an  eccle- 
siastical scholarship,  he  went  to  Hildesheim  in  Hanover. 
The  father's  hope  was  not  fulfilled,  for  as  a  Prussian 
subject  he  was  considered  a  foreigner  at  Hildesheim,  and 
the  son  noticing  with  increasing  anxiety  that  his  expenses 
caused  embarrassment  to  his  father  generously  gave  up 
his  heart's  desire  for  the  priesthood  and,  having  decided 
to  become  a  teacher,  he  entered  the  Training  College  at 
Magdeburg.  We  know  no  details  of  the  time  he  spent 
there  from  the  autumn  of  1828  to  the  spring  of  1831,  but 
we  have  five  of  his  certificates  which  testify  to  his  knowl- 
edge, his  character  and  his  abilities  as  a  teacher,  both  for 
normal  children  as  well  as  the  deaf  mutes.  The  usual 
mark  in  the  different  subjects  is  ^  ^  excellent, ' '  there  are 
a  few  *  Wery  goods,''  and  the  only  low  note  he  struck  was 
in  singing.  For  ^ve  years  he  was  a  teacher  in  the  elemen- 
tary schools  of  Erfurt,  until  in  1836  he  was  appointed  by 
the  Provincial  Government  Master  at  the  Training  Col- 
lege in  Heiligenstadt.  His  education  had  fitted  him  emi- 
nently for  this  post  and  his  early  impressions  and  expe- 
riences had  given  a  peculiar  character  to  his  whole  life. 

As  he  could  not  serve  God  and  his  Church  as  a  priest,  he 
devoted  his  whole  life  to  the  same  cause  as  a  teacher.  A 
teacher  and  a  friend  of  teachers  he  remained  all  his  life 
and  his  sympathies  with  the  children  and  the  teaching 
profession  were  well  known  and  appreciated  by  non-Cath- 
olics. Although  Protestants  of  different  classes  from  the 
highest  officials  in  the  province  down  to  the  humblest 
village  schoolmaster  knew  and  appreciated  his  broad- 
minded  tolerance  of  the  convictions  of  others,  neither  they 


Doctor  Lorenz  Kellner  687 

nor  his  own  coreligionists  were  ignorant  of  his  sound 
Catholic  spirit  and  his  childlike  piety.  We  see  now 
clearly  why  Divine  Providence  prevented  his  ecclesiastical 
career,  because  he  could  do  and  did  do  such  an  amount 
of  good  to  the  schools  in  times  and  places  where  a  Catholic 
priest  would  have  been  unable  to  exercise  any  influence, 
and  his  Catholic  spirit  was  as  ardent  and  as  loyal  as 
that  of  any  priest. 

On  the  other  hand,  it  was  a  great  gain  that  in  his  early 
youth  he  received  a  higher  education  and  a  better  prepa- 
ration than  elementary  teachers  even  now  can  obtain 
before  commencing  their  professional  training.  He 
became  an  exceptionally  qualifiied  master  of  a  training 
college  and  later  on  both  in  his  writings  and  in  his  official 
work  he  showed  a  grasp  of  principles  and  an  accuracy  of 
expression  which  can  hardly  be  expected  from  one  who 
has  not  enjoyed  the  advantage  of  a  classical  education. 

There  was  another  early  impression  which  followed 
him  through  life  and  stimulated  his  activity,  viz,  the 
lack  of  method  and  enthusiasm  in  his  early  teachers,  a 
defect  which  he  helped  others  to  correct  by  his  writings. 
He  says:  *^What  was  wanting  in  many  otherwise  good 
men  of  that  time  was  chiefly  the  proper  method  and  the 
electric  spark  which  in  a  vivifying  manner  springs  from 
the  master  to  the  pupil  and  produces  a  magnetic  bond 
between  them. ' '  His  special  book  on  the  method  of  Ger- 
man was  intended  to  cure  the  first  defect,  his  book  on  the 
History  of  Education  the  second;  his  works  on  general 
principles  of  education  (Aphorismen,  Volksschulkunde, 
Paedagogische  Mitteilungen,  Lose  Blatter)  serve  both 
purposes. 

2.    MASTER  AT  THE  TRAINING  COLLEGE  (1836-1848) 

At  the  Training  College  in  Heiligenstadt  Lorenz  Kell- 
ner  found  himself  the  youngest  member  of  the  staff  and 
the  collaborator  of  his  father,  an  enthusiastic  admirer  of 


688  The  Catholic  Educational  Beview 

Pestalozzi.  The  younger  Kellner  surpassed  his  principal 
and  his  senior  colleagues  in  knowledge  and  capacity,  and 
to  him  fell  the  lion's  share  of  work.  He  made  his  lectures 
interesting  and  stimulated  the  activity  of  his  pupils  to  a 
high  degree,  so  that  they  continued  their  education  later 
on  when  they  were  acting  as  teachers.  This  zeal  for  pri- 
vate study  has  become  a  characteristic  of  elementary 
teachers  in  Germany,  and  there  is  no  doubt  that  Kellner 's 
enthusiasm  and  example  has  been  one  of  its  chief  sources. 
He  was  one  of  the  first  masters  who  introduced  into  the 
training  college  an  elementary  course  of  mental  science, 
including,  under  the  modest  name  of  ^ ^ Denkuhungen/ ^ 
the  chief  topics  of  Logic  and  Psychology.  This  course 
is  now  an  integral  part  of  the  programme  of  German 
training  colleges  and  has  done  a  great  deal  to  raise  educa- 
tional study  above  the  level  of  mere  mechanism  and 
technical  training. 

Acting  teachers  in  the  ^^Eichsfeld/^  whose  education 
had  been  deficient,  but  who  were  willing  to  supplement 
it,  found  ready  helpers  in  the  Kellners,  senior  and  junior. 
They  met  their  pupils  under  a  mighty  oak  tree  near 
the  castle  of  Scharfenstein,  still  known  as  the  *^  school- 
masters' oak."  Many  of  these  enthusiasts  walked  for 
miles  to  attend  these  meetings  in  order  to  gain  instruction, 
advice,  sympathy  and  encouragement  for  their  hard  but 
beneficient  work.  From  the  circumstances  under  which 
Kellner  worked  at  Heiligenstadt  we  can  readily  under- 
stand that  in  his  younger  years  his  influence  appealed 
more  to  the  intellect;  in  later  years  he  was  able  to  lay 
more  stress  on  the  formation  of  the  character  and  relig- 
ious training.  Yet  in  his  own  life  piety  and  charity  were 
never  overshadowed  by  intellectual  pride.  The  common 
morning  and  night  prayers  of  the  students  at  which  he 
presided  were  solid  and  edifying  and  by  his  attendance 
at  the  public  services  he  was  a  model  to  his  pupils  both 
by  his  regularity  and  his  reverence. 


DocTOE  LoRENz  Kellner  689 

His  conduct  towards  his  father  was  a  living  example  to 
those  who  had  an  opportunity  of  witnessing  it;  the  only 
difficulty  of  the  latter  seems  to  have  been  to  ascertain 
whether  the  father  was  more  fond  and  proud  of  his  son 
or  the  son  of  his  father. 

With  all  his  work,  Kellner  still  found  time  for  private 
study  and  for  writing.  It  was  his  love  for  children  which 
urged  him  to  devote  his  leisure  hours  to  literature.  This 
habit  followed  him  all  through  his  busy  life  even  to  his 
last  years  of  rest  and  retirement  from  public  work.  Dur- 
ing the  years  he  spent  at  the  Training  College  he  must 
have  felt  keenly,  as  we  do  now  in  English-speaking  coun- 
tries, the  absence  of  Catholic  works  on  the  history  of  edu- 
cation. The  non-Catholic  literature  in  this  branch  fights  shy 
of  the  Middle  Ages,  especially  of  Scholasticism,  ignores 
their  educational  progress  and  results  and  prefers  to  call 
its  principles  and  methods  by  modern  names,  as  if  they 
had  been  unknown  until  the  nineteenth  century.  Kellner 
having  always  been  an  exact  and  ardent  scholar  of  history 
set  to  work  to  supply  the  defect.  By  his  Short  History  of 
Education  (Kurze  Geschichte  der  Erziehung  und  des 
Unterrichtes)  he  supplied  a  text-book  for  students  at 
training  colleges  which  is  short  enough  for  the  limited 
time  at  their  disposal  and  yet  sufficiently  long  to  set 
before  the  future  teachers  some  of  the  work  of  past  ages 
in  a  way  calculated  to  inspire  them  with  enthusiasm  and 
to  make  them  long  for  more.  That  fuller  treatment  of  the 
same  matter  is  found  in  his  Erziehungs geschichte  in 
Skizsen  und  Bildern  which  also  supplies  matter  for  lec- 
tures on  this  subject  to  busy  masters  at  training  colleges 
who  cannot  go  to  original  sources.  He  helped  to  open 
these  sources  by  acting  as  one  of  the  chief  editors  of 
Herder ^s  Paedagogische  Bihliotheh,  which  consists  of 
educational  works  of  the  past  with  introductions  and  com- 
mentaries so  as  to  bring  them  up  to  the  present  termi- 
nology and  thus  to  make  them  more  intelligible  and  use- 


690  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

ful.  He  himself  edited  the  fourth  volume  of  this  series, 
viz,  Johann  Michael  Sailer's  Paedagogisches  Erstlmgs- 
werJc.  When  he  consented  to  cooperate  in  the  publication 
of  this  series  he  had  no  idea  of  the  great  services  it  was 
going  to  render  to  the  Catholic  teachers  in  Germany.  At 
that  time  the  study  of  such  works  was  only  required 
from  a  few.  Now,  every  Prussian  teacher  at  his  first 
certificate  examination  (i.  e.,  after  two  or  three  years' 
work  in  the  school)  must  show  a  thorough  knowledge  of 
the  work  of  a  recognized  author  on  education.  It  is  very 
fortunate  that  Catholic  teachers  find  works  of  this  kind 
edited  by  Catholic  educationalists  which  in  every  way 
compare  favorably  with  non-Catholic  editions.  When  the 
collection  of  Kellner's  selected  works  appears  there  is  no 
doubt  that  it  will  be  included  among  the  recognized  publi- 
cations and  thus  will  produce  good  results  for  years  to 
come. 

The  six  years  spent  at  the  Training  College  gave  a 
certain  bend  to  his  character  and  activity ;  but  in  his  new 
capacity  he  found  new  needs  and  discovered  new  means 
of  supplying  them.  Thus  whilst  he  continued  his  literary 
work  for  the  benefit  of  the  aspirants  to  the  teaching  pro- 
fession and  their  masters  he  added  to  it  other  topics  for 
the  instruction,  warning  and  encouragement  of  acting 
teachers. 

3.  scHULRAT  (1848-1886) 

The  title  ^^Schulraf  in  Prussia  has  a  double  meaning. 
Very  often  it  is  only  an  honorary  distinction  bestowed  on 
an  inspector  of  schools  or  the  director  of  an  educational 
institution.  In  its  real  sense  it  signifies  the  administrator 
of  elementary  education  in  a  governmental  district 
(Regierungshezirk)  who  is  also  a  member  of  the  govern- 
ment of  the  district.  He  is  the  superior  of  the  inspectors, 
and  has  in  his  hands  the  appointment  of  all  the  elemen- 
tary teachers.    He,  therefore,  combines  the  office  of  chief 


DocTOK  LoKENz  Kellnee  691 

inspector  with  that  of  administrator.  The  promotion  of 
Kellner  to  such  a  post  of  honor  and  responsibility  at  the 
age  of  thirty-seven  was  undoubtedly  exceptional,  even 
in  those  times.  It  must  have  been  due  to  the  impression 
he  made  on  the  visitors  of  the  Training  College  by  his 
results,  his  conduct,  and  his  literary  work.  His  appoint- 
ment to  a  post  in  the  far  east  of  the  kingdom  at  Marien- 
werder  removed  him  for  a  time  from  the  center  of  Cath- 
olic activity  and  from  the  circle  of  his  friends,  but  it  gave 
him  also  a  more  complete  knowledge  of  the  conditions  and 
the  needs  of  elementary  education  and  elementary  teach- 
ers which  in  its  turn  benefited  both  his  literary  and  his 
official  work  of  later  years.  He  tells  us  hardly  anything 
about  his  experience  in  Marienwerder,  where  he  remained 
seven  years  (until  July,  1855).  We  know,  however,  from 
his  parish  priest  that  less  than  a  month  before  Kellner 's 
death,  i.  e.,  thirty-six  years  after  he  had  left  Marien- 
werder, some  teachers  from  his  former  district  who  had 
made  a  pilgrimage  to  the  Holy  Coat  were  received  by 
him  as  old  friends  and  showed  by  their  conduct  that  his 
memory  was  still  green  in  east  Prussia. 

The  last  thirty-six  years  of  his  life  Dr.  Kellner  spent  in 
Trier,  where  he  remained  in  the  same  capacity  as  Schul- 
rat  until  1886.  Up  to  that  time  this  office  in  Trier,  as  in 
other  Catholic  districts,  had  been  held  by  a  priest.  Grad- 
ually laymen  were  appointed,  but  it  shows  a  great  amount 
of  tact  on  the  part  of  the  Prussian  government  of  the 
time  to  soften  the  pain  of  the  change  by  the  appointment 
of  so  devout  a  Catholic  as  Kellner.  At  a  later  period  such 
changes  in  educational  offices  were  made  with  demonstra- 
tive tactlessness,  especially  in  Catholic  districts,  not  to 
the  advantage  of  the  feeling  of  loyalty.  The  original 
reserve  of  the  clergy  towards  Kellner  and  the  resent- 
ment of  the  change  passed  away  as  soon  as  his  character 
was  known  and  it  proved  the  greatest  blessing  for  Cath- 
olic schools  in  the  district  of  Trier,  that  Dr.  Kellner,  who 


692  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

during  the  period  of  peace  had  secured  a  good  footing 
in  his  district  remained  in  his  office  until  the  violence  of 
the  KuUurkampf  had  spent  itself. 

His  educational  work  was  appreciated  not  only  by  the 
teachers  and  priests,  but  also  by  successive  Protestant 
presidents  of  the  district  government.  One  might  wonder 
why  he  was  not  promoted  to  a  higher  post  which  amongst 
other  functions  would  have  given  him  control  over  the 
training  colleges  of  the  province,  a  charge  for  which  he 
was  better  fitted  than  most  men ;  but  by  the  time  that  pro- 
motion was  due  the  educational  authorities  in  Prussia  had 
become  violently  anti-Catholic,  and  they  knew  that  Kell- 
ner  would  never  lend  himself  to  become  a  tool  for  the 
suppression  of  Catholic  loyalty.  It  did  not  hurt  his 
feelings  that  he  was  not  advanced  in  rank  and  position, 
for  all  his  life  he  had  acted  on  the  principle  to  remain 
at  a  post  until  he  was  called  from  it  and  not  to  wish  for  a 
larger  sphere  of  activity  and  influence  but  to  wait  until  it 
was  offered  him.  But  he  felt  keenly  the  harm  that  was 
done  to  Christian  education  by  the  forces  of  evil  which 
allied  themselves  with  the  persecutors  of  the  Catholic 
Church.  He  prevented  as  much  harm  as  he  could,  he 
acted  fearlessly  on  Catholic  principles,  but  he  could  not 
prevent  the  hostile  measures  of  superior  authorities,  e.  g., 
the  exclusion  of  Catholic  priests  from  religious  instruc- 
tion in  schools  and  the  appointment  of  anti-Catholic  or 
even  infidel  instructors.  We  need  hardly  say  how  much 
it  grieved  him  to  witness  all  this  and  to  see  the  number 
of  parishes  without  priests  increase  year  by  year.  We 
must,  however,  admire  his  tact  and  self-control  that  alone 
made  the  tenure  of  office  during  these  years  possible 
for  him ;  but  he  endured  the  constant  pang  and  strain  of 
that  unhappy  time  for  the  good  of  Catholic  education. 
His  heart  was  in  his  work  and  his  subjects  revered  and 
loved  him.  The  circle  of  his  friends  grew  year  by  year 
and  his  writings  brought  help  and  encouragement  to 


DocTOK  LoRENz  Kellner  693 

Catholic  teachers  who  had  to  bear  the  brunt  of  the  hostile 
attack.  In  his  earlier  years  he  had  written  for  them  his 
Volhsscliulhunde,  a  systematic  work  of  reference  and 
advice  covering  the  whole  range  of  elementary  school 
management.  It  has  many  rivals  and  is  perhaps  not 
pretentious  enough  to  attract  attention  on  the  book- 
market,  especially  as  it  has  not  an  original  scheme  of  its 
own. 

His  other  works  on  practical  education,  on  the  other 
hand,  have  attracted  general  attention  because  they  are 
original  and  fresh,  and  therefore  have  no  competitors. 
What  Polack  says  of  one  of  them,  the  Aphorismen,  is  true 
also  of  the  Paedagogischen  Mitteilungen  and  the  posthu- 
mous Lose  Blatter. 

**I  knew  him  first  by  his  Aphorismen.  My  good  luck 
brought  this  book  into  my  hands  on  my  first  appointment 
as  teacher.  I  read  this  kind  of  pedagogy  with  surprise 
and  my  delight  grew  from  paragraph  to  paragraph ;  they 
were  so  short  and  concise,  every  one  a  preface  to  a  whole 
book.  *  *  *  To  every  question  there  was  an  answer, 
out  of  every  error  a  finger-post,  for  every  mistake  a 
remedy,  for  discouragement  consolation,  for  every  doubt 
advice.  It  seemed  to  me  as  if  I  had  been  freed  from  the 
law  of  gravity.  My  profession  appeared  to  me  the  great- 
est luck.  I  desire  to  live  and  to  strive  on  those  principles. 
This  book  was  to  be  for  me  like  the  pillar  of  the  cloud  by 
daytime,  the  pillar  of  light  at  night. ' ' 

Whilst  quoting  these  words  of  a  Protestant  inspector 
of  schools  we  must  not  forget  that  thousands  of  Catholics 
have  derived  even  greater  benefits  from  the  study  of  Kell- 
ner's  works,  and  because  he  knew  it  he  felt  bound  to  con- 
tinue his  literary  work  to  the  very  end  of  his  life.  He 
insisted  that  Catholic  education  ought  to  be  in  no  way 
inferior  to  its  competitors,  but  rather  that  its  results 
ought  to  surpass  those  of  others,  especially  in  the  forma- 
tion of  character. 

He  died  a  pious  and  happy  death  without  showing  any 


694  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

sign  of  fear.  Why  should  he  be  afraid?  He  had  worked 
for  God,  not  for  glory  or  for  gain.  He  had  seen  evil  days 
around  him,  but  he  also  saw  the  good  he  and  others  had 
been  able  to  do  and  he  looked  hopefully  into  the  future. 
He  writes  towards  the  end  of  his  life : 

*  *  If  there  is  anything  which  makes  me  hope  good  things 
from  the  future  it  is  the  fact  that  nowadays  the  priests 
devote  themselves  more  than  ever  to  the  study  of  educa- 
tion both  in  its  theoretical  and  its  practical  aspects,  that 
in  the  true  ecclesiastical  spirit  they  take  it  not  only  into 
their  hands  but  also  into  their  heads,  that  building  on 
the  firm  ground  of  positive  faith  and  a  thorough  knowl- 
edge of  human  nature  they  may  know  how  to  combine 
progress  in  science  with  religious  and  moral  education.'^ 

The  last  quotation  shows  that  Kellner's  name  ought 
to  be  mentioned  in  the  Catholic  Educational  Eeview, 
because  it  carries  out  the  ideas  of  Kellner. 

Lambekt  Nolle^  0.  S.  B. 

Erdington  Abbey, 
Birmingham,  England. 


THE  EELATION  OF  THE  SEMINAEY  TO  THE 
GENERAL  EDUCATIONAL  PROBLEM* 

I  have  been  requested  to  prepare  a  paper  for  this  meet- 
ing of  the  Catholic  Educational  Association  on  **The 
Relation  of  the  Seminary  to  the  General  Educational 
Problem. ' '  In  these  United  States  we  Catholics  have  been 
wrestling  with  this  great  question  from  a  dual  motive, 
viz :  The  securing  of  the  continuation  of  Christ's  splendid 
mission  among  the  children  of  men  and  the  assuring  of 
the  permanency  of  our  much  loved  and  greatly  appre- 
ciated republican  institutions.  For  we  realize  that  the 
two  must  go  hand  in  hand.  And  in  our  struggle  for  the 
Christianizing  and  civilization  of  our  fellow-citizens  who 
can  say  we  have  not  been  terribly  in  earnest?  No  sacri- 
fice has  seemed  too  great,  no  difficulty  has  proved  too 
insurmountable,  no  perseverance  has  been  found  too  try- 
ing in  the  grand  and  glorious  struggle  we  have  continued 
at  great  odds  through  all  these  years,  until  now  our 
indomitable  spirit  of  supernatural  Faith  and  Christian 
enthusiasm  has  been  crowned  with  the  acknowledged  suc- 
cess of  our  great  system  of  Christian  education  in  all  its 
branches,  from  the  humble  parochial  schools  to  the  proud 
universities  covering  this  fair  land  from  one  end  of  it  to 
the  other. 

The  Catholic  Church  needs  no  apology  for  its  ever 
insistent  demand  for  the  Christian  education  of  its  chil- 
dren. The  history  of  2,000  years  attests  the  Church's 
interest  in  things  educational.  Ever  making  the  intellec- 
tual the  handmaid  of  the  supernatural,  she  has  builded 
up,  century  by  century,  that  most  admirable  system  of 
Scholastic  training  which  is  the  marvel  of  all  thinking 
men.    She  has  blazed  the  way  down  through  the  years 


♦Read  at  the  eighth  annual  meeting  of  the  Catholic  Educational 
Association,  Cliicago,  1911. 


696  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

of  pioneer  endeavor,  where  others  have  been  led  to  falter- 
ingly  follow,  until  today  she  stands  first  and  foremost  in 
the  ranks  of  educators,  offering  to  the  world  the  only 
education  worthy  of  the  name. 

Education  must  advance  as  civilization  develops  and 
makes  progress  among  the  people.  And  with  the  im- 
mensely rich  traditions  of  our  Catholic  history  in  the 
past,  who  shall  deny  us  a  still  more  glorious  future  of 
accomplishment  1 

The  particular  point  I  am  requested  to  develop  in  this 
paper  is  the  relation  of  the  seminary  to  our  practical 
educational  work  in  the  parish  school. 

The  intellectual  and  moral  character  of  the  pupil  will 
rise  no  higher  than  the  exemplar  he  finds  in  the  teacher 
who  guides  his  embryonic  attempts  to  assimilate  the  mat- 
ter day  by  day  provided  for  his  mental  food.  In  turn, 
the  teacher  is  more  or  less  dependent  for  successful  work 
upon  the  encouragement  and  wisely  guided  counsels  of 
the  priest  in  charge  of  the  local  school  energies.  If  he 
be  well  fitted  for  his  all  important  task,  capable  of  enter- 
ing into  the  great  work  entrusted  to  his  care,  equipped 
intellectually  and  pedagogically,  the  school  is  sure  of 
accomplishing  the  splendid  results  of  a  thoroughly  well 
organized  institution.  If,  on  the  contrary,  he  be  ill  pre- 
pared by  neglect  of  study  or  proper  guidance  along  these 
lines  during  his  seminary  course,  the  school  is  bound  to  be 
recognized  as  but  a  makeshift,  doing  more  harm  to  the 
cause  of  Christian  education  than  if  it  did  not  exist.  Too 
often,  in  the  past,  have  the  best  efforts  of  the  great  Teach- 
ing Orders  of  these  United  States  been  hampered  in  their 
work  because  the  priest,  learned  and  zealous  though  he 
may  have  been,  and  willing  to  do  his  best,  was  unin- 
formed as  to  proper  school  principles  by  reason  of  this 
particular  feature  of  the  sacred  ministry  in  these  parts 
having  been  overlooked  or  neglected  in  his  seminary 
training. 


Eelation  of  the  Seminary  697 

I  believe  it  to  be  a  matter  of  paramount  importance 
that  some  general  system  of  pedagogy  founded  on  the 
best  methods  now  accepted  by  educators  be  insisted  upon 
as  a  part  of  the  seminary  curriculum  if  we  would  go  for- 
ward in  this  great  work  of  Catholic  education. 

Although  the  pastor  is  supposed  to  be  the  guiding  prin- 
ciple of  the  parish  school  activities,  of  necessity  much  of 
the  parish  school  work  must  be  entrusted  to  the  care  of 
his  curates,  especially  in  the  large  city  parishes.  The 
pastor  generally  has  not  the  time  or  the  inclination  to 
instruct  his  younger  assistants  in  the  manner  of  his  work 
among  the  school  children.  If  the  young  priest  has  not 
learned  the  most  effective  and  best  adapted  methods  of 
school  work  in  his  preparation  for  the  sacred  ministry, 
his  only  alternative  is  to  learn  by  experience  as  his  pas- 
tor did  before  him,  and  experience  is  a  stem  teacher  for 
both  priest  and  pupil,  often  resulting  in  most  disastrous 
results  to  both. 

An  objection  may  be  raised  that  the  present  course  of 
studies  in  our  seminaries  leaves  but  scant  time  for  aught 
else.  The  curriculum  of  studies  I  admit,  already  demands 
strenuous  application  and  hard  study  on  the  part  of  the 
candidate  for  Holy  Orders ;  but  we  are  considering  in  this 
topic  the  better  fitting  of  our  young  priests  for  taking  up 
the  great  work  of  instruction  and  intellectual  development 
which  our  parish  schools  are  endeavoring  to  carry  out 
for  the  honor  and  glory  of  God  and  the  salvation  of  souls. 
Surely  these  motives  must  appeal  in  a  very  forceful  man- 
ner even  to  the  hard-worked  professor  and  students  of 
the  seminary. 

The  knowledge  of  philosophy  and  theology  and  canon 
law  and  liturgy  and  Scripture  and  chant  are  rightly 
insisted  upon  as  a  sine  qua  non  in  the  candidate  for  the 
sacred  priesthood.  But  in  our  rather  singular  and  com- 
plex relation  of  pastor  and  people  in  this  republic,  in  the 
peculiar  position  we  find  ourselves  in  regard  to  school 


698  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

conditions,  I  venture  to  suggest  that  a  practical  way  of 
assuring  the  very  highest  success  of  our  splendid  system 
of  Catholic  schools,  would  be  to  give  at  least  some  gen- 
eral instruction  during  the  seminary  course  in  pedagogy 
and  the  manner  of  successfully  managing  a  parochial 
school.  Under  present  conditions,  this  is  one  of  the  most 
important  features  of  our  priestly  work  among  the  peo- 
ple. For  we  must  never  forget  that  these  little  ones 
under  our  care  today  are  to  be  the  faithful  of  God's  church 
tomorrow  and  on  the  manner  in  which  we  do  our  duty 
towards  them  in  the  school  physically,  intellectually  and 
morally  will  depend  the  Church  of  the  future. 

In  the  limits  and  scope  of  this  paper  it  would  be  pre- 
sumptuous in  me  to  offer  more  than  a  suggestion  as  to  the 
best  means  of  remedying  an  admitted  weakness  in  our 
school  system.  I  have  but  endeavored  to  put  before  this 
convention  the  present  need  of  help  from  the  seminary 
for  more  successful  work  in  our  parish  school,  the  need 
as  I  see  it  after  an  experience  of  nearly  thirty  years  in 
parish  school  work.  If  I  shall  have  succeeded  in  impress- 
ing upon  the  good  directors  of  our  seminaries  the  neces- 
sity of  arousing  a  holy  enthusiasm  among  the  young 
levites  under  them  and  a  generous  spirit  of  sacrifice  for 
this  greatest  work  of  the  American  Church  among  us — 
the  successful  parish  school — I  shall  be  happy  in  having 
prompted  some  thought  leading  up  to  the  higher  efficiency 
of  our  Catholic  educational  system. 

Fkancis  J.  Van  Antwerp. 

Detroit,  Mich. 


EDUCATION  IN  SOUTH  AMERICA 

During  the  colonial  period  in  Iberian- America,  that  is, 
in  the  Spanish  and  Portuguese  possessions  on  this  side  of 
the  Atlantic,  religion  always  proceeded  hand  in  hand  with 
exploration,  colonization,  and  civilization.  State  and 
Church  were  intimately  united,  though  their  mutual  rela- 
tions were  not  always  peaceful,  as  the  correspondence  of 
the  times  permits  us  to  discover.  However,  the  ecclesias- 
tical spirit  pervaded  everything,  and  it  is  impossible  for 
the  student  of  history  to  lose  sight  of  the  Church.  She 
accompanied  the  rough  soldier  into  the  wilderness,  as 
she  had  followed  the  hardy  mariner  across  the  seas.  She 
strove  to  curb  their  passions,  to  prevent  their  cruelties  and 
injustices  and  to  save  their  souls.  If  the  natives  of 
America  seemed  to  be  the  first  objects  of  her  solicitude, 
she  did  not  forget  the  conquistador es  and  their  children. 
From  the  beginning  she  made  education  her  foremost 
duty.  Schools  were  established  for  the  Indian  wherever 
the  Spaniard  went,  and  some  famous  colleges  arose,  like 
that  of  Santa  Cruz  in  Mexico,  founded  by  the  Francis- 
cans, and  the  large  Jesuit  college,  Colegio  del  Principe  in 
Lima,  which  owed  its  origin  to  the  poet- viceroy.  Prince  of 
Esquilache,  descendant  of  St.  Francis  Borgia.  Colleges 
like  that  of  El  Eosario  at  Bogota,  were,  in  course  of  time, 
established  for  the  Spaniards,  and  centers  of  higher  edu- 
cation, like  the  Universities  of  Lima,  Mexico,  Quito, 
Bogota,  and  the  Jesuit  College  of  Tucuman,  spread  their 
light  throughout  Spanish  America.  While  in  Brazil,  too, 
such  educators  as  the  Jesuits  were  doing  a  noble  work,  no 
university,  strange  to  say,  seems  ever  to  have  been 
founded  in  the  Portuguese  dominions. 

Education  during  the  colonial  period  was  entirely  in 


700  The  Catholic  Educational  KevieW 

the  hands  of  the  Church,  though  the  larger  institutions 
were  founded  by  royal  charter.  The  religious  orders, 
especially  the  Dominicans,  Augustinians,  Franciscans, 
and  Jesuits,  were  prominent  in  the  work  of  education, 
the  Jesuits  being,  from  the  latter  part  of  the  sixteenth 
century  to  the  end  of  the  eighteenth,  the  great  educators 
of  Spanish  America.  The  expulsion  of  the  Jesuits  was  a 
severe  blow  to  educational  work  in  colonial  America. 
Their  colleges  were  suppressed,  or  they  exchanged  mas- 
ters, while  their  splendid  libraries  and  collections  of 
manuscripts  were  scattered. 

But  the  end  of  Spain's  rule  on  the  American  continent 
was  nigh ;  for  it  did  not  long  survive  the  actions  of  Pom- 
bal  and  Aranda.  "With  the  independence  of  the  colonies 
a  new  era  began  in  education.  The  state  took  charge  of 
it  generally,  while  the  old  orders  began  that  decline 
from  which  they  have  only  begun  to  recover  in  recent 
years.  Although  Church  and  state  remained  united, 
the  influence  of  the  former  had  waned,  and  it  too 
often  had  to  encounter  a  marked  antagonism  on  the  part 
of  the  latter.  The  principles  of  eighteenth  century  philos- 
ophy had  done  their  work  too  well,  and  a  party  arose, 
known  as  liberal,  which,  in  its  extreme  form,  the  radical, 
is  inimical  to  revealed  religion,  and,  consequently,  to 
religious  education.  Hence  the  battle  of  the  future,  in 
Spanish  America  as  elsewhere,  must  be  fought  in  the 
arena  of  education. 

To  understand  well  the  state  of  affairs  in  South  Amer- 
ica it  is  necessary  to  treat  separately  of  the  different 
countries,  as  it  is  impossible  to  lay  down  any  general 
statement  that  would  hold  good  for  all  the  republics.  I 
shall  only  write  of  those  countries  with  which  it  was  pos- 
sible for  me  to  enter  into  personal  contact,  namely,  Brazil, 
Uruguay,  Argentina,  Chile,  Peru,  Colombia,  and  Panama. 


Education  in  South  America  701 

BRAZIL 

Since  the  days  of  the  empire,  Church  and  State  have 
been  separated  in  Brazil,  and,  consequently,  there  is  a 
secular  and  there  is  a  religious  field  entirely  distinct  from 
each  other.  There  can  be  no  doubt  that,  since  the  days 
of  the  Braganzas,  Brazil  has  made  rapid  strides,  while 
religion  has  been  immensely  improved.  Where  there 
were  formerly  less  than  ten  bishops  there  are  now  about 
forty,  while  the  general  standard  of  the  clergy  has  been 
raised,  although  vocations  to  the  priesthood  are  few.  It 
stands  to  reason  that  Catholic  education  has  experienced 
the  same  influences  for  good. 

My  stay  in  Brazil  was  too  brief  to  form  a  proper  idea 
of  the  condition  of  education,  either  secular  or  religious, 
especially  in  its  primary  departments.  The  only  primary 
schools  I  was  able  to  visit  were  in  the  seaport  town  of 
Santos,  and  they  were  primitive  indeed.  One  of  these  was 
a  public  school.  A  wretched  little  house  served  for  the 
purpose,  while  a  score  or  more  of  children  occupied  two 
small  rooms  on  the  ground  floor.  A  delightful  air  of  cour- 
tesy and  amiability  on  the  part  of  teachers  and  pupils 
made  up,  however,  for  the  lack  of  elegance  and  comfort. 
One  of  the  three  schools  visited,  apparently  the  best  of 
the  three,  was  German.  Although  the  children  were 
absent,  the  general  appearance  of  neatness  and  cleanli- 
ness made  quite  a  favorable  impression.  I  may  remark, 
in  passing,  that  German  influence  is  very  pronounced 
in  Southern  Brazil. 

As  far  as  personal  observation  is  concerned,  I  was  more 
fortunate  in  regard  to  secondary  and  higher  education. 
Brazil  may  not  boast  of  a  university,  though  she  pos- 
sesses separate  faculties,  such  as  that  of  medicine  in 
Bahia,  in  the  old  Jesuit  College.  This  school  of  medicine 
enjoys  quite  a  favorable  reputation. 

In  Catholic  higher  education  for  boys,  the  Benedictines 
and  the  Jesuits  stand  foremost.    The  former  are  made 


702  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

up  of  various  nationalities,  Germans  being  especially 
numerous;  for  the  old  Brazilian  congregation  has  long 
since  gone  to  pieces.  The  College  of  S.  Bento  at  Rio  de 
Janeiro  is  connected  with  the  picturesque  old  abbey  over- 
looking the  harbor.  It  is  a  military  college.  Here,  as  in 
other  similar  institutions,  army  officers  are  detailed  to 
drill  the  boys,  and  sixty  days  each  year,  spent  in  exercises, 
take  the  place  of  military  service. 

A  no  less  flourishing  college  is  one  in  the  city  of  S. 
Paulo,  the  educational  center  of  Brazil.  The  best  families 
send  their  children  to  this  college,  which  compares  well 
with  similar  institutions  the  world  over.  It  is  attached  to 
the  Benedictine  abbey,  of  which  the  head,  heart,  and  soul 
is  the  energetic  abbot,  Dom  Miguel  Kruse,  who,  before 
entering  the  Order,  was  a  secular  priest  in  the  United 
States. 

Besides  the  gymnasium,  or  college  proper,  there  is  here, 
also,  a  faculty  of  philosophy  and  letters,  in  which  higher 
studies  are  pursued,  in  accordance  with  modern  methods. 
It  is  the  ambition  of  the  abbot  to  increase  the  efficiency 
of  the  institution,  and  he  even  dreams  of  the  possibility  of 
a  university. 

Another  well-known  educational  center  in  S.  Paulo,  but 
under  Protestant  auspices,  is  the  Mackenzie  College, 
endowed  by  funds  given  in  memory  of  John  T.  Mackenzie, 
of  New  York.  Originally  an  adjunct  to  the  Presbyterian 
mission,  it  is  now  independent,  and  supposedly  nonsecta- 
rian ;  for  in  compliance  with  the  wish  of  Brazilian  parents 
religion  is  excluded  from  this  and  and  some  other  Protes- 
tant institutions.  The  college  is  conducted  on  American 
models,  and  it  has  exercised  a  considerable  amount  of 
American  influence. 

UKUGUAY 

There  is,  probably,  more  hostility  to  the  Church  in  Uru- 
guay  than  in  most  other  countries  in  South  America, 


EDucATio:fr  in  South  Ameeioa  703 

although  Church  and  State  are  united,  and  the  bishop  and 
seminary  receive  a  subvention  from  the  government.  The 
Jesuit  Fathers  have  charge  of  the  seminary,  but  here,  as 
in  other  countries  of  South  America,  there  are  few  voca- 
tions to  the  priesthood.  The  public  schools  are  neutral, 
and  the  teaching  of  religion  is  excluded,  while  the  state 
university  is  said  to  be  rationalistic  in  its  tendencies. 

AEGENTINA 

This  young  country  is  wonderful  in  its  developments, 
and  its  capital,  Buenos  Aires,  justly  counts  as  one  of  the 
great  cities  of  the  world.  In  point  of  population  it  ranks 
fourth  in  the  Western  Hemisphere.  Education  in  Argen- 
tina has  kept  pace  with  the  general  progress  of  the  repub- 
lic, and  public  schools  are  found  everywhere,  while  there 
is  no  lack  of  private  institutions  of  learning.  Primary 
instruction  is  obligatory,  and,  on  the  part  of  the  govern- 
ment, gratuitous.  There  are  also  numerous  public  col- 
leges for  secondary  education,  under  the  auspices  of  the 
government,  while  higher  learning  has  its  seat  in  several 
universities,  those  of  Buenos  Aires,  Cordoba  and  La  Plata 
being  the  most  prominent. 

The  University  of  La  Plata,  hardly  seven  years  old,  is 
truly  wonderful,  from  architectural,  artistic  and  educa- 
tional standpoints.  With  its  two  thousand  students,  its 
splendid  group  of  buildings,  its  valuable  museum,  and  its 
astronomical  observatory,  it  deserves  to  rank  with  the 
important  universities  of  the  world  in  a  city  of  almost 
100,000  population  which  is  scarcely  more  than  a  quarter 
of  a  century  old,  and  the  founder  of  which  is  still  living. 
La  Plata  with  its  university  is  a  miniature  and  a  copy 
of  the  entire  marvelous  republic,  the  remarkable  progress 
of  which  must  be  attributed  to  the  liberal  and  enlight- 
ened policy  of  the  government  which  has  encouraged  for- 
eign immigration  and  foreign  capital. 


704  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

Unfortunately,  however,  religion  finds  no  part  in  the 
curriculum  of  Argentine  state  education,  and  much 
depends  on  the  personal  character  of  teachers  and  profes- 
sors. While  the  atmosphere  of  Cordoba,  with  its  ven- 
erable university,  seems  to  be  entirely  Catholic,  that  of 
young  La  Plata  is  said  to  be  tinged  with  rationalism. 

Religion  is  not  permitted  to  enter  within  the  walls  of 
the  public  schools  as  such,  though  the  clergyman  is 
allowed  to  instruct  the  children  in  catechism  after  school 
hours.  Any  one  at  all  acquainted  with  the  fundamental 
principles  of  education  must  see  how  inadequate  such 
teaching  is  to  lay  the  foundations  of  sound  morality. 

And  yet,  the  government  of  Argentina  today  is  not 
hostile  to  the  Church,  and  the  vast  bulk  of  the  population 
is  Catholic,  at  least  in  name.  And  what  is  the  Church 
doing  to  counteract  the  evil  influences  that  surround  her 
children?  In  the  Church,  as  well  as  in  the  country  at 
large,  signs  of  increased  activity  are  visible.  It  is  quite 
natural  that,  depending  so  completely  on  the  government, 
the  Church  in  colonial  times  had  fallen  into  somewhat  of 
a  routine.  But,  through  friction  with  other  nations,  and 
by  the  necessities  of  the  times,  there  is  an  awakening, 
although  very  much  remains  to  be  desired. 

The  parochial  school  system,  as  we  understand  it,  is, 
in  Argentina,  still  in  its  infancy.  Last  year  there  were 
only  four  parochial  schools,  strictly  speaking,  in  the  city 
of  Buenos  Aires,  while  about  twenty-two  existed  in  other 
portions  of  the  republic.  Still  the  extent  of  Catholic 
education  must  not  be  gauged  by  the  number  of  parochial 
schools,  for  there  is  an  abundance  of  Catholic  educational 
institutions,  many  of  them  gratuitous,  all  over  the  coun- 
try, some  under  private  auspices,  others  more  or  less 
under  the  influence  of  the  Church.  In  the  city  of  Buenos 
Aires,  with  its  1,200,000  population,  there  are  fifty-two 
Catholic  schools  for  boys  and  about  ninety-one  for  girls. 


Education  in  South  Ameeioa  705 

A  large  proportion  of  these  consists  of  colleges,  or  acade- 
mies in  which  tuition  is  paid.  Some  are  conducted  by 
the  members  of  religious  orders  and  congregations,  such 
as  the  Jesuits,  Christian  Brothers,  Ladies  of  the  Sacred 
Heart,  the  Salesian  Fathers,  the  Dominicans,  the  Irish 
Sisters  of  Mercy,  the  Sisters  of  the  Sainte  Union,  the 
Visitation  Nuns  and  others.  To  a  number  of  these  paid 
schools  gratuitous  schools  are  also  attached.  In  Buenos 
Aires  alone,  education  can  be  obtained  free  under  the 
auspices  of  the  Church  in  about  sixty  schools  at  least,  not 
to  speak  of  those  connected  with  paid  institutions.  A 
considerable  number  of  these  belong  to  asylums,  which 
are  quite  numerous.  Similar  means  of  education  are 
found  in  the  other  dioceses  of  the  republic  in  proportion 
to  the  population. 

A  considerable  number  of  schools  in  Argentina  is  main- 
tained by  the  ''Circulo  de  Ohreros/'  a  society  of  working- 
men,  established  by  the  Redemptorist,  Father  Grote,  for 
the  benefit  of  the  working  classes.  It  will  thus  be  seen, 
that  although  Catholic  educational  facilities  are,  perhaps, 
not  in  keeping  with  the  seven  millions  of  Argentina's 
population,  the  Church  is  working  hard  in  the  right 
direction. 

Catholic  higher  education  is  still  in  its  infancy.  With 
the  exception  of  La  Plata,  of  which  the  students  are 
educated  elsewhere,  and  the  small  diocese  of  Santiago  del 
Estero,  all  the  dioceses  of  Argentina  have  their  seminary 
for  the  priesthood,  that  of  Buenos  Aires  being  in  charge 
of  the  Jesuits.  The  college  of  the  ^^ Salvador''  in  Buenos 
Aires,  under  the  direction  of  the  Fathers  of  the  Society, 
is  one  of  the  most  important  colleges  of  the  land.  During 
my  sojourn  in  Buenos  Aires  a  Spanish  Catholic  Inter- 
national Congress  of  Education,  opened  in  this  college, 
was  one  of  the  features  of  the  great  independence  cele- 
brations.   There  is  a  Catholic  university  in  Buenos  Aires, 


706  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

but  it  is  still  incipient  and  far  from  being  in  keeping  with 
a  country  like  Argentina.  It  has  faculties  of  law  and 
social  science,  and  it  is  under  the  direction  of  Monsignor 
Luis  Duprat. 

As  a  valuable  adjunct  to  the  work  of  Catholic  educa- 
tion must  be  mentioned  several  societies  laboring  for  its 
promotion.  To  these  belong  the  Literary  Academy  of  La 
Plata,  composed  of  the  San  Salvador  alumni,  the  Alfa  y 
Omega,  which  has  as  its  object  the  diffusion  of  good 
literature,  the  Association  of  the  Good  Press,  with  a  simi- 
lar object,  the  Central  Committee  of  the  Ladies  for  the 
Seminary,  the  Congregation  of  Christian  Doctrine,  the 
League  of  Catholic  Instruction,  and  others.  The  last 
named  strives  to  defend  Catholic  education,  and  to  obtain 
religious  instruction  in  the  schools,  subject  to  the  state. 

chile 

Of  all  the  countries  of  South  America,  Chile  has,  prob- 
ably, been  most  energetic,  in  proportion  to  its  means  and 
population,  in  promoting  the  cause  of  education.  Though 
not  compulsory,  instruction  in  Chile  is  imparted  gratui- 
tously by  the  state.  At  present  there  are  about  2,275 
elementary  schools  with  over  4,000  teachers,  and  172,000 
pupils.  Beside  these  the  government  subsidizes  118  pri- 
vate elementary  schools.  Primary  schools  exist  in  cities, 
towns,  villages,  and  even  hamlets  of  only  300  inhabitants. 
The  society  of  the  Proletariate  School  endeavors  further 
to  extend  the  benefits  of  education  to  the  very  poor. 

Secondary  instruction  is  imparted  in  the  National 
Institute  of  Santiago,  which  is  a  preparatory  school  for 
the  university.  It  was  founded  in  1813.  There  are  also 
lyceums  or  colleges  in  every  town  of  importance. 

Chile  has  devoted  great  attention  to  pedagogy,  with  a 
large  number  of  normal  schools,  the  first  of  which  was 
founded  by  President  Manuel  Montt.  For  a  long  time 
the  German  pedagogic  system  prevailed  entirely;  but, 


Education  in  South  America  707 

some  years  ago,  the  government  engaged  the  service  of 
two  ladies,  Catholics,  to  introduce  the  American  system. 
These  ladies.  Miss  Agnes  Brown,  a  graduate  of  Ann 
Arbor,  and  Miss  Caroline  Burson,  of  St.  Mary's,  Indiana, 
have  been  quite  successful. 

The  state  university  of  Chile  has  been  developed  from 
that  of  colonial  times,  the  University  of  San  Felipe. 
There  exists,  also,  an  institution,  known  as  the  University 
of  Chile,  founded  in  1843,  on  the  model  of  the  College  de 
France,  the  object  of  which  is  to  centralize  and  direct  the 
studies  of  the  republic.  It  is  divided  into  a  number  of 
faculties,  including  theology. 

Besides  these  general  educational  institutions,  Chile  is 
also  rich  in  special  schools,  in  which  mining,  agriculture, 
industry  and  commerce  are  taught.  Prominent  among 
these  is  the  Quint  a  Normal,  situated,  with  its  various 
departments,  in  a  beautiful  park  in  Santiago.  Chile  pos- 
sesses, also,  its  schools  of  music  and  the  fine  arts,  and  an 
institute  for  the  deaf,  dumb  and  blind. 

Although  here,  as  elsewhere  in  Latin  countries,  there  is 
a  party  inimical  to  the  interests  of  religion,  it  has  not 
succeeded  in  banishing  it  from  the  schools.  Some  of  the 
larger  institutions,  like  the  normal  schools,  have  a  chap- 
lain whose  duty  it  is  to  impart  religious  instruction  to  the 
children.  However,  in  spite  of  all  this,  much  damage 
may  be  effected  by  anti-religious  teachers. 

In  1900  the  late  Archbishop  Casanova  wrote  in  one  of 
his  admirable  pastorals,  which  have  been  published  in  a 
neat  volume  by  Herder  in  Freiburg : 

**It  is  true  that  the  law  orders  that  religion  shall  be 
taught  in  the  schools,  but,  thus  far,  the  results  have  not 
been  satisfactory.     *     *     * 

*^With  what  right  is  it  permitted  among  us,  that  per- 
sons occupy  professorial  chairs,  and  direct  public  schools, 
who  boast  of  their  intention  to  wrest  the  Faith  from  the 
people,  and  corrupt  youth  by  education  T' 


708  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

He,  consequently,  urges  that,  according  to  the  decrees 
of  the  Latin  American  Council,  held  in  Eome  in  1899, 
parochial  schools  be  established,  at  least  one  for  each 
parish. 

Some  time  before,  in  1870,  the  Society  of  Catholic 
Schools  of  St.  Thomas  Aquinas  had  been  founded  in  San- 
tiago, with  the  object  of  establishing  education  upon  a 
religious  basis.  Last  year  the  Society  had  twelve  schools 
in  operation,  besides  a  night  school  for  adults.  The  dio- 
cese of  Santiago  possesses,  also,  its  normal  school  for 
teachers.  The  ^^Centro  Cristiano/^  the  diocesan  council 
for  primary  instruction,  directs  education  in  the  same 
diocese. 

Diocesan  seminaries  for  the  education  of  candidates 
for  the  priesthood  exist  throughout  the  republic,  that  of 
Santiago  being  the  largest  in  America,  excepting,  prob- 
ably, the  Seminary  of  Montreal. 

The  Catholic  University  was  founded  in  Santiago  by 
Archbishop  Casanova  in  1886.  It  is  now  a  flourishing 
institution,  with  faculties  of  law,  mathematics,  agricul- 
ture, industry,  civil  engineering,  and  so  forth,  the  faculty 
of  theology  being  located  in  the  seminary. 

PERU' 

The  work  of  education  in  Peru  is  progressing,  in  spite 
of  difficulties,  and  American  influence  is  quite  marked.  The 
present  educational  system  is  undergoing  a  process  of 
organization  under  the  direction  of  an  American,  and 
American  teachers,  irrespective  of  their  religion,  are 
employed.  Although  religion  enters  into  the  curriculum, 
there  is  a  tendency  in  some  quarters  to  naturalize  it,  and 
to  substitute  so-called  moral  instruction  for  supernatural 
doctrine.  The  venerable  university  of  St.  Mark,  the  old- 
est in  America,  the  cradle  of  which  was  in  the  Dominican 
Monastery  of  Lima,  still  exists.    It  calls  itself  to  this  day 


Education  in  South  America  709 

the  ** Pontifical  University/*  as  it  was  founded  by  Papal 
brief,  but  its  founders  would  hardly  recognize  it  now. 
Occupying  one  of  the  old  Jesuit  houses,  its  influence  is 
said  to  be  unfavorable  to  religion.  The  youth  of  the  coun- 
try have  hardly  any  means  to  enjoy  higher  education 
under  Catholic  auspices. 

There  are  some  Catholic  colleges  for  boys  and  girls, 
conducted  by  the  Jesuits,  the  Fathers  of  Picpus,  the 
Ladies  of  the  Sacred  Heart,  ^nd  others,  but  these  are 
scarcely  adequate.  The  normal  school  in  Lima  is  under 
the  direction  of  the  Ladies  of  the  Sacred  Heart,  in  a 
part  of  the  old  Jesuit  college  known  as  the  ''Colegio  del 
Principe/^ 

The  native  clergy  in  Peru,  in  steadily  diminishing  num- 
bers, have  all  they  can  do  in  the  work  of  the  ministry, 
while  those  that  come  from  the  seminary  in  Lima,  under 
the  direction  of  the  Spanish  Fathers  of  Archbishop 
Clavel,  of  Santiago  de  Cuba,  are  few  indeed.  The  only 
hope  of  Catholic  education  in  Peru  seems  to  lie  in  impor- 
tations from  abroad. 

COLOMBIA 

From  Colonial  times  down,  Santa  Fe  de  Bogota,  the 
capital  of  Colombia,  has  been  a  literary  center.  It  has 
been  called  the  *^ Athens  of  South  America,''  and  its  col- 
lege of  the  Holy  Eosary  was,  at  one  time,  justly  famous. 

Colombia  has  witnessed  the  same  struggle  between  the 
religious  and  the  purely  secular  tendencies  that  have 
characterized  the  history  of  modern  education  in  every 
country  of  the  globe.  Under  President  Mosquera  the 
latter  gained  a  signal  victory,  with  the  expulsion  of  the 
Jesuits,  and  other  religious  orders,  and  the  complete 
secularization  of  education.  But  there  has  been  a  reac- 
tion, Colombia  has  retraced  its  steps,  and,  today,  it 
acknowledges  the  importance  of  uniting  secular  with 
religious  instruction. 


710  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Higher  education  is  given  in  the  universities  of  Bogota, 
Popayan,  Medellin,  and  Cartagena.  The  venerable  col- 
lege, ^^El  EosariOj"  still  continues  under  the  patronage 
of  the  government,  while  secondary  education  may  be 
obtained  in  a  number  of  colleges  throughout  the  land. 

Primary  education,  while  gratuitous,  is  not  obligatory. 
There  are  about  two  thousand  public  schools  in  the  repub- 
lic which,  however,  do  not  meet  the  demands.  Leaving  a 
number  of  private  schools  out  of  consideration,  I  find 
that,  in  1906,  the  highest  number  of  children  receiving 
public  education  was  fifteen  per  cent,  notably  in  the 
department  of  Caldas,  while  the  average  throughout  the 
country  was  less  than  ^yq  per  cent. 

PANAMA 

I  can  say  but  little  of  education  in  this  small  republic 
which  is  of  the  greatest  interest  for  the  outside  world, 
owing  to  the  canal  that  our  government  is  constructing. 
Education  here  appears  to  be  somewhat  in  an  incipient 
stage,  although  the  Panama  government  is  erecting  a 
university  which,  to  judge  from  the  building,  is  to  be  quite 
important.  There  is  a  ministry  of  public  instruction,  but 
the  prevailing  sentiment  seems  to  be  hostile  to  religion. 
Until  recently  the  Christian  Brothers  conducted  the  nor- 
mal school,  but  it  has  been  taken  away  from  them. 

The  only  religious  orders  I  know  in  this  republic 
devoted  to  the  work  of  education  are  the  Christian  Broth- 
ers, and  the  Sisters  of  Charity.  While  Americans  have 
been  pouring  into  Panama,  little  has  been  done  by  Catho- 
lics here  to  promote  the  cause  of  religion  or  education  in 
that  country. 

Chaeles  Wakren  Curriee. 


THE  CONDUCT  OF  THE  TEACHER  IN  THE  CLASS 

ROOM 

Wlien  King  Lear  asked  old  Kent  why  he  wished  to  be  in 
his  service  he  answered:  *^ Because  you  have  that  in  your 
face  which  I  would  fain  call  Master. ' '  In  the  light  of  this 
incident  we  get  a  glimpse  of  human  nature  that  has  a 
strong  bearing  on  our  subject.  What  was  it  Kent  saw? 
It  was  the  expression  in  appearance  and  conduct  of  a  soul 
within.  In  other  words  it  was  the  character  of  the  man 
visible  in  his  countenance  that  captivated  Kent  and  drew 
from  him  a  willing  service.  We  are  very  much  the  same 
and  children  are  not  different.  Most  men  are  willing 
to  follow  a  leader  when  they  see  that  he  is  properly  quali- 
fied. Most  children  are  willing  to  be  governed  when  they 
see  that  the  teacher  is  able  to  govern  and  to  teach.  These 
qualifications  express  themselves  in  external  conduct. 
Life  is  at  least  three-fourths  conduct.  The  source  of  con- 
duct is  character. 

The  two  elements  that  form  the  foundation  of  the  teach- 
er 's  conduct  are  character  and  knowledge.  The  former  is 
an  essential  without  which  nothing  can  be  done  toward 
the  end  for  which  Christian  education  was  instituted ;  the 
latter  gives  the  strength,  ease,  assurance  and  ability  that 
are  necessary  and  gratifying  to  teacher  and  pupil.  Like 
begets  like.  It  is  the  character  of  the  teacher  that  begets 
character  in  the  pupil,  and  the  light  of  knowledge  glowing 
in  the  soul  of  the  teacher  cannot  but  enlighten  the  dark- 
ened mind  of  the  untaught  child. 

"Thou  must  be  true  thyself 
If  thou  the  truth  wouldst  teach; 
Thy  own  soul  must  overflow 
If  thou  another  soul  wouldst  reach." 

Without  these  the  teacher  may  be  able  to  transfer  some 


712  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

dry  timber  to  the  attic  of  the  children's  minds  but  that  is 
not  the  end  of  Christian  education. 

One  cannot  give  what  she  does  not  possess :  The  plan 
must  be  in  the  mind  of  the  architect;  the  image,  in  the 
mind  of  the  sculptor;  the  song,  in  the  heart  of  the  poet; 
the  ideal,  in  the  mind  of  the  teacher,  or  there  will  be 
failure  in  the  execution.  The  teacher  must  be  even  more 
than  she  desires  her  pupils  to  become.  The  water  in  the 
fountain  must  exceed  its  capacity  or  there  will  not  be  an 
overflow.  One  of  the  best  and  most  experienced  teachers 
in  the  State  of  New  York  was  noted  for  his  careful  prepa- 
ration of  every  lesson  before  entering  the  class  room. 
Being  asked  why  he  did  so,  for  his  ability  was  well  known, 
he  replied:  *^I  would  rather  see  my  pupils  drink  from  a 
running  stream  than  from  a  stagnant  pool.''  Spalding 
says,  '^Not  what  a  teacher  says,  but  what  he  is,  and  does, 
draws  the  young  brood  after  him. ' ' 

We  cannot  enter  into  a  discussion  of  the  fundamental 
laws  of  mental  development  here;  it  is  no  longer  neces- 
sary to  prove  their  existence  and  value,  but  it  is  well  to 
note  how  the  character  of  the  teacher  as  expressed  in 
her  conduct  affects  the  life  of  the  pupils  through  the  lat- 
ter's  instinctive  tendency  to  imitate  the  words,  actions, 
manners  and  other  characteristics  of  those  with  whom 
they  associate.  In  the  earlier  years  of  the  child's  life  he 
relies  on  his  parents  for  the  models  of  his  imitative  activi- 
ties, but  on  entering  school,  the  teacher  supplements  the 
parents  and  becomes  a  new  center  on  which  the  child 
orientates  his  inclinations  to  reproduce  in  himself  and 
his  actions  what  he  perceives  in  others.  ^'From  the 
standpoint  of  society  a  good  deal,  if  not  all,  of  what  the 
child  does,  is  easily  traced  to  some  copy  set  by  environ- 
mental conditions.  He  is  constantly  copying  the  activi- 
ties, customs,  motions,  etc.  that  surround  him  *  *  * 
With  the  child  the  emphasis  is  not  on  the  copying  of  a 
certain  act,  but  on  the  attainment  of  a  certain  experience 


Conduct  of  Teacher  in  the  Class  Eoom       713 

that  comes  through  the  copying  or  imitating.  *  *  * 
In  other  words,  to  the  child's  consciousness  the  signifi- 
cance of  the  act  is  not  in  it  as  an  imitation,  but  in  that  it 
helps  define  a  new  experience  that  is  felt  as  desirable/' 
(King,  Psychology  of  Child  Development,  pp.  119-20.) 
The  same  truth  is  confirmed  by  Professor  Baldwin  who 
says,  *^Was  there  ever  a  group  of  school  children  who 
did  not  leave  the  real  school  and  make  a  play  school? 
*  *  *  rpj^^  point  is  this :  The  child 's  personality  grows, 
growth  is  always  by  action;  he  clothes  upon  himself  the 
scenes  of  his  life  and  acts  them  out ;  so  he  grows  by  what 
he  is,  what  he  understands,  and  what  he  is  able  to  per- 
form. (Mental  Development  in  the  Child  and  Eace,  p. 
361.) 

Quoting  Dr.  Shields  (The  Psychology  of  Education,  p. 
296-297),  we  read:  *^ Impelled  by  the  instinct  to  imitate, 
the  child  appropriates  the  actions  and  the  attitudes  of  the 
people  of  his  environment.  The  hidden  springs  of  these 
actions  and  attitudes  at  first  in  no  way  concern  him. 
Through  the  performance  of  the  action,  however,  or 
through  the  assumption  of  the  attitude,  he  is  gradually 
led  into  a  dim  understanding  of  the  inner  meaning,  and 
as  the  understanding  grows  upon  him,  so  does  his  keen- 
ness in  the  observation  of  the  details  in  his  model  that  at 
first  escaped  his  notice.  From  the  realization  of  these 
details  in  his  own  actions  he  gains  a  still  deeper  insight 
into  the  cognitive  processes  that  underlie  the  actions  of 
the  chosen  model.''  If  the  quotations  from  these  authori- 
ties are  true — and  who  will  doubt  them?  the  application 
to  our  subject  is  too  evident  to  need  further  emphasis. 

Almost  constantly  the  eye  of  the  pupil  is  receiving 
impressions  and  instantly  communicating  them  to  the 
soul  where  they  contribute  to  the  growth  of  his  mind 
and  character.  What  about  the  impressions  made  in 
unguarded  moments  1   Are  they  always  desirable  ?    These 


-/ 


714  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

will  the  more  surely  be  a  revelation  of  the  teacher's  char- 
acter as  in  such  moments  one  wears  no  disguises.  Hence 
the  necessity  of  being  what  one  seems,  in  dealing  with 
children;  for  they  are  gifted  in  discerning  the  real  from 
the  assumed. 

I  may  be  pardoned  for  quoting  at  length  from  W.  G 
Jordan's  paper,  ^^The  Power  of  Personal  Influence''  as 
it  has  a  close  bearing  on  this  phase  of  our  subject — 
Character  as  a  source  of  conduct.  He  writes  ^^The  only 
responsibility  that  a  man  cannot  evade  in  this  life  is  the 
one  he  thinks  of  least, — his  personal  influence.  Man's 
conscious  influence,  when  he  is  on  dress-parade,  when  he 
is  posing  to  impress  those  around  him, — is  wonderfully 
small.  But  his  unconscious  influence,  the  silent,  subtle 
radiation  of  his  personality,  the  effect  of  his  words 
and  acts,  the  trifles  he  never  considers, — is  tremendous. 
*  *  *  Into  the  hands  of  every  individual  is  given  a 
marvelous  power  for  good  or  for  evil, — the  silent,  uncon- 
scious, unseen  influence  of  his  life.  This  is  simply  the 
constant  radiation  of  what  a  man  really  is,  not  what  he 
pretends  to  be.  Every  man  is  radiating  sympathy  or 
sorrow  or  morbidness  or  cynicism  or  happiness  or  hope 
or  any  of  a  hundred  qualities. 

There  are  men  and  women  whose  presence  seems  to 
radiate  sunshine,  cheer  and  optimism.  You  feel  calmed 
and  restored  in  a  moment  to  new  and  stronger  faith  in 
humanity.  There  are  those  who  focus  in  an  instant  all 
your  latent  distrust,  morbidness  and  rebellion  against 
life.  Without  knowing  why,  you  chafe  and  fret  in  their 
presence.  You  lose  your  bearings  on  life  and  its  prob- 
lems. Your  moral  compass  is  disturbed  and  unsatisfac- 
tory. It  is  made  untrue  in  an  instant,  as  the  magnetic 
needle  of  a  ship  is  deflected  when  it  passes  near  great 
mountains  of  iron  ore. 

There  are  men  who  float  down  the  stream  of  life  like 


Conduct  of  Teachee;  in  the  Class  Room       715 

icebergs, — cold,  reserved,  unapproachable  and  self-con- 
tained. In  their  presence  you  involuntarily  draw  your 
wraps  closer  around  you,  as  you  wonder  who  left  the  door 
open.  These  refrigerated  human  beings  have  a  most 
depressing  influence  on  all  those  who  fall  under  the  spell 
of  their  radiated  chilliness.  But  there  are  other  natures, 
warm,  helpful,  genial,  who  are  like  the  Gulf  Stream, 
following  their  own  course,  flowing  undaunted  and  undis- 
mayed in  the  ocean  of  colder  waters.  Their  presence 
brings  warmth  and  life  and  a  glow  of  sunshine,  the  joyous, 
stimulating  breath  of  spring. 

There  are  men  who  are  like  malarious  swamps, — pois- 
onous, depressing  and  weakening  by  their  very  presence. 
They  make  heavy,  oppressive  and  gloomy  the  atmosphere 
of  their  own  home;  the  sound  of  children's  play  is  stilled, 
the  ripples  of  laughter  are  frozen  in  their  presence.  They 
go  through  life  as  if  each  day  were  a  new  big  funeral, 
and  they  were  chief  mourners.  There  are  others  like  the 
ocean;  they  are  constantly  bracing,  stimulating,  giving 
new  draughts  of  tonic,  life  and  strength  by  their  presence. 
There  are  men  who  are  insincere  in  heart,  and  that  insin- 
cerity is  radiated  by  their  presence.  They  have  a  won- 
drous interest  in  your  welfare, — when  they  need  you. 
They  put  on  a  ^^ property''  smile  so  suddenly  when  it 
serves  their  purpose,  that  it  seems  the  smile  must  be  con- 
nected with  some  electric  button  concealed  in  their  clothes. 
But  they  never  play  their  part  absolutely  true,  the  mask 
will  slip  down  sometimes;  their  cleverness  cannot  teach 
their  eyes  to  look  the  look  of  sterling  honesty;  they  may 
deceive  some  people,  but  they  cannot  deceive  all.  There 
is  a  subtle  power  of  revelation  which  makes  us  say: 
'Well,  I  don't  know  how  it  is,  but  I  know  that  man  is  not 
honest. ' 

Man  cannot  escape  for  one  moment  from  this  radiation 
of  his  character,  this  constantly  weakening  or  strength- 
ening of  others.    He  cannot  evade  the  responsibility  by 


716  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

saying  it  is  an  unconscious  influence.  He  can  select  the 
qualities  that  he  will  permit  to  be  radiated.  He  can  culti- 
vate sweetness,  calmness,  trust,  generosity,  truth,  justice, 
loyalty,  nobility, — and  make  them  vitally  active  in  his 
character, — and  by  these  qualities  he  will  constantly  affect 
the  world.  =*  *  *  To  make  our  influence  felt  we  must 
live  our  faith,  we  must  practice  what  we  believe.  It  is 
useless  for  a  mother  to  try  to  teach  gentleness  to  her 
children  when  she  herself  is  cross  and  irritable.  The  child 
who  is  told  to  be  truthful  and  who  hears  a  parent  lie 
cleverly  to  escape  some  little  social  unpleasantness  is  not 
going  to  cling  very  closely  to  truth.  The  parent's  words 
say,  ^ don't  lie,'  the  influence  of  the  parent's  life  says, 
^do  lie.'  No  individual  is  so  insignificant  as  to  be  with- 
out influence.  We  should  be  not  merely  an  influence, — 
we  should  be  an  inspiration.  By  our  very  presence  we 
should  be  a  tower  of  strength  to  the  hungry  souls  about 
us. ' '    Here  again  the  application  is  obvious. 

Time  is  required — and  not  a  little  of  it  either — to  make 
anything  permanent  in  the  formation  of  character.  Most 
people  will  believe  it  if  they  are  sincere  with  themselves 
and  have  good  memories ;  it  cannot  be  made  in  a  factory 
like  soap,  pins  and  shoestrings — millions  at  a  time  with 
no  variations.  Each  child  that  comes  to  us  is  a  new 
problem  and  should  be  studied  and  solved  in  the  light  of 
what  faith  teaches  us  is  the  value  of  an  immortal  soul. 
No  fixed  rules  can  be  given,  for  in  the  realm  of  souls  no 
two  are  alike,  nor  have  they  similar  needs. 

There  is  time  to  touch  on  only  a  few  of  those  virtues 
which  the  teacher  should  practice  and  these  should  be 
an  evidence  to  the  pupils  that  her  life's  work  is  modeled 
on  that  of  the  world's  great  teacher — Christ.  Then  and 
then  only  may  she  hope  to  see  the  virtues  taught  by 
Him  reflected  in  the  lives  of  her  young  charges.  As  the 
character  of  Christ  was  an  embodiment  of  all  virtues  so 
should  the  teacher's  endeavor  be  to  imitate  Him  and  thus 


Conduct  of  Teacher  in  the  Class  Eoom       717 

become  a  safe  model  for  her  pupils.  Patience  is  much 
needed.  And  why  not  be  patient  with  the  children? 
Barrie  says,  ^'The  life  of  every  man  and  woman  is  a 
diary  in  which  he  means  to  write  one  story  and  writes 
another ;  and  the  humblest  hour  is  when  he  compares  the 
volume  as  it  is  with  what  he  vowed  to  make  it. '  *  Children 
are  not  different.  Genuineness  in  the  teacher  goes  far 
toward  developing  the  same  trait  in  pupils.  T.  B.  0  'Hara 
writes:  *^In  all  superior  people,  there  is  a  directness,  a 
lack  of  evasion  and  subterfuge,  an  inherent  candor  and 
simplicity.  From  such  as  these,  with  the  hearts  of  little 
children,  truth  sounds  more  true  because  all  smallnesses 
and  obstructions  have  been  lived  down  or  trained  away. ' ' 
Meekness  and  humility  are  the  virtues  our  Master  would 
have  us  practice :  ^ '  Learn  of  Me. '  ^  In  teaching  the  world 
this  lesson  He  offers  himself  as  the  model  we  should  copy. 
In  every  work  done  by  man  the  end  is  reached  by  means 
appropriate  to  the  end  and  in  harmony  with  the  dignity  of 
the  act.  In  her  endeavor  to  accomplish  the  end  of  her 
work,  the  teacher  will  find  that  nothing  will  be  of  greater 
importance  than  the  exercise  of  tact.  The  study  of  litera- 
ture will  furnish  many  illustrations  worth  noting.  In 
George  Eliot's  great  novel  we  find  Savonarola's  dealings 
with  Eomola  worthy  of  attention.  He  possesses  the  art  of 
suggesting  effectively.  He  has  that  quiet  power  of  taking 
it  for  granted  that  he  will  be  obeyed.  ^^You  are  fleeing 
in  disguise''  means  you  are  a  hypocrite,  liar,  coward,  but 
he  does  not  use  these  words.  There  is  no  harshness  in  his 
tone ;  it  is  the  quiet  statement  of  the  truth  which  arouses 
no  antagonism.  He  does  not  hurry  her ;  he  is  patient  but 
firm.  In  the  same  novel  we  find  Dino  's  message  to  Eomola 
failed  for  want  of  tact;  it  was  not  given  in  the  proper 
solvent.  Eomola  could  see  nothing  in  his  conduct  but 
inhumanity  to  his  family  and  that  repelled  her.  **  Oft- 
times  our  very  virtues  slay  our  virtues. ' '  Often  an  other- 
wise good  teacher  fails  in  her  most  cherished  efforts 


718  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

because  in  an  unguarded  moment  she  lets  a  word  fall  that 
casts  a  reflection  on  the  family,  home  or  nationality  of 
the  child.  The  art  of  pleasing  should  be  cultivated.  We 
find  this  in  a  high  degree  in  Tito  Melema;  he  always 
knows  what  to  say  and  do.  We  may  have  well-nigh 
unbounded  influence  on  a  person  if  we  can  get  near 
enough  to  win  his  confidence.  Tito  has  vices  that  become 
his  ruin,  but  we  need  not  dwell  on  them.  A  teacher  sur- 
rounded by  a  barrier  of  ice,  cold,  stiff  and  formal  does 
not  compare  well  with  the  world's  model  Teacher  who 
said,  ** Suffer  little  children  to  come  unto  me.''  To  be 
sure,  a  teacher  should  possess  a  certain  amount  of  dignity 
but  if  she  is  and  has  all  that  should  qualify  her,  she  will 
not  be  obliged  to  demand  respect,  her  very  personality 
will  command  it. 

Again  humility  and  self-sacrifice  must  not  be  over- 
looked. There  will  be  conflicts  at  times  even  in  the  best 
regulated  schools ;  in  those  moments  when  the  thought  of 
our  own  dignity  and  all  that  is  our  due  in  this  or  that 
position  arises,  we  enter  a  world  of  darkness  and  doubt 
and  the  question  arises :  What  are  we  going  to  do  about 
it?  Shall  the  child  be  expelled  that  better  order  may  be 
maintained ;  that  we  may  have  less  trouble ;  that  none  may 
differ  from  us;  shall  we  send  him  adrift  knowing  that 
there  is  no  influence  to  save  him  in  his  home  or  on  the 
streets  where  he  will  spend  much  of  his  time?  At  times 
the  longer  we  reflect  the  darker  and  deeper  grow  the 
valleys,  the  more  threatening  the  ravines,  the  more  lower- 
ing the  clouds,  but  high  above  all  on  a  hill,  the  hill  of 
Calvary,  we  see  the  value  set  on,  and  the  price  paid  for 
human  souls,  a  voice  says,  ** Father,  forgive  them  for 
they  know  not  what  they  do. ' '  Here  is  the  answer.  There 
are  times  when  the  cold  steel  of  the  law  justifies  us  and 
we  can  turn  a  child  away  without  violating  duty  in  its 
ethical  sense,  but  are  we  doing  all  that  can  be  done  if  we 
justify  ourselves  in  this  way?    This  is  ideal,  and  Halpin 


Conduct  op  Teacher  in  the  Class  Eoom       719 

says  (Christian  Pedagogy,  p.  122):  ''Respect  for  ideals 
is  fast  waning,  and  everything  that  savors  of  lofty  aspira- 
tion is  called  quixotic.    And  Father  Ryan  says : 

"In  the  world  each  Ideal, 
That  shines  like  a  star  on  life's  wave. 
Is  wrecked  on  the  shores  of  the  Real, 
And  sleeps  like  a  dream  in  the  grave." 

Even  though  respect  is  passing;  even  though  it  is 
wrecked  on  the  shores  of  the  Real,  would  we  be  better 
without  it?  Should  we  have  no  guiding  star  on  high? 
The  trial  may  cost  you  sorrow.  Savonarola  urges 
( Romola ) :  ' '  Make  your  sorrow  an  offering ;  and  when  the 
fire  of  divine  charity  burns  within  you,  and  you  behold  the 
need  of  your  fellow-mortals  by  that  flame  you  will  not 
call  the  offering  great.''  In  ''The  Light  of  the  Vision'' 
(Ave  Maria)  by  Christian  Reid  see  what  Mrs.  Raynor  did 
for  the  salvation  of  the  soul  of  a  man  she  disliked  and  who 
had  been  little  less  than  a  brute  to  her  She  was  bound 
by  no  law — her  confessor  assured  her  of  that — still  she 
made  the  sacrifice  and  the  result  was  one  of  those  that 
make  the  angels  rejoice.  If  she  had  refused,  what  a 
tragedy  might  have  been.  Here  again  the  application 
needs  no  comment. 

On  the  other  hand  the  affection  and  sympathy  exercised 
toward  the  children  should  not  be  of  such  a  nature  as  to 
spoil  them  or  make  weaklings  of  them.  Foolish  fondness 
that  pampers,  develops  selfishness  and  sentimentality  and 
hence  are  created  such  characters  as  Tito  Melema,  and 
"The  Sentimentalist"  of  whom  Rev.  Hugh  Benson  has 
written.  Anna  Payson  Call  has  a  good  chapter  on  this  in 
"Power  Through  Repose." 

If  any  one  thinks  that  the  conduct  of  the  teacher  in  the 
class  room  does  not  affect  the  pupil's  welfare,  provided 
she  teaches  the  subjects  required  by  the  course  of  study  in 
her  school  let  her  follow  Dodd  Weaver  in  the  ' '  Evolution 
of  Dodd"  and  see  him  as  he  passes  from  teacher  to 


720  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

teacher  on  his  downward  career  helped  only  by  Amy 
Kelly  and  finally  saved  by  Mr.  Bright.  In  it  you  can  see 
the  truth  of  the  poet's  words : 

"No  change  in  childhood's  early  day, 
No  storm  that  raged,  no  thought  that  ran 
But  leaves  its  trace  upon  the  clay 
That  slowly  hardens  into  man." 

Dodd's  first  teacher  was  Miss  Stone;  her  name  was 
significant.  She  was  beautiful,  trained  in  a  normal,  but 
was  soulless,  artificial,  possessed  no  originality  and  wore 
an  everlasting  smile.  Dodd  learned  to  hate  school — that 
was  all.  Dodd's  next  teacher  was  Amos  Waughhops 
(Wops).  He  had  no  education,  but  he  could  *^argy'' — 
and  got  the  school  in  '^Deestricf  No.  4.  Amos  had  a 
grudge  against  Dodd's  father  and  to  satisfy  it  began 
with  Dodd  who  bore  the  slings  and  arrows  with  a  good 
deal  of  fortitude  and  seemed  to  avoid  the  clash,  but  one 
day  matters  came  to  a  climax — Dodd  left  school  and 
resolved  never  to  return.  After  some  time  Dodd  was 
induced  to  give  school  another  trial.  This  time  Amy 
Kelly  taught  him.  Amy  was  not  so  well  trained  as  Miss 
Stone,  but  she  was  not  afraid  of  work,  she  had  good  sense 
and  used  it  freely ;  she  was  a  girl  of  resources.  Before  the 
first  day  was  over  the  evolution  in  Dodd's  soul  was  a 
measurable  quantity.  Dodd's  next  teacher  was  Miss 
Spinacher.  She  had  a  hobby  of  keeping  her  pupils  per- 
petually face  front,  and  of  having  them  sit  up  straight  all 
the  time,  with  folded  arms,  so  that  the  school  had  the 
appearance  of  a  deal  board  stuck  full  of  stiff  pegs,  all  in 
rows.  Dodd  did  not  do  well  under  such  a  teacher.  Who 
could?  Under  Mr.  Sliman,  Dodd's  next  teacher,  Dodd 
learned  much  of  the  wisdom  of  the  world.  Before  long 
he  could  look  Mr.  Sliman  squarely  in  the  eye  and  say 
^* perfect^'  even  when  he  had  whispered  all  day.  Mr. 
Sliman  wanted  a  good  record  to  show  visitors.  Then 
Dodd  went  to  Mr.  Sharp.    From  seeing  him  manipulate 


Conduct  of  Teacher  in  the  Class  Room       721 

the  *' attendance''  record  Dodd  learned  that  there  were 
two  records— a  real  one  and  a  ''show''  one.  The  latter 
was  the  foundation  of  much  of  Mr.  Sharp's  glory;  it  was 
the  one  the  School  Board  saw !  Dodd  saw  it,  too,  and,  in 
the  words  of  the  author,  W.  H.  Smith,  ''Mr.  Sharp  wat- 
ered what  Mr.  Sliman  planted,"  and  Dodd's  unformed 
character  suffered  the  effect.  Then  Dodd  went  to  Miss 
Slack  and  Miss  Trotter;  then  to  Mr.  Skimhole,  later  to 
Mr.  Loosely,  Mr.  Rattler,  Striker,  Bluffer  and  Smiley; 
all  of  these — and  their  names  are  indicative  of  their  con- 
duct— had  a  hand  in  forming  Dodd's  character.  Then 
Dodd  went  to  Mrs.  Highton  who  was  poor  but  proud ;  she 
taught  school  because  she  had  to  do  something;  she 
hated  her  pupils  and  they  returned  the  compliment  with 
interest.  She  resorted  to  all  kinds  of  punishments.  There 
was  rebellion  of  which  Dodd  seemed  to  be  the  leader ;  and 
Mrs.  Highton  decided  to  have  him  suspended.  He  was. 
It  was  during  winter  when  skating  was  good ;  it  hurt  him 
awfully  to  be  suspended  at  such  a  time.  He  returned  at 
the  end  of  the  suspension,  was  suspended  again  and  finally 
expelled.  Mrs.  Highton  drew  her  salary  of  $55  a  month 
just  the  same.  Dodd  was  now  a  stout,  awkward  boy, 
reckless  and  defiant.  There  are  more  like  him.  Who  will 
extend  to  them  a  helping  hand? 

At  the  age  of  seventeen  Dodd  was  a  swaggering,  pro- 
fane, vulgar  fellow  who  ate  his  meals  at  home  and  slept 
there,  but  further  than  that  lived  apart  from  his  parents 
who  every  day  regretted  that  he  had  ever  been  born.  His 
father  feared  him ;  he  was  the  terror  of  his  brothers  and 
sisters.  There  seemed  no  hope  for  him.  Finally  Dodd 
went  to  school  again;  his  career  in  Mr.  Bright 's  school 
is  well  worth  reading  but  it  is  too  long  to  relate  here. 
Through  almost  infinite  patience  but  with  great  firmness, 
hard  work  and  relentless  skill ;  with  tact,  courage  and  per- 
severance Mr.  Bright  succeeded  in  undoing  the  evil  work 
done  by  his  former  teachers — finally  succeeded  in  leading 


722  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Dodd  to  make  a  respectable  man  of  himself.  Dodd  is 
only  a  type — and  the  teachers  are  types — ^happily  now  dis- 
appearing. Compare  Dodd  under  the  leadership  of  Amy 
Kelly  and  Mr.  Bright  on  one  hand,  and  the  Messrs.  Sli- 
man,  Sharp  and  the  rest  of  them  on  the  other  before  pro- 
nouncing on  the  importance  of  the  conduct  of  the  teacher 
in  the  classroom. 

SiSTEB  M.  Generose. 
July  13,  11. 


THE  SCHOOL  SISTERS  OF  NOTRE  DAME  IN 
AMERICA 

The  Congregation  of  the  School  Sisters  of  Notre  Dame 
is  a  community  of  Sisters  who  devote  themselves  mainly 
to  the  education  of  youth  in  the  parochial  schools.  This 
Congregation  was  founded  in  the  early  part  of  the  seven- 
teenth century  by  St.  Peter  Fourier,  regular  canon  of 
the  Order  of  St.  Augustine. 

The  Order  spread  rapidly  and  Mother  Alexia,  the  first 
superioress,  saw  it  extend  over  France  before  her  holy 
death,  which  occurred  in  January,  1622.  It  shared  the 
fate,  however,  of  other  religious  orders  during  the  hor- 
rors of  the  revolution;  its  houses  were  either  destroyed 
or  confiscated  and  the  community  was  disbanded.  In 
1833,  the  Order  was  re-established  in  Europe,  and  four- 
teen years  after  its  re-establishment  the  Redemptorist 
Fathers  obtained  permission  from  the  Rt.  Rev.  Michael 
O'Connor,  the  first  bishop  of  Pittsburg,  Pennsylvania,  to 
secure  School  Sisters  of  Notre  Dame  for  St.  Mary's,  Elk 
County,  Pennsylvania. 

In  July,  1847,  the  first  colony  of  School  Sisters  arrived 
in  New  York.  Among  the  Sisters  who  composed  the  little 
band  that  landed  on  the  shores  of  the  New  World  on  that 
memorable  July  day  was  Mother  Caroline,  of  sainted 
memory.  This  holy  religious  taught  the  school  at  St. 
Mary's,  and  was,  therefore,  the  first  School  Sister  to 
take  charge  of  an  American  school.  The  Sisters  remained 
at  St.  Mary's  but  a  short  time,  as  they  were  called  to 
Baltimore,  Maryland,  in  1847,  where  a  permanent  foun- 
dation was  laid,  which  is  the  present  seat  of  the  Mother- 
house  of  the  eastern  province. 

In  1850  the  first  and  chief  Motherhouse  of  the  order  in 
this  country  was  established  in  Milwaukee,  Wisconsin, 


724  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

and  Mother  Mary  Caroline  was  appointed  Superior  of  the 
School  Sisters  of  Notre  Dame  in  America.  How  poor, 
helpless,  and  insignificant  does  she  not  appear  when  in 
1850  she  arrives  in  Milwaukee  with  her  little  band  and 
settles  on  the  bleak  hill,  with  its  wide  outlook  over  the 
waters  of  Lake  Michigan.  What  had  she,  but  a  clear 
mind,  a  brave  heart,  a  pure  conscience  and  implicit  trust 
in  God?  But  the  great  wonder  workers  of  days  apos- 
tolic have  been  no  better  equipped;  she  began  to  labor 
and  to  suffer,  and  in  a  few  years  a  convent  arose  on  the 
brow  of  St.  Mary's  Hill  to  which  thousands  of  tender, 
loving  souls  continue  to  flock,  like  birds  that  turn  from 
wintry  climes  to  seek  fairer  lands.  For  forty  years  this 
generous  and  heroic  soul  labored  in  the  cause  of  Christian 
education,  making  the  Congregation  of  Notre  Dame  cos- 
mopolitan in  its  kind  and  a  stronghold  of  educational 
power. 

In  its  ranks  are  daughters  of  America,  Germany, 
Ireland,  England,  Scotland,  France,  Poland,  Bohemia, 
Holland,  Italy  and  Spain,  all  animated  by  the  same  apos- 
tolic spirit,  by  which  they  become  *^all  to  all.''  Accord- 
ing to  the  latest  statistics  the  School  Sisters  of  Notre 
Dame  number  3,500  Sisters  distributed  among  256  mis- 
sion houses  in  eighteen  States  and  Canada,  teaching  more 
than  100,000  pupils.  Of  this  number  92,000  attend  their 
parochial  schools,  5,000  their  academies  and  other  institu- 
tions of  higher  education,  while  2,347  orphans  find  house 
and  home  and  parental  care  at  their  hands. 

The  parable  of  the  mustard  seed  has  rarely  been  more 
beautifully  illustrated  than  in  the  rapid  growth  of  the 
Congregation  of  the  School  Sisters  of  Notre  Dame.  For 
humble  as  had  been  the  beginning  of  this  great  teaching 
order  beyond  the  sea,  it  soon  became  apparent  that  Provi- 
dence had  assigned  to  it  a  special  work,  not  merely  in  the 
Old  but  also  in  the  New  World,  where  the  current  of 
immigration  and  the  consequent,  rapid  development  of 


School  Sistebs  of  Notre  Dame  725 

the  American  Republic,  especially  in  the  Northwest, 
became  a  chief  factor  in  the  vast  extension  of  this  relig- 
ious organization. 

Where  the  spirit  of  progress  is  in  the  land  and  things 
apparently  move  forward  spontaneously,  brave  and  ener- 
getic men  and  women  are  in  a  world  in  which  what  they 
say  is  possible  many  stand  ready  to  help  them  accom- 
plish. It  is  easy  to  say  there  is  no  necessary  man  or 
woman,  but  take  a  few  thousand  lives  from  the  world's 
history,  and  how  unprofitable,  barren  and  uninteresting 
its  pages  would  become ! 

Had  Mother  Caroline  never  come  to  the  United  States 
who  will  affirm  that  much  that  is  best  in  many  of  our 
Western  dioceses  would  be  altogether  what  it  is?  She 
was  the  soul  of  the  first  band  of  School  Sisters  who  came 
to  this  country,  and  the  willingness  and  success  with 
which  she  provided  for  parochial  schools  even  in  poor  and 
remote  places,  became  a  source  of  courage  and  confidence 
for  all  who  believe  in  the  necessity  of  religious  education. 
Archbishop  Spalding  says,  ^^Her  services  in  behalf  of 
Catholic  schools  are  of  inestimable  value,  as  without 
parish  schools  there  is  no  hope  that  the  Church  will  be 
able  to  maintain  itself  in  America. '^ 

In  the  course  of  years  Mother  Caroline  also  established 
higher  schools  of  learning,  as  she  considered  such  institu- 
tions a  great  necessity  and  quite  in  accordance  with  the 
spirit  of  Holy  Rule.  She  desired  that  these  high  schools 
should  be  thoroughly  equipped  and  spared  no  pains  and 
no  expense  to  that  effect.  It  was  not  her  wish,  however, 
to  open  many  of  these  high  schools  and  academies,  there- 
fore, she  refused  numerous  applications  of  this  kind.  She 
thought  these  establishments  required  too  many  subjects 
that  might  be  more  profitably  employed  for  the  general 
benefit  of  Catholic  youth  in  parochial  schools.  Mother 
Caroline  most  emphatically  declared  parochial  schools 
and  orphan  asylums  to  be  the  providential  sphere  of  a 


726  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

School  Sister's  vocation.  She  always  assured  the  Sisters 
that  to  act  contrary  to  this  principle  were  to  deviate  from 
the  spirit  of  their  blessed  founder  and  the  special  duty 
assigned  them  by  Divine  Providence.  This  accounts  for 
the  numerous  parochial  schools  conducted  by  the  School 
Sisters  of  Notre  Dame.  The  poorer  the  parish  the  more 
desirous  was  this  magnanimous  soul  to  send  Sisters  to 
labor  for  the  welfare  of  God's  poor  children. 

In  1886  this  charitable  religious  commissioned  a  band 
of  School  Sisters  to  care  for  the  Indian  children  of  Har- 
bor Springs,  Michigan,  and  in  1892,  previous  to  her  holy 
death,  she  took  charge  of  the  deaf  mute  school  at  Chin- 
chuba,  Louisiana. 

The  crowning  act  of  the  life  of  this  great  religious 
educator  was  the  erection  of  the  Perpetual  Adoration 
Chapel  which  is  connected  with  the  Central  Motherhouse, 
Milwaukee.  Noble  and  grand  were  the  motives  which 
prompted  Mother  Caroline  to  erect  this  beautiful  chapel. 
A  Motherhouse,  she  was  wont  to  say,  is  the  home  of  the 
youngest  and  the  eldest  members  of  a  religious  congre- 
gation, and  she  always  felt  that  the  candidates  and  nov- 
ices should  be  initiated  in  the  exercises  and  spirit  of 
prayer,  especially  in  the  love  and  adoration  of  the  heav- 
enly Bridegroom  to  Whom  they  desire  to  consecrate 
themselves.  The  elder  Sisters  should  find  a  good  home  in 
the  Motherhouse,  there  to  pass  the  remainder  of  their 
lives  at  the  feet  of  their  Divine  Spouse.  To  accomplish 
this,  she  felt  that  nothing  higher  or  holier  could  be  offered 
them  than  the  adoration  of  Jesus  in  the  mystery  of  His 
infinite  love. 

The  convent  located  in  Milwaukee  has  always  remained 
the  chief  Motherhouse  and  novitiate  of  the  School  Sisters 
of  Notre  Dame,  and  is  also  the  normal  training  school  for 
postulants  who  are  aspiring  to  the  vocation  of  teaching. 

The  curriculum  for  the  postulants  is  kept  as  closely  as 
possible  along  the  lines  of  the  requirements  for  the  best 


School  Sisteks  of  Notre  Dame  727 

schools  in  the  country.  Before  taking  up  this  important 
vocation,  each  postulant  is  required  to  pass  a  rigid  exam- 
ination in  every  branch  of  study.  After  spending  three 
years  in  the  normal  department  of  the  Order,  the  postu- 
lant enters  upon  her  novitiate. 

Most  important  of  all  is  the  religious  training  which 
the  School  Sister  receives  to  fit  her  for  the  exalted  posi- 
tion of  religious  teacher  in  the  parochial  school.  This  is, 
after  all,  the  vineyard  into  which  the  Lord  has  preemi- 
nently called  the  School  Sister  of  Notre  Dame  to  labor 
for  the  salvation  of  souls.  This  great  work  is  under  the 
immediate  direction  of  the  Rt.  Rev.  Mgr.  P.  M.  Abbelen, 
who  has  so  zealously  and  untiringly  devoted  the  best  years 
of  his  life  to  this  work.  For  thirty-five  years  this  pious 
and  learned  priest  has  acted  in  the  capacity  of  Spiritual 
Director. 

The  government  of  the  Congregation  is  similar  in  its 
workings  to  our  national  government.  The  Commissary 
General  and  her  four  assistants,  elected  for  a  term  of 
six  years,  reside  at  the  Central  Motherhouse.  The  super- 
vision of  the  entire  Order  is  in  their  hands.  Commenting 
upon  the  government  of  the  Order  of  Notre  Dame,  the 
late  Very  Rev.  Michael  Hurley,  Vicar  General  of  the 
diocese  of  Peoria,  said :  ^  ^  I  know  of  nothing  grander  than 
the  unity  and  harmony  which  prevails  among  the  School 
Sisters  of  Notre  Dame,  which  is  undoubtedly  due  to  the 
fact  that  they  are  so  beautifully  disciplined  and  that  each 
member  realizes  the  truth  of  the  saying,  'In  union  there 
is  strength.'  ''    ' 

The  Congregation  at  the  present  time  is  ably  governed 
by  Mother  Marianne,  who  is  the  fourth  Commissary  Gen- 
eral of  the  School  Sisters  of  Notre  Dame. 

The  Order  maintains  Provincial  Motherhouses  in  Balti- 
more, Maryland,  and  St.  Louis,  Missouri.  Owing  to  the 
extension  of  the  Order  in  the  Northwest  a  third  Provin- 
cial Motherhouse  became  a  necessity,  and  is  now  being 
erectftd  at  Mankato,  in  the  Diocese  of  Winona,  Minnesota. 
A  School  Sister  of  Notre  Dame. 


SURVEY  OF  THE  FIELD 

The  deliberations  of  the  Chief  State  School  Officers 
of  the  North  Central  and  Western  States,  at  their  Con- 
ference, to  be  held  in  Topeka,  Kansas,  from  the  18th 
to  the  20th  of  this  month,  will  be  followed  with  keen  in- 
terest by  the  teachers  of  the  country  and  by  all  who  are 
interested  in  our  high  schools,  colleges  and  universities. 
Among  the  subjects  of  prime  interest  that  are  scheduled 
for  discussion  at  the  forthcoming  Conference  the  pro- 
posed plan  for  the  granting  of  teachers'  certificates, 
which  will  hold  throughout  the  entire  country,  easily 
holds  the  first  place.  Heretofore,  teachers 
INTERSTATE  moviug  from  one  state  to  another  have 
CERTIFICATION  fouud  the  matter  of  certification  embar- 
rassing. To  remove  this  difficulty,  which 
frequently  amounts  to  injustice,  from  the  pathway  of 
worthy  teachers  who  may  find  it  necessary  to  move  from 
state  to  state,  is  indeed  a  laudable  undertaking  on  the 
part  of  the  Chief  State  School  Officers;  but  the  task  is 
not  as  simple  as  it  might  seem  at  first  sight,  and  great  care 
will  be  necessary  on  the  part  of  the  school  officers  to 
prevent  the  remedy  sought  from  inflicting  graver  injury 
and  injustice  in  other  directions. 

The  problem  of  interstate  certification  is  not  a  new  one ; 
it  has  been  dealt  with  at  previous  conferences.  At  the 
last  conference,  which  was  held  in  Salt  Lake  City,  Utah, 
November  17-19,  1910,  the  following  principles  govern- 
ing the  recognition  of  diplomas  from  standard  colleges 
and  universities  situated  in  other  states,  and  certificates 
issued  in  other  states,  were  adopted: 


SUKVEY   OF   THE   FlELD  729 

A.   RECOGNITION  OF  DIPLOMAS  FROM  STAn1)ARD  COLLEGES  AND 

UNIVERSITIES 

A  diploma  from  a  standard  college  or  university- 
granted  upon  the  completion  of  120-liour  course,  includ- 
ing 15  hours  in  education,  shall  be  recognized. 

Definition  of  a  Standard  College  or  University, 

To  be  considered  a  standard  college  or  university  all  the 
following  conditions  must  be  fully  met : 

1.  The  completion  of  a  four-year  secondary  course 
above  eighth  grade  shall  be  required  for  college  entrance. 

2.  The  completion  of  120  semester  hours  shall  be  re- 
quired for  graduation. 

3.  The  number  of  class  hours  for  the  heads  of  depart- 
ments and  for  students  shall  not  exceed  20  a  week. 

4.  A  faculty  properly  qualified  shall  consist  entirely  of 
graduates  of  standard  colleges  and  each  head  of  a  depart- 
ment shall  hold  at  least  a  master's  degree  from  a  stan- 
dard college  or  have  attained  eminent  success  as  a 
teacher,  which  success  shall  be  determined  by  the  Chief 
State  School  Officer  of  the  state  in  which  the  school  is 
located. 

5.  The  library  shall  consist  of  at  least  5,000  volumes, 
selected  with  reference  to  college  subjects  and  exclusive 
of  public  documents. 

6.  The  laboratory  equipment  shall  be  sufficient  to  es- 
tablish efficient  laboratories  in  all  laboratory  courses 
offered. 

7.  The  means  of  support  is  defined  as  requiring  a  per- 
manent endowment  of  not  less  than  $200,000,  or  an  as- 
sured fixed  annual  income,  exclusive  of  tuition,  of  at 
least  $10,000;  provided  that  this  requirement  shall  not 
be  mandatory  until  ^yq  years  after  the  institution  has 
been  recognized.    The  college   must   maintain   at   least 


730  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

seven  separate  departments  or  chairs  in  the  arts  and 
sciences.  In  case  the  pedagogical  work  of  the  institution 
is  to  be  accepted  for  certification,  the  college  must  main- 
tain at  least  eight  chairs,  one  of  which  shall  be  devoted 
exclusively  to  education  or  at  least  to  philosophy,  includ- 
ing psychology  and  education.  The  head  of  each  depart- 
ment shall,  in  no  case,  devote  less  than  three-fourths  of 
his  time  to  college  work. 

B.  recognition  of  diplomas  or  certificates  from  standard 

NORMAL  SCHOOLS 

By  a  standard  normal  school  is  meant  a  school  meeting 
the  following  requirements: 

1.  For  entrance,  four  years  work  above  the  eighth 
grade  in  an  accredited  secondary  school. 

2.  For  graduation  therefrom,  two  years  additional 
work,  including  a  thorough  review  of  the  common 
branches  and  training  in  a  practice  school. 

3.  The  maintenance  of  a  well-equipped  training  school 
for  observation  and  practice,  such  school  to  cover  work 
in  the  eight  elementary  grades. 

4.  The  total  attendance  in  the  secondary  school  and 
in  the  normal  school  shall  be  216  weeks  above  the  eighth 
grade,  provided,  that  any  normal  school  may  accept 
satisfactory  credits  covering  twenty  weeks  work  above 
the  eighth  grade. 

(This  definition  relates  to  the  following  resolution 
passed  at  the  Lincoln  Conference:  Moved,  That  we  rec- 
ommend the  recognition  of  certificates  based  on  the  com- 
pletion of  a  two-year  course  in  standard  state  normal 
schools,  for  teaching  in  the  elementary  schools;  and  the 
recognition  of  certificates  based  upon  the  completion  of 
a  four-years '  course  in  like  schools  for  teaching  in  second- 
ary schools.) 


Survey  of  the  Field  731 

c.  recognition^  of  credits  secured  upon  examination  by 
state  authorities 

Credits  shall  be  accepted  when  secured  in  accordance 
with  the  following  requirements: 

1.  Credits  obtained  by  examination  for  the  correspond- 
ing grade  of  certificate,  provided  the  examination  ques- 
tions are  prepared  and  answer  papers  graded  by  the  state 
department  of  education,  shall  be  accepted  subject  for 
subject.  Provided:  That  the  passing  standing  shall  not 
be  less  than  eighty  per  cent  in  any  subject;  provided 
further,  that  in  determining  the  corresponding  grade  of 
certificate  this  recognition  of  credits  shall  apply  to  any 
certificate  regardless  of  territorial  restrictions  in  the 
state  wherein  the  certificate  was  issued. 

2.  Equivalent  credits  for  any  subject  or  subjects  may 
be  accepted  at  the  discretion  of  the  proper  authority  of 
the  state  wherein  recognition  is  sought. 

3.  Credits  for  successful  experience  may  be  allowed  in 
accordance  with  the  regulations  in  force  in  the  state 
where  recognition  is  sought. 

D.    RECOGNITION    OF    DIPLOMAS    AND    CERTIFICATES 

Diplomas  or  certificates  subject  to  interstate  recogni- 
tion shall  enjoy  the  same  privileges  as  similar  certificates 
or  diplomas  in  the  state  wherein  recognition  is  sought. 
The  Conference  which  adopted  these  resolutions  rep- 
resented fifteen  of  the  north  central  and  west- 
UNiFORM     ern   states   and   in   the   interest   of  uniform 
STANDARDS  staudards,  an  effort  is  now  being  made  to  have 
these   principles    recognized   throughout   the 
whole  country.    A  uniform  standard  in  educational  mat- 
ters has  many  things  to  recommend  it,  but  the  advan- 
tages to  be  gained  should  not  blind  us  to  the  significance 
of  some  of  the  conditions  laid  down.    For  example,  the 


732  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

seventh  condition,  which  must  be  fully  complied  with  by 
an  educational  institution  before  it  can  be  recognized  as 
a  standard  college,  would  exclude  many  colleges  that  are 
doing  work  of  a  high  grade.  No  matter  how  able  the  fac- 
ulty, or  how  well  equipped  the  institution  in  libraries  and 

laboratories,  no  matter  how  long  the  course 
THE  DOLLAK  or  how  Varied,  no  matter  how  rigidly  high 
STANDARD      Standards  are  maintained  in  all  that  pertains 

to  character  and  scholarship,  the  institution 
must  waive  its  right  to  be  considered  a  standard  college 
unless  it  has  a  permanent  endowment  of  $200,000,  or  an 
assured  fixed  annual  income,  exclusive  of  tuition,  of  at 
least  $10,000.  There  is  only  one  concession  allowed :  the 
institution  is  given  five  years  after  recognition  in  which 
to  complete  its  endowment.  There  is  here  at  least  a  frank 
acknowledgement  of  the  power  of  money.  Were  we 
listening  to  the  directors  of  one  of  the  great  financial 
interests,  we  would  probably  have  expected  them  to  ac- 
knowledge the  rule  of  the  god  Mammon,  but  one  is  hardly 
prepared  for  the  formal  recognition  of  this  deity  by  the 
^'Conference  of  the  Chief  State  School  Officers  for  the 
North  Central  and  Western  States.'^ 

There  are  a  great  many  Catholic  colleges  in  the  United 
States  that  have  been  doing  excellent  work.  Their 
teachers  are  men  and  women  who  have  consecrated  their 
lives  to  the  work  of  education  without  any  thought  of 
personal  compensation.  They  renounced  the  world  with 
its  luxuries  and  vanities  and  have  left  the  matter  of  their 
future  support  entirely  to  the  religious  communities  of 
which  they  are  members  in  order  that  they  might  give 
their  whole  heart  and  soul  to  the  noble 
THE  CHRISTIAN  work  of  educatiou.  They  refuse  abso- 
STANDARD  lutcly  to  valuc  their  work   in   terms   of 

dollars  and  cents,  and  yet  the  services  of 
these  teachers  are  beyond  all  price  and  the  institution 
that  is  dowered  with  such  a  faculty  can  well  afford  to 


Survey  of  the  Field  733 

dispense  with  the  $200,000  permanent  endowment  fund  de- 
manded by  our  Chief  State  School  Officers  as  a  condition 
sine  qua  non  of  being  recognized  as  a  standard  college. 

How  long  will  the  Catholics  of  the  United  States 
patiently  bear  the  injustice  of  the  present  situation! 
After  paying  their  share  of  the  taxes  for  the  support  of 
a  state  school  system  which  is  growing  more  elaborate 
and  costly  every  year,  they  have  built  up  their  own  schools 
in  which  they  educate  one  million  and  a  half  of  the  chil- 
dren of  the  nation.  Fifty  thousand  of  their  sons  and 
daughters  have  devoted  their  lives  to  the  cause  of  edu- 
cation in  the  various  teaching  communities  of  the  Catho- 
lic Church,  and  now  they  are  calmly  told  that  the  work 
of  their  educational  institutions  cannot  be  recognized  by 
the  Chief  School  Officers  of  the  States  be- 
THE  CONFLICT  cause  they  have  not  sufficient  financial  en- 
dowment to  satisfy  the  demands  of  a  school 
system  in  which  teaching  has  avowedly  descended  from  its 
high  plane  and  contented  itself  with  the  discharge  of  an 
economic  function. 

It  will  be  observed  that  the  conditions,  as  laid  down 
by  the  Conference,  are  vitiated  throughout  by  this  finan- 
cial standard.  High  schools  and  normal  schools,  no  less 
than  colleges,  are  ruled  out,  indirectly,  by  this  funda- 
mental requirement.  The  fourth  condition  which  must  be 
fully  met  by  any  institution  in  order  that  it  be  recognized 
as  a  standard  college  reads  ^  ^  a  faculty  properly  qualified 
shall  consist  entirely  of  graduates  of  standard  colleges, 
and  each  head  of  a  department  shall  hold  at  least  a 
master's  degree  from  a  standard  college,  or  have  attained 

eminent  success  as  a  teacher,  which  success 
AN  EDUCA-  shall  be  determined  by  the  Chief  State  School 
TioNAL  Officer  of  the  state  in  which  the  institution  is 
MONOPOLY  located. '^       In    addition,    therefore,     to    the 

$200,000  endowment,  all  the  faculty  must  have 
received  their  education  in  institutions  thus  dowered. 


734  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

The  worshipers  of  Mammon  are  not  willing  to  take  any 
chances  with  teachers  who  drink  from  the  fountains  of 
higher  inspiration.  Four  years  of  residence  and  work  in 
an  endowed  college  are  required  of  the  humblest  instruc- 
tor in  a  standard  college,  and  the  master's  degree,  which 
requires  at  least  an  additional  year  in  a  similar  institu- 
tion, is  demanded  of  the  heads  of  seven  or  eight  depart- 
ments. If  Catholic  generosity  were  to  endow  our  Catho- 
lic colleges  up  to  the  measure  required  by  the  Chief 
State  School  Officers,  they  would  still  be  debarred  from 
recognition  until  such  time  as  their  faculties  could  be 
educated  over  again  in  the  kind  of  colleges  that  recog- 
nize the  supreme  dominion  of  money.  In  like  manner,  the 
faculties  of  secondary  schools  and  normal  schools  must 
qualify  under  the  direction  of  standard  colleges  other- 
wise the  work  of  these  institutions  will  not  be  recognized 
as  sufficient  to  prepare  candidates  for  college  or  for  the 
teaching  profession  in  any  public  educational  institution. 

It  is  to  be  hoped  that  the  educators  who  undertook 
at  their  previous  conferences  to  lay  down  conditions  essen- 
tial to  a  standard  college  did  not  advert  to  the  full  signifi- 
cance of  the  fourth  and  seventh  conditions.  Of  course  the 
Carnegie  Foundation  for  the  Advancement  of  Teaching 
has  amply  demonstrated  the  power  of  money 
A  NATIONAL  iu  the  determination  of  educational  stand- 
MENACE  ards,  but  this  institution,  after  all,  reaches 

only  such  schools  and  colleges  as  are  willing 
to  sell  their  birthright  for  a  mess  of  pottage.  It  is  a  far 
more  serious  thing,  however,  when  the  Chief  State  School 
Officers  of  fifteen  of  our  states  place  money  as  an  essen- 
tial condition  for  the  equipment  of  our  educational  insti- 
tutions. 

Just  now  the  question  of  a  paid  versus  a  non-paid 
school  board  is  under  discussion  in  the  city  of  New 
York.    Mayor  Gaynor,  in  the  proposed  new  charter,  re- 


Survey  of  the  Field  735 

placed  the  old  board,  consisting  of  forty-six  unpaid  mem- 
bers, with  a  much  smaller  board,  each  member  of  which 

is  to  be  paid  a  salary  of  $9,000  or  $10,000  a 
A  PAID  year.  President  Lowell  of  Harvard,  President 
SCHOOL  Butler  of  Columbia,  Dr.  Draper,  State  Com- 
BOAED      missioner  of  Education,  and  other  educational 

leaders,  are  vigorously  opposing  Mayor  Gay- 
nor's  plan.  The  arguments  pro  and  con  are  worthy  of 
attention  by  all  who  are  interested  in  the  problems  of 
school  administration.  It  should  be  observed  from  the 
start  that  saving  the  tax-payers  of  the  city  of  New 
York  $150,000  or  $200,000  a  year  scarcely  enters  into 
the  controversy.  The  question  is  not  to  save  the  tax- 
payers tQoney,  but  to  secure  for  New  York  City  an  ef- 
ficient school  system.  The  American  belief  in  the  pur- 
chasing power  of  money,  which  was  so  conspicuous  in  the 
deliberations  of  the  Chief  State  School  Officers  of  the 
North  Central  and  Western  States  and  the  opposition  of 
such  men  as  President  Butler  and  his  associates  to  a 
paid  board  of  education  are  somewhat  paradoxical. 
Whether  he  is  right  or  wrong.  President  Butler  evidently 
believes  that  he  is  far  from  being  alone  in  the  contention 
that  a  paid  school  board  would  lower  the  efficiency  of  the 
system.  In  his  letter  of  June  29th  to  Mayor  Gaynor  he 
says: 

*^In  1895  and  1896  the  question  of  a  paid  board  of 
education  was  fought  out  in  all  its  details  before  the  pub- 
lic, and  before  the  legislature.  The  proposal  to  establish 
such  a  paid  board  was  at  that  time  almost  unanimously 
condemned.  I  venture  to  think  that,  if  sub- 
UNANiMous  jected  to  public  discussion  now,  a  similar 
OPPOSITION  proposal  would  meet  the  same  fate  for 
precisely  the  reasons  that  led  to  the  con- 
clusions arrived  at  fifteen  years  ago.  I  doubt  whether 
any  man  in  the  whole  United  States  who  has  made  for 


736  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

himself  a  reputation  as  an  educational  administrator  or 
as  a  student  of  educational  administration  will  advise 
the  establishment  of  a  paid  board  of  education  in  the 
city  of  New  York.  This  is  the  system  [non-paid  school 
board]  of  administration  by  which  our  schools  have 
everywhere  been  built  up,  and  it  is  also  the  system  which 
has  made  our  colleges  and  universities  what  they  are. 
In  the  institutions  of  higher  learning  the  trustees  or 
regents  have  similar  functions  to  those  of 
EEGENTS  the   board   of   education   in   a   municipal 

AND  school  system,  while  the  presidents  and 

EDUCATIONAL    facultics   are   the   paid   experts   who   are 
EXPERTS  charged  with  the  responsibility  of  master- 

ing the  educational  problems  and  of  taking 
the  initiative  in  proposing  steps  for  their  solution.  It  is 
a  fallacy  to  suppose  that  better  and  more  effective  serv- 
ice can  be  had  from  members  of  a  school  board  who  are 
paid  than  from  members  of  a  school  board  who  are  un- 
paid. The  history  of  American  public  school  administra- 
tion proves  conclusively  that  the  reverse  is  true.  Men 
and  women  of  the  highest  type  will  accept  appointment 
as  members  of  an  unpaid  board  of  education  who  would 
not  think  of  serving  in  such  a  position  if  a  salary  were 
attached  to  it.  In  my  judgment,  and  in  the  judgment 
of  every  student  of  education  whom  I 
DISADVANTAGES  have  cousultcd,  the  establishment  of  a 
OE  SALARY  paid  board  of  education  in  the  city  of  New 

York  would  be  the  first  step,  and  a  long 
one,  toward  the  restoration  here  of  the  deplorable  con- 
ditions which  formerly  existed,  and  which  the  long  years 
of  struggle  from  1883  to  1896  on  the  part  of  many  of 
our  best  and  most  disinterested  citizens  succeeded  in  dis- 
placing. '  ^ 

If  President  Butler's  argument  is  valid  when  applied 
to  non-paid  regents  and  school  boards,  why  does  it  not 


Survey  of  the  Field  737 

apply  with  still  greater  force  to  teachers  and  to  profes- 
sors in  our  colleges  and  universities?    The 
A  suggestive    teaching  office  is  closely  allied  to  that  of 
PARALLEL  the  parents;  the  teacher  is  the  real  trans- 

mitter of  the  child  ^s  spiritual  inheritances, 
and  we  instinctively  shrink  from  the  thought  of  attach- 
ing salary  to  the  functions  of  parenthood.  In  this  con- 
nection, the  words  of  the  Master  ring  in  one's  ears :  ^I  am 
the  good  shepherd.  The  good  shepherd  giveth  his  life 
for  his  sheep.  But  the  hireling,  and  he  that  is  not  the 
shepherd,  seeth  the  wolf  coming,  and  leaveth  the  sheep, 
and  flieth ;  and  the  wolf  catcheth  and  scattereth  the  sheep ; 
and  the  hireling  flieth,  because  he  is  a  hireling;  and  he 
hath  no  care  of  the  sheep. ' '  And  yet  in  the  judgment  of 
President  Butler  there  is  no  question  in  the  matter  of 
paying  teachers  any  more  than  there  is  question  of  pay- 
ing the  supervisory  force  in  the  public  school  system  of 
New  York.  He  says  in  the  letter  from  which  we  have 
just  quoted:  *'The  city  Superintendent,  the  Board  of 
Superintendents,  the  Board  of  Examiners,  the  Super- 
intendent of  School  buildings,  and  the  other  administra- 
tive officers  of  the  school  system — these  are  the  properly 
paid  officials  of  the  educational  system.  They  are  the 
experts  with  whom  the  right  of  initiative  and  recommen- 
dation must  rest  unless  we  are  to  have  an  experimental 
chaos  substituted  for  order  in  the  schools.'* 

We  are  not  objecting  to  the  policy  of  paying  teachers 
and  school  superintendents  for  the  work  which  they  per- 
form in  the  schools  of  New  York  for  the  very  simple 
reason  that  unless  these  people  are  paid  they  could  not 
afford  to  give  their  time  to  the  schools.  Mayor  Gaynor 
evidently  looks  upon  the  school  board  in  the  same  light, 
for  he  says  in  his  answer  to  President  Butler,  *'I  am 
unable  to  understand   why  anybody   objects   to   paying 


738  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

members  of  the  board  for  their  work.    The  administra- 
tion of  our  schools  consumes  more  than  one- 
STATE  fourth  of  our  budget.    If  the  board  is  made 

LIMITATIONS  an  unpaid  small  board,  I  am  certain  that 
I  do  not  know  how  to  get  men  to  accept  the 
places  who  will  do  the  work  properly.  If  you  know,  I 
shall  be  glad  to  have  you  tell  me.  I  had  a  letter  in  the 
Outlook  on  the  subject  last  week.  One  objection  is  that 
paid  members  would  bring  politics  into  the  board.  How 
can  paid  members  bring  any  more  politics  than  unpaid 
members?  I  have  some  splendid  men  in  mind  for  ap- 
pointment, but  they  could  not  afford  to  serve  unless 
paid,  the  same  as  you  and  I  are  paid. ' ' 

The  state  has  undertaken  the  work  of  education,  but 
she  has  no  adequate  means  for  creating  or  sustaining  a 
force  of  select  men  and  women  who  will  devote  their 
lives  to  the  work  of  education  without  any  thought  of 
personal  compensation.  The  Church,  however,  has 
solved  the  problem  and  says  to  her 
THE  CHURCHES  tcachcrs  and  school  officers  in  the  very 
SOLUTION  words  of  her  Divine  Founder :  Be  not  so- 

licitous, therefore,  saying,  what  shall  we 
eat;  or  what  shall  we  drink  ;  or  wherewith  shall  we  be 
clothed?  For  after  these  things  do  the  heathens  seek. 
For  your  father  knoweth  that  you  have  need  of  all  these 
things.  Seek  ye,  therefore,  first  the  kingdom  of  God  and 
his  justice,  and  all  these  things  shall  be  added  unto  you. 
In  the  teaching  communities  of  the  Catholic  Church  each 
member  devotes  his  life  to  the  work  of  education  and 
leaves  the  whole  question  of  maintenance  in  the  hands 
of  the  community.  It  goes  without  saying  that  it  is  not 
possible  for  the  rank  and  file  of  our  public  school  teachers 
who  work  with  all  the  zeal  and  devotion  that  could  be 
expected  of  them  to  dispense  with  salary,  for  there  is 


SUKVEY   OF   THE   FlELD  739 

no  one  to  bear  their  burdens  for  them,  no  one  who  would 
be  solicitous  for  their  food  and  raiment. 

The  real  purpose  underlying  the  opposition  to  a  paid 
school  board,  however,  comes  to  light  in  many  passages 
of  President  Butler's  letters  to  Mayor  Gaynor.  In  his 
letter  of  July  6th  he  says :  ^*I  repeat  that  there  is  no  work 
for  the  members  of  a  paid  board  of  education  to  do  unless 
that  work  takes  the  form  of  interfering  with,  or  doing 
over  again,  the  work  of  the  professional  officers  of  the 
school  system.  *     *     *     I  do  not  particularly  fear  the 

introduction  of  what  is  called  politics  into  the 
A  DUMMY  schools,  for  that  may  happen  under  any  sys- 
SCHOOL  tem  of  administration;  but  I  do  very  much 
BOAED  fear  the  substitution  of  personal  and  official 

meddling  for  expert  initiative  and  direction.*' 
Here  is  the  nerve  of  the  whole  argument.  We  must  not 
have  a  school  board  that  will  take  their  work  seriously  or 
devote  their  time  to  educational  matters ;  and  if  we  had  a 
paid  school  board  its  members  might  possibly  look  into 
things.  They  might  take  themselves  seriously  and  feel 
bound  in  honor  or  in  conscience  to  exert  some  real  con- 
trol over  the  schools,  and  this  would  not  suit  a  group  of 
self-constituted  educators  who  have  been  systematically 
breaking  every  line  of  control  which  the  people  formerly 
held  over  the  schools  which  they  support  and  to  which 
they  send  their  children. 

The  school  does  not  exist  for  its  own  sake.  It  is,  in 
its  essence,  a  specialized  offshoot  of  the  home,  performing 
functions  that  in  primitive  society  belonged  almost  ex- 
clusively to  the  home.  The  education  of  the  child  is  and 
must  always  remain  a  matter  of  vital  concern  to  the 
home,  to  the  church  and  to  the  state.  The  school  has  no 
right  to  control  the  child  or  his  development  except  such 
as  is  conferred  upon  it  by  the  parents,  by  the  church, 


740  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

or  by  the  state.  The  recent  tendency  of  the  public  school 
system  of  the  United  States  to  constitute  itself  an  edu- 
cational trust  which  sets  aside  all  higher 
usuEPATiON  authority  is  a  grave  menace  to  our  country. 
OF  AUTHORITY  All  our  citizcus  are  deeply  concerned  in 
the  welfare  of  our  public  schools.  These 
schools  are  supported  by  the  people,  they  are  maintained 
to  serve  the  interests  of  the  people  and  on  their  proper 
functioning  in  no  small  measure  depends  our  liberty  and 
the  future  of  our  country.  The  thoughtful  student  can- 
not contemplate  without  deep  concern  the  gradual  usur- 
pation of  all  authority  in  educational  matters  by  a  small 
group  of  self-constituted  educational  experts.  The 
danger  of  this  system  becomes  so  manifest  that  no  one 
can  fail  to  see  it  when  thirty  million  dollars,  the  gift  of 
a  single  man,  has  been  able  to  control  to  so  great  an  ex- 
tent the  standardizing  of  our  educational  institutions  and 
the  shaping  of  our  educational  policies.  When  such 
things  are  possible,  it  is  high  time  for  the  citizens  to 
awaken  to  a  realization  of  the  danger  and  to  demand  that 
the  moneyed  interests  be  not  allowed  to  pollute  the  foun- 
tains of  inspiration  at  which  our  future  citizens  must, 
in  so  large  a  measure,  drink. 


THE  LAW  AND  THE  AMEEICAN  CHILD. 

In  the  June  issue  of  the  Pedagogical  Seminary,  under 
the  title  The  Law  and  the  American  Child ,  will  be  found 
a  dissertation  by  Thomas  Charles  Carrigan,  submitted 
to  Clark  University  in  partial  fulfilment  for  the  degree 
of  doctor  of  philosophy.  The  paper  is  attracting  wide- 
spread attention  among  educators  and  members  of  the 
legal  profession.  It  is  a  careful  piece  of  research  work 
in  a  new  field  and  brings  together  in  brief  outline  the 
legislation  of  the  several  states  bearing  on  child  life.  In 
its  scope  it  includes  the  laws  dealing  with  the  child's 
right  to  be  well  born,  such  as  those  governing  marriage, 
divorce,  and  the  obligations  of  parents  towards  unborn 
children.  Subsequent  sections  of  the  thesis  deal  with 
such  topics  as :  Prevention  of  Blindness,  Vital  Statistics, 
Milk  Laws,  Compulsory  School  Attendance  Laws,  Tru- 
ancy, Medical  Inspection  of  Schools,  Laws  for  Child  Pro- 
tection, Juvenile  Court  Laws,  Child  Labor  Laws,  Eights 
of  the  Child,  Eights  of  Parents,  etc.  In  fact,  those  who 
are  interested  in  child  welfare  will  find  in  Dr.  Carrigan 's 
thesis  a  guide  to  our  legislation  in  all  that  pertains  to  the 
child's  life,  liberty  and  the  pursuit  of  happiness. 

The  wide  range  of  the  dissertation,  its  wealth  of  fact, 
its  thorough  organization  of  rich  materials,  no  less  than 
its  brilliant  style,  evidence  maturity  of  mind,  ripe  scholar- 
ship, and  years  of  experience,  qualities  not  usually  found 
in  a  candidate  for  academic  degrees,  but  it  should  be  re- 
membered that  Dr.  Carrigan 's  love  for  the  work  of  edu- 
cation took  him  back  to  Clark  University  for  his  doctorate 
after  a  brilliant  legal  career  of  fourteen  years  at  the 
Massachusetts  bar. 

Dr.  Carrigan  has  recently  accepted  an  appointment  as 
a  member  of  the  faculty  of  the  Catholic  University  of 


742  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

America,  where  he  will  lend  his  assistance  to  the  Depart- 
ments of  Education  and  Law.  His  future  work  will  be 
the  natural  following  out  of  his  labors  in  Worcester, 
where  he  was  appreciated  no  less  for  his  legal  work  than 
for  his  labors  in  the  field  of  education. 

Dr.  Carrigan  was  born  in  Worcester  in  1872.  He  grad- 
uated from  the  classical  and  English  high  school  in  1892. 
In  the  subsequent  years  he  continued  his  studies  at  Holy 
Cross  College,  Worcester,  Ottawa  College,  and  Boston 
College,  where  he  received  the  degree  of  A.  B.  in  1895, 
after  which  he  immediately  took  up  the  study  of  law 
under  the  late  Henry  Eveleth  Hill  and  in  the  law  school 
of  Boston  University.  In  1897  he  was  admitted  to  the 
bar,  but  remained  in  the  office  of  Mr.  Hill  until  1902. 
From  1894  Dr.  Carrigan  taught  continually  in  the  even- 
ing schools  of  Worcester.  In  1897  he  accepted  a  position 
in  the  evening  high  school  as  an  assistant  in  preparing 
candidates  for  the  Civil  Service.  The  combination  of 
teaching  with  legal  work  led  Dr.  Carrigan  to  seek  higher 
academic  degrees  in  Clark  University,  where  he  received 
the  degree  of  Master  of  Arts  in  June,  1910,  his  disserta- 
tion being  Juvenile  Delinquency  in  Worcester.  Continu- 
ing to  work  along  similar  lines,  in  June,  1911,  he  pre- 
sented his  thesis  on  The  Law  and  the  American  Child,  and 
received  the  degree  of  Doctor  of  Philosophy. 

It  is  reasonable  to  expect  that  in  the  years  to  come  Pro- 
fessor Carrigan  will  continue  to  render  signal  services 
in  the  cause  of  education  and  that  our  Catholic  schools 
throughout  the  country  and  the  readers  of  the  Catholic 
Educational  Review  will  profit  by  his  extensive  knowl- 
edge of  school  legislation. 

Thomas  Edward  Shields. 


THE  SISTERS'  COLLEGE. 

With  the  permission  of  the  Board  of  Trustees  of  the 
Catholic  University  an  institute  for  the  collegiate  training 
of  our  teaching  Sisters,  to  be  known  as  The  Sisters'  Col- 
lege, has  been  opened  in  connection  with  the  University.  In 
this  institute  the  Sisters  will  follow  courses  leading  to 
the  degrees  of  the  University.  The  instruction  will  be 
under  the  direction  of  the  University,  but  will  be  given 
apart  from  its  regular  courses  and  outside  of  the  Uni- 
versity grounds,  for  the  present  in  the  Convent  of  the 
Benedictine  Nuns  at  Brookland.  Several  University  pro- 
fessors have  agreed  to  give  their  services  as  teachers  in 
the  new  institute,  which  is  modeled  more  or  less  closely 
on  the  St.  Ann's  Institute  at  Munster,  in  Prussia,  carried 
on  under  the  direction  of  the  Prussian  Episcopate,  and 
so  far  quite  successful.* 

The  college  is  open  to  all  teaching  Sisters  sent  by  their 
superiors,  and  on  the  successful  completion  of  its  courses 
the  University  will  grant  the  degrees  lawfully  earned  by 
the  students  of  the  College.  Credit  for  work  of  a  col- 
legiate character  done  else\^here  will  be  allowed,  and 
examinations  may  be  taken  for  advanced  standing.  The 
College  will  be  conducted  on  the  usual  lines  of  the  aca- 
demic work  of  the  University,  of  which  it  becomes  an 
integral  part,  so  that  the  graduates  of  the  College  are 
truly  members  of  the  University.  The  need  of  such  an 
institute  has  long  been  keenly  felt  by  our  teaching  Sisters, 
and  they  have  frequently  importuned  the  University  au- 
thorities to  open  to  them,  in  some  becoming  way,  the 
doors  of  this  great  central  Catholic  school.  The  Trustees 
of  the  University  have  finally  agreed  to  permit  the  begin- 


*Cf.    The  Catholic  University  Bulletin,  May,  1908,  p.  421. 


744  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

ning  of  the  good  work  in  a  modest  way  and  with  all  due 
safeguards  for  the  religious  life  of  the  Sisters.  Twenty 
Sisters  have  already  entered  the  College,  6  Sisters  of 
Charity  of  the  Blessed  Virgin,  Dubuque,  Iowa,  3  Benedic- 
tine Sisters,  Brokland,  D.  C,  2  Sisters  of  Jesus  Mary,  one 
from  Quebec,  Canada,  and  one  from  London,  England, 
2  Sisters  of  the  Incarnate  Word,  San  Antonio,  Texas,  3 
Sisters  of  Providence,  St.  Mary's  of  the  Woods,  Indiana, 
2  Sisters  of  the  Immaculate  Heart,  Scranton,  Pa.,  2  Sis- 
ters of  St.  Dominic,  Sinsinawa,  Wis.,  3  Sisters  of  Divine 
Providence,  Newport,  Ky.,  1  Sister  of  the  Holy  Humility 
of  Mary,  Cleveland,  Ohio,  2  Sisters  of  Mercy,  Chicago, 
111.  The  Sisters '  College  was  regularly  opened  on  October 
Third  with  the  Mass  of  the  Holy  Spirit  and  a  pertinent 
discourse  by  the  Eight  Eeverend  Eector  of  the  Univer- 
sity. 


NEW  APPOINTMENTS  ON  THE  TEACHING 
STAFF  OF  THE  CATHOLIC  UNIVEESITY. 

In  the  School  of  Theology  Rev.  Dr.  Franz  Coin  has  been 
appointed  Instructor  in  the  Old  Testament.  He  will 
also  conduct  a  class  of  exegesis  in  the  New  Testament. 
Dr.  Coin  taught  for  several  years  in  the  ecclesiastical 
seminary  at  Trier.  He  is  deeply  versed  in  several  Orien- 
tal languages,  Hebrew,  Syriac,  Arabic,  Coptic,  and  until 
recently  was  lecturer  in  Assyriology  at  the  University  of 
Bonn.  For  several  years  he  edited  the  '^Oriens  Chris- 
tianus/'  one  of  the  most  learned  of  the  special  reviews 
devoted  to  Oriental  languages  and  literature.  Dr.  Coin 
is  about  forty  years  of  age,  and  takes  up  his  important 
work  with  unique  and  highly  admirable  preparation. 
The  Catholic  University  has  now  three  Orientalists  of 
acknowledged  reputation,  the  nucleus  of  an  excellent 
school  of  Scripture  studies. 

In  the  School  of  Letters  Dr.  Paul  Gleis,  a  graduate  of 
the  University  of  Miinster,  has  been  appointed  in  German 
language  and  literature  on  the  Anthony  Walburg  Chair. 
Dr.  Gleis  is  a  favorite  disciple  of  Professor  Jostes,  pro- 
fessor of  Germanics  at  Miinster  and  a  foremost  authority 
on  early  German  literature.  Though  a  young  man  of  only 
twenty-four  Dr.  Gleis  has  already  won  a  reputation  in 
the  province  of  early  medieval  German  and  allied  studies. 
Apart  from  his  extensive  and  accurate  knowledge  of  mod- 
ern German  literature,  he  has  made  proficient  studies 
in  the  oldest  phases  of  the  Arthurian  sagas,  and  has 
already  taken  his  place  among  the  most  successful  in- 
vestigators of  the  Parsifal  and  Merlin  legends.  His 
advent  will  be  welcomed  by  all  American  Germanists. 

In  the  School  of  Philosophy  Dr.  Thomas  C.  Carrigan, 
of  Worcester,  Mass.,  a  graduate  in  Education  of  Clark 


746  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

University  (1911),  enters  the  Department  Education  as 
Instructor  in  School  Organization  and  Management.  Dr. 
Carrigan  is  thirty-nine  years  of  age,  a  graduate  of  Holy 
Cross  College,  Worcester,  and  of  the  Boston  Law  School, 
and  for  fourteen  years  practiced  law  with  success  in  his 
native  city.  For  several  years  he  has  devoted  himself 
with  ardor  to  educational  studies  and  is  the  author  of  a 
unique  and  important  work  on  educational  legislation: 
*^The  Law  and  the  American  Child. '^  This  dissertation 
received  the  highest  praise  from  Dr.  Gr.  Stanley  Hall, 
President  of  Clark  University,  as  a  very  brilliant, 
thorough  and  unique  study  of  the  child  legislation  of  all 
the  states  in  the  union.  Dr.  Carrigan  will  also  conduct 
courses  in  the  School  of  Law,  to  be  determined  later  ac- 
cording to  the  needs  of  the  students. 

In  the  School  of  Law  Mr.  Ammi  Brown,  A.M.  (Harv- 
ard, 1902),  has  been  appointed  Instructor  in  Common 
Law  and  will  act  as  secretary  of  the  Law  Faculty.  Mr. 
Vincent  Leroy  Toomey,  LL.B.  (Catholic  University, 
1909),  has  also  been  appointed  Instructor  in  Common 
Law.  Dr.  Thomas  C.  Carrigan  will  conduct  two  courses, 
one  on  the  Law  of  Wills  and  the  other  on  Law  and  the 
American  Child.  The  teaching  staff  in  the  Law  Faculty 
now  consists  of  five  professors  and  instructors  who  devote 
their  entire  time  to  the  conduct  of  the  School.  A  large 
number  of  students  have  entered  the  first  year  of  the  Law 
School.  Professor  William  C.  Eobinson,  the  head  of  the 
School  and  author  of  several  widely  used  text-books  of 
American  law,  has  returned  to  his  work  in  renewed  health 
and  with  the  above  staff  looks  forward  to  a  new  life  for 
the  Department  of  Law. 

In  the  School  of  Science  Mr.  Charles  Lawler  Kelly, 
A.B.  (Clark  College,  Worcester,  1909),  has  been  ap- 
pointed Instructor  in  Chemistry.    Mr.  John  James  Cant- 


New  Appointments  at  the  University  747 

well,  B.S.  (The  Catholic  University,  1911),  has  been  ap- 
pointed Instructor  in  Drawing.  Mr.  John  Joseph  Haley, 
C.E.  (Tufts  College,  1911),  has  been  appointed  Instructor 
in  Civil  Engineering.  Mr.  James  Francis  Connor,  A.B. 
(Amherst  College,  1900),  and  for  several  years  instructor 
in  Mathematics  at  the  Boys '  Latin  School,  Baltimore,  has 
been  appointed  Instructor  in  Mathematics. 

The  teaching  staff  of  the  University  now  numbers  fifty- 
eight,  including  instructors,  student-assistants  and  fel- 
lows. Of  these  twenty-four  are  ecclesiastics,  the  other 
thirty-four  are  laymen. 


DISCUSSION. 

FIRST    STEPS    IN    WRITTEN    LANGUAGE 

When  should  the  context  method  of  reading  he  employedf 
Along  what  lines  should  the  first  steps  .in  reading  he 
conducted? 

Since  the  publication  of  the  article  on  The  Context 
Method  of  Reading  in  the  February  number  of  the  Re- 
view a  great  many  questions  similar  to  these  two  have 
reached  us  from  primary  teachers  in  various  parts  of 
the  country.  We  shall  endeavor  to  include  the  answers 
to  as  many  of  these  questions  as  possible  in  the  present 
discussion. 

The  context  method,  as  its  name  implies,  is  not  avail- 
able in  the  initial  stage  of  teaching  the  child  to  read. 
The  fundamental  principle  in  the  context  method  de- 
mands that  the  unknown  words  be  so  distributed  in  a  con- 
text of  known  words  that  the  meaning  of  the  sentence 
shall  enable  the  child  to  discover  the  new  word  for  him- 
self. A  written  vocabulary,  however  limited,  is  an  in- 
dispensable prerequisite  to  the  context  method.  From 
six  weeks  to  four  months,  at  the  beginning  of  the  first 
grade,  is  usually  required  to  give  the  child  a  mastery  of 
the  necessary  vocabulary.  This  work  should  precede 
the  use  of  a  book;  it  should  be  conducted  wholly  by  the 
aid  of  blackboard  and  chart.  When  this  initial  vocabu- 
lary is  chosen  with  direct  reference  to  the  child  ^s  first 
book,  it  is  possible  to  limit  it  to  two  hundred  words,  or 
even  less,  particularly  when  the  first  book  has  been  pre- 
pared along  the  lines  of  the  context  method. 

In  exceptional  cases  the  child  of  six  years  of  age  has 
learned  to  read  at  home,  but  in*  the  great  majority  of 
eases  the  children,  on  their  first  appearance  in  school, 


Discussion  749 

have  only  a  spoken  vocabulary  and  that  is  quite  limited 
in  range  and  full  of  imperfections,  nevertheless,  it  is 
with  this  vocabulary  that  the  children  must  begin  their 
school  work  and  it  should  be  utilized  to  the  fullest  extent 
by  the  teacher.  Moreover,  the  child's  spoken  vocabulary 
constitutes  one  of  the  strongest  bonds  between  the  home 
and  the  school  and  for  this  reason  it  should  not  be  dis- 
turbed until  the  child  has  learned  to  feel  quite  at  home 
in  the  school.  After  a  week  or  two  the  teacher  may  pro- 
ceed to  correct  imperfections  in  pronunciation  and  mis- 
takes in  the  use  of  words,  but  in  this  she  should  proceed 
with  great  caution.  The  children  must  not  be  humiliated 
or  made  self-conscious,  and  above  all  there  must  be  no 
implied  correction  of  the  home  standards  and  no  reflec- 
tion upon  the  knowledge  of  the  home  group;  in  a  word, 
the  negative  method,  in  this  phase  of  the  child's  educa- 
tion, should  be  avoided  with  scrupulous  care,  for  in  ad- 
dition to  the  usual  dangers  of  this  method  there  is  here 
grave  danger  of  injurying  fundamental  elements  in  the 
child's  character  and  of  weakening  his  respect  for  par- 
ental authority.  If  the  teacher  uses  language  correctly 
herself,  and  if  she  insists  on  the  children  using  it  cor- 
rectly, there  will  be  no  need  to  call  the  attention  of  the 
school  to  a  child's  mistakes  in  pronunciation  or  in  the  use 
of  words.  Both  of  these  defects  will  rapidly  disappear  if 
left  alone. 

Where  English  is  the  native  language  of  the  child,  the 
teacher  need  not  concern  herself  much  with  the  task  of 
increasing  his  spoken  vocabulary ;  this  will  grow  naturally 
and  without  apparent  effort  on  her  part,  for  in  this  field  the 
context  method  is  employed  naturally  by  the  teacher  and 
by  the  children.  Nor  is  the  method  limited  to  the  school- 
room. The  children,  particularly  when  fortunately  situ- 
ated, enlarge  and  perfect  their  spoken  vocabulary  at  home 
and  on  the  playground. 


750  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

Much  of  the  blundering  which  has  characterized  prim- 
ary methods  during  the  past  few  decades  may  be  traced 
directly  to  a  misunderstanding  of  the  relations  which 
should  exist  between  the  child  ^s  written  and  spoken  vo- 
cabularies. The  child  who  has  not  yet  learned  to  read 
uses  the  auditory  symbols  in  connection  with  all  his 
thinking.  The  direct  and  primary  pathways  in  his  brain 
are  from  the  temporal  lobe  to  the  motor  area  and  second- 
arily to  the  speech  centers.  When  we  undertake  to  teach 
him  to  read,  we  endeavor  to  substitute  the  visual  for  the 
auditory  symbol.  Evidently  this  substitution  should  be 
made  without  disturbing  the  motor  or  thought  complexes. 

The  translation  of  written  into  oral  language  is  the 
last  stage  in  the  process ;  it  is  the  conclusion  of  the  syllog- 
ism. The  two  symbols  designating  the  same  thought  are 
equivalent.  From  these  elemental  principles  in  the  psy- 
chology of  the  process  under  consideration,  we  may 
readily  deduce  two  of  the  fundamental  rules  which  should 
govern  the  initial  stages  of  the  process  of  teaching  the 
child  to  read. 

I.  The  first  written  vocabulary  taught  to  a  child  must 
lie  well  within  the  hounds  of  his  spoken  vocabulary.  It 
should,  in  fact,  be  chosen  from  the  most  vivid  portions 
of  the  child's  spoken  vocabulary. 

II.  The  written  symbols  must  be  connected  immediately 
with  the  things  signified.  It  will  not  do  to  have  spoken 
language  intervene  between  the  written  language  and 
the  things  which  it  describes. 

It  is  a  matter  of  the  greatest  importance  that  the  child 
should  think  in  written  language  from  the  very  begin- 
ning. The  case  is  analogous  to  that  presented  by  older 
pupils  who  undertake  to  master  a  foreign  language.  It 
is  a  matter  of  common  observation  that  so  long  as  we  con- 
tinue to  think  in  our  own  language,  we  acquire  but  scanty 
facility  in  the  use  of  any  other  language.  So  long  as 
we  have  to  translate  our  thoughts  before  giving  them 


Discussion  751 

expression  our  language  will  be  stiff  and  artificial.  Ease 
comes  only  when  we  think  in  the  very  symbols  that  we 
use  in  speaking  or  in  writing.  This  is  as  true  of  the 
relationship  between  written  and  spoken  language  as  it 
is  of  that  between  one's  native  and  a  foreign  tongue, 
and  it  is  as  true  of  the  child  as  it  is  of  the  man.  Many  of 
our  most  facile  writers  have  talked  haltingly,  and  some 
of  our  greatest  talkers  have  had  little  power  with  their 
pens.  It  should  be  our  aim  to  develop  in  the  children 
power  along  both  lines  and  this  cannot  be  done  unless 
they  are  taught  to  think  in  the  language  of  the  eye  as  well 
as  in  the  language  of  the  ear.  The  children  have  already 
learned  to  think  in  spoken  language,  and  the  tendency  is 
very  strong  to  continue  to  think  in  these  symbols,  hence 
it  is  necessary  to  build  up  the  power  of  visual  language 
without  translating  it  into  oral  language. 

The  children's  written  language  should  begin  with 
action  words  which  the  teacher  should  write  on  the  black- 
board and  illustrate  for  the  children  by  doing  the  thing 
signified.  After  this  the  written  words  should  be  used 
by  the  teacher  as  a  command  or  a  permission  for  the 
children  to  perform  the  actions  signified.  The  names 
of  various  familiar  objects  should  be  written  on  the  board 
and  the  children  should  be  allowed  to  handle  them  and 
exercise  their  several  senses  upon  them. 

There  should  no  attempt  to  build  up  syllables  out  of 
letters  and  words  out  of  syllables  in  the  initial  stages 
of  teaching  the  children  to  read.  The  utterance  is  the 
natural  unit  of  language ;  it  is  in  this  way  that  the  child 
has  learned  his  spoken  language  and  in  the  mastery  of 
written  language  he  will  also  find  the  utterance  the  most 
available  unit.  The  utterance  may  consist  of  one  word 
or  of  several,  but  the  child  naturally  apprehends  it  as 
one,  as  the  symbol  of  a  single  thought  or  action.  Later 
on  he  will  recognize  words  as  the  component  parts  of 


752  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

symbols  by  observing  the  same  word  in  different  utter- 
ances. The  recognition  of  syllables  and  individual  char- 
acters will  gradually  develop  in  the  child's  conscious- 
ness in  the  same  maimer. 

It  is  scarcely  necessary  to  lay  stress  on  a  third  funda- 
mental rule  for  primary  reading,  but  the  rule  is  many- 
sided  and  enters  into  so  many  phases  of  the  educative 
process  that  it  is  well  to  keep  it  in  mind  from  the  ver^ 
start. 

III.  Reading  in  the  primary  grades  must  not  he  iso- 
lated from  the  other  school  exercises.  It  must  be  quietly 
introduced  into  all  the  child's  thoughts  and  actions;  it 
must  be  associated  with  his  physical  culture,  with  the 
exercise  of  his  imagination,  with  the  training  of  his 
senses,  with  his  aesthetic  and  religious  development. 

A  typical  fruit  lesson  for  first  grade  work  will  serve  as 
a  concrete  illustration  of  the  way  in  which  the  symbols 
of  written  language  may  be  made  to  take  root  in  the 
child's  conscious  life. 

On  the  teacher's  desk  there  is  a  covered  basket  of 
fruit  containing  apples,  pears,  peaches,  lemons,  oranges, 
grapes,  etc.  The  children  are  lined  up  with  their  hands 
behind  them,  while  the  teacher  allows  each  child  in  turn 
to  touch  the  surfaces  of  the  various  fruits  without  look- 
ing at  them  and  to  name  them  to  the  class.  Whenever  the 
correct  name  is  given  the  teacher  praises  the  child.  The 
fruit  is  then  placed  in  the  hands  of  the  children  and  they 
are  allowed  to  exercise  upon  the  various  specimens  the 
temperature  senses,  the  muscle  sense,  and  the  sense  of 
pressure,  as  well  as  the  sense  of  touch.  The  children  are 
again  allowed  to  name  the  fruits  before  being  allowed 
to  look  at  them,  after  which  the  fruit  is  divided  and  given 
to  the  children  to  eat. 

Children  accustomed  to  eating  the  fruits  will  generally 
be  found  to  possess  mental  pictures  of  them  in  which  the 


Discussion  753 

gustatory  and  the  visual  elements  predominate  and  in 
which  the  other  sensory  elements  are  vaguely  repre- 
sented. The  object  of  these  exercises  is  to  bring  out  and 
strengthen  the  other  sensory  elements.  After  a  few 
drills  of  this  kind  the  children  will  posses  mental  images 
of  these  fruits  that  are  rich  in  detail  and  strong  in  the 
tendency  to  enter  into  combinations  with  other  cognitive 
elements,  which  are  already  in  the  mind  or  which  may 
be  in  it  subsequently. 

After  the  children  have  eaten  the  fruit,  the  teacher 
should  endeavor  to  ascertain  how  many  of  them  have 
seen  these  fruits  grow.  She  should  lead  them  to  tell  all 
they  know  about  fruit  trees  and  orchards  and  grape 
vines.  The  difference  between  trees  and  vines  should 
be  brought  out  and  illustrated  with  pictures  (colored  pic- 
tures if  possible).  The  children  are  then  taken  to  the 
blackboard  and  shown  a  picture  of  an  apple  tree  with 
a  green  apple  hanging  to  one  of  its  topmost  branches 
and  a  little  girl  gazing  up  at  it.  It  is  much  better,  of 
course,  that  the  teacher  make  this  sketch  in  the  presence 
of  the  children.  When  the  children  have  all  recognized 
the  picture,  the  teacher  writes  the  words  *  apple'  and 
^ apple  tree'  on  the  blackboard,  and  explains  that  the 
written  words  stand  for  the  objects,  just  as  the  pictured 
apple  and  the  pictured  tree  do. 

The  imaginations  of  the  children  are  now  exercised  in 
sympathy  with  the  child  who  is  trying  to  get  the  apple 
from  the  tree.  The  child  is  supposed  to  call  upon  her 
friend  the  little  bird,  sitting  on  a  branch  of  the  tree.  He 
comes  to  her  aid,  and  the  teacher  now  sketches  the  bird 
endeavoring  to  release  the  apple  by  pecking  at  its  stem. 
The  children  may  here  be  exercised  in  finding  the  word 
stem  and  in  pronouncing  it  correctly.  The  object  is 
shown  to  them  on  an  apple  which  is  passed  around. 
Their  attention  is  called  to  the  picture  of  the  stem  on  the 


754  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

blackboard ;  the  word  is  finally  written  on  the  board  and 
the  relations  between  its  oral  and  written  forms  empha- 
sized. When  the  bird  fails  in  its  efforts  to  release  the 
apple,  because  the  stem  is  too  hard  for  its  little  bill,  the 
child  appeals  to  another  friend,  the  sun,  which  is  also 
sketched  on  the  blackboard  and  the  word  developed,  as 
in  former  instances.  The  children  are  asked  how  the 
sun  can  help  the  child  and  after  they  have  sufficiently 
puzzled  their  little  heads  and  exercised  their  imaginations 
over  the  problem,  the  teacher  illustrates  with  red  chalk 
the  effect  of  the  sun^s  rays  in  ripening  the  apple,  and  the 
children  are  drilled  on  the  written  form  of  the  word  red. 
Finally,  the  child  calls  upon  the  wind  to  come  to  her  aid. 
This  is  the  signal  for  a  drill  in  physical  culture.  One 
child  plays  the  part  of  the  wind  and  finds  exercise  for  his 
lungs  in  vigorous  blowing.  The  other  children,  with 
swaying  arms  and  bodies,  imitate  the  movements  of  the 
trees  under  a  strong  breeze,  until  the  apple  is  supposed 
to  be  shaken  from  the  branch.  The  moral  and  religious 
elements  of  this  lesson  will  be  found  developed  in  Relig- 
ion, Second  Book,  page  27. 

It  will  readily  be  seen  that  in  the  first  exercise  of  this 
lesson  the  children's  percepts  of  the  various  fruits  are 
developed.  Sensory  elements,  heretofore  present  in  a 
vague  way  in  the  consciousness  of  the  children,  are 
brought  out  and  strengthened.  Direct  experience  is  sub- 
stituted for  mere  representation  elements  in  the  case  of  sev- 
eral of  the  subordinate  sensations.  In  the  second  exercise 
the  strengthened  percepts  are  correlated  with  other  cog- 
nitive elements  previously  in  the  minds  of  the  children. 
Summer  vacations  in  the  country  are  recalled,  experi- 
ences in  picking  fruits  from  the  trees  and  vines  are  re- 
vived, the  likenesses  and  differences  between  the  various 
fruits  in  their  modes  of  growth  are  brought  into  con- 
sciousness.   In  the  third  exercise  the  imaginations  of  the 


Discussion  755 

children  are  called  into  play  and  new  combinations  of  the 
previous  contents  of  their  minds  are  secured.  Their  in- 
formation concerning  processes  in  nature,  such  as  the 
effects  of  the  sun^s  rays  and  of  the  wind  on  the  ripening 
fruits,  is  enlarged.  And  in  connection  with  all  this  fresh, 
vigorous  mental  content  the  written  symbols  of  several 
of  the  thought  elements  and  thought  combinations  are 
brought  out  and  strengthened. 

Thus,  in  a  single  brief  period,  the  children,  acting  in 
obedience  to  natural  laws,  enlarge  their  store  of  informa- 
tion and  improve  the  quality  of  some  of  the  information 
which  they  previously  possessed.  They  build  up  new 
thought  combinations  and  become  acquainted,  to  some 
extent  at  least,  with  the  play  of  certain  natural  forces  in 
their  environment.  The  pleasurable  affective  state  main- 
tained throughout  the  lesson  keeps  their  minds  con- 
stantly active  and  in  a  receptive  attitude.  Their  imagi- 
nations as  well  as  their  senses  are  exercised  in  a  healthy 
manner  and  trained  to  act  along  right  lines.  They  im- 
prove their  use  of  oral  language,  get  an  excellent  exer- 
cise in  physical  culture,  calculated  to  impart  strength 
to  their  muscles  and  grace  to  their  bodies,  and,  what  we 
are  chiefly  concerned  with  in  this  connection,  they  lay 
the  secure  foundations  of  written  language  at  the  very 
heart  of  the  child's  mental  life.  Day  by  day,  through 
exercises  of  this  kind,  the  child  acquires  a  written  vo- 
cabulary of  power  which  will  enable  him  at  pleasure  to 
enlarge  and  enrich  his  knowledge  of  language  through  the 
context  method  of  reading. 

From  simple  names  and  action  words  the  teacher 
should  proceed  rapidly  to  simple  action  sentences  and 
teach  the  child  to  think  in  written  symbols  from  the  be- 
ginning, which  is  a  matter  of  the  greatest  importance 
not  only  for  the  child's  future  as  an  elocutionist,  but 
for  his  future  as  a  student  of  books. 


756  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

In  this  first  stage  of  the  child's  acquisition  of  written 
language  a  book  is  a  needless  impediment.  The  holding 
of  a  book  distracts  the  child  and  hampers  his  movements, 
but  there  are  graver  reasons  than  this  for  insisting  on 
blackboard  and  chart  work.  Our  first  task  is  to  imprint 
on  the  child's  mind  the  written  form  of  words  and  sen- 
tences, and  the  writing  of  the  words  on  the  board  in  the 
child's  presence  is  an  important  factor  in  this  process. 
The  teacher's  writing  holds  the  child's  attention  and 
directs  it  successively  to  each  point  along  the  line  of  the 
forming  characters.  There  is  thus  made  upon  the  child's 
brain  a  deeper  impression  than  could  be  made  where  the 
complete  word  is  looked  at  in  its  entirety,  as  is  the  case 
when  reading  from  a  printed  page.  This  consideration 
leads  naturally  to  the  fourth  rule  which  we  would  lay 
down  for  the  teaching  of  primary  reading : 

IV.  The  script  form  should  he  taught  before  the  printed 
form. 

Many  additional  considerations  might  be  adduced  in 
support  of  this  rule.  The  primary  pathway  of  all  sen- 
sory impressions  leads  to  the  motor  area  of  the  brain. 
It  is  true  that  the  sensory-motor  pathway  leads  to  action 
which  will  secure  appropriate  adjustment  to  the  source 
of  stimulation,  but  the  nearest  to  this  primitive  pathway 
and  inseparably  bound  up  with  it  is  that  which  leads  to 
imitation.  The  child  in  imitating  the  teacher's  writing 
deepens  the  impression  made  on  the  eye. 

When  a  child  has  mastered  a  written  vocabulary  of 
one  hundred  and  fifty  to  two  hundred  words,  the  transi- 
tion to  the  printed  form  may  be  secured  through  the  use 
of  charts.  We  are  not,  however,  in  favor  of  the  stiff  and 
rigid  chart.  The  teacher  should  make  her  own  charts 
with  the  same  freedom  that  she  writes  her  sentences  on 
the  blackboard.    A  stencil  set,  which  may  be  obtained  at 


Discussion  757 

any  printer's  supply  company  for  a  couple  of  dollars 
and  a  few  cents  worth  of  cardboard  cut  into  strips  two 
or  three  inches  wide  and  a  couple  of  feet  long  is  all  that 
is  needed.  The  sentences  that  the  children  have  learned 
to  recognize  in  the  script  form  should  be  printed  on  these 
strips  and  work  similar  to  that  employed  with  the  script- 
form  repeated.  A  comparison  between  the  two  forms 
will  lend  further  help.  A  good  deal  of  interest  may  be 
maintained  for  the  children  by  doing  this  printing  in  their 
presence.  The  making  of  the  sentences  by  the  children 
themselves,  by  putting  together  blocks  or  individual  let- 
ters printed  on  cardboard  squares,  sometimes  proves 
serviceable  in  this  final  stage  of  preparation  for  the  use 
of  a  book. 

The  fifth  rule  for  elementary  reading  might  be  formu- 
lated as  follows: 

V.  The  child  should  not  he  allowed  to  read  while  his 
eye  rests  upon  the  word  until  the  words  have  grown  so 
familiar  as  to  he  recognized  without  effort. 

In  the  exercises  outlined  above  no  mention  was  made  of 
vocalizing  the  utterances  which  the  child  learned  to  rec- 
ognize. The  reasons  for  this  omission  will  be  found  in  the 
fifth  rule.  Correct  vocalization  is  a  difficult  task  and  for 
its  adequate  performance  it  is  necessary  that  the  focus 
of  corticle  energy  rest  upon  the  vocal  centre.  When, 
however,  the  child  must  make  an  effort  to  recognize  the 
word,  high  nerve  tension  is  required  in  the  visual  area. 
When  the  child  attempts  to  read  under  conditions  which 
demand  simultaneously  high  tension  in  these  two  remote 
centers  of  the  brain,  the  result  is  the  drawling  reading 
that  so  frequently  characterizes  the  child's  first  efforts. 

In  the  method  which  we  are  here  advocating  the  child 
first  acts  out  the  sentence  written  on  the  board,  after 
which  he  copies  it  with  his  crayon  or  pencil,  and  only 


758  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

when  he  has  proved  himself  thoroughly  familiar  with  the 
utterance  and  its  meaning  is  he  allowed  to  translate  it 
into  speech.  In  this  translation  he  should  stand  with 
his  back  to  the  blackboard  and  speak  from  his  memory  of 
what  was  written.  In  like  manner,  in  reading  sentences 
from  the  chart,  or  from  his  text-book,  the  child  should 
be  taught  to  look  away  from  the  book  before  pronounc- 
ing the  sentence.  This  method  of  reading  should  be  main- 
tained throughout  the  first  and  the  early  part  of  the 
second  year.  In  individual  cases  it  might  be  continued 
with  profit  for  a  much  longer  period. 

We  need  scarcely  add  to  this  brief  sketch  the  further 
suggestion  that  the  vocabulary  developed  in  this  pre- 
liminary period  should  be  chosen  from  the  first  part  of 
the  first  book  to  be  put  into  the  child's  hands ;  and  futher- 
more  that  the  first  two  or  three  stories  in  the  book  should 
not  contain  a  single  unkown  word.  If  this  suggestion 
is  heeded,  the  child  will  have  time  to  grow  accustomed  to 
the  holding  of  his  book  and  he  will  have  learned  to  be- 
lieve is  his  own  power  of  reading  before  he  meets  his 
first  difficulty  and  the  difficulty  will  thus  be  more  than 
half  overcome  in  advance. 


CURRENT  EVENTS 

Four  new  Catholic  high  schools,  two  for  boys  and  two  for 
girls,  were  opened  this  fall  in  the  city  of  St.  Louis.  They  are 
free  schools,  centrally  located,  and  under  the  control  of  a 
board  of  directors.  The  plans  for  their  establishment  were 
made  public  in  connection  with  a  pro-synodal  meeting  held 
last  June,  at  which  Archbishop  Glennon  presided.  Rev.  A.  V. 
Garthoeffner,  Diocesan  Superintendent  of  Schools,  in  explain- 
ing the  project,  has  said : 

"Our  ideal,  of  course,  will  be  separate,  independent  build- 
ings, but  at  present  we  must  content  ourselves  in  establishing 
these  high  schools  in  some  centrally  located  buildings  until 
we  have  funds  which  will  enable  us  to  erect  suitable  public 
buildings.  Beginning,  we  hope,  in  September,  one  high  school 
for  girls  will  be  conducted  in  St.  Teresa's  School,  Grand  Ave- 
nue and  North  Market  Street,  and  will  be  under  the  charge 
of  the  Sisters  of  St.  Joseph.  The  other  girls'  school  will  be 
in  St.  Alphonsus'  School,  Grand  and  Cook  Avenues,  and  will 
be  under  the  charge  of  the  School  Sisters  of  Notre  Dame.  One 
of  the  boys'  high  schools  will  be  at  St.  Peter  and  Paul's,  Eighth 
Street  and  Allen  Avenue.  It  will  supersede  the  present  high 
school  of  that  parish,  which  has  been  a  pay  institution,  and 
will  be  taught  by  the  Brothers  of  Mary.  The  other  boys'  high 
school  will  be  on  the  north  side,  in  some  parish  that  has  not 
been  decided  on,  and  will  be  in  charge  of  the  Christian 
Brothers. 

^'The  high  schools  as  we  plan  them  now  will  be  known  as 
high  school  centers.  They  will  not  be  parish  institutions  and 
will  not  be  controlled  by  the  pastor  of  the  parish  where  lo- 
cated, but  by  a  board  of  directors.  To  show  that  they  are 
diocesan  institutions  and  not  parish  institutions,  some  popular 
name  equally  applicable  to  the  whole  diocese  will  be  applied 
to  each.  Probably  these  names  will  be  the  names  of  four 
former  bishops  and  archbishops  of  St.  Louis — Rosati,  Kenrick, 
Ryan  and  Kain.  These  schools  will  be  supported  by  the  con- 
tributions of  the  Catholic  people.    It  shall  be  our  endeavor  to 


760  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

create  a  fund  for  buildings  needed  and  to  have  the  work  on  a 
permanent  basis  as  soon  as  possible." 

PROMINENT    RELIGIOUS    OP    THE    SACRED    HEART 

The  late  Mother  Catherine  Digby,  who  died  recently  in 
Brussels,  Belgium,  had  been  a  member  of  the  Religious  of  the 
Sacred  Heart  for  almost  sixty  years  and  had  filled  the  office 
of  Superior  General  of  her  community  since  1895.  Mother 
Digby  was  a  daughter  of  a  distinguished  English-Irish  family. 
She  became  a  convert  to  the  Catholic  faith  at  the  age  of  eighteen 
and  entered  the  religious  life  shortly  afterward.  Her  career 
was  spent  chiefly  in  France.  As  Superior  General  she  visited 
the  convents  of  the  Sacred  Heart  in  this  country,  Canada  and 
Mexico  about  thirteen  years  ago.  Her  remarkable  adminis- 
trative ability  was  never  better  shown  than  at  the  time  of 
her  community's  banishment  from  France.  It  is  said  that  she 
succeeded  in  establishing  a  new  convent  outside  of  France 
for  every  one  that  had  been  closed  during  the  persecution. 

Mother  Sarah  Jones,  until  a  few  years  ago  Superior  of  the 
Sacred  Heart  Convent,  Kenwood,  N.  Y.,  died  in  September. 
She  was  the  daughter  of  Judge  Samuel  Jones,  of  New  York, 
and  had  spent  sixty-five  of  her  eighty-eight  years  in  religious 
and  educational  work. 

AMERICAN    SEMINARY    FOR    FOREIGN    MISSIONS 

The  zealous  promotors  of  the  American  Seminary  for  For- 
eign Missions  are  rejoicing  in  the  blessing  and  encouragement 
given  to  their  work  by  the  Holy  See.  Rev.  Thomas  F.  Price, 
of  North  Carolina,  and  Rev.  James  A.  Walsh,  editor  of  "The 
Field  Afar,"  who  were  sent  to  Rome  as  delegates  of  the  Cath- 
olic Foreign  Mission  Society  to  arrange  for  the  establishment 
of  the  Seminary,  have  reported  that  the  Holy  Father  is  deeply 
interested  in  the  apostolic  work,  believing  that  while  there 
are  yet  in  America  many  pagans  to  convert,  "the  development 
of  this  work  for  foreign  missions  would  react  most  beneficially 
upon  the  home  needs,  strengthening  and  multiplying  vocations 
in  this  country." 


CuKKENT  Events  761 

In  answer  to  many  inquiries  about  the  new  seminary  they 
have  published  the  following  paragraph  from  the  original  draft 
forwarded  by  His  Eminence  Cardinal  Gibbons  to  the  Arch- 
bishops of  the  United  States : 

'^It  is  proposed  to  begin  the  work  on  a  small  scale,  near 
some  established  house  of  Catholic  philosophy  and  theology. 
It  would  seek  its  permanent  home  well  removed  from  the  heart 
of  city  life,  gradually  securing  its  own  professors,  and  de- 
veloping an  exclusively  apostplic  atmosphere.  No  definite  lo- 
cation is  suggested,  although  a  preference  has  been  expressed 
by  the  organizers  for  a  center  reasonably  convenient  to  the 
more  populous  Catholic  zones,  and,  if  possible,  not  too  far 
removed  from  those  states  in  which  a  knowledge  of  foreign 
missions  has  already  been  cultivated.  It  is  expected  that 
apostolic  schools  will  be  needed  to  serve  later  as  feeders  to  the 
seminary." 

COLLEGE  AND  SCHOOL  NOTES 

The  newly  appointed  Kector  of  the  College  of  Noble  Irish- 
men in  Salamanca,  Spain,  the  Rev.  Denis  J.  O'Doherty,  D.D., 
is  a  brother  of  the  retiring  Rector,  the  Rt.  Rev.  Michael  J. 
O'Doherty,  D.D.,  Bishop-elect  of  the  diocese  of  Zamboanga, 
in  Mindanao,  P.I.  Dr.  Doherty  was  in  this  country  when 
the  news  of  his  appointment  as  Retcor  reached  him.  He  has 
been  lecturing  here  on  educational  and  sociological  questions 
for  almost  two  years. 

Among  the  college  appointments  of  the  new  year  we  note 
that  of  Miss  Katherine  E.  Conway  to  the  teaching  staff  of 
St.  Mary's  College,  Notre  Dame,  Ind.  For  a  number  of  years 
Miss  Conway  was  assistant  editor  of  "The  Pilot."  She  has 
lately  been  managing  and  literary  editor  of  the  "Republic"  of 
Boston.  In  1907  the  University  of  Notre  Dame  conferred  on 
her  the  Laetare  Medal  in  recognition  of  her  distinguished 
services  as  a  Catholic  writer  and  lecturer. 

Announcement  has  already  been  made  that  the  question  for 
a  new  site  for  St.  Charles'  College,  which  was  destroyed  by 
fire  on  the  sixteenth  day  of  last  March,  was  duly  submitted 


762  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

to  the  Superior  General  of  the  Sulpician  Fathers,  Very  Eev. 
Henry  Garriguet,  who  resides  in  Parish.  Father  Garriquet 
referred  the  decision  of  the  matter  to  His  Eminence  Cardinal 
Gibbons,  and  the  Cardinal  has  decided  that  the  college  should 
be  rebuilt  on  the  old  site. 

The  Domestic  Science  and  Manual  Training  Departments  of 
the  public  schools  of  Winona,  Minn.,  are  to  be  opened  to  the 
children  attending  the  Catholic  schools  as  a  result  of  a  recent 
action  of  the  local  School  Board.  The  Board  recognized  the 
fact  that  the  parish  schools,  by  providing  for  the  education  of 
1,200  pupils,  considerably  lessened  the  drain  on  the  public 
school  funds  and  resolved  to  offer  their  pupils  the  same  oppor- 
tunities for  instruction  in  these  branches  as  are  enjoyed  in 
the  public  schools. 

Patrick  J.  McCormick. 


REVIEWS  AND  NOTICES. 

When  Should  a  Child  Begin  School?  An  inquiry  into  the 
relation  between  the  age  of  entry  and  school  progress,  W.  H. 
Winch,  Baltimore,  Warwick  and  York,  Inc.,  1911 ;  pp.  98. 

This  monograph,  though  somewhat  difficult  to  the  average 
teacher  in  this  country,  possesses  unusual  merit.  It  is  a  piece 
of  careful  research  which  not  only  yields  valuable  results  in 
connection  with  the  problem  under  investigation  but,  what  is 
still  more  valuable  to  teachers  in  this  country,  it  is  full  of 
suggestiveness  and  cannot  fail  to  be  of  assistance  to  those  who 
are  undertaking  the  study  of  retardation  and  elimination  in 
our  schools.  The  general  result  arrived  at  by  the  author  will 
prove  a  surprise  to  many.  He  says  in  his  Preface :  "I  started 
the  inquiry  with  an  opinion  in  favor  of  early  entry;  but  my 
only  regret  at  the  conclusion  arrived  at  is  due  to  the  pain,  as 
of  wasted  effort,  felt  by  more  than  one  excellent  infant's  mis- 
tress to  whom  the  full  force  of  the  figures  came  home." 

The  investigation  is  concerned  with  the  school  life  of  children 
between  the  ages  of  three  and  six.  It  is  shown  quite  con- 
clusively that  children  who  enter  school  at  the  age  of  five  after 
a  few  months  are  fully  the  equal  of  children  who  have  spent 
the  previous  two  years  in  school.  The  work  has  important 
bearing  on  the  kindergarten,  or,  rather,  on  the  oft-debated 
question  as  to  whether  the  kindergarten  is  helpful  or  not  to 
the  subsequent  progress  of  the  child.  The  following  are  some 
of  the  conclusions  arrived  at :  ^That  from  the  entrance  age  of 
three  to  five,  early  entrance  confers  no  intellectual  advantage 
on  the  child  either  in  his  infant  school  work  or  in  his  subse- 
quent progress  in  later  school  life.  That  these  conclusions  are 
quite  independent  of  the  particular  form  of  teaching  adopted. 
The  great  elasticity  of  the  English  elementary  educational 
system,  obtaining  more  especially  during  the  last  ten  years, 
has  given  rise  to  a  number  of  widely  varying  schools,  divers 
both  in  results  and  methods.  I  was  careful  to  include  schools 
of  different  ideals  and  different  methods  in  the  range  of  my 
inquiry.     Identical  results  are  found  in  schools  in  which  the 


764  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

youngest  classes  did  nothing  but  'kindergarten'  work,  and  in 
schools  in  which  no  'kindergarten'  work  was  done.  That,  even 
in  poor  neighborhods,  only  a  small  proportion  of  children  now 
avail  themselves  of  the  permission  to  come  to  school  at  three, 
and  many  come  after  five — the  compulsory  school  age — is 
passed.  That  no  advantage  appears  to  exist  in  early  entry 
so  far  as  the  subsequent  attainment  of  good  behavior  and  the 
development  of  attentiveness  are  concerned." 

The  infant  school  in  the  English  sense  of  the  term  has  not 
had  a  wide  development  in  this  country.  The  compulsory  age 
is  usually  from  six  to  seven  in  this  country,  whereas  it  is  five 
in  England.  Permission  to  attend  school  is  usually  withheld 
until  the  age  of  five,  whereas  in  England  children  of  three 
years  are  accepted  in  the  infant  school.  Dr.  Winch's  conclu- 
sions, consequently,  have  not  the  same  practical  application 
here  that  they  possess  in  England,  but  the  method  employed 
will  prove  serviceable  in  a  high  degree  in  dealing  with  many  of 
the  problems  of  our  primary  grades. 

Thomas  Edward  Shields. 

Lessons  in  Logic,  by  William  Turner,  S.  T.  D.,  The  Catholic 
Education  Press,  Washington,  D.  0.,  1911;  pp.  302. 
This  text-book  in  Logic  is  the  first  of  the  Catholic  University 
series  of  text-books  in  Philosophy  and  is  intended  for  use  in 
Catholic  schools  and  colleges.  It  aims  to  present  the  logic  of 
the  scholastics  in  a  form  suitable  to  the  requirements  of  mod- 
ern philosophical  study  and  by  means  of  a  method  which  will 
make  this  study  easy  and  natural  for  beginners.  It  is  not  too 
much  to  say  that  an  examination  of  the  book  convinces  one  that 
the  author  has  succeeded  with  his  plan.  He  has  presented  us 
with  a  neat  and  handy  volume  embodying  all  that  we  associate 
with  the  logic  of  the  schoolmen  and  in  language  well  adapted 
to  the  needs  of  our  schools.  The  arrangement  and  presentation 
of  the  various  elements  of  the  science  and  art  of  logic  are  so 
made  that  their  continuity  and  interrelation  are  well  shown. 
From  the  introduction  to  the  end  the  work  has  a  fullness  of 
expression,  and  a  fund  of  illustration  and  example  that  ban- 
ished any  danger  of  misunderstanding  or  confusion.  Some 
terms  will  be  found  in  it  that  connote  a  distinctly  different 


Reviews  and  Notices  765 

meaning  from  that  employed  by  many  other  authors,  but  they 
will  hardly  fail  of  being  understood  here. 

From  another  point  of  view  the  book  will  render  a  real  serv- 
ice. For  Catholics  the  language  of  English  philosophy  has 
many  defects  and  shortcomings,  as  for  instance,  that  implied 
by  the  term  ^^substance."  Dr.  Turner  takes  every  occasion  to 
point  out  these  defects  and  discrepancies  when  compared  with 
the  terminology  of  Catholic  philosophy,  while  occupying  him- 
self with  the  exposition  and  defense  of  such  well-known  schol- 
astic properties  as  the  syllogism. 

His  method  has  the  advantage  of  having  been  used  in  the 
class  room  for  years  and  found  practical.  Unlike  many  of  the 
philosophers.  Dr.  Turner  has  realized  that  the  logical  order  is 
not  always  the  one  to  adopt  in  the  presentation  of  his  subject 
to  the  class,  that  it  is  often  the  inverse  of  the  pedagogical  order. 
The  student's  capacities  and  mental  content  must  be  respected 
before  new  knowledge  can  be  successfully  imparted  to  him.  The 
teacher  in  consequence  wisely  begins  where  the  student  can 
meet  him  and  not  where  the  student  ought  to  be.  "The  truth 
which  naturally  comes  first,  considering  the  nature  and  pre- 
vious content  of  the  mind,  is  not  always  the  truth  which  should 
come  first,  logically,  that  is,  considering  the  abstract  relation 
among  the  truths  themselves."  Teachers  will  appreciate  this 
advantage  and  find  a  security  in  using  the  method  not  obtain- 
able in  many  other  works  on  the  same  subject.  For  those  also 
who  look  for  a  trustworthy  exposition  of  the  principles  under- 
lying Catholic  philosophy,  and  who  would  understand  the 
science  and  art  of  logic  with  its  manifold  applications,  this 
work  will  be  found  most  satisfactory.  For  older  students  it 
will  be  a  delightful  review  of  a  subject  which  perhaps  has  never 
before  been  presented  to  them  in  a  more  attractive,  or  inter- 
esting manner. 

Patrick  J.  McCormick. 

Education  as  Growth,   or  the  Culture  of  Character,    L.  H. 

Jones,  Boston,  Ginn  &  Co.,  1911,  pp.  V-275. 
This  is  a  book  of  unusual  merit  which  Catholic  educators 
particularly  will  welcome.    The  author  does  not  lack  the  cour- 
age of  his  convictions.    He  speaks  from  long  experience,  ilium- 


766  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

ined  by  wide  reading  of  educational  literature.  Perhaps  the 
most  striking  feature  of  the  book,  in  contradistinction  to  the 
pedagogical  literature  which  has  made  its  appearance  during 
the  last  decade,  is  the  emphasis  laid  upon  the  soul  as  a  spiritual 
being  superior  to  the  body  which  it  inhabits  and  which  has 
a  destiny  beyond  this  world.  The  book,  however,  is  not  given 
up  to  a  theoretical  discussion  of  the  spirituality  and  the 
immortality  of  the  soul  or  the  freedom  and  responsibility  of 
man;  these  matters  are  rather  incidental,  or  should  we  say 
are  everywhere  assumed  rather  than  proven,  while  the  atten- 
tion of  the  reader  is  directed  to  the  practical  issues  of  educa- 
tion as  seen  from  the  viewpoint  of  one  who  is  not  a  materialist. 
The  author  was  for  some  years  superintendent  of  schools  in 
Indianapolis,  Indiana,  and  in  Cleveland,  Ohio,  and  is  widely 
known  as  the  author  of  the  Jones  Readers. 

In  his  introductory  chapter,  the  Point  of  View,  there  are 
many  things  which  every  teacher  should  ponder.  And  these 
are  not  things  spun  out  of  the  inner  consciousness  of  the 
theorist,  "the  author  writes  out  of  an  experience  of  more  than 
forty  years  of  teaching  and  supervision  of  schools;  and  it  is 
the  result  of  this  extensive  experience  in  actual  school  work 
that  he  has  wrought  into  these  pages,  rather  than  the  logical 
analysis  of  the  theme  from  the  standpoint  of  the  abstract 
student."  The  relative  importance  which  the  author  attaches 
to  the  development  of  the  soul  and  the  body  in  education 
is  not  left  in  obscurity.  "Fundamental  among  these  [the 
author's  beliefs]  is  the  belief  that  the  human  being  whose  edu- 
cation is  discussed  in  these  pages  is,  in  its  essence,  a  spiritual 
being,  that  is,  a  being  whose  essential  nature  is  expressed  by 
its  thinking,  feeling,  and  willing ;  and  that  its  material  body  is 
merely  a  necessary  condition  to  existence  in  this  world  of 
matter.  .  .  .  There  is  implied  underneath  this  view  the 
belief  in  the  immortality  of  the  individual  human  soul,  since 
it  is  everywhere  considered  as  enduring  and  accountable ;  while 
the  body  is  treated  as  a  necessary  condition  of  the  performance 
of  human  functions  and  therefore  as  an  actual  part  of  the 
human  being:'  This  truth,  from  a  somewhat  different  angle,  is 
stated  in  a  way  which  should  serve  many  teachers  as  an  anti- 
dote against  prevalent  errors  in  modern  psychology.     "The 


Eeviews  and  Notices  767 

writer  believes  that  there  is  a  wide  difference  between  the 
cause  of  mental  action  and  the  mere  occasion  or  condition 
of  such  action ;  and  that  while  conditions  or  occasions,  or  even 
motives,  may  come  to  the  spirit  through  the  body,  the  real 
power  to  begin,  direct  and  control  such  action  is  lodged  with 
the  soul  and  not  in  the  body." 

Another  truth  that  should  prove  very  welcome  to  teachers  in 
these  days  when  so  much  is  heard  about  physical  heredity  and 
its  limitations  and  when  the  idea  of  Kedemption  is  scoffed  at 
stands  out  clearly  in  the  pages  of  this  book.  "The  power  of 
one  person  to  enter  vicariously  into  another's  life,  through  the 
implanting  of  ideals  and  motives,  is  a  truth  that  lies  close  to 
the  heart  of  professional  teaching,  and  gives  to  educational 
work  its  highest  inspiration."  The  implications  of  this  truth 
are  brought  out  in  many  places,  as  for  example,  in  the  follow- 
ing: "It  is  also  recognized  that  evil  has  the  same  general  op- 
portunity for  increasing  its  range  of  power  over  the  world  as 
has  good,  were  it  not  for  two  factors,  namely,  (1)  the  possibility 
of  vicarious  regeneration  of  others  by  faithful  parents  and 
teachers,  who  furnish  ideals  and  motives;  and  (2)  the  greater 
strength  and  persistence  of  good  over  evil  in  the  world.  Nature 
is  favorable  to  recovery,  whether  the  disease  be  physical  or 
moral.  This  eternal  health  and  sanity  at  the  heart  of  things 
is  the  saving  element  in  all  life.  The  possibility  of  evil — 
degeneracy — is  the  necessary  accompaniment  of  high  develop- 
ment and  supernal  worth  in  human  character;  but  it  is  only 
the  negative  side,  and  it  has  not  the  strength  nor  the  per- 
sistence of  the  positive,  aggressive,  saving  element  in  the  good." 
The  teacher's  need  of  constant  professional  study  is  very  well 
put,  and  it  should  help,  at  least,  to  disturb  the  complacency  of 
many  teachers  who  feel  that  nature  has  relieved  them  of  the 
necessity  of  studying  the  principles  and  methods  of  education. 
"The  author  is  aware  that  a  few  favored  persons  inherit  the 
ability  to  understand  human  nature  in  the  concrete  without 
studying  it  in  the  abstract,  but  he  is  also  aware  that  most 
people  need  all  the  help  possible  before  attempting  to  deal 
with  so  complex  a  problem  as  a  school;  and  he  is  therefore  a 
firm  believer  in  the  study  of  psychology  and  allied  subjects 
by  all  persons  who  would  aspire  to  the  high  title  of  teacher. 


768  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Through  long  experience  in  teaching  and  the  supervision  of 
schools  he  has. observed  that  those  young  teachers  who  at  first 
teach  so  well  by  native  grace,  lose  this  power  after  a  little 
while  unless  they  grow  interested  in  a  more  scientific  study 
of  their  work.  Their  supply  of  native  or  inherited  tact  is  soon 
exhausted,  and  their  interest,  at  first  stimulated  by  novelty, 
begins  to  wane  unless  a  careful  study  of  human  nature  and  its 
needs  supplies  a  more  permanent  set  of  motives.  Without 
such  study  the  teacher  who  started  out  as  a  wise,  tactful,  suc- 
cessful worker  frequently  grows  into  a  routine  follower  of 
form,  and  ends  in  being  a  mediocre,  commonplace,  dissatisfied 
drudge.  On  the  other  hand,  the  author  has  seen  those  who 
blundered  openly  and  unmistakably  at  first,  saved  by  their 
earnestness  and  enthusiasm,  which  led  them  to  study  their 
profession.  Many  of  these  he  has  seen  grow  into  teachers  of 
great  tact,  freedom,  and  efficiency,  through  this  more  funda- 
mental understanding  of  the  principles  of  teaching.  In  fact, 
his  observations  have  led  him  into  the  belief  that  in  general 
only  those  who  keep  an  interest  in  the  continued  study  of  the 
principles  of  their  work  and  their  application,  continue  to  be 
efficient  as  the  years  go  by,  or  attain  to  any  degree  of  success 
which  would  warrant  their  being  considered  as  professional 
teachers."  The  book  throughout  is  characterized  by  good  psy- 
chology, sound  philosophy,  a  healthy  mental  and  moral  tone 
and  by  the  wisdom  which  experience  brings  to  the  alert  student. 

Thomas  Edward  Shields. 


The  Catholic 
Educational  Review 


NOVEMBER,  1911 


EELIGION  IN  EDUCATION.! 

We  bring  to  a  close  this  evening  one  of  the  most 
successful  meetings  in  the  annals  of  the  Catholic  Educa- 
tional Association.  The  purpose  of  this  Association  is 
expressed  in  its  title.  It  is  educational  and  it  is  Catholic. 
It  treats  of  all  the  various  and  complex  problems  that 
present  themselves  in  the  field  of  education.  It  looks 
at  them  calmly,  and  it  looks  at  them  in  the  light  not  only 
of  educational  experience,  but  also  of  our  Catholic  faith ; 
and  in  that  light  it  undertakes  to  solve  these  problems, 
not  for  one  day  nor  one  year  nor  one  generation,  but  for 
all  the  years  and  for  all  the  generations  to  come,  so  long 
as  man  shall  need  to  walk  in  the  light  of  faith  and  with 
the  help  of  education  towards  his  eternal  home  with  God. 

The  way  in  which  the  Association  undertakes  to  solve 
the  problems,  the  spirit  and  the  method  which  direct  our 
efforts,  must  be  very  clear  to  all  those  who  have  followed 
our  program  and  its  execution  during  the  past  three  days. 
You  must  have  noted  this  one  feature,  namely,  that  Cath- 
olic educators  are  not  afraid  to  face  a  question.  We  do 
not  disguise  the  fact  or  try  to  hide  from  ourselves  that 
education  has  difficulties;  but  we  look  those  difficulties 
squarely  in  the  face  and  we  seek  counsel  frankly,  candidly, 
of  each  other,  and  when  the  various  expressions  of 
opinion  have  been  duly  weighed,  then  the  Association  as 

^Address  delivered  before  the  Catholic  Educational  Association  at 
Chicago,  June  29,  1911. 


770  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

such  gives  voice  at  least  in  the  way  of  advice  or  of  sug- 
gestion for  the  betterment  of  our  educational  work. 

But  underlying  all  these  evidences  of  method,  back  of 
all  the  discussions  that  have  filled  these  three  days,  there 
is  something  that  is  more  essential,  something  that  you 
could  not  but  notice,  and  that  is  that  with  us  Catho- 
lics education  and  religion  are  inseparably  bound  to- 
gether. They  may  not  be  reiterated  at  every  moment ; 
they  may  not  be  stated  in  so  many  terms  by  every  speaker 
who  appears  on  this  platform ;  that  is  not  necessary ;  but 
the  keynote,  the  motive  that  runs  through  all  the  work  of 
this  Association,  whether  in  this  great  city  or  in  any  other 
part  of  our  country — the  motive  is  one  and  the  same, 
namely,  education  must  be  religious  and  religion  must  be 
educational.  It  is  with  this  in  view  that  I  made  bold, 
when  I  was  asked  for  a  subject,  to  say,  *' Religion  in 
Education, ' '  and  I  might  have  said  with  equal  justice,  as 
I  say  it  now,  *' Education  in  and  with  and  through  and 
for  Religion. ' '  Evidently  here  we  have  two  distinct  terms. 
One  is  education  and  the  other  is  religion.  I  am  not  going 
to  try  even  to  explain  the  first  of  these,  namely,  education ; 
for  I  take  it  for  granted  that  most  of  you  at  least  have 
followed  the  meetings  of  the  Association  since  Monday, 
and  so  much  has  been  said  about  education,  about  its 
meaning,  its  methods,  its  ideals,  its  aims,  its  practical 
carrying  out,  that  I  really  do  not  see  what  could  be  added 
in  the  way  of  a  fuller  enlightenment,  or  of  a  deeper 
wisdom  on  a  subject  which  has  been  so  amply  discussed. 
But  I  do  think  that  the  moment  is  opportune,  at  the  close 
of  this  meeting  of  the  Association  to  look  at  the  other 
term  in  the  title. 

What  is  religion  ?  I  know  that  a  great  many  of  you  will 
say :  he  is  going  back  almost  to  the  first  page  of  the  cate- 
chism ;  and  it  is  true.  And  not  only  to  the  first  page,  but 
to  the  first  line  on  that  page.  What  is  religion  ?  I  raise 
the  question  here,  and  I  present  it  to  you  for  this  reason : 


Eeligion  in  Education  771 

that  if  we  propose  to  have  religion  in  education  or  a  relig- 
ious system  of  education,  then  evidently  the  very  first 
requisite  is  that  we  should  understand  very  clearly  what 
we  mean  by  religion.  It  will  not  do,  in  a  case  like  this, 
and  in  a  cause  like  ours — it  will  not  do  to  satisfy  ourselves 
with  any  vague  notion  of  what  religion  was,  or  what  it 
is,  or  what  it  might  be.  The  moment  you  make  religion 
a  vague  thing,  an  indefinite  thing,  you  take  the  life  out 
of  it.  Eeligion,  by  its  derivation,  must  be  definite,  must 
be  clear,  must  come  right  down  to  details,  to  the  facts 
of  life.  As  long  as  it  simply  floats  in  the  air,  it  is  not 
religion ;  and  we  as  Catholics  have  and  must  have  a  very 
clear,  definite,  exact  notion  of  religion  when  we  advocate 
the  teaching  of  religion  in  the  schools.  I  do  not  think  that 
it  is  necessary  on  this  occasion  to  explain  more  in  detail 
what  you  and  I  and  all  Catholics  understand  by  this  word 
**  Eeligion. ' '  We  mean,  as  you  all  know,  a  system  of 
beliefs  and  a  system  of  practices.  Eeligion  means  believ- 
ing and  doing,  and  if  you  eliminate  either  one  or  the 
other,  thereby  you  destroy  the  very  essence  of  religion. 
The  Catholic  Church  has  never  held  that  religion  con- 
sisted merely  and  solely  in  subscribing  to  a  given  form- 
ula of  belief.  The  Church  has  her  formulas;  they  are 
sacred  and  they  are  put  out  before  all  mankind  with  an 
authority  that  comes  not  from  man,  but  from  Him  who 
said,  ^^  Going,  therefore,  teach  ye  all  nations. ''  But  the 
Catholic  Church  has  insisted  from  the  beginning  that 
religion  means  the  carrying  out  in  life,  in  action,  of  those 
things  which  are  implied  in  the  Faith  that  we  profess. 
*' Faith,'*  we  insist  with  the  Apostle,  ^^ Faith  without 
works  is  dead.*'  And  it  is  equally  true,  as  the  Apostle 
again  says,  that  **  without  Faith  it  is  impossible  to  please 
God. ' '  We  believe,  we  act  in  accordance  with  that  belief, 
and  there  is  religion.  And  when  we  speak  of  religion  in 
education,  we  mean  this :  that  the  child  from  the  first  day 
he  enters  school,  is  to  be  taught  certain  things  that  he 


772  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

shall  believe,  but  he  is  also  to  be  trained  to  act  in  accord- 
ance with  that  belief.  I  simply  mention  these  things 
which  are  the  A,  B,  C,  of  Catholic  education. 

Some  few  years  ago,  not  more  than  two  decades,  when 
the  question  of  religion  in  education  or  religion  in  the 
schools  was  on  the  platform,  a  great  many  people  said, 
**you  cannot  put  religion  in  the  schools  because  of  the 
nature  of  education.''  And  one  of  the  most  distinguished 
men  who  ever  held  the  post  of  United  States  Commis- 
sioner of  Education  said  in  my  hearing,  at  a  certain 
meeting  in  Boston:  ^^We  cannot  put  religion  in  the 
schools,  because  religion  has  one  method  and  the  school 
has  another  method."  He  was  too  good  a  man  at 
heart  to  say  that  religion  had  no  value,  but  at  the  same 
time  he  was  perhaps  too  shrewd  in  another  respect  to 
admit  that  education  and  religion  could  live  together  in 
the  same  school  house.  More  recently,  quite  recently, 
the  objection — let  us  put  it  that  way — the  objection  has 
turned  on  the  other  element  in  the  equation.  Now  we 
are  told  what  religion  is. 

This  name  ^^ Religion"  has  come  down  to  us  through  a 
great  many  centuries.  It  has  come  down  to  us  from  the 
days  of  pagan  Rome.  It  has  come  down  to  us  through 
the  Ages  of  Faith.  It  has  survived  the  storms  of  the 
sixteenth  century,  and  it  is  still  understood  in  a  very 
definite  way,  both  by  those  who  are  within  the  Catholic 
fold,  and  by  those  who  are  outside  that  fold.  And  in  all 
this  time  and  all  these  acceptations  religion  has  been 
understood  as  some  sort  of  a  relation  between  the  soul 
of  man  and  his  Maker.  But  quite  recently,  very  lately, 
we  have  been  given  a  new  description  of  religion,  and  this 
new  description  has  not  come  to  us  from  over  the  sea; 
it  has  not  come  to  us  by  any  telegraphy,  wireless  or 
otherwise.  The  new  description  met  the  Association 
shortly  after  its  arrival  in  the  city  of  Chicago.  And 
religion  is  therein  described  as  a  partnership  enterprise 


Eeligion  in  Education  773 

for  refining  and  strengthening  character.  I  do  not  believe 
that  there  is  a  single  one  here — I  am  sure  that  there  is 
not  a  Catholic  in  this  whole  country  or  on  the  globe 
itself — that  will  not  say  that  religion  refines  and  religion 
strengthens.  But  when  we  are  told  that  religion  consists 
merely  in  this,  in  strengthening  and  refining  character, 
then  we  have  a  right  to  ask  a  few  questions.  Note  this, 
that  in  the  description  given  there  is  not  the  slightest 
reference  to  God ;  and  yet  if  religion  does  not  mean  some 
relation  between  the  human  mind  and  God,  what  in  the 
name  of  the  English  language  does  religion  mean  ?  When 
we  are  told  that  religion  consists  in  or  is  a  partnership 
enterprise  for  refining  and  strengthening  character,  we 
may  ask  this  question :  Who  is  to  determine  what  strength 
or  refinement  of  character  means?  There  are  a  great 
many  people  in  this  world  of  ours  who  have  a  wonderful 
strength  of  character,  a  wonderful  force  of  will,  and  when 
we  ask  how  they  employ  it,  how  they  expend  that 
strength,  too  often  we  find  that  they  expend  it  and  employ 
it  in  warring  against  the  very  things  for  which  religion 
exists.  There  are  thousands  of  people  in  this  country  and 
in  other  countries  who  have  attained  to  refinement  of 
character,  and  neither  you  nor  I  would  trust  them  one 
block  away.  So  mere  refinement  of  character  and 
strength  of  character  are  something  purely  relative,  the 
meaning  of  which  you  must  define  before  you  bring  them 
into  connection  with  religion,  and  much  more  before  you 
dare  identify  religion  with  them. 

We  are  told  that  in  this  age  it  makes  no  difference  to 
the  religious  mind  whether  you  speak  of  the  power  that 
inspires  us  as  God  or  Jehovah,  or  the  fundamental  unity, 
or  ^Hhe  scheme  of  things,''  or  the  power  that  makes  for 
righteousness.  I  regard  that  as  one  of  the  most  remark- 
able statements  ever  made  in  connection  with  this  subject 
by  an  intelligent  speaker  or  writer.  To  say  that  it  makes 
no  difference  in  matters  of  religion  how  we  think  of  the 


774  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Supreme  Being,  is  to  cancel  at  once  all  the  meaning  that 
all  the  centuries  have  put  into  the  word  *' Religion. ' ' 
Does  it  make  no  difference  to  you  or  to  me  whether, 
when  we  kneel  to  worship,  we  shall  worship  Almighty 
God,  a  personal  being,  or  worship  the  "scheme  of 
things''?  Is  there  one  of  you  here  that  ever  thought  of 
addressing  a  prayer  to  the  Unknowable  Being  or  to  tho 
Fundamental  Unity!  And  since  we  must  speak  about 
religion  in  education,  and  since  we  insist  upon  keeping 
religion  in  education,  just  picture  to  yourselves  a  situa- 
tion like  this,  where  the  teacher  takes  the  little  boy  or  the 
little  girl,  and  says,  "My  dear  child,  kneel  down  there  and 
worship  or  pray  to  or  implore" — what?  "The  scheme 
of  things."  There  are  limits  to  absurdity,  but  I  do  not 
know  whether  they  have  ever  been  discovered. 

We  are  told  that  the  one  thing  the  religious  mind  has 
to  do  is  to  reach  out,  physically  and  mentally  and  morally, 
for  the  highest  human  values.  That  is  one  of  the  most 
beautiful  phrases  that  was  ever  written  or  spoken  or 
printed — "the  highest  human  values."  Its  beauty  lies 
precisely  in  this,  that  each  and  every  one  of  us  can  give 
the  phrase  any  meaning  that  we  choose.  What  is  the 
highest  human  value?  What  is  a  value  of  any  kind? 
What  is  a  human  value?  What  is  one  of  the  original 
human  values?  What  is  a  higher  value,  and  what  is  the 
highest  value  of  all?  These  things  have  never  been  set- 
tled in  any  human  court  or  by  any  human  philosophy,  and 
never  can  be  settled  except  by  a  revelation  from  above, 
which  shows  us  men  what  our  value  is  and  what  our  lives 
are  worth.  Secret  prayer  has  nothing  to  do  with  one's 
full  religious  duty?  Then  what  has  anything  to  do  with 
religious  duties?  It  is  not  fifty  years  since  the  charge 
was  made  against  the  Catholic  Church  and  its  views  of 
religion,  that  we  are  external,  that  we  are  all  for  outward 
form.  We,  of  course,  denied  that,  but  every  time  our 
worship  was  mentioned  it  was  mentioned  as  somethino* 


Eeligion  in  Education  775 

purely  external.  It  was  said  that  there  is  nothing  under- 
neath it  all,  there  is  no  heart  to  it,  there  is  no  soul  to  it, 
there  is  no  inner  prayerfulness  to  it,  and  so  on  and  so  on. 
And  now,  we  are  told — ^wonderful  fact — at  the  opening 
of  the  twentieth  century,  we  are  told  that  secret  prayer — 
that  is,  I  suppose,  prayer  of  the  mind,  the  prayer  of  the 
heart — has  nothing  to  do  with  the  fulfillment  of  our 
religious  duty.  I  can  only  infer  that  the  fulfillment  of  our 
religious  duty  in  the  mind  of  those  who  take  this  view 
consists  merely  in  an  outward  compliance,  with  what? 
With  something  that  they  happen  to  like.  But  that  is 
not  the  Catholic  idea  of  religion. 

Not  to  multiply  citations,  let  me  add  just  this  one  more, 
and  I  add  it  out  of  a  sense  of  fairness.  I  have  been  acting 
the  part  of  critic  up  to  this  time,  and  a  critic,  if  he 
deserves  the  name,  must  present  both  sides  of  the  case. 
I  want  to  add  just  this  one  phrase  more:  Eeligion  and 
morality,  we  are  told  from  the  same  source,  did  not  come 
down  from  Heaven.  Now,  if  the  word  *^ Eeligion^'  here 
means  religion  as  heretofore  described  or  defined,  then 
that  is  a  perfectly  true  statement ;  for  religion  as  a  part- 
nership enterprise  did  not  come  down  from  Heaven.  But 
now  note  this  further  point,  namely:  so  far  as  religion 
and  morality  are  described  as  partnership  enterprises  for 
strengthening  and  refining  human  character,  not  only  is 
it  true  that  they  did  not  come  down  from  Heaven;  it  is 
also  true  that  they  are  not  going  to  lead  anybody  from 
this  earth  up  to  Heaven. 

I  have  noted  these  various  points,  not  because  I  think 
that  we  have  such  a  very  serious  matter  on  hand,  but  for 
this  reason:  I  think  that  education,  the  educator  or  the 
system  that  will  give  out  such  an  idea  of  religion  shows 
himself  or  itself  less  worthy  of  our  confidence.  You  know 
that  with  all  men  and  with  all  women  religion  is  a  sacred 
thing.  Whether  it  be  our  Catholic  faith  or  some  other 
Christian  belief,  religion  is  not  a  thing  to  be  touched  on 


776  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

lightly;  it  is  a  thing  that  goes  deep  down  into  the  heart 
and  into  the  soul ;  and  when  any  one  attempts  to  describe 
religion  he  must  not  only  think  of  his  logic  and  his  phil- 
osophy and  his  history,  but  he  must  also  think  of  the 
thought  and  the  feeling  of  the  human  heart  and  the 
human  mind  in  which  religion  dwells;  and  to  describe 
religion  in  that  way  is  to  make  it  of  less  value.  And  I 
will  add  this,  which  you  will  already  have  anticipated, 
namely,  that  if  that  be  the  meaning  of  religion,  then  we 
do  not  stand  for  religious  education  in  that  sense,  nor  do 
we  stand  for  any  alliance  between  the  schools  and  religion 
or  between  the  Church  and  the  school. 

You  know  full  well  that  we  mean  something  else.  We 
mean  that  the  boy  and  the  girl  who  go  through  the  Cath- 
olic school  shall  have  been  permeated  not  merely  with 
ideas  about  religion,  not  merely  with  definitions  of 
religious  duty,  but  with  the  spirit  of  religion,  of  shaping 
their  lives  in  accordance  with  the  law  of  God.  The  whole 
work  of  this  Association  culminates  in  this  one  result, 
namely,  that  religion  shall  not  be  an  appendix  or  addition 
to  the  studies  of  the  school,  but  religion  shall  pulsate 
like  a  vital  stream  through  every  part  of  our  course  of  edu- 
cation, and  shall  vitalize  every  element  there ;  and  while  it 
stoops  down  to  accommodate  itself  to  the  needs  of  the 
little  child,  it  shall  gently  and  gradually  lift  the  mind,  the 
thought,  the  will  of  the  child  beyond  the  present  range  of 
things,  beyond  the  horizon  that  we  survey  with  our  eyes, 
to  a  higher  world,  to  a  world  where  dwells  that  God  who 
is  the  fundamental  unity,  but  something  more ;  who  is  the 
power  that  makes  for  righteousness,  but  also  the  power 
that  defines  what  righteousness  is ;  who  is,  if  you  please,  the 
Author  of  this  scheme  of  things  which  we  call  the  universe, 
and  who  reveals  Himself  alike  in  the  circling  orbs  that  we 
survey  in  the  firmament  and  in  the  eyes  of  the  child  that 
sits  before  us  in  our  Catholic  schools. 

Edward  A.  Paoe. 


FATIGUE  IN  TEACHERS 

The  work  of  the  educator  requires  from  him  a  large 
expenditure  of  power.  The  *  *  drawing-ouf  process 
possesses  a  reciprocal  character  like  the  influence  which 
bodies  exert  on  each  other  in  proportion  to  their  mass. 
Thus  we  say  that  the  sun  attracts  the  earth ;  we  may  with 
equal  propriety  speak  of  the  earth's  attractive  influence 
on  the  sun.  So,  too,  in  the  educative  act,  the  teaching 
mind  and  the  child  mind  exercise  a  reciprocal  attraction. 
The  twenty  or  forty  little  intelligences  that  form  the  cos- 
mos whose  solar  center  is  the  teacher,  radiating  his  intel- 
lectual beams,  are  having  on  him  an  attractive  power 
cognate  to  the  assimilative  faculty  of  the  normal  child. 

Then,  too,  classroom  work  brings  into  play  the  teach- 
er's directive  and  governing  power,  as  well  as  the  ability 
to  fix  attention  and  impart  knowledge.  These  drafts 
on  his  energy  are  constant. 

Besides  the  actual  labor  in  the  classroom,  which  forms 
the  vital  part  of  his  calling,  and  should  get  his  best 
capabilities,  and  find  him  always  in  the  best  possible  form, 
there  are  the  complementary  activities — preparation,  and 
correcting  and  revising  written  work.  Each  of  these  two 
latter  phases  of  occupation  requires  painstaking,  and  this 
term  suggests  tiring  effort. 

The  preparation,  with  the  irksomeness  of  looking  up  a 
thousand  and  one  niceties,  in  regard  to  which  the  con- 
scientious teacher  must  be  ready  to  offer  at  least  a 
suggestion,  if  he  would  not  be  continually  declaring  that 
he  ** really  does  not  know,''  the  framing  of  questions 
adapted  to  stimulate  thoughtful  replies,  and  the  noting 
of  lines  of  suitable  investigation,  all  this  represents 
patient  concentration. 

As  for  correcting  theme  papers,  that,  without  doubt,  is 


778  The  Catholic  Educational  Eevibw 

the  bugbear  of  the  hard-workmg  preceptor.  Coming  as 
it  does,  at  a  time  when  most  workers  employed  during  the 
day  are  recreating  their  forces  for  the  morrow,  this 
thankless  but  important  part  of  the  teacher's  work  often 
has  a  fretting  action  which  should  not  be  allowed  to 
continue. 

Fatigue  is  a  recognized  factor  in  physiology.  It  is  the 
notification,  ordinarily  given  with  gentle  insistence,  that 
we  need  repose  and  refreshment.  If  the  notice  is  heeded, 
our  strength,  in  brief  space,  is  renewed,  and  careful 
nature  has  held  with  a  close  hand  the  reserve  power  and 
resistant  force  which  will  enable  her  to  meet  her  obliga- 
tions in  the  stressful  times  that  come  to  all  her  subjects. 

Fatigue  is  the  index  of  expended  power.  Any  organ- 
ism, good  in  its  kind,  has  the  power  to  perform,  in  ample 
measure,  the  work  for  which  it  is  designed,  with  a  mini- 
mum expenditure  of  energy. 

This  principle  is  well  exemplified  in  nature  by  that 
wonderful  organ,  the  heart.  In  mechanism  we  have  it 
illustrated  in  a  Corliss  engine,  for  instance.  In  the  human 
organism,  when  work  and  capability  are  nicely  adjusted, 
facility  and  effectiveness  mark  its  operations. 

When  it  exceeds  the  moderate  degree  induced  by  the 
capable  and  enthusiastic  teacher's  activities,  fatigue  is  a 
condition,  as  we  well  know,  which  seriously  impedes  effec- 
tive work;  and  it  is  in  order  for  us,  like  careful  pedago- 
gical engineers,  to  check  up  the  various  ways  in  which 
energy  is  excessively  or  uselessly  expended,  so  that  by 
practicing  a  wise  economy  in  nerve  and  brain  power  we 
may  realize  a  sustained  efficiency. 

We  will  not  now  stop  to  draw  distinctions  between  true 
and  false  or  imagined  fatigue;  there  may  be  a  better 
chance  another  time  in  treating  the  question  of  ^ ^nerves.'* 
It  may  be  well  to  say  just  this :  there  ought  to  be  no  room 
in  the  true  teacher's  makeup  for  anything  like  weariness 


Fatigue  in  Teachers  779 

of  his  calling;  it  is  a  calling  which  should  inspire  a  life's 
devotion.  True,  there  may  be  times  of  trial ;  but  given  a 
real  capacity  for  teaching — the  vocation — and  there 
always  appears  the  promise  of  ultimate  success  for  our 
endeavors. 

Under  successful  conditions  and  with  pleasing  environ- 
ment, teaching  is  indeed  a  joy.  There  is  a  grateful  sense 
of  moderate  tire  after  a  solid  day  in  the  classroom,  and  a 
refreshed  fitness  for  the  coming  day's  duty  succeeds. 
The  petty  trials  of  yesterday  are  forgotten. 

The  routine  of  the  capable  teacher's  life  passes 
smoothly,  with  the  occasional  ^^ rainy  day"  that  enters 
all  lives.  His  methods,  on  study,  will  show  that  the 
efficiency  therein  represented  results  in  large  measure 
from  the  intelligent  order  and  system  governing  the 
work.  In  him  exceptional  mental  endowments  may  be 
lacking;  but  successful  teaching  is  there,  and  that  is  our 
goal. 

This  brings  us  to  one  cause  of  avoidable  fatigue  in 
teachers — defective  order  or  system  in  their  work.  With 
some  each  day  brings  a  new  plan  of  attack,  and  a  new 
marshaling  of  forces  which  should  already  have  been 
working  with  automatic  regularity.  Such  educational 
pilots  are  continually  mislaying  their  charts  and  navigat- 
ing instruments.  Some  of  us  have  a  temptation  to  despise 
the  small  details  of  preparation ;  we  are  prone  to  override 
the  restrictive  day  order,  and  we  do  not  care  to  use  the 
little  time-saving  helps  that  expedite  classwork.  We  fear 
to  become  martinets,  or  our  plea  is  freshness,  originality, 
variety. 

We  need  feel  no  surprise  if  lapses  like  these  have  an 
appreciable  effect  on  the  tone  of  the  class,  for  they  do. 
An  impression  of  irregularity  in  the  teacher  influences 
the  pupil  to  relax  order,  which  in  turn  calls  forth  extra 
effort  on  the  instructor's  part.  There  can  be  no  doubt 
that  order  and  method  in  minor  things  save  much  energy. 


780  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

The  class  in  which  little  details  are  provided  for,  and 
in  which  the  established  order  of  small  prescriptions  is 
strictly  maintained,  is  cleared  for  action  and  good 
teaching. 

This  care  for  little  things  does  not  at  all  argue  con- 
straint or  narrowness  in  the  teacher ;  he  may  be  an  enthu- 
siast and  a  master  in  his  grasp  of  a  subject,  and  he  is 
even  more  likely  to  be  so,  freed  from  this  cramping  of 
constant  recurrence  to  lesser  affairs  which  should  be  run- 
ning automatically. 

There  are  some  teachers  who  never  seem  to  quite  over- 
take the  full  requirements  of  the  grade  they  are  teaching. 
They  feel  sure  of  their  competence  to  teach  the  subjects ; 
perhaps  they  have  been  over  them  many  times  and  yet 
they  do  not  seem  to  get  out  all  that  is  in  these  subjects, 
and  they  are  capable  instructors,  too.  They  have  a 
fatigue  brought  about  by  their  frame  of  mind.  They  are, 
it  is  true,  quite  satisfied  with  their  vocation  as  teachers ; 
they  would  be  indignant  at  the  bare  suggestion  of  any- 
thing like  tepidity ;  and  yet  they  are  under  the  influence  of  a 
malaise  which  has  its  source  in  that  tendency  common  to 
human  nature — desire  for  change.  In  their  hearts  lies  a 
yearning  to  teach  other  branches ;  there  is  some  favorite 
study  which  they  feel  sure  would  permit  the  full  exercise 
of  their  special  talents.  Their  mental  attitude,  in  short, 
is  lukewarmness  towards  the  present  duty.  Expectancy 
dilutes  concentration.  When  change  does  come  they  look 
back  to  slighted  opportunities  for  well-doing  which  they 
might  have  used  if  with  singleness  of  purpose  they  had 
thrown  themselves  into  the  work  they  carried  on  in  such 
a  perfunctory  way. 

A  sure  mark  of  the  true  educator  is  his  realizing  the 
dignity  and  importance  of  teaching  the  younger  children, 
the  great  opportunities  for  doing  good  therein  presented, 
and,  above  all,  the  exceptional  skill  required  to  attain  the 
best  results. 


Fatigue  in  Teacheks  781 

Adaptability  is  a  great  quality  in  a  teacher,  especially 
in  a  religious  teacher.  If  he  is  able  to  accept  whole- 
heartedly a  branch  of  teaching  to  which  he  may  be 
assigned,  and  act  as  if  he  believed  that  to  be  well  worthy 
of  his  best  skill,  there  will  be  no  room  for  the  weariness 
of  half-hearted  attempts. 

Perhaps  the  most  frequent  cause  of  undue  fatigue  in 
the  teacher  is  the  presence  of  a  problem  of  order  and 
discipline.  Normally,  the  classroom  should  be  a  small 
republic,  where  law  and  order  reign.  When,  however, 
there  exists  that  anarchistic  condition  of  chronic  disorder, 
so  often  adverted  to  in  works  on  method,  for  the  symp- 
toms of  which  so  many  prescriptions  have  been  written, 
mental  friction  and  resultant  fatigue  in  the  teacher  are 
pronounced  features. 

Defects  of  character  or  inexperience  in  the  instructor 
may  generally  be  looked  for  in  these  cases.  It  is  not 
that  the  subjects  are  uncontrollable  but  the  controlling- 
power  is  at  fault ;  and  often  a  frank  recognition  of  unfit- 
ness, and  a  transfer  to  more  favorable  conditions  are 
indicated. 

Sometimes  a  condition  of  brain  or  nerve  fag  in  the 
teacher  is  responsible  for  lack  of  power  over  a  class.  The 
inner  stress  or  suffering  betrays  itself  through  the  eyes. 
The  fire  of  conscious  strength  is  absent,  and  an  occasional 
outburst  of  pent-up  feeling,  which  reacts  on  the  subject, 
does  not  tend  to  inspire  respect. 

Ill-advised  resorts  to  the  rod  do  not  always  prove  as 
impressive  as  intended;  the  pupils  perceive  that  the 
instrument  of  correction  is  in  unpracticed  hands;  and 
there  is  even  a  sort  of  entertainment  for  them  in  wit- 
nessing exhibitions  of  correction  which  disturb  the  cor- 
rector more  than  the  corrected.  The  rod  of  Solomon, 
for  its  remedial  application,  requires  something  of  the 
wisdom  of  Solomon. 


782  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

It  would  seem  like  useless  repetition  of  matter  familiar 
to  all  to  call  attention  to  the  intimate  relation  between 
pure  air  and  effective  brain  work.  Teachers,  widely  sup- 
posed to  be  thoroughly  instructed  in  the  physiology  of 
respiration  and  its  relation  to  health,  might  naturally  be 
expected  to  be  sticklers  for  ventilation.  Yet  it  is  to  be 
feared  that  herein  as  in  many  matters  affecting  health — 
not  to  avert  to  other  human  interests — theory  and  prac- 
tice diverge. 

We  do  not  all  teach  in  model  school  edifices,  it  must  be 
remembered.  We  often  find  ourselves  in  apartments  not 
designed  according  to  the  most  approved  plans  as  to 
windows,  flues,  and  other  air  changing  media.  Under 
such  circumstances  continued  care  and  attention  is  neces- 
sary to  keep  the  classroom  air  in  anything  like  a  breath- 
able condition. 

Even  in  our  schools  erected  in  recent  years,  how  many 
of  them  are  equipped  with  the  ample  flues,  and  the 
exhaust  fans  needed  to  afford  really  effective  ventilation? 

Then  there  is  the  matter  of  temperature,  closely  related 
to  ventilation. 

It  is  perhaps  not  an  unusual  experience  for  one  whose 
duty  it  is  to  visit  classrooms,  to  find  in  some  of  them  a 
temperature  admirably  suited  to  a  chicken  incubator. 
Such  a  hothouse  condition  would  be  intolerable  to  anyone 
used  to  active  exercise,  or  having  a  good  blood  circulation. 

Ventilation  and  temperature  have  much  to  do  with 
fatigue  in  teachers,  and  unless  we  take  these  facts  into 
consideration  and  do  our  best  to  make  them  as  nearly 
ideal  as  is  possible  under  the  given  circumstances,  there 
remains  a  cause  of  avoidable  fatigue  for  which  we  have 
ourselves  to  blame. 

We  have  it  laid  down  in  the  manuals  of  advice  given  to 
young  teachers  that  overmuch  talking  in  class  is  to  be 
avoided  as  fatiguing  and  unprofitable.  Not  a  few  cases 
of  weak  lungs  have  been  ascribed  to  this  cause,  probably 


Fatigue  in  Teachers  783 

with  more  or  less  truth,  and  most  of  us  are  quite  willing 
to  take  it  for  granted  that  the  practice  is  objectionable. 

Here,  however,  a  good  deal  depends  on  temperament 
and  enthusiasm.  We  have  heard  the  claim  advanced  that 
vigorous  vocal  exercise  in  the  classroom  strengthens  the 
lungs;  and  it  has  been  further  stated  that  these  mild- 
mannered,  low-voiced  teachers  never  give  their  vocal 
organs  sufficient  exercise,  and  so  miss  the  opportunity  of 
becoming  finished  declaimers. 

Many  of  the  old-timers  were  and  are  today,  trumpet- 
tongued  expounders  of  doctrine  and  arithmetic.  In  the 
minds  of  some  indeed,  this  latter  subject  would  seem  to 
be  closely  identified  with  the  turmoil  of  the  stock  exchange 
or  the  auction  room. 

We  honor  the  clarion  voices  of  the  veterans.  They  pro- 
claim the  undaunted  spirit  of  the  men  who  fought  through 
the  days  when  teaching  in  Catholic  schools  meant  trial, 
hardship  and  heroic  self-sacrifice.  But  though  we  may 
accord  them  unstinted  admiration,  caution  is  to  be  used 
in  imitating  their  vocal  exertions.  A  well-intentioned 
imitator,  belonging  to  the  present  generation,  has  been 
known,  after  a  strenuous  day  as  ^* class  orator,''  to  sink 
into  a  chair,  on  the  verge  of  collapse,  while  the  veterans 
came  from  their  labors  with  smiling  countenances. 

There  is  a  popular  notion  that  night  is  the  time  when 
care  weighs  heaviest  on  the  burdened  mind  or  conscience ; 
night,  and  gloom,  and  the  ^^pale  cast  of  thought''  are 
associate  ideas.  Now,  much  might  be  said  of  the  morning 
hours  as  a  time  taken  up  with  anxious  thoughts.  We 
remember  once  hearing  a  venerable  archbishop  in  a 
Lenten  sermon  speak  of  the  sinner's  conscience  in  the 
morning  hours,  and  it  seemed  to  us  at  the  time  that  the 
holy  prelate,  on  account  of  his  own  upright  life,  could  not 
be  expected  to  know  that  sinners  were  likely  to  be  most 
conscience-stricken  at  bed-time!  But  his  experience,  no 
doubt,  had  brought  the  archbishop  into  contact  with  many 


784  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

who  felt  the  force  and  weight  of  duty  most  in  the  morning. 

Dr.  James  J.  Walsh,  our  eminent  physician  and  publi- 
cist, in  an  article  in  the  Ecclesiastical  Eeview  comments 
on  this  phenomenon  of  morning  conscience  as  observable 
in  clergyman  and  others  who  have  responsibilities  and 
duties  devolving  on  them  in  the  early  hours. 

Well,  the  point  is  this:  our  teachers,  members  of  re- 
ligious orders,  have,  besides  their  teaching  office,  a  rou- 
tine of  duties  in  regard  to  their  own  spiritual  life.  These 
duties  and  exercises  begin  in  early  morning,  and  are 
framed  to  strengthen  and  console  the  spirit. 

But  these  pious  practices,  performed  with  anxiety,  mor- 
bid introspection,  and  ill-advised  zeal,  may  be  turned  into 
a  weariness  and  weight  upon  the  spirit;  and  when  we 
wrong-headedly  so  pervert  these  beneficent  agencies 
we  make  at  the  same  time  a  large  draft  on  our  own 
strength  and  efficiency. 

So  it  often  happens,  with  such  persons,  that  the  stress 
of  early  morning  is  equivalent,  in  brain-tiring  effect,  to 
several  hours  of  stone-breaking.  A  woe-begone  counte- 
nance is  a  poor  asset  with  which  to  begin  a  day  in  the 
classroom. 

We  are  fortunate  if  our  living  abode  is  so  conveniently 
far  from  the  school  that  we  do  not  feel  justified  in  riding 
the  distance,  and  so  gain  the  benefit  of  a  bracing  walk 
in  the  fresh  air. 

Out-door  exercise  is  one  of  those  things  that  the  teacher 
cannot  neglect  with  impunity.  While  moderately  tiring 
it  counteracts  the  numbing  tendency  of  indoor  occupation, 
diverts  the  mind,  and  enlivens  the  circulation. 

There  are  some  who  profess  to  see  in  the  summer 
school  a  menace  to  the  health  of  teachers.  We  should  be 
slow  in  uttering  a  misgiving  of  that  sort  in  view  of  the 
acknowledged  need  of  pedagogues  to  keep  abreast  of  the 
most  approved  methods,  and  to  add  to  their  intellectual 
equipment.    Summer  schools,  at  least  the  kind  we  have 


Fatigue  in  Teachers  785 

in  mind,  are  not  sanatoria — none  but  healthy  persons 
should  undertake  a  serious  course  at  such  a  school.  But 
with  ordinary  good  health  there  ought  to  be  real  enjoy- 
ment in  a  summer  session.  It  really  means  a  change  of 
work  for  the  instructor,  for  he  becomes  a  pupil  for  the 
nonce ;  and  a  change  of  work  means  rest. 

Again,  it  usually  involves  change  of  scene,  a  great 
recuperative  agent  in  many  cases.  Then,  too,  a  suffi- 
ciently large  residue  of  vacation  is  left  to  satisfy  the 
general  run  of  teachers. 

Such  are  some  of  the  reflections  on  fatigue  in  his  work 
from  the  commonplace  viewpoint  of  the  teacher.  As 
to  the  scientific  aspect  of  fatigue,  it  has  proved  a 
matter  of  fertile  research,  principally  from  the  chemico- 
physiological  and  pathological  sides.  The  investiga- 
tions of  Mosso  and  Maggiori  in  Italy,  and  of  Clouston  in 
Scotland  have  contributed  much  to  our  knowledge  of  the 
effects  of  tire  on  mind  and  body.  But  these  matters,  for 
adequate  treatment,  must  be  left  to  the  scientific  expert ; 
our  purpose  in  this  article  is  to  enforce  a  rule  of  health 
which  may  be  put  as  follows:  the  teacher's  occupation 
requires  good  health  as  an  indispensable  qualification. 

Good  health  is  largely  a  question  of  careful  habits; 
and  among  the  careful  habits  is  the  avoidance  of  unneces- 
sary fatigue — the  conservation  of  our  resources,  physical 
and  mental. 

Brother  Valentine,  Xav, 

Baltimore,  Md. 


THE  EDUCATION  OF  THE  PEIEST  OF  TODAY 

A  priest  is  supposed  to  stand  between  Ms  fellow-men 
and  God,  so  as  to  reconcile  them.  His  fellow-men  may- 
have  sinned  and  may  not  care  to  repent.  God  may  be 
angry  with  them,  and,  to  speak  in  a  human  way.  He  may 
not  care  to  forgive.  The  priest  must  arouse  in  the  human 
element  a  spirit  of  sorrow,  and  he  must  win  the  divine 
over  to  loving  kindness.  For  without  a  mutual  advance, 
union  is  impossible.  Penance  on  the  part  of  the  one 
extreme  is  futile  without  the  condescension  of  the  other 
extreme;  and  all  the  graciousness  of  the  heavenly  Lord 
will  be  of  no  avail  without  a  good  disposition  in  the 
hearts  of  men. 

To  raise  his  brethren  up,  the  priest  must  be  endowed 
with  a  human  magnetism ;  and  to  draw  his  Master  down, 
he  must  be  invested  with  a  divine  attractiveness.  For, 
how  can  he  win  the  hearts  of  men  if  he  be  not  akin  to 
man,  and  how  can  he  captivate  the  love  of  God  if  he  be 
not  akin  to  God?  If  a  priest  were  only  divine  he  could 
accomplish  his  task  of  reconciliation,  by  half,  on  the  side 
of  heaven.  If  he  were  only  human  he  could  effect  a  sim- 
ilar result,  by  half,  on  the  side  of  earth :  because  his  god- 
like splendor  would  enamour  the  heart  of  the  Deity  in  the 
one  case ;  and  his  manly  amiability  would  catch  and  rivet 
the  affections  of  men  and  women  in  the  other  case.  But 
if  he  were  godly  and  nothing  more,  the  electric  spark  of 
sympathy  could  never  spring  from  him  across  to  the 
world  and  back  again.  And  if  he  were  earth-bom  and 
nothing  more,  there  could  be  no  fellow-feeling  between 
him  and  heaven.  Hence,  in  the  same  proportion  as  the 
natural  exceeds  its  bounds,  the  cords  reaching  upwards 
weaken;  and  in  the  same  proportion  as  the  supernatural 
unduly  predominates,  the  hold  on  the  under-side  loosens. 


The  Education  of  the  Peiest  of  Today  787 

God  sees  nothing  more  in  a  merely  human  priest  to  make 
Him  care  for  the  rest  of  the  race  than  He  sees  in  the  rest 
of  the  race  itself :  and  men  see  nothing  more  in  a  merely- 
divine  priest  to  induce  them  to  turn  their  thoughts  to 
God  than  they  see  in  God  Himself.  No ;  there  must  not 
only  be  divine  for  the  Divine;  there  must  not  only  be 
human  for  the  Human;  but  there  must  be  divine  and 
human  combined,  for  both. 

History  is  evidence.  I'or  centuries  the  Almighty  sat 
on  His  throne  and  saw  nothing  that  He  loved  for  itself 
below.  Melchisedec  and  Abraham  and  Aaron  of  them- 
selves could  not  propitiate  Him  with  their  offerings.  The 
magnificence  of  Solomon's  Temple,  with  its  gold  from 
Ophir  and  cedarwood  from  Libanus  and  precious  stones — 
what  cared  He  for  it  all !    AVhat  cared  He  for  the  running 

altars,  though  the  ^icvCar]  h^ovpavdv  l/cev  eXtaaofjLevrj  irepl  Kairvco ; 

or  for  the  harp  hymns  that  wafted  supplications  to 
the  sky  from  Mount  Moriah!  Incense  and  lights  and 
fires  and  music;  the  odor  of  smoking  offerings  and  the 
petitions  of  full  hearts — all  would  have  fainted  away  into 
thin  air  and  been  lost  if  they  had  not  been  vitalized  by  a 
higher  force:  for,  humankind  with  all  its  apparatus  of 
prayer  could  not  put  forth  a  human  priest  capable  of 
winning  the  Deity. 

On  the  other  hand,  for  centuries  men  walked  about  the 
footstool  of  God  and  saw  nothing  that  attracted  them 
above.  Jehovah  in  ^Uight  inaccessible ''  had  frightened 
them.  He  had  indeed  been  good  to  mortals ;  but  majesty 
overwhelms.  He  had  spoken  to  them;  but  the  words  of 
the  Highest  were  a  foreign  tongue.  He  had  shown  Him- 
self;  but  who  could  look  on  Him?  He  was  near  by;  but 
His  presence  embarrassed.  In  consequence  the  Jews 
frequently  went  apart  from  Him  to  find  alleviation  in 
nature.  And  the  Gentiles  went  to  extremes  in  their  quest 
of  happiness  amongst  human  attractions,  because  they 
could  not  appreciate  the  Infinite.     Poor  Eome!     Her 


788  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

imperial  armies  conquered  all  the  world;  but  she  was  a 
slave.  Poor  Greece!  Her  golden  minds  and  pens  and 
tongues  enriched  her ;  but  their  gifts  were  really  dross  in 
the  chemistry  of  Heaven.  We  still  look  back  with  pleas- 
ure to  those  twin  fountain-heads  of  literature,  sculpture 
and  military  excellence.  For,  all  that  unaided  nature 
could  effect,  all  that  art  could  produce,  and  all  that 
knowledge  could  confer  was  revealed  in  the  palmy  days 
of  Attic  culture  and  imperial  Italy.  They  thought  to  ^nd 
satisfaction  in  created  fields  of  activity ;  but  in  vain :  ror, 
the  purpose  of  life  could  not  be  so  meagerly  circumscribed 
as  that.  They  would  not  look  up  to  other  fields,  because 
the  Almighty  with  all  His  circumstance  of  glory  could  not 
put  forth  a  divine  priest  capable  of  winning  humanity. 

But  a  time  was  to  come.  Strange  to  say,  one  midnight 
centuries  ago,  a  baby^s  **cry  that  shivered  to  the  tingling 
stars''  pierced  the  heart  of  God.  That  heart  had  been 
unmoved  by  sacrificial  lavishness ;  but  now  it  poured  forth 
a  flood  of  light  that  bathed  the  whole  of  heaven  in  its 
effulgence;  and  in  the  light  a  myriad  voice  rang  out: 
*^ Peace  on  earth  to  men  of  good  will.''  As  the  Child 
grew.  He  played  and  prayed,  and  worked  and  learned, 
and  preached  and  consoled,  and  suffered  and  died.  His 
varied  activity,  united  with  that  first  Christmas-night  la- 
ment conciliated  God.  And  why?  Because  that  Priest  was 
divine.  Not  that  His  life-work  emanated  from  the  God- 
nature  within  Him.  No;  He  interceded  for  us  in  His 
human  capacity.  But  all  the  acts  that  passed  out  and  up 
from  that  created  source,  though  plain  and  simple  and 
limited  in  themselvs,  were  splendidly  transformed  in  the 
passing,  by  the  radiant  Presence  that  enveloped  Him.  A 
dull  mote  puts  on  an  iridescent  glory  as  it  floats  up 
through  the  light  of  a  diffracting  crystal.  This  compari- 
son has  a  suggestion  of  the  deification  of  Christ's  human 
deeds.  The  Father  above  saw  in  that  Priest,  Wisdom 
and  Love  and  Power  and   Sanctity  and  Justice   and 


The  Education  op  the  Priest  op  Today  789 

Mercy — attributes  all  as  infinitely  lovable  as  His  own, 
because  His  own.  And  so,  unable  to  resist  the  prayer  for 
pardon  from  such  a  source,  He  spoke  to  the  sinful  world 
and  said:  *^Thou  poor  little  thing — ^with  everlasting 
kindness  have  I  had  mercy  on  thee — with  great  mercies 
will  I  gather  thee — Arise!  be  enlightened — for  thy  light 
has  come  and  the  glory  of  the  Lord  is  risen  upon  thee.'^ 

That  Child  was  human,  too.  As  an  infant,  as  a  boy,  as 
a  youth,  and  as  a  man.  He  had  eyes  that  conquered 
majestically;  lips  that  smiled  and  won;  a  tongue  alive 
with  eloquence;  an  imagination  that  gave  to  the  New 
Testament  a  galaxy  of  pictures  still  luminous  after  nine- 
teen hundred  years ;  a  heart  perfectly  tender,  enthusiastic 
and  affectionate;  a  mind  like  a  shining  light;  a  will, 
indomitable.  See  how  He  magnetically  caught  up  the 
Magdalen  in  her  tearful  beauty,  and  held  her  in  her  mys- 
tical devotion:  how  the  multitude  went  hungering  into 
the  desert  after  Him,  with  ears  and  mouth  and  heart 
wide  open  to  the  words  of  Eternal  Life:  how  Andrew 
spent  a  whole  day  with  Him  in  His  house,  wrapt;  then 
went  forth  all  joy  to  induce  Peter  to  come  and  hear. 

His  Sacramental  Presence  has  been  just  as  effective  as 
His  visible  was.  In  the  early  days  of  the  Church,  the 
halo  of  supernatural  glory  that  pervaded  the  Catacombs 
emanated  from  Sacred  Hosts,  hidden  away  in  under- 
ground tabernacles.  The  sweet  faces  of  the  Christian 
martyrs,  the  unconquerable  courage,  the  ecstacy  in  retire- 
ment, the  exaltation  that  they  experienced  in  abjection 
were  inspired  by  the  taste  of  the  honeyed  sheaf.  And 
when  the  call  came  to  tread  the  sands  of  the  arena,  their 
thoughts  remained  behind  them  with  the  snowy  loaf  and 
their  palates  felt  again,  in  seeming,  the  touch  of  that 
mighty  morsel.  For,  from  hour  to  hour,  and  from  day  to 
day,  no  matter  where  they  were  or  in  what  trials  they 
were  placed,  their  affections  hovered  around  the  altar 
and  their  thoughts  haunted  the  magnetic  tabernacle. 


790  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

And  in  our  own  days  the  rosy  Heart  of  Christ  warms 
Its  millions.  His  promised  help  in  undertakings,  His 
comfort  in  sorrow,  His  assurance  of  assistance  in  death 
have  a  touch  of  the  human  that  humankind  cannot  resist. 
And  so,  Christ  the  God-man  Priest,  with  His  double 
power,  is  able  to  reconcile  the  two  extremes. 

In  the  early  days  of  the  Church  maybe  there  was  not 
so  great  a  need  of  the  human  element  in  priests ;  because 
the  pagan  world,  already  sated  with  nature  in  art  and 
vice,  was  tired  of  it  and  would  not  have  been  attracted  by 
qualities  of  a  natural  kind.  Besides,  the  divine  aspect  of 
the  Christian  dispensation  and  the  divine  prerogatives 
of  its  priests  had  the  advantage  of  novelty,  and  hence 
needed  only  to  be  shown  forth  in  their  native  splendor,  to 
captivate.  Similarly,  in  the  centuries  of  Faith  before  the 
dawn  of  the  modern  world  the  human  element  could  be 
dispensed  with,  to  a  degree,  in  the  sacerdotal  character, 
because  the  Faithful  were  held  by  the  sweetness  of  the 
God  they  knew  so  well.  This  spiritual  tie  made  the  cords 
of  Adam  unnecessary.  But  in  our  days  of  Indifferentism, 
which  are  not  blessed  with  the  charm  of  the  new  not  with 
the  sweetness  of  the  old  in  Religion,  the  prerogatives  of 
nature  have  a  special  claim  on  priests.  This  cMm  is 
emphasized  by  the  cultivation  and  information  of  the 
masses  around  us.  Especially  in  this  country  every  man 
has  a  sense  of  his  personal  standing  as  a  member  of  the 
State.  Independence  has  gone  along  with  education,  and 
now  instead  of  having  men  and  women  flocking  tO  us,  it  is 
incumbent  on  us  to  go  after  them.  That  suck  a  quest 
requires  an  Apostle  with  heart  and  mind  delicately  attuned 
to  nature  who  would  gainsay! 

Surely  then  a  priest,  to  be  successful,  will  be  the 
gentlest  of  the  gentle.  He  will  be  kind,  sociable,  polished, 
conversational,  well-informed,  learned,  alive  to  the  real 
interests  of  the  day;  capable  of  meeting  any  religious  or 
ethical  adversary,  and  able  to  break  the  bread  of  the 
Gospel  from  the  pulpit  with  a  lavish  hand.     He  will 


The  Education  of  the  Priest  op  Today  791 

believe  that  all  the  preparatory  study  and  writing  and 
speaking  of  which  he  is  capable  will  scarcely  measure  him 
up  to  the  ideal  minister  that  the  Church  has  a  right  to 
expect.  He  will  be  convinced  that  his  best  eloquence  is 
not  too  good  for  the  divine  message  to  men.  He  will 
illustrate,  explain,  and  apply  the  word  of  God  with  tact, 
solidity,  warmth,  enlightenment  and  enthusiasm.  Finally 
he  will  alleviate  the  temporal  needs  of  his  fellow-men, 
lighten  their  sorrows  and  increase  their  capital  of  joy, 
not  only  by  word  of  mouth  and  prayer  of  heart,  but  also 
by  deed  of  hand.  And  all  this  he  will  do  to  put  himself 
in  touch  with  humankind  and  win  them  over,  with  the 
help  of  grace,  to  the  side  of  God. 

As  now-a-days,  more  than  ever  before,  it  is  incumbent 
on  the  priest  to  make  himself  one  with  his  fellow-men  so 
as  to  accomplish  their  spiritual  good,  he  must  take  special 
measures  not  to  allow  his  divine  identity  to  become 
obscured  in  a  natural  atmosphere.  Like  St.  Paul,  it  is 
true,  he  will  wish  to  become  anathema  for  his  brethren, 
and  with  Moses  he  will  exclaim:  Oh,  Lord,  pardon  this 
people  or  blot  me  out  of  the  book  of  life ;  or  like  Ignatius, 
he  will  be  willing  to  run  the  risk  of  losing  heaven  by 
exposing  himself  on  earth  still  longer  to  the  chances  of 
sin,  for  the  salvation  of  souls.  Still  he  will  remember 
that  he  is  to  be  godly  as  well  as  human;  and  is  to  stand 
fast  by  the  Lord  as  well  as  by  men.  His  grace,  his  power 
of  consecration  and  his  power  of  forgiving  sins  must  be 
cherished:  and  his  personal  sanctity  must  be  raised  by 
prayer  to  the  level  of  his  official  sanctity.  Of  old  when 
martyrdom  was  always  imminent,  there  were  few  natural 
alleviations  indeed,  and  the  divine  had  to  be  kept  in  mind 
by  the  minister  of  God,  if  he  wished  to  remain  faithful. 
In  after  times,  again,  in  what  are  called  the  days  of  Faith, 
the  sacerdotal  functions  were  generally  exercised  in  the 
midst  of  religious  surroundings.  For,  the  whole  of 
Europe  was  catholic,  and  piety  was  in  the  air.  But  it  is 
not  thus  now.     The  world  is  commercial,  naturalistic, 


792  The  Catholic  Educational.  Eeview 

indifferent:  tliat  world  in  the  midst  of  which  the  priest 
is  forced  to  live  and  move  and  have  his  being. 

Accordingly  he  will  think  to  advantage  of  his  divine 
sonship  and  participation  in  the  Deity  by  grace;  of  his 
power  over  God  in  the  Mass,  and  of  his  commission  to 
forgive  the  world.  He  will  endeavor  to  realize  his 
unspeakable  dignity;  and  stand  before  God  as  a  god.  And 
the  Lord  of  all  will  be  charmed  into  forgiveness  by  this 
alter  ego.  In  his  priestly  character  he  will  say:  ^'Hoc 
est  enim  corpus  meum;''  and  forthwith  the  Almighty  will 
place  upon  the  altar  for  him  the  price  wherewith  to  buy 
men's  souls.  He  will  say:  '^ Absolvo  te  a  peccatis  tuis^'; 
and  the  offended  Deity  will  have  to  listen  to  those  words ; 
and  the  penitent,  already  softened  into  sorrow  by  his 
priestly  tenderness  to  him,  will  have  to  be  let  free.  Oh 
what  must  be  the  joy  of  God  to  look  down  on  such  a  deified 
man ;  and  what  must  be  the  satisfaction  of  sinners  to  look 
up  at  such  a  human  god.  The  Lord  of  all  knows  that  this 
Litermediary  has  His  divine  Heart  and  that  he  can  capti- 
vate the  hearts  of  men ;  and  they  in  turn  are  sure  that  the 
same  Peacemaker  holds  them  enchained  and  that  he  can 
mollify  their  angry  Master.  Here  is  the  In- Carnation 
renewed; — or  rather  call  it  an  In-Deation.  For,  in  the 
one  case  the  Word  had  the  divine  Nature  and  took  the 
human:  in  the  other  case  the  priest  had  the  human  and, 
in  Ordination,  took  the  Divine.  Here  is  the  dual  life 
that  priests  must  lead.  Nature  alone  can  do  no  good,  and 
Orders  alone  will  be  futile.  By  exaggerating  the  import- 
ance of  the  one,  he  will  withdraw  from  God;  by  over- 
estimating the  other,  he  will  place  a  barrier  between  him- 
self and  his  fellow-men.  But  by  educating  his  human 
powers  up  to  their  limit,  and  by  holily  exercising  his 
divine  faculties  to  the  full,  he  will  liken  himself  to  Christ 
the  Priest,  and  like  Him  will  save  the  world. 

J.  A.  McClarey,  S.  J. 
Sacred  Heart  College, 

Prairie  du  Chien,  Wis. 


THE  EDUCATIONAL  WOEK  OF  THE  NEW  YOEK 
SISTERS  OF  CHARITY 

With  the  rapid  progress  of  the  Catholic  Church  in  New 
York,  the  institute  of  the  Sisters  of  Charity  of  Saint 
Vincent  de  Paul  has,  under  Providence,  gone  forward 
with  a  not  dissimilar  energy  and  perservance. 

**When,*'  says  a  recent  writer^,  *Hhree  Sisters  took 
charge  of  a  handful  of  orphans  in  New  York  in  the 
second  decade  of  the  nineteenth  century,^  no  one  could 
have  foreseen  that  in  the  second  decade  of  the  twen- 
tieth century,  five  hundred  times  as  many  noble  women 
would  be  working  in  every  phase  of  humanitarian 
effort  on  that  same  foundation,  any  more  than  he  could 
have  foreseen  that  the  struggling  diocese  of  a  few 
thousand  souls  of  that  time,  would,  after  the  same 
interval,  count  its  children  by  the  million.  For  the  cry- 
ing need  in  the  little  diocese,  a  small  remedy  was  found. 
That  remedy  was  vital,  however;  it  had  the  power  to 
grow,  and  so  as  the  city  has  grown  and  many  other 
needs  of  humanity  have  become  manifest,  the  Sisters 
of  Charity  have  developed  their  institute,  broadened 
their  aims,  increased  and  responded  faithfully  to  the 
many  calls  made  upon  them. ' ' 

The  history  of  the  work  accomplished  by  these  Sisters 
in  the  various  departments  of  charity,  the  care  of  the  sick, 
of  the  orphan,  of  the  aged,  of  the  insane,  would  each 
make  an  interesting  story,  but  perhaps  by  far  their  most 
important  work  has  been  done  in  the  educational  field. 

A  born  educator  herself,  Mother  Elizabeth  Bayley 
Seton,  their  foundress,  had  made  the  work  of  teaching 
the  main  feature  of  her  institutite,  as  it  was  indeed  her 


7amcs  J.  Walsh. 
'1817. 


794  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

own  great  life-effort.  Archbishop  Carroll,  when  con- 
sulted on  the  aims  of  the  new  congregation,  had  written 
to  Mother  Seton  in  reply : 

^ ^Assure  yourself  and  the  Sisters  of  my  utmost 
solicitude  for  your  advancement  in  the  service  and 
favor  of  God ;  of  my  reliance  on  your  prayers ;  of  mine 
for  your  prosperity  in  the  important  duty  of  education, 
which  will  and  must  long  be  your  principal,  and  will 
always  be  your  partial,  employment.  A  century  at 
least  will  pass  before  the  exigencies  and  habits  of  this 
country  will  require,  and  hardly  admit,  of  the  chari- 
table exercises  toward  the  sick,  sufficient  to  employ 
any  number  of  the  Sisters  out  of  our  largest  cities ;  and 
therefore  they  must  consider  the  business  of  education 
as  a  laborious,  charitable,  and  permanent  object  of 
their  religious  duty.'' 

It  is  not  surprising,  then,  to  learn  that  in  the  newly- 
founded  community,  when  once  the  novitiate  had  been 
formally  established,  a  regular  course  of  studies  was 
appointed  for  the  novices,  such  as  was  thought  best  calcu- 
lated to  fit  them  for  the  work  of  teaching.  Mother  Eliza- 
beth Seton  devoted  herself  to  this  work  of  training,  giving 
conferences,  that  covered  a  wide  range  of  experience, 
and  bore  chiefly  upon  the  future  work  of  the  novices  as 
teachers.  Nor  was  this  training  confined  to  theory.  It 
was  her  custom  to  visit  the  classes  frequently,  either  in 
person  or  by  deputy,  for  purposes  of  observation,  noting 
in  the  different  teachers  the  presence  or  absence  of  abil- 
ity, intelligent  method,  and  power  to  create  interest  in  the 
work.  Afterwards,  in  public  or  in  private,  as  the  case 
permitted,  the  faults  of  the  teachers  were  pointed  out  to 
them,  or  their  good  work  received  encouragement.  The 
purpose  of  this  system  of  supervision  and  inspection  was 
in  practice  quite  like  that  of  our  present  model-school. 

When  in  1826  Bishop  Dubois,   an   eminent   scholar. 


Educational  Woek  of  New  York  Sisters      795 

became  head  of  the  diocese  in  New  York,  he  took  the  work 
of  education  energetically  in  hand,  convinced  that  *Hhe 
catechising  of  the  young  was  a  more  important  matter 
than  preaching  to  the  grown.'*  In  the  development  of 
the  elementary  schools  he  found  a  powerful  aid  in  the 
Sisters  of  Charity,  who  had  begun  their  work  in  the 
growing  city  some  nine  years  before.  *^As  a  matter  of 
fact,  the  immense  impulse  given  to  Catholic  education  by 
the  development  of  the  Sisters  of  Charity  was  nowhere 
more  clearly  evidenced  than  in  New  York  under  Bishop 
Dubois.  ^'^  At  this  period  a  strong  tide  of  Catholic  emi- 
gration had  set  in,  and  churches  were  the  first  need ;  then 
came  the  urgent  demand  for  Catholic  schools.  Elizabeth 
Seton  had  builded  even  better  than  she  knew.  Just  when 
well-qualified  teachers  were  required  for  the  new  schools, 
although  her  earthly  career  was  at  an  end*,  her 
daughters,  well  equipped  for  the  task,  took  up  the  good 
work  that  has  since  found  a  remarkable  development  in 
the  numerous  parochial  schools  under  their  charge;  in 
their  Academies;  and  in  their  latest  undertaking,  the 
College  of  Mount  Saint  Vincent.  Their  standard  was 
high,  and  as  time  went  on,  the  whole  Catholic  body,  both 
clergy  and  laity,  recognizing  the  powerful  impetus  thus 
given  to  Catholic  education,  showed  their  appreciation  by 
generous  practical  support.  ^^The  greatest  religious  fact 
in  the  United  States  today  is  the  Catholic  school  system, 
maintained  without  any  aid  except  from  the  people  who 
love  if^ 

From  the  opening  of  the  Orphan  Asylum  in  Prince 
Street,  there  was  established  in  connection  with  it  a  select 
school.  For  a  time  also  the  classes  of  St.  Patrick's  Parish 
School  were  held  in  a  wing  of  the  building;  but  in 
1825  a  separate  parish  school-house  was  erected  on  Mul- 
berry Street  near  the  Cathedral. 


»Rev.  J.  A.  Burns,  C.S.C.,  Ph.D. 

*Mother  Seton  died  on  January  4,  1821. 

"Bishop  Spalding. 


796  The  Catholic  Eduoationai.  Eeview 

In  1830  the  Sisters  replaced  the  lay  teachers  in  charge 
of  the  girls'  department  in  St.  Peter's  School,  Barclay 
Street.  In  that  year  also  they  opened  an  academy  at  261 
Mulberry  Street,  to  provide  a  more  advanced  grade  of 
instruction  for  girls  than  was  afforded  in  the  parish 
schools. 

In  1833  St.  Mary's  Parish  School  in  Grand  Street  came 
under  their  care;  also  St.  Joseph's  on  Sixth  Avenue. 
The  same  year  marked  the  opening  of  an  academy  in 
Grand  Street  that  soon  had  a  roll  call  of  seventy  pupils. 
This  academy,  St.  Mary's,  transferred  later  to  East 
Broadway,  was  for  the  rest  of  the  century  a  deservedly 
well-patronized  high-class  school.  A  little  later  other 
academies  sprang  up  in  various  parts  of  the  City,  St. 
Brigid's,  Holy  Cross  and  St.  Gabriel's.  These  academies 
have  their  best  eulogy  in  the  lives  of  their  graduates, 
women  who  have  been  prominent  in  New  York's  social 
circles,  in  the  educational  field,  and  in  the  work  of  private 
and  of  organized  charity. 

In  1834  there  were  altogether  about  twenty-five  Sisters 
in  the  City  working  out  in  practice  theories  since  become 
more  familiar ;  namely,  that  the  aim  of  charity  should  be, 
not  only  to  relieve,  but  also  to  prevent  poverty;  that 
*^ education"  (to  quote  a  leading  medical  authority^  *4s 
the  keynote  to  prophylaxis";  and  that  Catholic  edu- 
cation makes  greatest  progress  when  conducted  under  the 
fostering  care  of  teachers  consecrated  to  the  work.  Thus 
year  after  year,  as  the  parochial  schools,  elementary  and 
secondary,  have,  through  the  zeal  of  pastors  and  the  de- 
votion of  the  people,  sprung  up  in  and  around  New 
York,  and  as  vocations  to  the  Sisterhood  have  multiplied, 
the  educational  work  of  the  daughters  of  Elizabeth  Seton 
has  extended  on  every  side  and  gives  promise  of  still 
better  things.  In  the  sixty-four  parish  schools  under 
their  care  today,  nearly  five  hundred  Sisters  are  engaged 


"Doctor  J.  J.  Walsh. 


Educational  Woek  of  New  York  Sisters      797 

in  the  work  of  teaching.  This  number  is  of  course  exclu- 
sive of  those  engaged  in  academies,  and  of  those  con- 
ducting approved  courses  of  instruction  in  many  of  the 
homes  and  asylums  under  the  care  of  the  Sisterhood. 
Besides  the  High  Schools  connected  with  some  half  dozen 
of  their  academies,  the  Sisters  are  also  in  charge  of  the 
Girls'  Department  in  each  of  New  York's  two  free  Catho- 
lic High  Schools,  The  Cathedral  and  St.  Gabriel's.  In 
the  first  of  these  well-equipped  secondary  schools  there 
are  more  than  three  hundred  pupils  drawn  from  forty 
parochial  schools;  indeed  a  central  institution  of  this 
kind  is  becoming  every  day  more  and  more  of  a  necessity. 

The  training  school,  systematically  organized  more 
than  a  quarter  of  a  century  ago  at  the  Mother  House, 
Mount  Saint  Vincent-on-Hudson,  to  fit  the  young  Sisters 
for  their  life-work,  has  been  productive  of  excellent  re- 
sults. It  is  only  an  extension  of  the  cherished  idea  of  that 
far-seeing  foundress,  Elizabeth  Seton,  whose  desire  was 
that  her  religious  daughters  should  be  teachers  and  not 
mere  purveyors  of  information.  Normal  institutions  are 
held  regularly  during  the  long  vacation;  and  when  re- 
cently, the  Catholic  University  at  Washington  opened 
summer-school  coures  for  teaching  Sisters,  the  Superiors 
quickly  availed  themselves  of  the  opportunity,  realizing 
the  advantages  the  Sisters  would  derive  from  studies 
pursued  at  this  great  Catholic  centre  of  learning. 

Academy  Mount  Vincent-on-Hudson,  a  leading  Catho- 
lic Academy  in  New  York  City  for  the  last  sixty-five 
years,  has  had  its  interesting  history  charmingly  told  by 
two  of  its  own  alumnae  in  ''A  Famous  Convent  School,"^ 
and  in  ^^The  Life  of  Elizabeth  Seton. "« 

In  response  to  the  growing  demand  for  the  higher  edu- 
cation of  Catholic  young  women,  the  Sisters  opened  in 
September,  1910,  the  College  of  Mount  Saint  Vincent. 


'Marion  J.  Brunowe. 
'Agnes  h.  Sadlier. 


798  The  Catholic  Educationai.  Eeview 

An  extract  from  the  Announcement  Bulletin  reads : 

*^  Already,  Colleges  for  Catholic  young  women  are 
doing  successful  work,  but  it  seems  that  Greater  New 
York  had  need  of  an  institution  of  this  kind  within  its 
own  borders.  To  this  fact  the  attention  of  the  Sisters 
has  been  frequently  and  urgently  called,  while  the  under- 
taking has  the  full  approval  and  warm  encouragement  of 
His  Grace,  The  Most  Eeverend  John  M.  Farley,  Arch- 
bishop of  New  York.'' 

******* 

^VThe  aim  of  the  institution  is  not  only  to  provide  able 
professors  and  to  employ  the  most  improved  methods  in 
giving  to  its  students  a  liberal  education,  but  also  to 
shape  that  education  according  to  Catholic  principles. 
Thus  do  the  Sisters  hope  to  form  women  whose  culture, 
far  from  divorcing  them  from  duty,  will  inspire  them 
with  deep  devotion  to  it,  women  whose  lives  will  be  a 
force  for  truth  and  an  uplift  to  society. ' ' 

On  the  Seton  prize  medal,  awarded  yearly  at  Mount 
Saint  Vincent  for  proficiency  in  English  Literature,  the 
inscriptions  read:  ^'Defuncta  adhuc  fovet  ElisabeW ; 
'^ Altrix  Sapientiae  Pietas,''  They  are  a  biography  in 
brief  of  Elizabeth  Seton,  spiritual  mother  of  the  five 
thousand  Sisters  of  Charity  forming  the  devoted  Sister- 
hoods that  have  issued  from  beneath  the  humble  roof- 
tree  raised  by  her  holy  hand  in  the  valley  at  St.  Joseph's, 
Emmitsburg,  and  dedicated  to  the  service  of  God  and  of 
humanity. 

The  New  York  foundation  represents  largely  the  edu- 
cational genius,  as  well  as  the  educational  views  and 
policy  of  the  noble-minded,  sweet-souled  woman  who,  it 
is  hoped,  shall  one  day  be  invoked  as  another  Saint  Eliza- 
beth. 

A  SiSTEE  OF  Charity. 

Mt.  St.  Vincent-on-Hudson. 


MILITAEY  TEAINING  FOR  ADOLESCENTS 

Quite  a  few  of  the  Catholic  preparatory  schools  of  this 
country  are  military  in  character,  and  in  them  the  uncom- 
promising discipline  of  the  battalion  blends  effectively 
with  the  benign  influence  of  religion  in  producing  a  fin- 
ished type  of  Catholic  manhood. 

The  military  feature  of  education,  as  applied  in  modern 
schools,  is  of  recent  development.  It  can  not,  however, 
be  said  to  owe  its  origin  to  these  latter  times,  for  it  is 
as  old  as  our  civilization,  dating  back  to  the  ancient 
Greeks  and  Romans. 

The  Athenian  boy,  as  well  as  his  Spartan  neighbor, 
received  a  military  training.  At  the  age  of  sixteen  he 
was  sent  to  the  State  Academy  for  what  was  termed 
his  Ephebic  education,  and  there,  till  he  completed  his 
twentieth  year,  he  was  a  vertiable  cadet  in  a  military 
school.  With  the  Greeks  of  antiquity  the  crown  and 
summit  of  educational  endeavor  was  the  military  aca- 
demy, and  that  institution  had,  as  its  dominant  and  con- 
trolling purpose,  character  building  and  the  development 
of  efficient  citizenship.  Such  general  utilitarian  purposes 
in  education  did  not  in  the  slighest  trammel  the  free  ac- 
tion of  the  Muses,  for  military  Greece  attained  such  emi- 
nence in  literature,  science  and  art  that  for  two  mil- 
leniums  she  has  dominated  the  entire  intellectual  world. 

The  modern  military  school  is,  none  the  less,  a  com- 
paratively new  departure  in  the  onward  march  of  edu- 
cation. Little  more  than  half  a  century  ago,  when  the 
rumbling  of  impending  civil  strife  was  beginning  to  be 
heard  from  Maine  to  Louisiana,  a  school  in  Peekskill  took 
on  the  military  character,  and  reorganized  its  system  of 
administration  and  education  under  the  name  of  the 
Peekskill  Military  Academy.    It  was  the  first  school  of 


800  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

its  kind  in  the  United  States.  Not,  however,  till  after 
North  and  South  had  begun  the  task  of  ^^Eeconstruction*' 
did  the  precedent  established  at  Peekskill  in  ante-bellum 
times,  find  imitators  in  other  schools.  Today  the  number 
of  military  schools  in  the  United  States  is  surprisingly 
large,  and  a  fair  number  of  these  are  Catholic. 

It  is  true  that  the  intention  of  the  founders  of  military 
schools,  after  the  Civil  War,  was  to  develop  intelligent 
soldiers  that  might,  should  another  occasion  arise,  present 
*^ Burnished  rows  of  steel,"  less  tortuous  and  less  broken 
than  those  that  needlessly  zigzagged  from  Bull  Eun  to 
Appomattox.  But  such  worthy,  patriotic  motives  no  longer 
influence  the  establishment  or  the  training  of  military 
schools.  While  endeavoring  to  make  the  school  a  pro- 
nounced asset  for  the  welfare  of  the  nation,  it  was 
plainly  seen  that  no  other  kind  of  school  could  surpass 
the  military  academy  in  moulding  a  type  of  man  capable 
of  using  to  the  utmost  his  innate  ability.^  The  object  of 
the  military  school  is  no  longer  to  prepare  a  perfect 
soldier,  but  rather  a  perfect  man.  It  is,  however,  only 
in  the  Catholic  academy,  where  the  positiveness  of  dogma 
vitalizes  the  soldier's  positiveness  of  execution,  that  the 
system  of  education,  termed  military,  realizes  adequately 
the  extent  of  its  usefulness  in  shaping  the  plastic  youth 
into  the  well-rounded  and  harmoniously  developed  man. 
It  is,  then,  simply  and  solely  because  of  its  value  in 
seconding  and  promoting  general  education  that  military 
discipline  is  adopted  by  schools  nowadays. 

There  is,  indeed,  no  military  virtue  which  is  not  also 
a  civic  virtue,  and  the  most  strenuous  military  campaign 
one  can  enter  is  the  prolonged  battle  of  life.  The  virtues 
particularly  developed  in  the  military  school,  obedience, 
order,  neatness,  repose,  presence  of  mind,  initiative, 
courage,  all  these  tend  to  make  men  better  citizens.    Hav- 


"'The  Royal  Military  College"  at  Kingston,  by  Randolph  Carlyle,  in 
The  Canadian  Magazine,  Vol.  35,  page  128. 


Military  Training  for  Adolescents  801 

ing  been  good  soldiers  in  the  days  of  their  youth,  the 
graduates  of  military  academies  prove  themselves  better 
college  men,  more  conscientious  merchants,  and  more 
energetic  in  the  professions. 

The  ordinary  boarding  school  has  its  advantages  over 
the  home  and  the  day  school.  The  precautions  taken  in 
the  boarding  school  with  regard  to  health  and  the  regular 
routine  of  daily  living,  fashion  a  much  healthier  and 
more  industrious  type  of  boy  than  can  be  expected  from 
the  home  with  its  more  or  less  irregular  hours.  The 
benefits  of  the  boarding  school  are  accentuated  in  the 
military  academy,  where  exercise  is  obligatory  and  most 
healthful  in  kind,  and  where  regularity  is  perfect.  The 
boy  in  the  boarding  school  is,  of  course,  far  removed 
from  the  painstaking  mother  and  the  punctilious  sister; 
and,  in  consequence,  he  is  apt  to  become  careless  of 
person  and  unmethodical  in  the  arrangement  of  his  ef- 
fects. Such  defects  cannot,  however,  find  an  entrance 
into  a  military  school,  where  daily  inspection  secures 
a  personal  cleanliness  and  tidiness  and  a  love  of  system 
which  the  best-regulated  households  would  find  it  difficult 
to  equal.2 

Boys  in  a  boarding  school,  isolated  so  to  speak,  from 
the  rest  of  society,  are  prone  to  become  slovenly  in  gait 
and  awkward  in  movement.  The  training  of  a  military 
school  precludes  the  possibility  of  the  existence  of  such 
defects.  The  mere  wearing  of  a  neat  uniform  and  the 
attention  it  usually  attracts  tend  to  induce  the  wearers 
to  improve  their  personal  appearance.  Laudable  pride 
and  wholesome  self-respect  are  thus  developed.  Daily 
drill  and  frequent  exercise  in  Butt^s  Manual  force  the 
cadet  to  throw  back  his  shoulders  and  breathe  in  more 
of  the  life-giving  oxygen  that  produces  the  erect  figure, 
elastic  step,  graceful  carriage,  and  ease  of  manner  by 

''"Lost  Lesson"  by  Duffadar,  in  Blackwood's  Edinburgh  Magazine,  Vol. 
188,  pp.  147-160. 


802  The  Catholic  Educational.  Eeview 

which  the  student  of  the  military  school  can  be  readily 
recognized. 

American  youth,  in  their  homes  and  in  the  ordinary 
schools,  get  at  best  only  an  indifferent  training  in  obedi- 
ence. A  dilatory  or  partial  compliance  with  an  order 
is  often  considered  all  that  can  be  obtained  or  expected. 
Military  discipline  is  particularly  effective  in  eradicating 
a  defect  of  this  kind.  The  cadet  submits  at  once  and 
without  questioning  to  the  commands  of  his  officers.  Mili- 
tary training,  being  impersonal  and  impartial  in  its  ap- 
plication, corrects  the  misdemeanors  of  its  subjects  with- 
out the  humiliation  and  resentment  incident  to  other 
methods  of  discipline.  For  this  reason,  boys  are  more 
readily  and  cheerfully  amenable  to  strict  and  rigid  dis- 
cipline under  the  military  plan  than  under  any  other 
form.  The  restraint  of  the  military  academy  has  some- 
thing fascinating  about  it,  so,  that,  under  it,  a  wilful  boy 
unquestionably  submits  to  that  under  which  he  would 
surely  chafe  if  it  came  from  any  other  source.  Should 
the  home  training  be  weak,  unsteady  or  lax,  and  should 
the  boy,  in  consequence,  exhibit  signs  of  an  intractable 
will  and  uncontrollable  temper,  lack  of  concentration, 
or  inertness,  it  would  prove  a  godsend,  beyond  a  doubt, 
to  such  a  youth  to  spend  a  few  years  in  a  first-class  mili- 
tary academy.  The  docility  of  spirit  and  promptness  of 
execution,  nurtured  and  matured  in  the  ranks  of  the 
battalion,  are  valuable  acquisitions  in  the  great  life-long 
competitive  struggle  which  the  world  forces  on  the 
young  man  once  his  school  days  are  over. 

The  American  boy,  whose  opportunities  are  boundless, 
to  whom  all  places  are  open,  ought  to  learn  not  only  to  obey 
with  cheerfulness  and  promptitude,  but  to  command  with 
discretion  and  to  forbear  at  times  with  imperturbable  self- 
control.  These  virtues  find  ample  opportunity  for  cul- 
tivation in  the  military  school  where  the  cadet  officers, 
after  having  learned  how  to  obey  with  alacrity,  acquire 


Military  Training  for  Adolescents  803 

the  habit  of  commanding  with  prudence  and  exercising 
authority  with  justice.  The  sense  of  responsibility  thus 
developed  in  the  boys  themselves  is  a  prominent  feature 
of  the  military  school.  This  effectual  double  training  of 
the  military  school  fits  its  graduates  admirably  for 
leadership  in  their  college  course,  and  more  especially 
in  their  life  work. 

As  schools  of  the  kind  under  discussion  are  modeled 
more  or  less  on  the  United  States  Military  Academy,  so 
the  exemplary  spirit  of  West  Point  dominates  to  some 
extent  all  such  schools  in  this  country.  The  motto  of 
West  Point,  too,  becomes,  in  a  measure,  the  motto  of 
every  military  school  floating  the  Stars  and  Stripes. 
^^Duty,  Honor,  Patriotism,^'  of  the  Army  exemplified 
so  well  in  the  lives  of  the  cadets  of  the  government  aca- 
demy, are,  more  or  less,  the  ideals  of  students  of  all 
academies  patterned  after  West  Point.  It  is  plainly 
noticed  that  boys  subjected  to  military  discipline  develop 
a  keen  sense  of  moral  obligation;  they  partake  of  the 
West  Pointer's  abhorrence  of  the  lie^ ;  they  love  exercise ; 
intellectual  as  well  as  physical;  and  they  make  a  more 
than  ordinary  effort  to  lead  clean,  pure,  noble  lives.  The 
discipline  of  a  military  academy  and  the  ennobling  influ- 
ence of  the  martial  spirit  become,  then,  powerful  auxili- 
aries to  holy  religion  in  fostering  and  promoting  moral 
education. 

Moreover,  there  is  no  loss  of  time  from  the  school  pro- 
gram, because  of  the  military  character  of  the  school ;  on 
the  contrary  there  is,  in  consequence  thereof,  a  decided 
gain  on  the  intellectual  side.^  With  military  discipline, 
changes  of  place  and  exercise  can  be  made  with  much 
greater  despatch  than  under  the  laissez  faire  methods 
of  other  schools.    When  the  weather  permits,  drill  may 


"Xife  at  West  Point"  by  H.  Irving  Hancock,  G.  P.  Putnam's  Sons, 
New  York  and  London,  Chapter  VIII,  pp.  144-155. 

*"The  Training  of  a  Priest"  by  Rev.  John  Talbot  Smith,  LL.D.,  Long- 
mans, Green  &  Co.,  Chapter  IV,  pp.  36-48. 


804  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

take  place  in  the  open  air.  In  that  case  it  proves  a  most 
beneficial  tonic  to  the  whole  human  system.  Military 
drill  generally  comes  as  a  welcome  break  in  the  class 
regulation,  and,  after  it,  students  return  to  recitations 
with  renewed  vitality  and  quickened  receptive  power. 

The  private  military  schools  of  this  country  are  de- 
signed for  youth  during  the  period  of  adolescence,  when 
the  boy  is  developing  from  innocent  childhood  to  the  ma- 
turity of  manhood.  During  this  transitional  and  forma- 
tive period  of  life,  the  influence  of  the  Catholic  military 
academy  cannot  be  surpassed  for  certain  classes  of  youth ; 
for  instance,  the  haughty,  the  indolent,  the  anaemic,  the 
awkward.  For  such  boys  in  particular  military  training 
under  Catholic  auspices  is,  as  it  were,  a  necessary  means 
to  the  ultimate  end  of  all  educational  processes,  Mens 
Sana  ac  cor  sanum  in  corpore  sano, 

John  J.  Tkacy. 
Clason  Point  Military  Academy, 
West  Chester,  New  York  City. 


EDUCATION  OF  THE  LAITY  IN  THE  MIDDLE 

AGES. 

CHAP.  I.      THE  FIFTH  AND  SIXTH  CENTURIES. 

The  last  stronghold  of  paganism  in  the  Eoman  Empire 
was  the  school.  Long  after  the  conflict  of  the  pagan  State 
with  the  Christian  Church  had  subsided  the  antagonism 
of  the  public  school  continued.  At  times  it  was  an  open 
fight,  again  an  opposing  influence  to  the  struggling 
Church.  The  emperors  who  had  first  liberated  the 
Church,  and  emancipated  her  subjects,  did  not  remove  this 
obstacle  to  her  progress.  Those  who  were  of  Christian 
convictions  would  not  interfere  with  a  widespread  and 
effective  instrument  for  the  maintenance  of  the  civil 
power.  Their  training  and  the  traditions  of  their  ofl&ce 
made  them  conservative,  loath  to  interfere  with  the  exist- 
ing order,^  and  they  contented  themselves  with  ruling 
that  nothing  objectionable  to  Christians,  such  as  religious 
ceremonies  and  rites,  be  continued  in  the  schools.  Pagan 
instructors  were  still  allowed  to  teach  and  very  few  Chris- 
tians were  decorated  with  the  official  titles  of  rhetoricians 
and  grammarians.^  Even  in  the  new  university  of 
Constantinople,  founded  by  Constantino  the  Great,  pagan 
as  well  as  Christian  teachers  were  officially  employed. 

The  last  futile  attempt  to  rehabilitate  pagan  culture 
was  made  through  the  schools.  The  Christians  who  were 
the  most  serious  obstacle  to  the  scheme  were  expressly 
forbidden  to  hold  positions  as  instructors  and  even  to 
apply  themselves  as  students.^  The  Galileans  could 
not  conscientiously  worship  at  the  altar  of  Minerva ;  they 


^Marion,  Histoire  de  r  Eglise.    I,  488.    Paris,  1906. 

^'Lalanne,  Influence  des  Peres  de  I'Eglise  (sur)  I'^ducation  publique, 
58.    Paris,  1850. 

"Allard,  Julien  L'Apostat,  II,  360.  Paris,  1903  (Discussion  as  to 
whether  Christians  as  students  were  forbidden.) 


806  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

could  return  to  their  churclies  and  interpret  Matthew  and 
Luke,  Julian  had  said,  and  despite  the  protests  of  Chris- 
tian bishops,  some  of  whom,  like  Gregory  Nazianzen,  had 
been  his  fellow  students  at  the  University  of  Athens,  the 
ruling  prevailed  until  the  champion  of  the  Hellenic  gods 
was  himself  vanquished. 

It  was  only  when  the  system  of  State  schools  had  been 
hopelessly  shattered  that  the  Christian  Church  found  her- 
self free  to  follow  her  plans  of  school  organization  and 
development.  When  the  last  stronghold  of  paganism  fell 
in  the  East,  the  new  stronghold  of  the  Christian  educa- 
tional forces  sprang  up  in  the  West.  The  School  of 
Athens  was  closed  by  imperial  decree  in  529,  and  that 
same  year  Monte  Cassino  opened.*  In  that  same  eventful 
year  also  the  bishops  of  Gaul  met  in  council  at  Vaison, 
and  passed  their  famous  decree  for  the  establishment  of 
parish  schools  throughout  their  jurisdiction.^ 

The  primitive  Church,  prompted  by  her  mission  to  teach 
all  men,  very  early  enlisted  the  school  among  her  work- 
ing forces.  Her  immediate  needs,  and  the  circumstances 
of  time  and  place,  tended  to  foster  the  types  of  schools 
which  represented  her  first  educational  efforts.  To  in- 
struct the  converts  from  paganism  the  catechetical  and 
catechumenal  schools  were  provided ;  to  combat  the  heret- 
ics and  the  infidels  she  encouraged  the  philosophical 
schools  like  those  of  Origen  and  Justin  Martyr;  to  pre- 
pare servants  for  the  sanctuary  the  episcopal  or  cathedral 
schools  came  into  existence.  Christian  children  needed  to 
be  instructed  in  virtue  as  well  as  in  wisdom,  and  when 
free  to  do  so  the  Church  had  sought  that  provision  be 
made  for  them. 

St.  Chrysostom  furnishes  evidence  of  the  decline  of 
primitive  fervor  in  the  Christian  family  of  the  fourth  cen- 
tury by  his  contention  that  the  domestic  circle  was  no 
longer  capable  of  supplying  the  proper  religious  and 

*Sandys,  History  of  Classical  Scholarship.    Cambridge,  1906. 
'Mansi,  Collectio  Amplissima  Conciliorum,  vol.  8.    Parisiis,  1901. 


Education  of  Laity  in  Middle  Ages  807 

moral  training  for  the  children.  Pagan  society  and  en- 
vironment had  affected  the  Christian  home,  and  the  care 
and  diligence  of  former  days  in  instructing  the  children 
in  virtue  had  disappeared  to  an  alarming  extent.  Under 
these  circumstances  attendance  at  the  pagan  or  Jewish 
schools  was  unquestionably  fraught  with  the  greatest 
danger  for  Christian  faith  and  morals,  and  although  he 
and  others  of  the  Fathers  had  studied  under  pagan  mas- 
ters, he  directed  parents  to  send  their  children  to  those 
who  would  diligently  serve  their  spiritual  as  well  as  their 
intellectual  wants.^ 

The  anchorites  and  cenobites  of  the  East  had  responded 
to  this  need  of  the  time  and  undertaken  to  educate  Chris- 
tian children.  Those  whom  they  received  as  pupils  into 
their  communities  were  not  necessarily  candidates  for  the 
religious  life.  Some  of  them  were  orphans  who  were 
given  the  saving  protection  of  Christian  surroundings; 
others  were  received  from  their  parents  in  the  presence  of 
witnesses  that  they  might  be  instructed  in  Christian  vir- 
tue. No  doubt  the  hope  was  entertained  both  by  the  pa- 
rents and  the  monks  that  the  child  would  eventually  offer 
himself  for  service  in  the  monastery,  but  no  irrevocable 
pledge  was  made  at  that  time  either  by  the  child  or  by 
the  parents.  The  matter  of  entering  the  order  or  of  tak- 
ing vows  was  deferred  until  the  subject  attained  the 
proper  age  to  decide  for  himself.  The  immediate  aim  in 
receiving  the  children  was  to  educate  them,  to  train  them 
to  lives  of  Christian  virtue.  Those  who  proved  their 
fitness,  and  manifested  the  desire,  could  later  elect  to 
return  to  the  world,  to  enter  the  monastery  or  the  her- 
mit's cell.'^ 

The  monks  of  the  West  were  also  engaged  in  this  phase 
of  education  long  before  the  establishment  of  Monte  Cas- 
sino  or  the  promulgation,  in  529,  of  the  great  constitution 


"Pat.  Gr.  Migne.  T.  47,  349,  Adversus  oppugnatores  VitaB  Monasticse. 
Ad  Patrem  Fidelem.    Lalanne,  167. 

^Rule  of  Basil,  Pat.  Gr.  XXIX;  Rule  of  Paokomius  and  Commentary, 
Pat.  Lat.  XXIII,  70. 


808  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

of  monasticism,  the  Benedictine  Eule.  The  most  illus- 
trious examples  of  this  are  furnished  by  the  monastic 
institutions  of  Gaul,  both  those  of  men  and  of  women.  In 
that  territory  where  for  two  centuries,  the  third  and  the 
fourth,  the  pagan  schools  had  reached  their  highest  de- 
velopment and  produced  some  of  their  ripest  scholars, 
the  Christian  schools  of  the  fifth  and  sixth  centuries  grow 
in  power  and  increase  in  number  in  a  degree  proportion- 
ate to  the  decline  of  their  antagonists.  The  control  of 
education  in  those  centuries  passed  into  the  hands  of  the 
clergy,  and  the  work  consequently  of  preparing  youth  for 
life  in  the  cloister  or  in  the  world  was  an  established  in- 
stitution in  the  early  Church  of  Gaul. 

At  various  times  students  were  also  received  into  the 
monasteries  who  prepared  for  the  secular  clergy,  but 
these  in  the  period  under  consideration  were  exceptional 
for  the  episcopal  or  cathedral  schools  amply  provided  for 
them.  This  latter  type  of  school  flourished  at  this  time 
in  almost  every  episcopal  city  of  the  Christian  world  and 
was  especially  efficient  in  the  West.^  While  the  principal 
aim  of  the  bishops  in  establishing  them  was  to  prepare 
levites  for  the  sanctuary,  other  students  were  not  denied 
admission.  Judging  from  the  curriculum  followed  in  the 
early  episcopal  schools  of  Gaul,  and  from  the  number  of 
lay  teachers  engaged  (sometimes  these  were  converted 
rhetoricians),  a  considerable  portion  of  the  students 
would  seem  to  have  had  no  intention  of  entering  the 
clerical  state.  Converts  were  instructed  there  and,  in 
Merovingian  days,  when  the  bishops  became  proprietary 
lords  with  the  duty  of  providing  education  for  all,  it  was 
but  natural  that  they  should  first  equip  their  own  school 
for  general  educational  purposes.  The  famous  schools 
of  Aries,  Paris,  Poitiers,  Bourges,  Clermont,  Vienne, 
Chalons-sur-Saone  and  Gap  were  well  attended  when  the 
State  schools  fell  into  decline.^ 


«Cubberley,  Syllabus  of  Lectures,   I.  59.     New  York,  1902.     (In  614 
there  were  112  bishoprics  in  Prank  land  alone.) 
»Denk,  Geschichte  des  Gallo-Frankxscb  Unterrichts,  191.  Mainz,  1892. 


Education  op  Laity  in  Middle  Ages  809 

The  parish  also  supplied  an  important  educational  in- 
stitution. The  decree  of  the  Council  of  Vaison,  529,  that 
pastors  should  establish  schools  and  undertake  the  in- 
struction of  the  young,  is  significant  not  only  for  the  ter- 
ritory immediately  concerned  but  for  the  reference  it 
makes  to  the  custom  already  prevailing  in  Italy  and  there 
producing  good  results.  It  had  been  fruitful  in  fostering 
vocations  to  the  priestly  state,  and  that  undoubtedly  was 
one  of  the  chief  aims  of  the  bishops  of  Gaul  in  adopting 
them.  There  is  a  warning  in  the  canon,  however,  that 
those  who  desire  to  take  up  the  married  state  be  given  all 
freedom  to  do  so.    The  canon  follows : 

'^Hoc  enim  placuit  ut  omnes  presbyteri  qui  sunt  in  pa- 
rochiis  constituti  secundum  consuetudinem,  quam  per  to- 
tam  Italiam  satis  salubriter  teneri  cognovimus,  juniores 
lectores,  quantoscumque  sine  uxore  habuerint,  secum  in 
domo,  ubi  ipsi  habitare  videntur,  recipiant:  et  eos  quo- 
modo  boni  patres  spiritaliter  nutrientes,  psalmos  parare, 
divinis  lectionibus  insistere,  et  in  lege  Domini  erudire 
contendant:  ut  et  sibi  dignos  successores  provideant,  et 
a  Domino  praemia  aeterna  recipiant.  Cum  vero  ad  aeta- 
tem  perfectam  pervenerint,  si  aliquis  eorum  pro  camis 
fragilitate  uxorem  habere  voluerit,  potestas  ei  ducendi 
conjugium  non  negetur.''^^ 

While  this  text  is  of  the  greatest  historical  importance 
for  recording  the  official  sanction  of  the  presbyteral  or 
parish  school,  the  impression  must  not  be  taken  that  no 
other  evidences  remain  of  earlier  institutions  of  this  kind. 
In  the  second  century  a  parish  school  was  maintained  at 
Edessa,  where  the  priest  Protogenes  taught  little  children 
reading,  writing,  singing,  and  the  elements  of  Christian 
Doctrine.^^  Nor  does  the  text  imply  that  no  parish 
schools  existed  in  that  part  of  the  Church,  for  in  the  pre- 
ceding century  one  is  found  at  Rennes  (480)  which  does 

"Mansi,  Coll.  Amp.  Concil.  vol.  8. 

"Stockl,  Geschichte  der  Padagogik,  78.    Mainz,  1876. 


810  The  Catholic  Educational.  Eeview 

not  seem  to  have  been  monastical  in  organization,  and 
whose  curriculum  embracing  reading,  writing,  arithmetic 
and  religion,  indicates  its  elementary  character.^^ 

With  the  spread  of  the  monks  the  cloister  eventually 
supplied  the  chief  means  of  education  for  the  laity.  The 
children  of  the  nobility  and  of  the  poor  attended  these 
schools  for  purely  educational  purposes,  and  many  of 
them  at  the  completion  of  their  courses  returned  to  their 
homes.  They  came  at  times  in  great  numbers  to  the  mon- 
asteries of  men  and  women,  and  their  formation  con- 
sumed nearly  the  entire  time  of  the  religious.  Muteau 
says  that  at  Aries,  where  two  hundred  nuns  were  occu- 
pied in  copying  MSS.,  open  school  was  kept  for  the 
neighborhood  (ecoles  ouvertes).  At  Laon  also  the  learn- 
ed abbess^  St.  Austrude,  ^^est  represente  comme  ay  ant 
consacre  sa  vie  a  la  culture  des  lettres, '  exercens  se  etiam 
in  magisterio  doctrinae.'  ''^^  Yet  these  nuns  were  dis- 
couraged in  this  practice  by  St.  Caesarius  of  Aries  who 
gave  them  their  rule.  They  followed  in  their  community 
life  one  of  the  earliest  forms  of  the  formal  cloister,^*  and 
the  bishop  deemed  it  wise  to  exclude  from  their  houses 
the  children  of  the  nobility  or  of  the  poor  who  came 
merely  for  their  education.  The  prohibition  would  seem 
to  indicate  that  the  children  could  be  provided  for  else- 
where. '^Et  si  fieri  potest,  aut  difficile,  aut  ulla  unquam 
in  monasterio  infantula  parvula,  nisi  ah  annis  sex  aut 
septem,  quae  jam  et  litteras  discere  et  ohedientiae  possit 
ohtemperare,  suscipiatur,  Nohilium  filiae  sive  ignohili- 
um,  ad  nutriendum  aut  docendum,  penitus  non  accipi- 
anturJ'^^ 

Gaul  was  a  responsive  soil  to  the  seed  of  monasticism. 
Since  the  foundations  of  Liguge  and  Marmoutier  by  St. 

"Denk,  194. 

^*Muteau,  Les  Ecoles  et  Colleges  en  Provence,  14.    Dijon,  1882. 

"Cath.  Encycylopedia,  "Cloister." 

"Regula  ad  Virgines:  Pat.  Lat.   LXVII,  1108. 


Education  of  Laity  in  Middle  Ages  811 

Martin  of  Tours  in  the  fourth  century,  and  the  later  or- 
ganization of  monastic  life  by  John  Cassian,  the  cloister 
institutions  had  spread  with  remarkable  rapidity.  The 
monks  were  not  only  numerous,  as  when,  for  instance,  two 
thousand  accompanied  the  remains  of  St.  Martin  to  the 
tomb,  but  deeply  spiritual  and  enthusiastic  to  place  with- 
in the  reach  of  others  the  blessings  which  they  enjoyed  in 
this  new  form  of  spiritual  endeavor.  They  received  their 
spirit  as  well  as  their  organization  largely  from  Cassian 
who  learned  the  principles  of  the  cenobitic  life  from  the 
celebrated  Fathers  of  the  desert.  He  had  lived  with  the 
monks  at  Bethlehem  and  the  hermits  in  Egypt,  and  had 
come  into  close  contact  with  St.  Chrysostom,  having  been 
ordained  a  deacon  by  him.  He  embodied  in  his  rule  many 
of  the  principles  of  the  Eastern  ascetics  and  perpetuated 
their  traditions  in  regard  to  education.  His  Institutes 
were  used  by  St.  Benedict  in  drawing  up  the  constitution 
of  his  order,  and  his  Collations  were  recommended  by 
him  as  spiritual  reading  for  the  monks.^^  Cassian 's  work 
was  in  short  for  Gaul  what  Benedict's  was  at  a  later  date 
for  the  monasteries  of  Europe. 

The  claims  for  the  extent  of  education  provided  by  the 
religious  of  these  early  cloisters,  those  of  men  and  of 
women,  and  for  the  laity  as  well  as  for  the  clergy,  do  not 
seem  extravagant  when  the  customs  prevailing  in  the 
Orient  are  remembered,  and  the  fact  recalled  that  Cassian 
desired  to  propagate  them  in  the  West.  He  had  lived  in 
the  Eastern  and  Egyptian  monasteries  as  guest  and  tem- 
porary pupil  of  the  great  Fathers  of  the  spiritual  life 
then  in  charge,  and  witnessed  the  good  effects  of  the  cus- 
tom then  in  vogue  of  allowing  the  laity  to  be  present  at 
these  instructions,  for  besides  the  children  who  attended 
for  their  education  many  of  their  elders  visited  them  for 
retreats  and  although  not  forming  part  of  the  community 

"  Pat.  Lat.  XLIX,  L. 


812  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

enjoyed  the  advantage  of  instruction  in  the  principles  of 
the  spiritual  life.^"^ 

The  outer  and  inner  departments  of  the  monastery 
came  to  be  recognized  at  an  early  period  in  the  history 
of  monasticism  in  Gaul.  There  was  no  legislation,  it  is 
true,  in  regard  to  the  separation  of  the  classes  of  students, 
but  the  prohibition  of  St.  Caesarius  shows  that  both  class- 
es of  children  presented  themselves  for  instruction,  and 
they  were  practically  designated.  He  had  allowed  the 
nuns  to  accept  the  ^'ohlati/'  those  who  were  offered  as 
future  subjects  of  the  monastery,  and  prohibited  the  re- 
ception of  those  whose  purpose  there  was  merely  educa- 
tional. The  fact  that  his  successor  Aurelian  was  obliged 
to  settle  the  age  for  the  reception  of  children,  making  it 
ten  years  instead  of  six  or  seven,  incidentally  attests  the 
eagerness  of  parents  to  place  their  offspring  with  the  re- 
ligious, some  even  desiring  to  do  so  with  their  infants.^^ 

The  Rule  of  St.  Benedict  appeared  about  530.  and  its 
more  than  rapid  circulation  in  the  monastic  world  evi- 
dences at  once  the  wide  diffusion  of  the  monasteries,  the 
eagerness  of  the  monks  for  a  more  systematic  life  and 
better  organization,  and  the  attention  of  all  to  education. 
It  is  said  that  in  twenty-five  years  it  had  affected  all 
Christian  Europe.  The  educational  significance  of  its 
rapid  spread  is  better  realized  when  it  is  recalled  that  St. 
Maurus,  and  others  like  St.  Columbanus  who  were  af- 
fected by  it,  interpreted  its  provisions  in  favor  of  more 
extensive  literary  and  educational  pursuits.^^  Although 
the  Rule  does  not  speak  of  the  cloistral  school  explicitly, 
nor  of  the  lay  and  clerical  students,  it  mentions  the  work 
of  education  and  the  requirements  necessary  in  the  prepa- 
ration of  boys  for  the  order.  Certainly  all  who  applied 
were  not  accepted  as  subjects  and  it  was  not  long  before 


"Commentary  on  Rule  of  Cassian  in  Migne,  Pat.  Lat.  up  supra. 
"Denk,  196. 
"Sandys,  I,  453. 


Education  of  Laity  in  Middle  Ages  813 

the  time  of  probation  was  extended  by  ecclesiastical  law, 
making  it  necessary  for  the  young  of  both  sexes  to  under- 
go a  period  of  trial  of  at  least  one  year  before  they  could 
be  regarded  as  members  of  the  novitiate.^^ 

The  remarkable  growth  and  prosperity  of  the  monas- 
teries continued  throughout  the  whole  of  the  sixth  cen- 
tury. Nowhere  on  the  Continent  is  this  better  shown  than 
in  Gaul.  In  that  century  owing  to  the  impetus  given  by 
St.  Maurus,  the  disciple  of  St.  Benedict,  there  were  eighty 
foundations  in  the  valley  of  the  Saone  and  the  Khine, 
ninety-four  from  the  Pyrenees  to  the  Loire,  fifty- 
four  from  the  Loire  to  the  Vosges,  and  ten  from 
the  Vosges  to  the  Ehine.^^  The  Benedictine  movement 
then  advanced  to  other  countries:  St.  MartiQ  of  Deume 
carried  the  new  institution  to  Spain,  and  St.  Augustine  to 
England.  The  monasteries  of  North  Britaiu  had  long  be- 
fore thrived  and  grown  even  in  the  fifth  century  to  great 
proportions.^^  Italy  had  seen  many  other  foundations  be- 
fore that  of  Monte  Cassino — twenty-two  monasteries  in 
the  City  of  Eome  accepted  the  Benedictine  Eule  almost 
as  soon  as  it  appeared — and  Africa,  St.  Augustine  attests, 
was  already  in  possession  of  her  monasteries  as  well  as 
episcopal  schools.^^ 

Ireland  at  this  time  was  a  veritable  land  of  schools  and 
scholars.  In  the  fourth,  fifth,  and  sixth  centuries  her 
monasteries  were  world  renowned  as  institutes  of  learn- 
ing, and  in  the  seventh  and  eighth  a  constant  stream  of 
students  came  from  the  Continent  to  learn  theology. 
Scripture,  and  classic  literature  from  the  great  Irish 
scholars..  Famous  for  their  knowledge  of  Latin  and 
Greek,  the  Irish  schools  were  preparing  in  this  epoch  for 
that  generation  of  teachers  who  were  shortly  to  invade 


^oEpistles  of    S.  Gregory  the  Great,  I,  50  in  Pat.  Lat.  XLIX. 
^^Marion,  II,  138. 

^Drane,  Christian  Schools  and  Scholars,  I,  48.    London,  1867. 
^Marion.  I.  573. 


814  The  Catholic  Educational.  Eeview 

Europe,  and  distinguisli  themselves  in  court  and  convent, 
in  public  and  private  schools. ^^ 

The  foundations  of  Armagh  by  St.  Patrick,  of  Kildare 
by  St.  Brigid,  were  emulated  both  as  schools  and  as  mon- 
asteries by  the  efforts  of  St.  Enda  of  Aran,  St.  Finian  of 
Clonard,  St.  Brendan  of  Clonfert  before  St.  Comgall 
founded  the  famous  school  of  Bangor  or  St.  Columbanus 
led  his  Irish  monks  to  Luxeuil  in  France,  and  Bobbio  in 
Italy.  From  the  latter  we  have  the  terse  description  of 
the  daily  work  in  every  monastery:  ^^Ergo  quotidie  je- 
junandum  est,  sicut  quotidie  orandum  est,  quotidie  la- 
horandum,  quotidieque  est  legendum/^  Dr.  Healy  writ- 
ing of  the  monasteries  generally,  and  of  the  Irish  in  par- 
ticular, says: 

**  Fasting  and  prayer,  labor  and  study,  are  the  daily 
tasks  of  the  monks  in  every  monastery.  How  patiently 
and  imselfishly  that  toil  was  performed  the  history  of 
Europe  tells.  The  monks  made  roads,  cleared  the  for- 
ests, and  fertilized  the  desert.  Their  monasteries  in  Ire- 
land were  the  sites  of  our  cities.  To  this  day  the  land 
about  the  monastery  is  well  known  to  be  the  greenest  and 
best  in  the  district ;  and  it  was  made  fertile  by  the  labors 
of  the  monks.  They  preserved  for  us  the  literary  treas- 
ures of  antiquity;  they  multiplied  copies  of  all  the  best 
and  newest  works ;  they  illuminated  them  with  the  most 
loving  care.  They  taught  the  children  of  the  rich  and 
poor  alike;  they  built  the  Church  and  the  palace;  they 
were  the  greatest  authors,  painters  and  architects,  since 
the  decline  of  the  Eoman  Empire.  They  were  the  physi- 
cians of  the  poor  when  there  were  no  dispensary  doctors ; 
they  served  the  sick  in  the  hospitals  and  at  their  homes. 
And  when  the  day's  work  was  done  in  the  fields  or  in  the 
study,  they  praised  God,  and  prayed  for  men  who  were  un- 
able or  unwilling  to  pray  for  themselves.    Ignorant  and 


2*0zanam,  A.  F.  Oeuvres,  v.  4,  p.  528.    Paris  (1872.) 


Education  of  Laity  in  Middle  Ages  815 

prejudiced  men  have  spoken  of  them  as  an  idle  and  use- 
less race.  They  were  in  reality  the  greatest  toilers,  and 
the  greatest  benefactors  of  humanity  that  the  world  has 
ever  seen/'^^ 

Patbick  J.  McCoKMICK. 


^^Healy,  Ireland's  Ancient  Schools  and  Scholars,  102.    Dublin,  1893. 


MATERIAL  CONDITIONS. 

The  best  results  in  teaching,  especially  in  the  grades, 
can  be  secured  only  when  favorable  conditions  obtain. 
While  it  is  eternally  true  that  a  really  efficient  teacher 
can  do  much,  even  in  the  face  of  difficulties,  it  is  not  less 
true  that  the  right  material  conditions  in  the  classroom 
are  of  tremendous  importance  to  the  novice  and  lessen  to 
a  very  considerable  extent  the  labors  of  the  more  ex- 
perienced pedagogue.  Indeed,  it  is  the  latter  who  is 
generally  the  more  insistent  on  securing  right  material 
conditions,  for  he  knows,  often  from  bitter  experience, 
that  everything  that  tends  to  eliminate  friction  and  fa- 
cilitate the  real  work  of  the  classroom  is  a  powerful  aid 
to  him  in  the  discharge  of  his  professional  duties. 

With  these  facts  in  mind,  it  is  my  purpose  in  this  paper 
to  touch  upon  certain  material  conditions  which  are  of 
special  moment  in  any  discussion  of  class  work.  Many 
of  the  things  I  have  to  say  will  doubtless  be  considered 
obvious;  but  there  are  some  things  so  obvious  that  we 
often  fail  to  see  them.  At  all  events,  in  these  days  of 
psychological  analysis  and  transcendentalism  in  the  dis- 
cussion of  classroom  methods,  it  may  prove  refreshing, 
if  nothing  else,  to  get  away  for  a  few  minutes  from  the 
multitude  of  fads  and  schools  and  systems  and  dwell 
upon  a  few  elementary  facts  regarding  the  externals  of 
teaching  and  study. 

A  primary  consideration  is  due  the  classroom  equip- 
ment. It  is  not  the  teacher's  business  to  buy  school  furni- 
ture, but  it  most  emphatically  is  his  business  to  see  that 
the  janitor  does  his  duty.  Desks  that  wobble,  seats  that 
creak,  doors  that  can  be  kept  closed  only  by  stuffing  bits 
of  paper  into  the  jambs  are  things  that  no  conscientious 
teacher  should  tolerate.    Things  like  these  are  the  fruit- 


Matekial  Conditions  817 

ful  source  of  disorder,  worry  and  waste  of  energy.  They 
exert  a  bad  influence  on  the  mental  habits  of  the  children 
and  bring  to  the  teacher  premature  wrinkles  and  un- 
merited gray  hairs. 

The  general  planning  his  campaign,  the  carpenter  ex- 
amining his  tools,  the  musician  tuning  his  instrument  are 
models  for  the  teacher.  Before  the  actual  work  of  the 
day  begins,  the  teacher  should  see  to  it  that  all  things 
are  ready.  Inkwells  must  be  filled,  a  sufficient  supply  of 
chalk  must  be  in  an  accessible  place  and  the  humiliating 
necessity  of  sending  to  a  brother  teacher  for  the  loan  of 
an  eraser  must  be  obviated.  The  children,  on  their  part, 
must  be  taught  to  have  their  books,  pencils  and  other 
class  necessities  close  at  hand  and  in  serviceable  order. 

*^Shun  delays,  they  breed  remorse,"  wrote  the  poet- 
priest,  Robert  Southwell.  We  can  shun  delays  to  a  great 
extent  by  foreseeing  what  we  shall  need  for  the  day's 
work  in  the  classroom  and  making  our  plans  accord- 
ingly. If,  in  the  course  of  our  lesson  in  United  States 
History,  we  need  a  map  of  South  Carolina,  it  is  very  poor 
policy  to  think  of  getting  it  only  when  the  lesson  has  been 
actually  begun.  At  the  very  beginning  of  the  day  the 
map  should  be  at  hand — labeled,  if  necessary,  ^^  Exhibit 
A,"  though  at  the  same  time  it  need  not  be  conspicu- 
ously displayed  to  attract  the  attention  of  the  pupils  at 
an  inopportune  time.  An  example  of  how  not  to  do 
things  in  this  regard  was  furnished  by  a  teacher  who, 
after  securing  a  set  of  the  Perry  pictures,  found  her- 
self seriously  handicapped  in  her  work  simply  because 
she  never  could  learn  to  make  her  selection  and  arrange- 
ment of  the  prints  before  the  class  period  had  begun. 

One  of  the  most  important  conditions  for  class  effi- 
ciency is  the  matter  of  ventilation.  Some  teachers  abso- 
lutely ignore  the  closed  windows — until  after  an  hour  or 
so,  when  they  begin  to  wonder  why  it  is  that  they  suffer 
so  much  from  headaches  and  why  the  children  are  alter- 


818  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

nately  listless  and  fidgety.  At  the  other  extreme  are  the 
teachers  who  believe  blindly  in  the  virtues  of  fresh  air — 
even  when  the  thermometer  flashes  a  danger  signal — and 
expose  the  children  to  needless  draughts  and  cruel  phy- 
sical discomfort.  Other  teachers  again,  with  the  best 
intentions  in  the  world,  seemingly  never  can  learn  that 
the  most  effective  means  of  securing  proper  ventilation  is 
to  open  the  windows  at  both  top  and  bottom,  even  if  only 
the  distance  of  a  span.  The  recess  time,  of  course,  offers 
an  opportunity  for  a  thorough  change  of  air  and  a  com- 
plete ventilation  of  the  classroom. 

The  golden  age  in  school  management  has  not  yet  ar- 
rived. When  it  does  come  the  teacher  will  be  free  from 
all  distraction,  and  only  then.  We  must,  perforce,  resign 
ourselves  to  the  inevitable  and  welcome,  with  at  least 
permissive  will,  the  unavoidable  noises  that  strain  our 
tempers  and  jar  our  nerves.  At  the  same  time,  by  care- 
fully looking  ahead  and  learning  from  experience,  we 
can  do  much  to  lessen  the  evil  of  distrations,  both  for 
ourselves  and  our  pupils. 

If  noise,  for  instance,  interferes  with  our  work,  the 
obvious  thing  to  do  is  to  eliminate,  whenever  possible,  the 
occasions  of  noise.  That  phrase,  '^whenever  possible, '' 
covers  a  multitude  of  sins ;  but  while  it  is  true  that  many 
noises  are  beyond  our  power  to  prevent,  there  are  others 
which,  if  we  are  quite  frank  with  ourselves,  we  shall  find 
to  be  of  our  own  causing.  These  we  can  remedy  by  de- 
stroying their  occasions.  As  for  the  inevitable  noises — 
from  the  clattering  streets  or  the  buildings  in  course  of 
construction — we  may  find  it  advantageous  to  shift  our 
schedule  slightly  so  that  the  annoyances  may  come  at  the 
least  undesirable  time.  This  simple  device  has  often 
been  used  by  teachers  wise  in  their  generation. 

One  fruitful  source  of  distractions  in  the  classroom 
are  the  exits  and  entrances  of  pupils — sometimes  our 
own,  sometimes  those  from  other  classes.    While  excep- 


Material  Conditions  819 

tions  are  bound  to  occur,  it  may  -be  said  in  general  that 
for  this  intolerable  coming  in  and  going  out  during  school 
hours  there  is  absolutely  no  excuse.  Sometimes  the  prin- 
cipal of  the  school  is  chiefly  to  blame,  as  was  the  case 
in  a  school  where  every  morning  a  boy  was  sent  from 
class  to  class  to  get  from  each  teacher  a  list  of  absentees. 
The  boy  emphasized  his  importance  by  wearing  squeak- 
ing shoes  and  developing  astonishing  comedy  talent.  His 
entrance,  in  the  middle  of  a  recitation,  was  the  signal 
for  complete  distraction  for  every  one  in  the  class;  and 
while  the  teacher,  with  not  the  best  grace  in  the  world, 
wrote  a  list  of  names  on  the  proffered  tablet,  the  chil- 
dren smiled  blissfully  at  the  visitor's  elastic  neck  and 
mirth-provoking  grimaces.  Not  until  the  boy's  foot- 
falls— and  they  were  pronounced — ^had  died  away  down 
the  corridor,  could  anything  be  done  in  the  classroom; 
and  even  then  it  frequently  meant  starting  the  lesson  all 
over  again. 

Good  order  and  attention  in  class  are  to  some  extent 
determined  by  the  condition  of  the  blackboards  and  the 
nature  of  the  decorations  on  the  walls.  Blackboards 
covered  with  scrawlings  and  scribblings,  with  harrowing 
reminders  of  yesterday's  lesson  in  arithmetic,  with  the 
injudicious  maiden  efforts  of  budding  Giottos  and  Millets 
do  not  contribute  to  that  concentration  of  mind  and  unity 
of  mental  effort  which,  even  under  ideal  conditions,  are 
so  difficult  to  secure.  Gaudy  posters,  curling  chromos 
and  pictures  hung  awry  are  not  only  in  bad  taste;  they 
distract  the  children  at  all  times  and  exert  a  pernicious 
effect  on  their  plastic  characters. 

The  matters  of  postures  and  carriage  of  teacher  and 
pupils  are  elementary  topics  indeed,  and  yet  they  have 
an  importance  which  can  never  been  adequately  stressed. 
The  pedagogical  martinets — may  they  rest  in  peace! — 
who  used  to  insist  upon  a  uniformity  of  position  at  all 
times  and  a  definite  angle  for  every  book  during  the 


820  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

reading  lesson,  little  realized  that  they  themselves  estab- 
lished conditions  that  begot  in  their  pupils  weariness  and 
disgust  and  covert  rebellion.  Yet  there  are  teachers  to- 
day who  have  trouble  chiefly  because,  by  their  own  rest- 
lessness and  lack  of  composure,  they  give  the  impres- 
sion that  they  are  looking  for  trouble.  St.  de  la  Salle,  the 
founder  of  the  Christian  Brothers,  indicated  twelve  vir- 
tues of  the  good  master;  among  them  are  gravity  and 
reserve.  Both  are  really  virtues,  in  art,  in  literature  and 
in  life,  and  notably  in  the  teaching  profession. 

Would  that  we  could  remember  and  realize  that  we  are 
all  day  long  before  so  many  pairs  of  restless,  observant 
little  eyes  that  our  every  move  and  our  every  posture  are 
noted  and  at  times  made  the  subject  of  not  particularly 
favorable  comment!  "Would  that  some  lecturer  at  sum- 
mer institutes,  instead  of  devoting  all  his  time  to  Norse 
mythology  or  the  status  of  elementary  schools  in  the 
Philippines,  might  take  up  this  matter  of  personal  de- 
portment and  present  to  the  assembled  teachers  the  ac- 
tual facts  in  the  case!  Sadder  but  wiser  would  that 
audience  be. 

It  is  necessary  that  both  teacher  and  pupils  move  about 
the  room,  and  therefore  it  is  necessary  that  both  teacher 
and  pupils  should  know  how  to  walk.  Another  painfully 
elementary  matter  is  this,  but  one,  I  am  sorry  to  say,  too 
often  disregarded.  The  more  obvious  caricatures  of  the 
act  of  walking  I  prefer  not  to  discuss;  but  there  is  a 
particular  form  of  misrepresentation  that  is  all  too  prev- 
alent. I  mean  moving  about  on  tip-toe.  A  teacher  some- 
times fancies  that  when  the  children  glide  about  like  so 
many  stealthy,  comic-opera  villains  good  order  is  ob- 
served and  the  virtue  of  silence  reigns.  Better  results 
might  be  obtained  by  having  the  children  crawl  on  their 
hands  and  knees ;  but  the  real  objection  to  both  methods 
is  that  both  are  unnatural.  A  normal,  healthy  boy  walk- 
ing on  tip-toe  is  about  as  much  at  home  as  a  normal, 
healthy  cat  walking  on  walnut  shells. 


Material  Conditions  821 

^ '  Shame  itself ! '  *  hissed  Lady  Macbeth  in  the  ear  of  her 
troubled  and  vision-seeing  spouse.  ^^Why  do  you  make 
such  faces  ? ' '  Has  not  the  query  a  definite  and  pertinent 
application  to  many  teachers  who,  though  composed  and 
reserved  so  far  as  gestures  and  bodily  movements  are 
concerned,  yet  sin  grievously  against  decorum  and  grav- 
ity in  their  unfortunate  habit  of  facial  contortion!  Con- 
trol of  the  facial  muscles  is  certainly  one  of  the  most 
important  of  what  we  call  the  material  conditions  of 
successful  teaching.  Unconsciously  the  teacher  acquires 
the  habit  of  wrinkling  the  forehead,  even  the  nose;  of 
pursing  the  lips,  of  opening  the  eyes  too  wide — in  gen- 
eral, of  total  lack  of  self-control.  Vanity  itself  ought  to 
cure  us  of  this  defect,  for  the  man  or  the  woman  who 
lacks  facial  repose  is  never  beautiful.  Through  the  win- 
dow of  the  countenance  the  soul  shines  forth,  we  are 
told ;  but  I  am  loth  to  believe  it,  for  through  some  faces 
that  twitch  and  gyrate  shines  an  unlovely  thing. 

While  touching  upon  the  material  conditions  dependent 
on  personality  of  teacher  and  pupils,  I  think  it  oppor- 
tune to  say  a  word  concerning  tone  and  manner  of  speech. 
And  here  more  must  be  said  of  the  teacher  rather  than 
of  the  pupils,  for  if  the  teacher's  voice  is  low  and  musical 
and  under  control,  the  children  will  unconsciously  acquire 
some  of  its  most  desirable  characteristics.  Distinctness 
of  articulation  often  has  to  be  taught  specifically ;  but  in 
general  the  other  essentials  of  conversational  voice  cul- 
ture can  be  imparted  indirectly. 

The  teacher  who  grumbles  deep  in  his  throat  and  he 
who  talks  so  loud  that,  apparently,  he  fancies  he  is  ad- 
dressing the  mob  from  the  bema  in  ancient  Athens,  both 
are  offenders.  The  tendency  to  talk  too  loud  is,  how- 
ever, the  more  prevalent.  Besides  being  a  waste  of 
energy  and  sometimes  an  overt  act  disturbing  the  public 
peace,  this  fault  has  an  irritating  effect  on  a  class  and 
betrays  lack  of  self-control.    It  may  spring  from  nervous- 


822  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

ness  or  from  over- enthusiasm  or  from  a  zeal  not  accord- 
ing to  knowledge;  but  whatever  its  causes,  it  indicates 
a  weakness  of  character,  an  absence  of  poise. 

Worst  of  all  is  the  habitual  use  of  the  nagging  tone. 
Some  teachers  I  know  could  contribute  splendid  speci- 
mens for  an  illustrated  lecture  on  this  subject.  They 
may  actually  be  saying,  ^^Very  good,  Willie, '^  or  *'Your 
work  has  pleased  me  very  much";  but  the  tone  in  which 
they  speak,  the  peculiar  inflections  they  use,  seem  to 
indicate  that  what  is  really  in  their  mind  is  something 
like  this :  ^  ^  I  am  weary  unto  death  of  everything  and  every- 
body; I  suppose  you're  doing  the  best  you  can,  but  your 
best  isn't  worth  much,  and  I  feel  sure  that  you're  going 
to  do  something  dreadful  at  any  moment. ' '  On  the  other 
hand,  even  a  severe  reprimand  given  in  tones  bespeaking 
the  presence  of  a  cheerful  human  being  will  have  its  de- 
sired effect  and  yet  leave  no  sting. 

The  final  material  condition  is  regularity.  A  good 
teacher  is  not  only  as  regular  as  the  clock — he  is  more 
regular  than  most  clocks.  The  perfection  of  the  holy 
virtue  of  obedience  said  to  reside  in  leaving  a  letter  half 
formed  or  a  syllable  half  uttered  should  find  its  prac- 
tical application  in  the  work  of  the  classroom.  To  begin 
a  lesson  promptly  and  to  end  it  promptly,  to  assemble 
and  to  dismiss  the  class  at  approximately  the  scheduled 
second — all  this  is  perhaps  an  ideal;  but  it  is  a  very 
worthy  ideal.  A  more  persistent  effort  to  tend  to  it,  if 
ideal  it  be,  would  save  untold  annoyance  to  ourselves  and 
to  others. 

Leslie  Stanton. 

St.  Mary's  College,  Oakland,  Cal. 


CARDINAL  GIBBONS  MEMORIAL  HALL. 

At  the  close  of  the  meeting  of  the  Board  of  Trustees  on 
Thursday,  October  12,  the  cornerstone  of  the  Cardinal 
Gibbons  Memorial  Hall  was  laid  by  His  Eminence,  the 
Chancellor  of  the  University,  in  the  presence  of  a  large 
gathering  of  bishops,  priests  and  people  representing 
nearly  every  diocese  and  every  State  of  the  Union.  This 
ceremony  formed  the  central  feature  in  the  academic  cele- 
bration of  the  CardinaPs  jubilee,  and,  in  a  certain  sense, 
the  national  celebration  also,  since  the  people  in  all  parts 
of  the  country  have  contributed  towards  the  building  and, 
while  aiding  the  development  of  the  University,  have  paid 
to  the  Cardinal  the  most  acceptable  tribute  that  could 
have  been  offered.  It  is  extremely  gratifying  to  him  that 
the  permanent  memorial  of  his  priestly  and  cardinalitial 
jubilee  should  take  the  form  of  a  Hall  on  the  grounds  of 
the  University  and  especially  that  it  should  be  devoted 
to  the  service  of  our  Catholic  people  as  a  residence  for 
lay  students. 

On  the  other  hand,  this  occasion  is  significant  as  show- 
ing that  our  people,  as  time  goes  on,  have  more  accurate 
ideas  of  what  is  at  once  appropriate  and  practical  in  con- 
nection with  such  celebrations.  They  have  come  to  realize 
the  value  of  education  for  its  own  sake  and  its  necessity 
for  the  cause  of  religion;  and  they  understand  that  the 
most  fitting  tribute  to  personal  worth  is  the  furtherance 
of  those  large  beneficent  designs  for  which  the  recipient 
of  their  tribute  has  lived  and  labored.  It  was  the  Middle 
Ages,  the  Ages  of  Faith,  that  gave  Oxford  and  Cambridge 
those  halls  and  colleges  which  have  grown  more  beautiful 
during  the  centuries  and  which  in  their  outward  forms 
are  still  the  most  graceful  expression  of  the  academic 
spirit.    They  bear  the  names  or  perpetuate  the  memory 


824  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

of  men  who  were  equally  devoted  to  tlie  Church  and  to 
learning.  Most  of  them  were  ecclesiastics,  some  were 
bishops,  all  were  men  of  sound  practical  sense.  They 
were  concerned  for  the  interests  of  religion  not  merely  in 
one  parish  or  in  one  diocese  but  in  all  England,  or  rather 
in  the  whole  world,  since  the  universities  of  that  day  were 
in  the  highest  degree  cosmopolitan.  Thus  all  the  nations 
of  Europe  were  the  beneficiaries  of  the  great  English 
founders — of  Merton  and  Balliol,  of  Wykeham  and  Bal- 
sham  and  Gonville ;  and  the  names  of  these  men  will  live 
long  after  the  last  trace  of  the  structures  which  they 
built  has  disappeared. 

What  is  more  important,  there  is  still  strong  in  the 
Catholic  Church  that  love  of  intellectual  and  spiritual 
things  which  created  the  universities  of  old.  It  was  mani- 
fested at  the  inception  of  the  Catholic  University  and  it 
has  proven  its  efficacy  at  each  new  phase  of  the  Univer- 
sity's growth.  It  has  never  been  more  timely  or  more 
energetic  than  in  projecting  and  constructing  the  Gib- 
bons Memorial. 

It  is  less  than  a  year  since  the  erection  of  this  Hall  was 
decided  upon,  and  barely  six  months  since  the  work  be- 
gan. That  it  has  advanced  so  rapidly  is  due  chiefly  to  the 
activity  of  the  Association  which  had  charge  of  the  under- 
taking and  which  included  in  its  membership  prominent 
representatives  of  the  clergy  and  laity,  with  the  follow- 
ing officers : 

President  and  Treasurer^  Rt.  Rev.  Owen  B.  Corrigan,  D.  D., 
Auxiliary  Bishop  of  Baltimore ;  Corresponding  Secretary,  Very 
Rev.  George  A.  Dougherty,  D.  D.,  Vice-Rector  of  the  University. 

Executive  Committee:  Baltimore — Samuel  S.  Bennett, 
Charles  J.  Bonaparte,  Rev.  Fred.  Bott,  C.  S.  S.  R.,  Joseph  W. 
Brooks,  Rev.  M.  F.  Foley,  Frank  Furst,  Michael  Jenkins.  Je- 
rome M.  Joyce,  Philip  C.  Mueller,  Rev.  James  A.  Nolan,  Thomas 
O'Neill,  T.  Herbert  Shriver,  William  0.  Sullivan,  Rev.  John  T. 
Whelan,  James  R.  Wheeler,  George  Yakel.    Washington — D.  J. 


Caedinal  Gibbons  Memorial  Hall  825 

Callahan,  Aidan  Dillon,  O.  H.  P.  Johnson,  Patrick  J.  Haltigan, 
George  E.  Hamilton,  Kev.  J.  D.  Marr,  Rev.  J.  R.  Matthews,  Rt. 
Rev.  James  T.  Mackin,  P.  J.  Nee,  Joseph  E.  Ralph,  Rt.  Rev.  Dr. 
William  T.  Russell,  B.  F.  Saul,  Nicholas  H.  Shea,  P.  C.  Sulli- 
van, J.  Selwin  Tait. 

In  February  last,  the  Association  sent  out  this  appeal : 
The  Golden  Jubilee  or  fiftieth  anniversary  of  the  ordination 
of  Cardinal  Gibbons  to  the  priesthood  occurs  this  year,  also  the 
twenty-fifth  anniversary  of  his  elevation  to  the  august  senate 
of  the  Apostolic  See.  His  countless  friends  and  admirers  be- 
lieve that  these  events  should  not  go  unrecognized,  and  desire 
to  enroll  your  good-will  and  your  personal  co-operation  in 
offering  to  our  eminent  fellow-citizen  a  tribute  worthy  of  his 
high  oflQce  and  of  the  place  which  he  has  so  long  filled  in  the 
life  of  our  nation. 

It  is  proposed  to  erect  on  the  ground  of  the  Catholic  Univer- 
sity a  Cardinal  Gibbons  Memorial  Hall  of  residence  for  lay 
students^  a  nohle  edifice  that  shall  forever  hear  his  name,  and 
while  rendering  the  most  useful  service  to  a  rapidly  growing 
school,  shall  remind  all  who  come  after  us  that  we  appreciated 
fully  and  in  his  own  day  the  unique  influence  of  Cardinal  Gih- 
hons  in  our  national  life.  It  is  known  that  he  cares  for  no 
other  recognition,  hut  is  willing  that  the  many  friends,  hoth  in 
and  out  of  the  Church,  who  in  his  long  career  as  a  minister  of 
Jesus  Christ  and  an  American  citizen  have  profited  hy  his  dis- 
courses, his  writings,  or  his  example,  should  unite  to  erect  an 
edifice  that  shall  stand  hefore  the  youth  of  our  country  for  the 
highest  education,  the  purest  religion,  and  the  most  exalted 
patriotism. 

Since  its  opening  in  1889  the  chief  interest  of  Cardinal  Gib- 
bons has  been  the  Catholic  University  of  America.  He  was  the 
leader  in  its  foundation,  and  is  now  its  head  and  governor.  In 
his  mind  as  in  that  of  the  American  Catholic  hierarchy  whom 
he  represents,  this  great  school,  the  official  work  of  our  hier- 
archy and  our  people,  is  destined  to  render  the  highest  services 
to  the  Catholic  Church  in  the  United  States,  not  only  in  the 
defence  and  illustration  of  religious  truth,  but  also  as  a  public 
monumental  witness  to  the  immemorial  love  of  learning  that 


826  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

characterizes  our  Catholic  people  and  their  patriotic  devotion 
to  the  moral  and  social  welfare  of  our  country. 

It  may  be  truly  said  that  in  respect  of  the  teachings  and 
spirit  of  Catholicism,  the  loyalty  of  Catholics  to  this  glorious 
republic,  and  the  perfect  sympathy  between  our  American  de- 
mocracy and  the  Catholic  Church,  Cardinal  Gibbons  has  bee^ 
for  fifty  years  a  foremost  educator  of  the  American  people. 
He  has  dispelled  immemorial  prejudice,  has  destroyed  in  no 
small  measure  the  roots  of  fear  and  suspicion,  and  has  freed 
the  American  people  from  many  anti-Catholic  delusions  that 
held  them  in  mental  bondage.  On  the  other  hand  he  has  in- 
spired by  word  and  example  his  Catholic  fellow-citizens  to  lives 
of  the  highest  virtue,  and  has  never  failed,  in  season  and  out  of 
season,  to  impress  upon  them  the  majesty  of  the  American 
State  and  its  rights  to  our  utmost  love  and  devotion. 

When  Cardinal  Gibbons  began  his  priestly  career  there  were 
scarcely  three  thousand  priests  in  the  vast  territory  of  the 
United  States,  and  the  Catholic  layman  had  almost  to  apologize 
for  being  a  member  of  the  ancient  faith,  whereas  now  there  are 
over  sixteen  thousand  priests,  and  the  wisest  statesmen  admit 
that  the  Catholic  Church  is  the  nation's  chief  bulwark  against 
the  many  evil  forces  that  are  threatening  the  peace,  if  not  the 
existence,  of  the  world's  greatest  republic. 

In  this  happy  development  of  Catholicism  Cardinal  Gibbons 
has  had  a  large  and  important  role.  While  never  failing  to  em- 
phasize the  great  substantial  truths  of  religion  and  their  end- 
less service  to  the  common  welfare,  he  has  devoted  his  best 
thought  and  endeavor,  by  ceaseless  preaching  of  the  Word  of 
God,  by  personal  instruction  and  by  books  of  unparalleled  suc- 
cess, to  making  known  the  beauty,  the  power,  and  the  charm 
of  our  immemorial  Catholicism,  its  visible  roots  in  the  Gospel 
and  in  human  nature,  its  beneficent  career  in  the  history  of 
mankind,  its  sun-like  vigor  in  creating  and  sustaining  new  and 
useful  institutions. 

For  fifty  years  he  has  moved  with  unbroken  success  as  an 
official  exponent  of  Catholicism  and  has  earned  at  all  times  not 
only  the  love  and  respect  of  his  own  fellow-citizens,  both  in  and 
out  of  the  Church,  but  also  the  commendation  of  the  highest 


Cakdinal  Gibbons  Memorial  Hall  827 

authority  in  the  Church  itself.  As  a  priest  of  God  he  has  lived  in 
this  half  century  a  blameless  and  edifying  life,  has  daily  brought 
to  the  Catholic  people  all  the  divine  consoling  ministrations  of 
their  religion,  has  preached  without  ceasing  and  in  its  simple 
purity  the  saving  Gospel  of  Christ,  and  in  the  fulfilment  of 
this  ministry  has  won  the  love  and  admiration,  not  only  of  his 
Catholic  fellow-citizens,  but  of  a  multitude  of  other  right- 
minded  men.  As  a  citizen,  he  stands  second  to  none  for  con- 
stant and  active  devotion  to  the  principles  and  the  spirit  of 
American  democracy.  He  has  never  tired  of  inculcating  on  all 
the  duty  of  patriotism  not  only  in  eloquent  and  forcible  lan- 
guage, but  by  his  own  example,  in  many  acts  of  public  service, 
in  spirited  defence  and  ardent  praise  of  our  American  common- 
wealth, and  in  timely  warning  of  the  dangers  that  beset  our 
path  when  we  abandon  the  teachings  and  the  example  of  the 
founders  of  the  nation.  As  a  man,  his  plain  unassuming  man- 
ner, his  frugal  habits  and  simple  life,  his  industry,  self-restraint 
and  regularity,  offer  to  all,  and  especially  to  our  American 
youth,  a  model  that  cannot  be  too  highly  commended  amid  the 
acknowledged  excesses  of  our  civilization.  His  love  of  the 
lowly  and  oppressed,  and  his  readiness  to  defend  their  cause, 
have  won  world-wide  recognition,  likewise  his  steady  insistence 
on  equity  and  fair  play  in  all  the  economic  and  social  relations 
of  our  American  life. 

As  a  bishop  he  has  administered  with  paternal  mildness  the 
parent  see  of  our  American  Catholic  heirarchy  and  has  main- 
tained and  confirmed  its  glorious  Catholic  traditions  of  re- 
ligion and  patriotism  that  began  with  Archbishop  Carroll,  and 
it  is  hoped  will  never  suffer  an  eclipse.  His  house  has  been  ever 
hospitably  open  to  his  episcopal  brethren  from  every  quarter 
of  the  world,  and  with  equal  generosity  his  good  offices  have 
been  always  at  their  disposal.  It  is  under  Cardinal  Gibbons 
that  took  place  the  most  striking  events  of  our  Catholic  public 
life  in  the  latter  quarter  of  the  nineteenth  century,  the  Third 
Plenary  Council  of  Baltimore,  the  First  Centenary  of  the  foun- 
dation of  our  hierarchy,  the  first  Catholic  Congress,  the  founda- 
tion at  Washington  of  the  Catholic  University  and  the  estab- 
lishment of  the  Apostolic  Delegation.     In  countless  ways  he 


828  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

has  co-operated  with  the  hierarchy  of  the  United  States  for  the 
welfare  of  religion,  and  by  his  prudence  and  experience,  as  well 
as  by  his  insight  and  sympathy,  has  rendered  to  all  his  brethren 
of  the  episcopate,  individually  and  collectively,  services  whose 
number  and  importance  the  Holy  Spirit  alone  could  reveal. 
Meanwhile  he  has  consecrated  to  their  great  tasks  one  quarter 
of  the  American  heirarchy,  and  has  ordained  about  two  thou- 
sand priests,  nor  has  this  exhausted  his  devotion  to  the  Catholic 
clergy,  for  he  has  found  time  in  his  busy  life  to  write  for  them 
one  of  the  most  beautiful  books  on  the  priestly  life. 

As  a  Cardinal  of  the  Holy  Koman  Church,  besides  earning 
the  love  and  approbation  of  two  of  the  most  remarkable  suc- 
cessors of  St.  Peter,  he  has  represented  with  equal  dignity  and 
success  the  general  interests  of  our  American  Catholicism,  and 
on  all  occasions  has  so  borne  himself  as  to  leave  room  only  for 
praise.  It  was,  indeed,  easy  for  him  to  continue  always  af- 
fable, gentle,  and  approachable ;  to  remain  unchanged  in  priest- 
ly life  and  spirit;  to  retain  his  modest  and  toilsome  habit  of 
life,  but  it  gave  to  all,  both  Catholic  and  non-Catholic,  par- 
ticular pleasure  when  it  was  seen  that  the  leader  of  the  Ameri- 
can Catholic  hierarchy  always  spoke  and  acted  with  becoming 
tact,  with  judicious  acumen,  with  a  broad  discriminating  sense 
of  principles  and  circumstances,  with  Catholic  frankness,  but 
also  with  patriotic  ardor,  while  no  one  could  mistake  his  char- 
itable anxiety  not  to  wound  unnecessarily  the  feelings  of  our 
non-Catholic  fellow-citizens,  so  well  and  widely  known  to  him 
in  the  fifty  years  of  his  priestly  ministrations. 

In  his  eloquent  discourse,  "The  Church  and  the  Age,"  Arch- 
bishop Ireland  rightly  says  that  "the  work  of  Cardinal  Gib- 
bons forms  an  epoch  in  the  history  of  the  Church  in  America. 
He  has  made  known,  as  no  one  before  him  did,  the  Church  to 
the  people  of  America.  ♦  ♦  *  Through  his  action  the  scales 
have  fallen  from  the  eyes  of  non-Catholics  and  prejudices  have 
vanished.''  Kecently,  on  his  death-bed.  Archbishop  Ryan  said 
to  the  Cardinal,  "I  am  now,  as  I  ever  have  been,  profoundly 
convinced  that  you  are  the  instrument  of  Providence  for  the 
promotion  of  every  good  thing  for  our  Church  and  our  Coun- 
try."   And  a  prominent  writer  only  echoes  the  conclusions  of 


Cakdinal  Gibbons  Memobial  Hall  829 

these  distinguished  prelates,  when  he  says  that  "Cardinal  Gib- 
bons has  been  heard  on  every  question  of  morals,  public  policy, 
or  political  economy  that  has  agitated  the  nation  since  he  be- 
came the  head  of  the  American  Catholic  hierarchy,  and  has  al- 
ways said  the  right  thing  at  the  right  time." 

Such  a  life  calls  for  no  small  or  transitory  memorial,  cir- 
cumscribed by  narrow  limits.  It  is  believed  that  the  American 
people  will  desire  to  see  preserved  for  all  time  the  memory  and 
the  honor  of  the  good  Cardinal  in  the  Capital  of  the  Nation, 
and  in  such  a  way  that  his  personality  shall  forever  continue 
among  us  a  religious,  educational,  and  patriotic  force. 

If  the  subscriptions  are  numerous  and  generous  enough,  the 
Trustees  of  the  University  will  proceed  quickly  to  the  erection 
of  the  new  Cardinal  Gibbons  Hall,  so  that  it  may  be  practically 
finished  on  October  30,  when  the  Cardinal  will  celebrate  solemn- 
ly the  two  anniversaries  of  his  ordination  to  the  priesthood  and 
his  elevation  to  the  Cardinalate. 

Your  voluntary  contribution  is  respectfully  solicited.  Any 
sum,  however  small,  mill  he  thankfully  received  and  will  he 
duly  recorded  in  a  great  album  always  accessible  to  visitors. 
The  names  of  those  who  contribute  five  hundred  dollars  or  more 
will  he  inscribed  on  suitable  tablets  in  the  vestibule  of  the  new 
Hall,  while  members  of  the  University,  professors  and  students, 
will  never  cease  to  remember  gratefully  and  to  pray  for  the 
generous  donors. 

All  checks  should  be  made  payable  to  Rt.  Rev.  Owen  B.  Cor- 
rigan,  D.  D.,  Treasurer,  1611  Baker  Street,  Baltimore,  Md.,  and 
all  correspondence  should  be  addressed  to  Very  Rev.  George 
A.  Dougherty,  D.  D.,  Vice-Rector,  Catholic  University,  Wash- 
ington, D.  C. 

Very  respectfully  yours  in  Xto, 

^OWEN  B.  CORRIGAN,, 

Bishop  of  Macra, 
President  of  the  Committee  and  Treasurer. 

The  generous  response  to  this  appeal  showed  that  the 
project  was  heartily  endorsed  throughout  the  country 
and  justified  the  immediate  building  of  the  Hall. 


830  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

The  plans  were  prepared  by  Messrs.  Thomas  H.  Poole 
and  Co.,  of  New  York  City,  and  the  contract  was  awarded 
to  the  Boyle  Eobertson  Construction  Company  of  Wash- 
ington. The  building  is  located  on  Michigan  Avenue  a 
short  distance  west  of  Albert  Hall.  It  is  in  the  Tudor 
Gothic  style,  three  stories  high  with  a  total  length  of  267 
feet  and  a  depth  of  40  feet.  A  central  tower  36  feet  square 
rises  to  a  height  of  70  feet.  The  material  is  Port  Deposit 
granite  with  Indiana  limestone  for  trim.  In  its  interior 
finish,  arrangement  and  furnishings,  the  Hall  provides 
fully  for  the  safety  and  comfort  of  its  occupants.  When 
completed  it  will  accommodate  130  students.  At  present 
the  portion  west  of  the  tower  is  finished  and  is  occupied. 
The  tower  is  also  in  course  of  construction  and  it  is  hoped 
that  the  entire  building  may  be  completed  within  a  year. 

The  cornerstone  was  laid  in  the  northwest  angle  of  the 
tower,  which  at  the  time  had  been  built  up  to  the  water- 
table  and  upon  which  a  temporary  platform  was  laid  for 
the  accommodation  of  the  speakers,  the  prelates  and  the 
invited  guests. 

The  procession  moved  from  McMahon  Hall  at  4  p.  m., 
crossed  the  campus  and  preceded  the  Cardinal  to  the  plat- 
form. During  the  ceremony,  appropriate  anthems  were 
sung  by  the  university  choir  with  accompaniment  by  the 
IT.  S.  Marine  Band.  When  the  stone  had  been  placed  in 
position,  the  Most  Eev.  John  M.  Farley,  Archbishop  of 
New  York,  addressed  the  Cardinal  on  behalf  of  the  Board 
of  Trustees. 

ARCHBISHOP  Farley's  address. 

As  Vice-President  of  the  Board  of  Trustees,  I  am  privileged 
to  stand  here  before  this  distinguished  assembly  and  speak  on 
this  historic  occasion— the  double  jubilee  of  him  whom  we  are 
proud  to  regard  as  the  decus^  honor  et  gloria  of  the  Church  in 
America. 

The  massive  and  majestic  monument,  of  which  we  have  just 
laid  the  cornerstone,  is  to  be  known  while  its  walls  shall  stand 


Caedinal  Gibbons  Memoeial  Hall  831 

as  the  fitting  but  all-inadequate  testimonial  of  our  gratitude  to 
James  Cardinal  Gibbons,  ninth  Metropolitan  of  the  venerable 
See  of  Baltimore,  the  mother  see  of  the  Church  in  the  United 
States,  America's  second  cardinal  and  the  first  chancellor  of 
the  Catholic  University  of  America,  the  most  beloved  man  of 
the  American  Church  today. 

This  cornerstone  is  one  of  the  milestones  in  the  path  of  our 
University  on  its  way  to  what  we  may  now  confidently  regard 
as  a  glorious  future ;  and  on  such  occasions  as  this  it  is  usual 
and  useful  to  look  back  for  a  moment  on  our  history. 

Although  only  twenty  years  have  elapsed  since  its  birth,  our 
University  was  conceived  in  the  minds  of  the  fathers  of  the 
Second  Council  of  Baltimore  (1866)  nearly  half  a  century 
ago.  They  desired  earnestly  to  have  in  this  country,  under 
Catholic  auspices,  a  university  in  which  all  branches  of  litera- 
ture and  science,  both  sacred  and  profane,  should  be  taught. 
But  the  time  was  not  yet  ripe  for  the  realization  of  this  hope. 
This  came  when  the  young  and  energetic  archbishop  of  this 
venerable  diocese  was  appointed  by  the  great  Leo  XIII  as  his 
legate  to  preside  over  the  most  important  council  ever  held 
in  this  country,  the  Third  Plenary  Council  of  Baltimore  in 
1884. 

The  priestly  experience  of  Cardinal  Gibbons  seems  to  have 
been,  in  all  its  phases,  a  preparation  for  the  great  work  of 
founding  and  fostering  the  Catholic  University  of  America. 
Like  the  present  Holy  Father  he  has  filled  every  position  in 
the  ranks  of  the  clergy.  Beginning  as  a  young  curate,  he  be- 
came pastor  and  then  secretary  to  the  great  Martin  John 
Spalding,  one  of  his  illustrious  predecessors,  who  found  in 
him  the  Leonidas  well  fitted  to  man  the  Thermopylae  of  the 
mountains  of  North  Carolina  where  hostility  to  the  Church 
was  strong  and  where  opposition  grew  out  of  ignorance  be- 
cause there  was  none  to  break  the  bread  of  life  to  the  people. 
There,  as  bishop,  Monsignor  Gibbons  passed  the  most  laborious 
years  of  his  early  missionary  life — "in  journeying  often,  in 
perils  of  waters,  in  perils  in  the  city,  in  perils  in  the  wilder- 
ness, in  perils  in  the  sea,  in  labor  and  painfulness,  in  much 
watchings,"  to  the  end  that  he  might  become  all  to  all  and 


832  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

win  all  to  Christ.  There  he  gathered  from  contact  with  many 
outside  the  Church,  from  meditation  and  study,  materials  for 
the  work  which  has  made  him  known  through  all  the  land  and 
beyond  its  borders,  the  "Faith  of  our  Fathers,"  which  has  led 
so  many  in  the  way  of  peace  and  which  will  go  down  the  ages 
enlightening  souls  when  these  memorial  walls  shall  have  crum- 
bled into  dust. 

The  prudence,  learning  and  zeal  evinced  by  Archbishop 
Gibbons  during  the  Council,  and  his  tactful  guidance  of  the 
deliberations  of  the  entire  American  episcopate  in  dealing  with 
the  most  momentous  questions,  told  that  the  hour  and  the  man 
had  come  for  the  inauguration  of  the  great  work  of  a  Catholic 
university.  Then  and  there  it  was  decided  to  establish  a  ^^sem- 
inarium  principal  as  the  nucleus  out  of  which  a  complete 
Catholic  university  should  later  develop. 

In  1885  the  Sovereign  Pontiff  expressed  his  great  pleasure  at 
learning  of  this  decision  and  gave  his  formal  approval  in  a 
letter  to  Archbishop  Gibbons  in  1887 ;  two  years  later  the  Pope 
approved  the  constitution  of  the  University  and  granted  it  full 
power  to  confer  degrees.  In  this  letter  the  Holy  Father  de- 
fined the  scope  of  the  Catholic  University,  viz.,  "to  provide  in- 
struction in  every  department  of  learning  to  the  end  that  the 
clergy  and  the  laity  alike  might  have  ample  opportunity  to 
satisfy  fully  their  laudible  desire  for  knowledge." 

It  was  thus  that  this  great  central  seat  of  learning  sprang 
up  under  the  control  of  the  bishops  of  the  United  States,  im- 
mediately governed  by  a  board  of  trustees  composed  of  bishops, 
priests  and  laymen  who  represent  the  American  Catholic 
Church  in  the  ownership  and  direction  of  the  Catholic  Univer- 
sity. While  the  responsibility  in  general  for  the  working  of 
the  institution  rests  on  the  Board  of  Trustees,  the  central  pivot 
in  which  every  movement  of  the  great  and  growing  mechanism 
of  the  institution  turned  was  the  Chairman  of  the  Board,  the 
Chancellor  of  the  University.  In  times  of  stress  all  learned  to 
turn  to  him;  to  him  everyone  looked  for  inspiration  in  each 
new  departure  in  the  career  of  the  institution,  and  in  every 
change  and  circumstance  he  was  found  equal  to  the  demand. 

But  while  Cardinal  Gibbons  thus  rendered  invaluable  serv- 
ice from  the  beginning  in  every  juncture,  never  in  its  history 


Cardinal  Gibbons  Memorial  Hall  833 

was  his  indomitable  courage,  the  quality  most  needed  in  every 
vast  undertaking,  so  notably  shown  as  in  the  dark  days  of  its 
greatest  trial.  For  trials  it  has  had  in  common  with  all  great 
things  begun  for  God  and  the  good  of  religion.  For  then  even 
those  who  loved  the  University  with  the  love  of  a  strong  man's 
soul  lost  heart  and  hope,  felt  in  all  sincerity  that  the  work 
had  been  premature  and  that  this  trial  was  the  extremest  test 
under  which  it  must  go  down,  to  await  other  times  and  other 
men  in  generations  to  come.  And  these  did  not  even  hesitate 
to  advise  that  the  enterprise  be  abandoned.  Then  it  was  that 
he  whom  we  delight  to  honor  by  these  walls  proved  the  bul- 
wark of  the  people.  "Never,"  he  said,  "while  I  have  power  to 
wield  a  pen  in  appeal  or  lift  a  voice  in  pleading,  shall  this  work 
of  religion  stop.    God  wills  it;  the  work  must  go  on." 

And  he  triumphed,  aye,  almost  alone.  Yes,  in  that  crucial 
time  he  might  be  said  to  have  tread  the  winepress  alone.  And 
today  is  laid  upon  his  venerable  brow  the  crown  which  is  the 
fruit  of  this  courage  of  the  Cross. 

If  today  the  Catholic  University  stands  forth  before  the 
world  a  thing  of  beauty  and  of  fairest  promise,  fairer  and  more 
prosperous  than  at  any  time  in  its  history,  no  longer  a  source 
of  painful  anxiety,  not  only  for  its  future  but  for  its  very  ex- 
istence, it  is,  under  God,  wholly  due  to  the  indomitable  labor 
of  his  Eminence  Cardinal  Gibbons. 

It  is  said,  "Put  not  your  trust  in  princes."  In  this  our 
prince  of  the  Church  we  have  trusted,  and  we  have  not  been 
confounded.  His  princedom  is  not  of  this  world.  He  worked 
and  prayed  and  hoped  in  the  Lord  and  has  not  been  disap- 
pointed. 

These  things,  too,  he  has  done  for  the  University  not  only 
while  he  was  laboring  in  his  own  diocese,  but  while  his  in- 
fluence was  being  cast  in  favor  of  every  good  and  patriotic 
cause  throughout  the  length  and  breadth  of  the  land.  And  with 
it  all  he  seems  to  renew  his  youth,  like  the  eagle.  The  winter 
of  discontent  seems  never  to  have  dawned  for  him,  but  rather 
does  he  seem  to  enjoy  a  perpetual  Indian  summer.     Long  be 

it  so. 

Your  Eminence,  may  you  see  the  years  of  Leo,  your  great 
friend  whose  noble  purpose  in  founding  this  University  you 
have  so  zealously  and  so  successfully  striven  to  realize,  and 


834  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

may  the  abiding  hope  of  the  Apostle  of  the  Gentiles  be  yours, 
that  through  all  the  vicissitudes  of  effort  and  success,  of  solici- 
tude and  of  joy,  you  may  say  with  him :  "As  to  the  rest,  there 
is  laid  up  for  me  a  crown  of  justice,  which  the  Lord,  the  just 
judge,  will  render  to  me  in  that  day." 

The  Archbishop  was  followed  by  Eev.  Dr.  Charles  F. 
Aiken  of  the  Faculty  of  the  Sacred  Sciences,  who  spoke 
as  follows : 

DR.    AIKEN^S    ADDRESS. 

Your  Eminence : 

It  is  with  mingled  feelings  of  pride  and  gratitude  that  we 
greet  you  here  today.  We,  members  of  the  Catholic  University 
of  America,  esteem  it  an  honor  to  add  our  tribute  of  hearty 
congratulation  to  the  many  expressions  of  good-will  that  your 
jubilee  has  called  forth.  To  have  lived  a  faithful  priest  of  God 
for  half  a  century,  bearing  as  time  went  on  the  accumulating 
honors  and  responsibilities  of  bishop,  archbishop,  and  cardinal, 
and  giving  ample  proof  that  each  successive  dignity  had  been 
deservedly  bestowed,  all  this,  surely,  is  a  sign  of  greatness  and 
a  cause  of  just  pride  to  every  Catholic  heart.  What  a  beautiful 
and  inspiring  example  is  not  a  life  like  yours,  consecrated  to  the 
spiritual  uplift  of  your  fellow-men  and  rich  in  good  deeds! 
You  "have  taught  many  and  have  strengthened  weary  hands," 
and  glorious  is  the  promised  reward,  for  "they  that  instruct 
many  unto  justice  shall  shine  as  stars  for  all  eternity."  In 
your  long  life  of  unbroken  devotion  to  the  priestly  ideal  set 
forth  by  Christ,  one  may  learn  many  a  useful  lesson, — that  there 
is  nothing  nobler  than  a  life  of  generous  activity  in  the  service 
of  God  and  one's  fellow-men ;  that  true  devotion  to  the  Church 
does  but  foster  loyalty  to  a  State  like  ours;  that  dignity  of 
office  need  not  exclude  simplicity  of  manner ;  that  the  authority 
of  the  priesthood  shows  grandest  when  exercised  with  kindness 
and  fatherly  affection ;  that  the  influence  of  the  church  leader 
on  his  generation  is  enlarged  beyond  measure  by  a  sympathetic 
interest  in  the  great  social  problems  that  are  pressing  for  solu- 
tion. 

In  length  of  service  you  stand  today  the  dean  of  the  bishops 
and  archbishops  of  this  country.  Yet,  despite  your  long  span 
of  life,  we  would  not  call  you  old.  There  is  a  pathos  in  a  busy, 


Caedinal  Gibbons  Memorial  Hall  835 

useful  life  that  runs  out  into  a  sterile  old  age,  indifferent  to  the 
urgent  calls  of  the  present,  ever  gazing  with  vacant  stare  into 
the  dim  past.  Beautiful,  on  the  other  hand,  is  an  age  like  yours, 
advanced  in  years,  but  still  active  and  fruitful,  giving  to  your 
youthful  contemporaries  a  high  example  of  untiring  industry 
and  of  keen  interest  in  the  rising  questions  of  the  day.  Old  age 
like  this  is  something  precious.  It  is  one  of  the  brightest  orna- 
ments that  can  grace  a  man.  It  is  the  nearest  approach  to 
perpetual  youth. 

While  we  congratulate  you  on  having  attained  so  happily  the 
jubilee  of  your  priesthood  and  the  twenty-fifth  anniversary  of 
your  elevation  to  the  office  of  cardinal,  we  are  glad,  as  members 
of  the  University,  to  take  this  occasion  to  express  to  you  our 
feelings  of  profound  gratitude.  The  laying  of  the  cornerstone 
of  this  handsome  building  does  but  call  attention  to  an  act  of 
beneficence  on  your  part  as  gracious  as  it  is  far  reaching  in  its 
benign  influence.  Through  a  singular  love  of  the  University, 
over  which  you  have  exercised  the  office  of  Chancellor  from  the 
beginning,  and  for  which  you  have  made  many  a  generous  sacri- 
fice in  the  past,  you  have  ordained  that  the  visible  token  of 
esteem,  with  which  a  host  of  admirers  throughout  the  land  wish 
to  mark  your  jubilee,  should  take  the  form  of  a  hall  of  study, 
with  the  view  to  promote  the  efficiency  of  this  noble  seat  of 
learning.  We  deeply  appreciate  this  generous  act  of  faith  in 
the  Catholic  University  of  America.  The  Gibbons  Memorial 
Hall,  in  the  shadow  of  whose  ornate  walls  we  are  gathered  to- 
day, will  tell  to  coming  generations  of  the  large-heartedness  of 
the  prelate  whose  name  it  bears,  who,  unmindful  of  self,  turned 
a  gift  from  the  people  into  a  perennial  source  of  usefulness  in 
the  cause  of  higher  Christian  education,  verifying  the  words  of 
the  great  Master  he  served  so  well,  "it  is  more  blessed  to  give 
than  to  receive." 

The  third  speaker  was  Dr.  Daniel  W.  Shea,  Dean  of 
the  Faculty  of  Sciences. 

DR.  shea's  address. 

Your  Eminence: 

Permit  me,  in  the  name  of  the  lay  faculties  of  the  University, 
to  give,  in  a  few  words,  expression  to  thoughts  which  the  beau- 


836  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

tiful  and  noble  significance  of  today's  celebration  awakens. 

In  the  development  of  mankind,  it  has  been  permitted  to  but 
few  men  that  their  names  should  mark  both  the  founding  and 
the  splendid  growth  of  a  great  undertaking.  Your  Eminence  be- 
longs to  those  few.  And  more  fortunate  than  most  of  them, 
Your  Eminence  still  lives,  in  the  fulness  of  strength,  to  see  the 
fruits  of  your  work  before  you  in  this  large  body  of  professors 
and  students,  in  these  many  costly  buildings,  large  libraries  of 
rare  volumes  and  spacious  laboratories  full  of  modern  appli- 
ances. Well  may  Your  Eminence  be  elated  that  today  there 
is  united  with  the  deeply  felt  recognition  of  educators  in  all 
parts  of  this  country  the  thankfulness  of  hundreds  of  young 
men  who  have  passed  out  from  these  portals  with  your  approval 
upon  them. 

As  was  most  fitting.  Your  Eminence  and  those  associated 
with  you  began  the  University  with  the  founding  of  a  School 
of  Sacred  Theology,  for  the  education  of  priests  is  the  highest 
education,  since  the  ideal  of  the  Christian  priest  is  the  most 
exalted,  his  vocation  the  most  sublime,  his  office  the  most  holy, 
his  duties  the  most  spiritual  and  his  mission  the  most  important 
and  most  sacred  thing  which  can  be  assigned  to  a  human  being. 

But  the  conquests  of  the  mind  in  other  realms  of  learning 
had  produced  a  world-wide  ferment  of  thought,  an  intellectual 
activity  without  a  parallel  in  the  world's  history ;  they  had  in- 
creased the  power  of  man  to  an  almost  incredible  degree,  had 
given  him  control  of  earth  and  seas,  had  placed  within  his 
grasp  undreamed  of  forces,  had  opened  to  his  view  unsuspected 
mysteries,  had  placed  him  on  a  new  earth  and  under  new  heav- 
ens, and  thrown  light  never  seen  before  upon  the  history  of  his 
race.  As  a  part  of  this  development  new  questions  had  arisen, 
new  theories  had  been  broached.  For  the  study  of  these,  for  the 
making  of  new  conquests,  education  was  needed  that  would  en- 
large the  intellect  in  new  directions,  and  strengthen  its  facul- 
ties in  new  ways,  so  as  to  enable  it  to  take  connected  views  of 
new  things  and  their  relations,  and  to  see  clear  amid  the 
mazes  of  human  errors  and  through  the  mists  of  human  passion. 

In  order  that  the  University  might  have  its  share  in  the  im- 
parting of  this  education,  in  the  new  conquest  in  many  depart- 


Cardinal  Gibbons  Memorial  Hall  837 

ments  of  learning,  in  the  solution  of  innumerable  problems,  and 
in  the  building  up  of  new  theories.  Your  Eminence  devoted 
great  energy  to  the  fuller  development  of  the  University  in 
founding  the  lay  faculties,  although  the  heavy  duties  of  your 
high  ecclesiastical  office  taxed  your  strength  already  nearly  to 
the  utmost  with  spiritual  and  intellectual  activities. 

With  joyful  expectation,  the  lay  faculties  have  looked  for- 
ward to  this  day  as  a  particularly  fitting  time  to  pay  you 
homage,  for  none  know  better  than  they  how  much  Your  Em- 
inence has  sacrificed  for  them,  and  how  lively  and  how  constant 
has  been  your  interest  in  them,  and  how  much  you  have  had  at 
heart  that  they  shoud  have  a  very  large  share  in  the  education 
of  the  youth  of  America,  and  in  the  widening  of  the  yet  narrow 
boundaries  of  human  knowledge.  They  know  with  what  clear- 
ness of  spirit  you  have  penetrated  into  all  details  and  with  what 
nobility  of  sentiment  you  have  accomplished  all  the  affairs  of 
the  University,  with  what  fortitude  you  have  met  misfortunes 
and  with  how  great  wisdom  you  have  overcome  them.  And  in 
the  darkest  days  of  the  University,  when  it  seemed  that  the 
work  of  the  lay  faculties  must  be  ended,  we  know  with  what 
correctness  of  thought,  with  what  openness  of  mind,  with  what 
flexibility  of  view,  you  took  up  against  almost  insurmountable 
opposition,  the  consideration  and  the  formulation  of  plans  that 
would  forever  guarantee  the  integrity  of  all  the  existing  lay 
faculties,  and  make  ready  the  way  for  new  ones. 

The  world-wide  and  respectful  recognition  which  the  work  of 
these  lay  faculties  has  received,  indicates  that  their  activities 
have  not  been  without  large  success,  and,  under  the  stimulus 
of  your  cultivated  intellect,  your  rich  imagination,  your  elo- 
quent expression,  these  faculties  will  continue  to  strive  for  the 
attainment  of  still  greater  successes  in  the  acquisition  of  knowl- 
edge, in  the  imparting  of  knowledge,  even  though  it  may  not 
be  a  means  to  wealth,  or  power,  or  any  other  common  aim  of 
life,  to  the  end  that  we  may  have:  judicious  lawyers  of  wide 
mental  culture  and  superior  strength  of  character;  men  of  let- 
ters who  will  produce  literature  that  will  elevate  and  refine  the 
spirit  of  the  whole  people;  philosophers  with  clear,  calm,  ac- 
curate comprehension  of  all  things  so  far  as  the  finite  mind  can 


838  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

embrace  them;  scientists  who  will  regard  the  mind  as  the  or- 
gan of  truth,  and  train  it  for  its  own  sake  without  reference  to 
the  exercise  of  a  profession ;  engineers  who  will  serve  the  high- 
est purposes  of  the  nation  in  the  development  of  its  vast  natural 
resources.  They  will  progress  with  religious  zeal,  high  courage 
and  strong  endeavor,  and  imitating  Columbus,  who  wrote  in 
his  journal  day  after  day,  those  simple,  but  sublime  words, 
"sailed  westward  today  which  is  my  course,"  they  will  write  in 
their  faculty  records  day  after  day,  "progressed  knowledge- 
ward  today  which  is  our  course,"  and  like  him  give  new  knowl- 
edge to  the  world,  and  enlarge  the  boundaries  of  the  scope  of 
earthly  life. 

It  is  of  great  interest  to  note  that  the  inception  of  the  Uni- 
versity was  almost  coincident  with  the  beginning  of  your  priest- 
ly life,  for  it  was  in  the  Second  Plenary  Council  of  Baltimore 
that  the  establishment  of  the  University  received  its  first  con- 
sideration. It  is  also  of  great  interest  to  note  that  the  actual 
establishment  of  the  University  was  almost  coincident  with  the 
beginning  of  your  Cardinalate,  so  that  your  life  as  priest  and 
as  cardinal  has  been  closely  interwoven  with  that  of  the  Uni- 
versity, in  the  first  part  in  the  consideration  of  the  needs  and 
the  possibilities  of  a  university,  in  the  second  part,  in  the  ac- 
tual building  of  the  University.  Thus  the  jubilees  which  Your 
Eminence  is  about  to  celebrate  are,  in  some  measure,  also  jubi- 
lees of  the  University. 

Our  warmest  thanks  and  the  thanks  of  mankind  are  due  you 
for  the  devotion  which  you  have  given  in  founding  these  lay 
faculties  deep  and  firm.  The  latest  evidence  of  that  devotion 
we  have  in  this  splendid  new  hall  for  lay  students  of  which  the 
cornerstone  has  been  laid  today. 

Our  warmest  wishes  go  with  you  into  the  new  half  century 
of  your  life  as  priest  so  rich  already  in  great  spiritual  and  in- 
tellectual accomplishments,  into  the  new  quarter  century  of 
your  Cardinalate. 

May  many  years  be  granted  to  you  of  spiritual  and  bodily 
freshness  and  vigor,  so  that  Your  Eminence  may  continue  to 
be  our  guiding  light  in  our  efforts  to  attain  the  highest  ideals 
of  mankind. 


Cakdinal  Gibbons  Memobial  Hall  839 

In  reply  to  these  words  of  congratulation,  His  Emi- 
nence expressed  Ms  heartfelt  thanks,  his  joy  in  the  pro- 
gress of  the  University  and  his  confidence  in  its  future. 
Continuing  he  said: 


I  cannot  but  recall  today  the  first  occasion  on  which  a  cere- 
mony of  this  sort  was  performed  in  these  grounds — when  the 
cornerstone  of  the  first  building  was  laid  as  the  rain  fell  in 
torrents  from  a  sky  which  gave  no  promise  of  sunshine  and  the 
earth  itself  offered  no  suggestion  of  the  edifices  that  now  meet 
our  view.  What  a  pleasure  by  contrast  it  is  to  stand  here  this 
afternoon,  for  winter  is  now  past,  the  rain  is  over  and  gone. 
Well  may  we  exclaim:  "Now  is  the  winter  of  our  discontent 
made  glorious  summer."  The  University,  indeed,  has  had  its 
days  of  wintry  gloom,  when  misfortunes  fell  upon  it  fast  and 
thick.  Yet  Almighty  God  has  been  pleased  to  preserve  it 
through  all  adversity  and  even  has  turned  to  its  advantage  the 
evils  which  befell  and  the  disasters  which  threatened  it.  Under 
the  divine  blessing  the  University  now  looks  with  courage  and 
even  with  enthusiasm  to  the  coming  years,  to  the  larger  work 
that  awaits  it.  Its  inner  life  has  been  strengthened,  its  de- 
partments have  multiplied,  its  faculties  have  grown  in  num- 
bers and  efficiency.  It  is  even  now  under  the  happy  necessity 
of  providing  a  home  for  the  students  who,  year  by  year,  be- 
come more  numerous.  And  I  trust  that  this  Hall  may  be  fol- 
lowed in  due  time  by  other  buildings  to  meet  the  demands 
created  by  the  University's  growth. 

As  the  prosperity  of  the  University,  since  the  day  of  its  foun- 
dation, has  ever  been  uppermost  in  my  thought  and  foremost 
in  my  endeavor,  I  rejoice  exceedingly  in  its  present  good  for- 
tune and  in  its  splendid  prospect.  I  am  in  particular  pleased 
to  note  that  its  efforts  in  behalf  of  our  Catholic  people,  in  be- 
half of  our  lay  students,  are  winning  appreciation;  and  I 
sincerely  hope  that  we  may  soon  be  in  a  position  to  extend  the 
facilities  of  the  University  to  a  much  larger  number. 

But  our  first  care  must  be  to  complete  this  Hall  which  al- 
ready represents  so  much  generosity  and  good-will  on  the  part 


840  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

of  the  Catholics  of  this  country.  We  owe  it  to  them  to  make 
this  a  perfect  work,  a  home  in  which  our  students  may  pursue, 
in  safety  and  comfort,  the  courses  of  study  for  which  their 
parents  have  sent  them  to  the  University.  For  their  sake  as 
well  as  for  the  sake  of  the  University,  I  earnestly  trust  that  all 
who  hear  me  now  or  to  whom  my  words  may  come,  will  do 
whatever  they  can  towards  completing  this  structure  and 
thereby  extending  to  greater  numbers  of  our  young  men  the 
benefits  of  Catholic  education.  In  my  own  name  and  in  the 
name  of  the  Trustees,  I  desire  again  to  thank  all  who  have  had 
a  share  in  this  noble  undertaking  and  have  afforded  us  so  ma  ny 
reasons  for  pressing  forward  in  our  efforts  for  the  cause  of 
God  and  His  Church. 


DISCUSSION. 

TEACHING  THE  CHILD  TO  SPELL. 

Should  a  spelling-hook  he  used;  and  if  so,  in  what  grades? 
Should  spelling  he  taught  hy  the  oral  or  hy  the  writ- 
ten method  or  hy  hothf  What  is  the  cause  of  the 
had  spelling  which  is  so  prevalent  among  our  school 
children? 

The  above  are  typical  of  a  multitude  of  questions  con- 
cerning the  method  of  teaching  spelling  which  have  reach- 
ed me  during  the  past  year.  Brief  answers  might  readily 
be  made  to  each  of  these  questions,  but  the  matter  is  of 
such  importance  that  a  somewhat  fuller  development 
seems  advisable. 

We  teach  children  to  spell  in  order  that  they  may  be 
able  to  write  correctly.  Oral  spelling  has  no  real  value 
apart  from  the  aid  which  it  may  lend  to  correct  writing, 
and  hence  at  first  sight  it  would  seem  to  be  difficult  to 
justify  it,  since  it  is  a  roundabout  way  of  accomplishing 
the  end  which  we  have  in  view.  However,  the  process  of 
learning  to  spell  is  not  as  simple  as  this  might  seem  to 
indicate. 

When  the  child  of  six  enters  school  he  usually  possesses 
a  large  spoken  vocabulary  which  is  more  or  less  accu- 
rately developed  in  accordance  with  the  language  spoken 
in  his  home  environment,  whereas  he  seldom  possesses 
any  written  language.  In  other  words,  his  center  of  hear- 
ing in  the  temporal  lobe  of  the  brain  has  been  enriched  by 
a  large  number  of  well  developed  word  memories  which 
function  in  controlling  his  organs  of  speech  and  in  lead- 
ing him  into  an  understanding  of  what  the  people  around 
him  are  thinking  and  saying.  The  school  undertakes  to 
develop  similar  word  memories  in  the  visual  area  of  the 


842  The  Catholic  Educational,  Eeview 

occipital  lobe  and  the  practical  question  which  confronts 
the  teacher  in  the  primary  grades  is  how  to  proceed  in 
this  new  line  of  brain  development.  Shall  she  follow  the 
lines  in  the  development  of  the  visual  area  which  have 
been  followed  with  such  success  in  the  development  of  the 
auditory  area?  That  is,  shall  the  child  be  taught  the 
meaning  of  the  written  word  from  its  relationship  to  the 
thing  signified  and  ignore  for  the  time  being  the  existence 
of  the  auditory  word-memories  which  the  child  already 
possesses?  Or  shall  she  proceed  from  the  oral  vocabu- 
lary to  build  up  the  relationships  between  the  oral  and  the 
visual  words,  translating  the  one  into  the  other,  and  rest- 
ing content  with  this  indirect  connection  between  the 
written  word  and  the  concept  for  which  it  stands?  Or 
shall  both  methods  be  employed  simultaneously? 

This  is  merely  stating  our  questions  in  psychological 
terminology ;  but  this  statement  is  valuable  to  the  teacher 
because  it  reveals  to  some  extent  the  physiological  basis 
of  the  process  involved  in  learning  to  spell  and  at  the  same 
time  it  seems  to  point  the  way  to  a  satisfactory  answer  to 
many  questions  which  are  continually  arising  concerning 
the  work  of  teaching  spelling. 

One  would  expect  that  better  immediate  results  might 
be  looked  for  from  the  oral  method,  in  so  far  as  it  borrows 
the  large  oral  vocabulary  which  the  child  possesses  for  the 
foundation  of  written  language;  but,  on  the  other  hand, 
such  a  procedure  might  be  expected  to  yield  very  poor 
final  results  since  the  foundation  laid  is  not  strong  or 
abiding  and,  above  all,  since  it  is  not  direct.  If  the  teacher 
has  no  other  interest  in  the  matter  than  to  exhibit  at  the 
end  of  the  year  the  number  of  words  which  the  children 
are  able  to  spell  correctly,  she  will  naturally  turn  to  the 
oral  method  as  the  sole  one  to  be  employed  or  at  least  as 
a  valuable  auxiliary.  Whether  or  not  such  a  procedure 
would  result  in  a  permanent  impairment  of  the  future 
man's  power  to  clearly  and  easily  grasp  the  thoughts  ly- 


Discussion  843 

ing  back  of  the  printed  page,  does  not  concern  such  a 
teacher. 

On  the  other  hand,  where  the  real  interests  of  the  child 
control  the  work  of  education,  the  axiom  is  likely  to  be 
festina  lente.  Put  in  secure  foundations,  use  only  such 
methods  as  will  tend  to  secure  the  best  final  results.  The 
teacher  who  takes  this  view  of  the  matter  will  be  likely 
to  lay  chief  emphasis  on  the  visual  method  of  teaching 
spelling  and  to  use  the  oral  method,  if  at  all,  in  a  second- 
ary capacity.  She  will  find  many  reasons  for  pursuing 
this  course  among  the  considerations  which  make  for  the 
context  method  of  reading. 

Our  aim  in  teaching  the  child  to  read  should  be  to  en- 
able the  man  to  think  clearly  and  connectedly  the  thoughts 
presented  by  the  written  page.  The  written  words  serve 
their  real  function  when  they  call  up  into  the  focus  of 
consciousness  the  chain  of  thought  while  they  themselves 
remain  in  the  indirect  field  of  vision.  The  less  conscious 
we  are  of  the  word  and  the  more  vividly  conscious  of  the 
thing  the  better.  Above  all,  the  relationship  of  thought 
to  thought,  in  which  the  processes  of  judgment  and  rea- 
son consist,  must  not  be  enfeebled  or  obscured  by  the  in- 
trusion upon  the  field  of  mental  vision  of  resemblances 
and  relationships  between  the  groups  of  words  used  as  a 
means  for  bringing  the  thought  complexes  into  conscious- 
ness. It  is  considerations  such  as  these  which  lead  to  a 
realization  of  the  incalculable  injury  which  is  being  done 
to  the  minds  of  our  children  by  the  abuse  of  phonic  meth- 
ods, and  whenever  the  phonic  method  is  used  to  facilitate 
the  child's  finding  or  calling  new  words  it  is  an  abuse. 
The  phonic  method  has  its  real  value  in  connection  with 
the  speech  center;  its  function  is  to  perfect  pronunciation 
and  it  should  not  be  allowed  to  intrude  itself  into  the 
process  of  developing  in  the  brain  of  the  child  visual  im- 
ages of  words.  It  will  readily  be  understood  that  a  sim- 
ilar objection  may  be  urged  against  the  oral  method  of 


844  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

teaching  spelling.  In  so  far  as  the  oral  method  may  aid 
in  pronunciation  and  syllabification  it  is  valuable,  but 
these  are  secondary  considerations  in  view  of  the  main 
end  to  be  attained  in  teaching  spelling,  which  is  correct 
writing,  a  process  which  depends  mainly  upon  the  clear- 
ness of  the  visual  word  image  and  associated  muscle 
memories. 

The  processes  involved  in  reading,  writing  and  spell- 
ing are  most  intimately  related  and  our  methods  of  de- 
veloping and  perfecting  them  should  also  be  closely  re- 
lated. The  most  important  part  of  the  work  consists  in 
developing  in  the  child's  mind  a  clear,  strong  image  of 
the  thing  signified  and  an  adequate  word  image  which, 
in  all  the  subsequent  work  of  the  mind,  may  serve  as  a 
means  of  calling  up  the  image  of  the  thing,  while  the  word 
image  itself  remains  subconscious. 

Four  distinct  elements  are  involved  in  this  process: 
1.  The  development  of  a  thought  or  of  a  mental  image  of 
some  objective  reality.  2.  The  development  in  the  visual 
area  of  a  written  word  which  has  been  adopted  as  a  sym- 
bol of  the  thought  in  question.  3.  The  linking  together 
of  these  two  images.  4.  The  relative  strength  of  the  two 
images  so  as  to  secure  the  easy  possession  of  the  focus  of 
consciousness  by  the  thought  and  the  automatic  and  sub- 
conscious functioning  of  the  word-picture. 

If  we  are  to  succeed  in  the  work  here  outlined,  we  must 
begin  with  the  development  of  the  thought  and  when  this 
is  strong  and  clear  in  the  mind  of  the  child,  we  should 
develop  the  word  and  link  it  to  the  thought.  In  each  sub- 
sequent recurrence  of  this  dual  image  the  one  first  de- 
veloped will  tend  to  be  the  stronger  and  accordingly  will 
maintain  its  place  at  the  center  of  the  field  of  vision.  This 
tendency  will  be  further  strengthened  by  the  development 
of  the  relationships  in  the  thought  system.  If,  however, 
this  process  be  reversed  and  the  words  be  developed  be- 
fore the  concepts  for  which  they  stand,  the  words  will 
tend  to  maintain  their  place  at  the  center  of  consciousness 


Discussion  845 

and  to  banish  into  obscurity  the  thought  signified,  and 
this  tendency  will  be  further  strengthened  by  the  develop- 
ment of  the  system  of  word  relationships,  such  as  that  in- 
volved in  current  phonic  methods.  The  net  result  will  be 
a  mind  dominated  by  words  and  word  relationships  and 
yet  starved  in  the  matter  of  real  mental  food.  From  this 
it  may  also  be  inferred  that  the  practice  of  teaching  chil- 
dren to  spell  words  the  meanings  of  which  are  unknown 
to  them  must  lead  to  pernicious  results  and  this  inference 
is  abundantly  justified  by  experience. 

It  is  considerations  such  as  these  which  have  led  to  the 
abandonment  of  the  formal  spelling-book,  at  least  in  the 
elementary  grades.  It  may  be  laid  down  as  a  safe  rule 
that  the  child  should  never  be  called  upon  to  spell  a  word 
until  its  meaning  is  vividly  present  to  him.  In  the  early 
part  of  the  process  the  thought  should  be  emphasized  and 
the  word  must  not  be  adverted  to  unnecessarily  until  such 
time  as  the  thought  image  is  secure  in  its  possession  of 
the  focus  of  consciousness.  Then,  and  not  until  then, 
should  the  child  ^s  attention  be  directed  to  the  form  of  the 
word,  to  its  correct  pronunciation  and  to  its  accurate 
spelling.  Consequently,  the  spelling  drill  should  follow 
the  reading  lesson;  it  must  not  be  allowed  to  precede  it. 
And  when  I  say  it  must  follow  the  reading  lesson,  I  mean 
that  the  word  must  have  occurred  with  sufficient  fre- 
quency in  the  reading  lesson  in  different  contexts  to  de- 
velop and  perfect  the  meaning  of  the  word  in  the  child's 
consciousness.  After  this  we  may  safely  proceed  with  the 
work  of  developing  the  word  image,  and  in  this  we  need 
spelling  and  phonetic  drills,  but  even  then  spelling  drills 
may  be  given  with  the  greatest  profit  when  the  words  are 
used  in  appropriate  sentences  which  should  be  dictated 
by  the  teacher. 

The  first  lessons  in  spelling,  like  the  first  lessons  in 
reading,  should  be  given  on  the  blackboard.  The  teacher 
should  write  the  utterance  on  the  board  and  demonstrate 


846  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

its  meaning  and  then  the  children  in  turn  should  be  al- 
lowed to  do  the  thing  signified.  When  a  reasonable  num- 
ber of  such  utterances  have  been  developed  in  this  way, 
the  children,  after  doing  the  thing  signified,  should  turn 
their  backs  to  the  blackboard  and  tell  the  class  what  is 
written  upon  it.  Finally,  they  should  be  led  to  reproduce 
the  utterance  in  writing.  In  this  way  the  right  sequence 
is  developed  between  the  thought  and  the  mental  image 
of  its  written  form.  Little  by  little,  words  which  appear 
in  various  utterances  tend  to  isolate  themselves  from  the 
rest  of  the  utterances  in  the  child's  mind  and  thus  he 
gradually  gains  a  consciousness  of  words  as  separate  en- 
tities and  it  is  not  until  then  that  the  drill  in  spelling 
should  begin.  Similarly,  the  written  characters  from  ap- 
pearing in  various  complexes  tend  to  isolate  themselves 
and  then  the  child  should  be  taught  to  name  them  and  to 
learn  his  alphabet  in  its  proper  sequence. 

During  the  first  phase  of  the  child's  work  in  school  no 
book  should  be  placed  in  his  hands.  The  blackboard  and 
the  chart  are  the  proper  media  for  instruction  in  reading, 
writing,  spelling,  drawing,  etc.  There  can  be  no  question 
as  to  the  use  of  a  spelling-book  at  this  stage  of  the  work. 
The  attention  of  the  children  and  all  the  available  energy 
of  the  teacher  will  be  required  at  this  time  for  the  devel- 
opment of  a  limited  written  vocabulary  and  of  a  few  pri- 
mary apperception  masses.  The  words  and  phrases  used 
in  these  elementary  reading  lessons  are  the  only  ones 
which  any  practical  teacher  will  attempt  to  use  in  the  ac- 
companying drills  in  writing  and  spelling.  When  ques- 
tions concerning  the  use  of  a  spelling-book  or  the  oral  and 
written  methods  of  teaching  spelling  are  raised,  reference 
is  usually  had  to  the  later  phases  of  the  work,  that  is, 
from  the  second  grade  onward. 

We  will  take  the  work  of  the  second  grade  as  typical 
of  a  method  of  teaching  spelling  which  should  be  em- 
ployed in  connection  with  the  context  method  of  reading. 


DiscussioK  847 

The  latter  half  of  the  first  year's  work  represents  a  tran- 
sition phase  from  the  blackboard  and  chart  work  as  out- 
lined above  to  the  method  which  we  are  here  discussing. 

Before  taking  up  the  details  of  this  method,  however, 
we  must  invite  the  attention  of  the  reader  to  the  well- 
known  fact  that  children  differ  widely  in  their  power  of 
visualizing.  This  difference  is  due  in  part  to  physiolog- 
ical conditions  which  result  in  varying  rates  of  develop- 
ment in  the  cortical  areas,  particularly  in  the  newest  por- 
tions of  the  brain,  the  temporal  and  the  occipital  lobes, 
which  are  the  centers  of  hearing  and  seeing  respectively. 
This  difference  may  be  traced  to  a  variety  of  causes,  such 
as  heredity,  the  nutritive  and  hygienic  conditions  which 
prevailed  during  infancy,  the  stimulation  of  the  environ- 
ment, previous  training,  etc.  Elsewhere  we  shall  discuss 
the  causes  and  remedies  for  these  conditions.  All  that  it  is 
necessary  to  bear  in  mind  for  our  present  purpose  is  the 
fact  that  whatever  be  the  cause,  the  children  in  the  second 
grade  differ  widely  in  their  power  of  visualizing  the 
words  which  we  wish  to  teach  them  to  read  and  to  spell 
correctly. 

It  might  also  be  well  to  warn  the  teacher  of  the  danger 
and  injustice  which  lie  in  the  habit  of  classifying  poor 
visualizers  with  dull  and  backward  children  and  of  re- 
garding good  visualizers  as  bright  children.  Abundant 
evidence  is  at  hand  to  show  that  children  with  limited 
power  of  visualization  may  have  splendid  powers  in  other 
directions.  When  such  children  are  properly  handled, 
they  frequently  attain  a  very  high  development  not  only 
in  these  other  directions  but  even  in  visualizing  power. 
Many  a  promising  child  has  been  thoroughly  discouraged 
through  the  teacher's  misunderstanding  of  this  subject. 
It  would,  indeed,  be  interesting  to  know  what  proportion 
of  our  laggards  owe  their  unhappy  condition  to  the  un- 
pardonable blundering  of  teachers  in  the  primary  grades 
with  reference  to  this  very  matter. 


848  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

Nowhere  else  does  the  prevalent  procrustean  method 
of  a  rigid  system  of  grading  show  to  poorer  advantage 
than  in  the  primary  grades.  The  children  differ  widely 
from  each  other  on  entering  school.  They  differ  in  age, 
in  heredity,  in  nationality;  they  differ  because  of  the  di 
verse  family  customs  and  the  physical  environment  to 
which  they  were  subjected.  To  put  fifty  of  these  children 
into  a  room  and  treat  them  in  the  selfsame  manner,  in 
the  hope  of  developing  them  normally  along  mental  lines, 
comes  pretty  near  reaching  the  climax  of  absurdity. 

Each  child  should  be  treated  according  to  his  needs. 
But  we  are  told  that  no  teacher  can  spare  the  time  to  deal 
with  each  child  individually  and  hence  that  she  is  com- 
pelled to  assume  in  her  work  what  she  knows  to  be  untrue, 
namely,  that  the  children  are  alike  and  all  need  the  same 
treatment.  Until  this  state  of  affairs  can  be  remedied  all 
talk  of  scientific  methods  in  the  primary  grades  is  illu- 
sory. There  is  a  growing  consciousness  of  the  incongru- 
ity of  the  situation  which  has  led  to  various  attempts  at 
developing  individual  methods.  The  Batavian  method, 
whether  successful  or  not,  is  significant  of  the  dissatis- 
faction with  the  prevalent  methods  of  primary  work. 

If  time  cannot  be  spared  by  the  teacher  to  deal  with 
each  child  according  to  his  individual  needs,  may  it  not 
be  possible  for  her  to  divide  the  class  of  fifty  children  into 
several  groups  on  the  basis  of  their  aptitude  for  the 
Work  at  hand?  If  this  does  not  go  the  whole  length  of  the 
individual  method,  nevertheless  it  will  escape  the  excesses 
of  the  simultaneous  method,  of  which  complaint  is  made. 
The  methods  of  teaching  reading  and  spelling  which  we 
are  here  advocating  aim  at  a  nearer  approach  to  the 
child's  capacity  than  is  possible  in  the  methods  in  current 
use.  They  also  aim  at  utilizing,  as  far  as  possible,  the 
imitative  tendency  and  the  mutual  helpfulness  of  the  chil- 
dren. The  method  of  teaching  reading  was  dealt  with 
elsewhere.  A  brief  outline  of  the  method  of  teaching 
spelling  follows : 


Discussion  849 

the  text-book. 

The  text-book  should  be  constructed  along  the  lines  of 
the  method  to  be  employed  by  the  teacher.  Where  the 
context  method  is  to  be  employed  in  teaching  the  child  to 
read,  continuity  of  thought  should  characterize  the  read- 
ers in  the  elementary  grades.  This  is  necessary  if  the 
thought  development  is  to  dominate  the  accompanying 
word  development.  Moreover,  since  the  thought  more  or 
less  determines  the  language,  it  is  necessary  to  preserve 
continuity  so  that  we  may  constantly  re-employ  the  words 
previously  learned,  with  a  small  percentage  of  new  words, 
which  the  child  will  readily  get  from  the  context.  Where 
the  first  and  second  books  are  made  up  of  selections  deal- 
ing with  isolated  themes,  there  is  both  lack  of  interest 
and  sudden  transition  to  new  vocabularies,  both  of  which 
impede  the  child's  progress.  The  continuous  story  en- 
ables the  child  to  anticipate  what  is  coming  and  thus  min- 
isters to  his  growing  self-reliance,  while  his  thought  and 
his  vocabulary  unfold  naturally  in  accordance  with  the 
laws  of  organic  development. 

The  primary  books  of  the  Catholic  Education  Series 
have  been  written  to  meet  the  demands  of  the  context 
method  of  reading  and  of  the  present  method  of  spelling. 
The  teachers'  manual  of  primary  methods,  which  is  in- 
tended to  accompany  these  readers,  gives  the  word  lists 
for  each  story  in  Eeligion,  First  and  Second  Book  under 
numbers  which  indicate  whether  the  words  in  question 
are  used  in  the  corresponding  story  for  the  first,  second, 
third,  fourth,  fifth,  sixth,  seventh,  eighth,  ninth,  or  tenth 
time.  After  the  word  has  been  used  for  the  tenth  time 
it  ceases  to  be  listed,  as  the  children  are  all  supposed  to 
be  able  to  spell  it  and  pronounce  it  correctly. 

The  teacher  should  write  the  appropriate  numbers 
under  the  corresponding  words  in  her  copy  of  the  reader. 
The  words  which  remain  without  numbers  under  them  are 
such  as  have  been  used  more  than  ten  times :  these  words 


850  The  Catholic  Educational.  Eeview 

should  be  known  by  all  the  children.*  The  words  with 
^'10''  under  them  will  form  suitable  drills  for  the 
poorest  visualizers,  whereas  words  with  5  or  6  under 
them  may  be  found  suitable  for  the  best  visualizers  in^ 
the  room.  But  before  the  teacher  can  proceed  intelli- 
gently with  her  drills,  she  must  classify  her  children  ac- 
cording to  their  various  visualizing  power. 

Classifying  the  Childken.  For  the  purpose  of  illus- 
tration we  shall  suppose  that  the  teacher  is  about  to  take 
over  a  class  towards  the  end  of  the  first  year  or  the  be- 
ginning of  the  second.  If  the  previous  work  has  been 
well  done,  she  will  find  that  all  the  children,  with  the  pos- 
sible exception  of  those  that  are  abnormal  or  atypical, 
are  able  to  write  and  read  correctly  sentences  composed 
of  words  which  have  no  numbers  under  them,  that  is,  of 
words  that  have  been  used  more  than  ten  times  in  the 
preceding  stories. 

The  teacher  should  then  dictate  a  number  of  sentences 
employing  all  the  ^^10'^  words  in  the  reading  lesson,  to- 
gether with  words  used  more  than  ten  times,  and  she 
should  write  ''10^'  opposite  the  names  of  the  children  who 
evince  a  difficulty  in  spelling  or  pronouncing  correctly  any 
of  the  ^^10''  words.  These  children  are  the  poorest 
visualizers  in  the  room.  The  remainder  of  the  children 
should  then  be  required  to  write  sentences  in  which  all  the 
*  ^  9 ' '  words  are  used  together  with  words  used  more  than 
nine  times.  And  children  manifesting  difficulty  in  writing 
and  reading  these  sentences  will  be  indicated  in  the 
register  by  the  ^^9''.  This  process  should  be  re- 
'  peated  with  the  ^^8''  words,  with  the  '^7''  words,  and  so 
on,  until  even  the  best  visualizers  in  the  school  begin  to 
show  difficulty  in  writing  or  pronouncing  the  words. 

Let  us  suppose  that  this  limit  is  reached  in  dealing 
with  the  **5"  words.  This  would  give  us  six  groups 
classified   according  to   the  children's  power  of   spell- 

*The  number  ten  is  chosen  empirically  and  may  be  varied  to  suit 
the  class. 


Discussion  851 

ing  and  pronoimcing  words.  Each  of  these  groups 
will  readily  fall  into  two,  depending  upon  whether  the 
difficulty  appears  m  visualizing  or  in  vocalizing.  For 
the  sake  of  simplicity,  we  shall  at  present  ignore  this  dif- 
ference and  consider  only  the  six  groups  indicated. 

Spelling  Drills.  The  teacher  is  now  in  possession  of 
an  item  of  knowledge  concerning  her  children  which  will 
enable  her  to  proceed  with  some  regard  to  their  varied 
capacities.  After  the  reading  lesson,  the  ^^5''  children 
will  be  drilled  on  ^^5''  words,  both  as  to  pronounciation 
and  as  to  spelling.  The  words,  of  course,  must  always  be 
given  in  sentences  composed  of  words  none  of  which  has 
been  used  less  than  five  times.  The  teacher  will  next 
turn  to  the  *^6''  children  and  drill  them  on  the  ^^6" 
words,  that  is,  on  words  which  have  appeared  for  the 
sixth  time  in  the  context  and  which  have  been  used  for 
one  drill  with  the  number  five  children.  Similarly,  the 
number  seven  children  will  be  called  upon  to  reproduce 
words  which  have  appeared  for  the  seventh  time  in  the 
context  of  the  lesson  and  which  they  have  witnessed  in 
two  word  drills.    And  so  on  down  through  the  class. 

All  the  children  learn  the  same  words;  they  all  make 
an  approximately  equal  effort  in  the  learning,  but  those 
who  need  least  help  get  least  help  and  those  who  need 
most  help  get  most  help.  Each  group  receives  accord- 
ing to  the  measure  of  its  need.  And  since  the  principle 
underlying  the  classification  of  the  children  is  known 
only  to  the  teacher,  the  children  are  unaware  of  the  pres- 
ence in  the  room  of  any  ** bright  children*'  or  of  any  *^dull 
children. ' '  If  the  teacher  finds  from  day  to  day  that  the 
work  is  too  easy  for  a  given  child,  she  moves  it  up  a  num- 
ber; if  she  finds  the  work  too  difficult  for  any  child,  she 
moves  it  down  a  number.  In  fact,  the  teacher  keeps  her 
class  in  tune,  as  a  musician  would  his  instrument,  and  at 
the  end  of  the  year  none  but  really  defective  children  will 
have  failed  to  make  their  grade.  Eetardation  and  elimi- 
nation, the  two-fold  curse  of  the  public  school  system  of 


852  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

this  country,  will  be  practically  unknown  where  the 
scientific  methods  here  outlined  are  employed.  The 
method  of  teaching  spelling  which  we  are  here  advocating 
must  not  be  confounded  with  that  which  a  recent  writer 
on  the  subject  designates  as  the  '^incidental''  method. 

When  the  child  first  meets  a  word,  high  cortical  tension 
in  the  visual  area  is  called  into  play  to  ^x  the  word  in  the 
visual  memory.  At  each  subsequent  recurrence  of  the 
word  a  lessened  attention  and  a  lessened  energy  are  re- 
quired. Finally,  the  process  becomes  automatic  and  the 
nerve  tension  required  may  fall  below  the  threshold  of 
consciousness.  After  this  it  becomes  increasingly  diffi- 
cult to  correct  the  memory-pictures  which  govern  the  pro- 
nunciation and  the  spelling  of  the  word.  It  is  highly  im- 
portant, therefore,  to  perfect  the  memory-images  before 
the  process  becomes  automatic.  If  the  attention  of  the 
child  is  called  to  the  spelling  and  the  pronunciation  of  a 
word  the  first  time  it  occurs,  the  result  is  bad,  because 
the  attention  is  called  to  the  detail  before  the  substance 
of  the  word  has  taken  form  in  the  brain ;  it  would  be  like 
endeavoring  to  paint  a  house  before  the  house  was  built. 
On  the  other  hand,  to  defer  perfecting  the  spelling  and 
pronunciation  of  a  word  until  such  time  as  they  have  be- 
come automatic,  is  to  render  the  task  needlessly  difficult. 
If  a  ^^10"  child  be  exercised  on  a  *'5"  word,  we  sin  in 
the  former  way;  whereas,  if  a  '*5"  child  be  exercised 
on  a  **10"  word,  we  sin  in  the  latter  way.  The  teacher 
must  determine  empirically  the  period  at  which  it  is 
advisable  to  drill  each  child  in  the  spelling  and  pronuncia- 
tion of  the  words  which  he  is  in  the  process  of  mastering. 

If  one  should  desire  to  ascertain  how  unscientific  are 
the  prevalent  methods  employed  in  the  primary  class- 
room, nothing  further  would  be  necessary  than  to  ask  a 
teacher  to  classify  the  children  in  her  room  according  to 
their  visualizing  power,  or  to  point  out  in  the  text  which 
the  children  were  required  to  read  the  words  which  oc- 


Discussion  853 

cur  for  the  first,  second,  third,  or  tenth  time,  or  ask 
her  to  state  how  many  drills  were  had  in  the  class  on  any 
of  these  words.  The  teacher  usually  proceeds  blindly 
and  by  a  hit  or  miss  method  she  calls  upon  a  child  to 
pronounce  or  spell  a  given  word  without  knowing  the 
visualizing  power  of  the  child  or  the  stage  of  development 
which  it  has  reached  in  regard  to  the  word  in  question. 
What  wonder  that  the  results  are  disappointing!  She 
calls  upon  a  child  without  knowing  whether  its  visualiz- 
ing index  is  ^ve  or  ten  and  requires  him  to  spell  a  word 
without  knowing  the  least  whether  it  is  the  fifth  or  the 
twentieth  time  that  the  word  has  occurred  in  the  child's 
work. 

The  new  words  are  sometimes  set  forth  at  the  begin- 
nino:  of  the  lesson  and  the  teacher  endeavors  to  have  the 
children  master  their  spelling  and  pronunciation  before 
they  have  learned  the  meaning,  thus  reversing  the  natural 
order,  and  yet  we  complain  that  our  children  in  the  eighth 
grade  are  unable  to  think,  that  they  are  unable  to  para- 
pharse  a  paragraph,  that  they  are  unable  to  spell  accu- 
rately or  to  read  fluently. 

If  a  spelling-book  be  used,  it  must  be  one  constructed 
out  of  the  words  employed  in  the  child's  reader  and  these 
words  must  be  so  arranged  as  to  permit  the  teacher  to 
give  to  her  children  each  day  the  drills  which  they  require 
in  accordance  with  their  varied  powers  of  visualization. 
Moreover,  as  the  words  should  not  be  given  alone  but  in 
sentences,  it  would  appear  that  the  reader  is  the  proper 
medium  for  the  teaching  of  spelling  in  the  first  and  sec- 
ond grades.  When  we  cease  endeavoring  to  make  the 
children  learn  to  spell  a  great  many  words  which  they 
will  probably  never  use  and  the  meaning  of  which  they 
do  not  know,  we  will  find  the  requisite  time  in  which  to 
teach  them  to  spell  correctly  the  words  which  they  will 
use  in  expressing  their  thoughts  in  writing. 

Thomas  Edwakd  Shields. 


CURRENT  EVENTS 

THE    CATHOLIC    UNIVERSITY    OF    AMERICA 

The  formal  opening  of  the  present  academic  year  at  the 
Catholic  University  took  place  on  Sunday,  Oct.  8.  Solemn 
Mass  of  the  Holy  Ghost  was  celebrated  by  the  Rt.  Rev.  Rector 
in  the  Assembly  Room,  McMahon  Hall,  at  10.30  o'clock.  He 
was  assisted  by  the  Rev.  T.  A.  Ryder,  C.  S.  P.  deacon.  Rev. 
H.  A.  Swift,  C.  S.  P.  subdeacon,  and  Mr.  J.  C.  Allard,  master 
of  ceremonies. 

The  entire  faculty,  dressed  in  academic  robes,  and  the  stu- 
dent body,  now  the  largest  in  the  history  of  the  University, 
attended  the  ceremony.  The  Rt.  Rev.  Rector  made  many  im- 
portant announcements  of  changes  in  the  faculty  for  the  new 
year,  and  afterward  delivered  an  inspiring  address  on  the 
"Academic  Virtues." 

sisters'  college 

The  Sisters'  College  which  opened  on  Oct.  3  was  solemnly 
inaugurated  on  Saturday,  Oct.  7,  by  His  Excellency,  the  Most 
Rev.  Diomede  Falconio,  Apostolic  Delegate.  The  exercises 
took  place  in  St.  Benedict's  Convent,  Brookland,  where  the 
students  of  the  College  were  assembled.  His  Excellency  of- 
fered the  Mass  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  assisted  by  Very  Rev.  Dr. 
Thomas  E.  Shields,  and  Rev.  Dr.  William  Turner  as  deacons. 
The  Rt.  Rev.  Rector  addressed  the  students  and  faculty  on  the 
significance  of  the  occasion,  and  beautifully  depicted  the  fu- 
ture usefulness  of  the  new  college  in  the  cause  of  religion  and 
Catholic  education  in  this  country.  The  choir  of  the  Immacu- 
late Conception  College  rendered  the  music,  and  many  of  the 
Dominican  Fathers  were  present.  The  following  members  of 
the  faculty  of  the  Catholic  University  who  are  now  conduct- 
ing courses  at  the  Sisters'  College  attended  the  ceremony: 
Very  Rev.  Dr.  Edward  A.  Pace,  Very  Rev.  Dr.  Thomas  E. 
Shields,  Dr.  George  M.  Boiling,  Very  Rev.  Dr.  John  D.  Ma- 
guire.  Rev.  Dr.  William  Turner,  Dr.  Aubrey  E.  Landry,  Rev. 
Dr.  Patrick  J.  McCormick,  and  Dr.  Thomas  C.  Carrigan. 


^  Current  Even^Ic^  855 

FIRST   BISHOP   OF   TOLEDO 

The  diocese  of  Toledo  receives  in  its  first  bishop,  Kt.  Rev. 
Joseph  Schrembs,  D.  D.,  an  ardent  promotor  of  Catholic  educa- 
tion. Since  his  first  pastorate  in  West  Bay  City,  Michigan, 
Bishop  Schrembs  has  been  an  energetic  organizer  of  parish 
schools.  In  Grand  Rapids  where  he  was  located  later,  he  ac- 
complished with  the  co-operation  of  the  other  pastors  of  the 
city  the  difficult  task  of  establishing  a  successful  system  of 
central  Catholic  high  schools.  As  chairman  of  the  School 
Board  of  the  diocese  his  interest  never  waned  in  the  larger 
questions  of  diocesan  school  management  and  administration. 
In  recent  years  he  has  represented  the  diocese  of  Grand  Rapids 
at  the  meetings  of  the  Catholic  Educational  Association,  and 
his  addresses  at  these  gatherings,  particularly  in  Detroit  and 
Chicago,  were  notable  for  their  eloquence  and  Catholic  fervor. 
The  church  in  Toledo  may  confidently  expect  great  things 
from  its  new  and  zealous  leader. 

ANNOUNCEMENTS    OF    VILLA    SANCTA    SCHOLASTICA 

The  fall  number  of  the  Villa  Sancta  Scholastica  Quarterly 
announces  that  Sister  Mary  Alexia,  O.  S.  B.,  has  been  chosen 
to  succeed  her  sister,  the  late  Mother  Scholastica  Kerst,  O.  S. 
B.,  as  Mother  Prioress  of  the  Sisters  of  St.  Benedict  whose 
Motherhouse  is  located  at  Duluth,  Minn. 

Many  will  be  interested  to  learn  of  another  important  an- 
nouncement in  the  Quarterly.  "Villa  Sancta  Scholastica  has 
opened  a  college  department  in  order  to  accommodate  itself  to 
the  desires  of  high  school  graduates  wishing  to  pursue  more 
advanced  studies  and,  more  especially,  to  supply  ready  means 
of  higher  education  for  postulants  and  novices  of  the  com- 
munity who  later  may  be  called  upon  to  teach  in  the  Academy 
or  in  the  parochial  grade  and  high  schools.  The  curriculum  of 
studies  in  the  various  courses  has  been  arranged  to  harmonize 
with  similar  courses  found  in  standard  Catholic  colleges.  In 
accordance  with  time-honored  Catholic  educational  ideals,  the 
ancient  classics  are  strongly  emphasized,  as  no  other  study  is 
so  well  adapted  to  give  breadth  of  culture  and  intellectual  de- 
velopment. The  courses  in  Philosophy  and  Religion  are  under 
the  direction  of  our  esteemed  Chaplain,  Rev.  Anselm  Ortmann, 


856  The  Catholic  Educational  Eevibw 

Ph.  D.  Throughout  the  entire  collegiate  course,  Christian 
Doctrine,  Bible  and  Church  History  are  prescribed  for  Cath- 
olic students.  A  course  of  lectures,  on  subjects  mainly  his- 
torical and  literary,  will  supplement  the  regular  class  work  for 
the  year  1911-12.  These  lectures  may  be  attended  by  all  the 
students  of  the  Villa.  The  necessary  steps  are  already  being 
taken  to  have  the  college  department  approved  and  affiliated  to 
the  State  University  and  to  the  Catholic  University  of  Wash- 
ington." 

A   *^^PARBNTAL   SCHOOL^^    IN    WASHINGTON 

A  movement  has  already  been  started  in  Washington,  D.  C, 
for  the  establishment  of  a  "Parental  School"  as  a  part  of  the 
public  school  system,  and  as  a  supplementary  institution  to  the 
ungraded  and  atypical  schools  in  caring  for  wayward  and  ab- 
normal schoolboys.  Mr.  Walter  B.  Patterson,  a  supervising 
principal  of  the  public  schools,  who  has  charge  also  of  the 
ungraded  and  atypical  schools  has  espoused  the  cause  and,  it 
is  said,  has  undertaken  to  report  on  the  proposed  new  school 
to  the  superintendent.  Mr.  Patterson  is  quoted  as  having  said 
in  explanation  of  the  idea:  "The  Tarental  School'  will  be  a 
place  where  we  can  take  boys  that  simply  cannot  get  along  in 
the  regular  schools.  They  will  stay  there  all  the  time,  day  and 
night.  It  is  not  to  be  a  prison.  It  is  a  place  where  a  bad  boy, 
an  unfortunate  boy,  or  a  boy  who  does  not  have  a  chance  to  see 
things  in  the  right  way  can  be  taken.  He  will  stay  there  at 
night  and  Saturdays  and  Sundays. 

"Every  now  and  then  we  run  across  a  bad  case  in  a  boy  who 
has  to  go  to  one  of  our  ungraded  schools  because  he  simply 
cannot  get  along  with  the  teacher.  At  the  ungraded  school  he 
learns  the  lessons  they  teach  there.  He  learns  that,  after  all, 
there  is  some  good  in  going  to  school.  He  begins  to  get  a  little 
ambition,  and  then  Saturday  and  Sunday  he  stays  at  home  with 
an  influence  that  is  so  bad  it  knocks  down  all  the  school  has 
built  up  in  five  days.  There  is  a  school  of  the  kind  we  advocate 
in  Baltimore,  and  it  is  working  wonders.  We  have  accom- 
plished fine  things  in  the  atypical  and  ungraded  schools,  but 
this  parental  school  is  needed,  I  believe." 

Parents  and  educators  will  undoubtedly  be  deeply  interested 
in  this  new  phase  of  public  school  work,  and  Catholics  par- 


CuEBENT  Events  857 

ticularly  will  be  not  a  little  concerned  in  the  conduct  and  op- 
eration of  the  "Parental  School." 

TRINITY    COLLEGE    NOTES 

Trinity  College,  Washington,  D.  C,  again  broke  its  record 
for  registration  this  year,  having  155  students  in  the  four 
regular  classes.  Of  these,  thirty  are  candidates  for  degrees  in 
June.  The  formal  opening  of  the  scholastic  year  took  place 
on  Rosary  Sunday,  October  1,  when  Mass  was  celebrated  by 
the  Rt.  Rev.  Monsignor  Thomas  J.  Shahan,  Rector  of  the  Cath- 
olic University,  who  preached  an  eloquent  sermon  on  "The 
Duties  and  Privileges  of  a  Student  of  Trinity  College."  The 
singing  was  by  the  College  Choir.  The  feast  of  the  Holy  Rosary 
is  further  known  at  Trinity  as  Cap-and-Gown  Sunday,  because 
at  the  Mass  of  that  day  the  Seniors  first  wear  the  academic 
costume.  The  day  is  marked  for  them  by  many  graceful  at- 
tentions from  the  other  classes. 

Trinity  had  the  privilege  of  welcoming  many  of  the  distin- 
guished guests  of  the  Catholic  University  on  the  occasion  of  the 
laying  of  the  cornerstone  of  the  Gibbons'  Memorial  Hall.  On 
October  14  the  Rt.  Rev.  Edward  P.  Allen,  Bishop  of  Mobile, 
Ala.,  said  Mass  for  the  students. 

SOUTHERN   UNIVERSITY   FOR   WOMEN. 

A  movement  has  just  been  launched  in  New  York  City  to 
raise  half  a  million  dollars  to  build  a  national^  monument  in 
Washington  to  the  memory  of  the  northern  women  who  suffered 
during  the  civil  war.  "College  Topics"  of  the  University  of 
Virginia,  commenting  on  this  fact  notes  that  "the  heroism  and 
noble  self-sacrifice  displayed  by  the  women  of  the  South  during 
that  bitter  period  are  still  unperpetuated  in  marble  or  stone. 
A  movement  to  that  end  has  been  proposed,  and  some  of  its 
most  ardent  supporters  are  to  be  found  here  in  Virginia,  but 
so  far  as  we  know  no  official  action,  beyond  the  passing  of  reso- 
lutions favoring  it,  has  ever  been  taken  in  the  matter  by  either 
the  Daughters  or  Sons  of  the  Confederacy  or  any  other  south- 
ern organization. 

"One  of  the  most  enthusiastic  advocates  of  such  a  movement 
is  Don  P.  Halsey  of  Lynchburg,  a  member  of  the  state  senate, 


858  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

at  its  last  session.  His  idea  of  a  fitting  monument  is  that  which 
was  advanced  bj  a  southern  woman  nearly  twenty  years  ago 
at  the  Chicago  World's  Fair.  She  declared  that  it  ought  to 
take  the  form  of  a  great  memorial  university  for  women.  She 
called  attention  to  the  enduring  benefits  that  would  accrue 
from  such  an  institution  as  contrasted  with  the  unsubstantial 
character  of  a  mere  monumental  shaft,  built  of  bronze  or  mar- 
ble, however  high.  Don  P.  Halsey  sees  in  the  plan  to  establish 
a  monument  something  besides  a  memorial;  he  sees  in  it  a 
means  of  averting  the  necessity  of  the  State  founding  a  co- 
ordinate college  for  women  at  this  university  in  order  to  afford 
the  women  of  the  State  equal  opportunity  with  the  men  for 
acquiring  higher  education." 

PUBLIC    LECTURES    AT    THE    CATHOLIC    UNIVERSITY 

The  fall  course  of  public  lectures  at  the  Catholic  University 
was  inaugurated  on  October  19,  when  Professor  P.  J.  Lennox 
of  the  department  of  English  Language  and  Literature,  ad- 
dressed a  large  audience  on  "Addison  and  the  Modern  Essay." 
On  October  26,  Rev.  Dr.  Charles  Warren  Currier  lectured  on 
"Calderon  and  the  Spanish  Drama."  The  course  will  be  con- 
tinued as  follows: 

Nov.  3.— "Beowulf,  the  Anglo-Saxon  Epic."  Mr.  Francis  J. 
Hemeltj  A.  B, 

^OY.  9. — "Marcus  Tullius  Cicero."  Rev.  Dr.  John  Damen 
Maguire. 

Nov.  16.— "Aristophanes  and  Greek  Political  Comedy."  Dr. 
George  Melville  Boiling. 

Nov.  23. — "Eusebius  of  Caesarea,  Father  of  Church  His- 
tory."   Very  Rev.  Dr.  Patrick  J.  Healy. 

Dec.  7. — "St.  Augustine  of  Hippo."  Rev.  Dr.  William 
Turner. 

Dec.  14. — "Pascal  as  a  Christian  Apologist,"  Rev.  Dr. 
George  M.  Sauvage,  C.  S.  C. 

HOLY  CROSS  ACADEMY_,  DUNBARTON 

Although  the  regular  classes  were  resumed  at  Holy  Cross 
Academy  during  the  third  week  in  September,  the  formal  open- 
ing of  this  well-known  Washington  school  did  not  take  place 


CuBKENT  Events  859 

until  Rosary  Sunday.  On  this  beautiful  feast,  His  Excellency, 
Archbishop  Falconio,  the  Apostolic  Delegate,  assisted  by  the 
Very  Rev.  J.  A.  Zahm,  C.  S.  C,  said  Mass  in  the  convent  chapel 
for  the  sisters  and  the  student  body.  Monsignor  Falconio 
preached  a  timely  sermon  that  awakened  a  responsive  chord 
in  the  hearts  of  his  hearers.  He  dwelt  upon  the  value  of  a 
Christian  education — an  education  in  the  true  sense  of  the 
word — one  which  draws  out  the  faculties  of  the  mind  and  soul, 
and  leads  them  to  the  source  of  knowledge — God  himself.  His 
Excellency  also  showed  that  not  great  talents  but  great  in- 
dustry points  the  way  to  success  in  the  intellectual  as  well  as 
in  the  business  world.  After  breakfast  he  held  an  informal 
reception  in  the  library  and  spoke  to  the  teachers  on  some  of 
the  live  issues  of  the  day. 

Through  the  kindness  of  His  Eminence,  Cardinal  Gibbons, 
the  sisters  and  resident  pupils  enjoyed  the  privilege  of  the 
Dominican  Indulgence,  and  hundreds  of  visits  were  made  to 
the  chapel  from  Vespers  on  Saturday  until  Benediction  of  the 
Blessed  Sacrament  closed  the  devotion  on  Sunday  evening. 

Rt.  Rev.  Monsignor  Shahan  of  the  Catholic  University  was 
the  first  visitor  of  the  scholastic  year.  He  ^pent  some  time  with 
the  graduates  and  encouraged  them  in  their  new  duties.  At 
the  close  of  his  inspiring  talk,  they  knelt  for  his  blessing  and 
took  it  as  an  earnest  of  the  year's  success.  The  Class  of  1912 
also  enjoyed  a  lecture  by  Dr.  Zahm  on  the  "Influence  of  Women 
in  Pagan  Greece  and  Christian  Rome."  This  is  the  beginning 
of  a  series  promised  by  the  Rev.  Chaplain. 

On  Columbus  Day  the  seniors  attended  the  laying  of  the 
cornerstone  of  the  Gibbons'  Memorial  Hall.  The  following 
evening  Archbishop  Farley  of  New  York,  Bishop  Maas  of  Cov- 
ington, Ky.,  Monsignor  Shahan,  Doctor  Pace  and  Doctor 
Dougherty  of  the  Catholic  University,  Monsignor  Lewis  of 
New  York,  and  Monsignor  McGolrick  of  Brooklyn,  N.  Y.,  were 
entertained  at  the  Academy.  During  the  past  week  the  pupils' 
Mass  has  been  said  by  Archbishop  Ireland  of  St.  Paul,  Minn., 
and  Bishop  McGolrick  of  Duluth,  Minn.  Among  other  late 
visitors  to  the  school  were  Bishop  Garrigan  of  Sioux  City,  la. 
Mgr.  Lee,  Mgr.  Mackin  and  the  Hon.  Hannis  Taylor  of  Wash- 
ington; Dr.  Kerby,  Dr.  McCormick  and  Dr.  Carrigan  of  the 


860  The  Catholic  Educational.  Eeview 

Catholic  University ;  Dr.  Burns,  C.  S.  C.  of  Holy  Cross  College, 
and  Dr.  McGarry,  C.  S.  C.  of  Notre  Dame  University,  Ind. 

The  death  of  Miss  Edgarina  Hastings,  Class  1904,  leaves  a 
void  in  the  ranks  of  the  Alumnae  that  will  be  hard  to  fill.  A 
pupil  of  Holy  Cross  for  twelve  years,  she  had  endeared  herself 
to  teachers  and  companions  by  her  brilliant  mind,  her  simple 
manners,  and  her  perfect  unselfishness.  On  October  9  the 
funeral  services  were  conducted  by  her  cousin,  the  Rev.  E.  A. 
Hannan,  of  St.  Martin's  Church,  Washington.  At  the  hour  of 
the  services  the  graduates  held  a  memorial  meeting  in  their 
classroom,  after  which  they  gathered  in  the  chapel  where  the 
"Way  of  the  Cross"  was  offered  for  the  repose  of  her  soul.  A 
spray  of  Annunciation  lilies  and  violets  tied  with  lavender  and 
white,  the  school  colors,  was  sent  in  the  name  of  the  Alumnge — 
a  silent  tribute  of  the  love  of  those  who  mourn  for  her  at  Holy 
Cross. 

Patrick  J.  McCormick. 


REVIEWS  AND  NOTICES. 

The  Teacher's  Encyclopaedia.  Edited  by  A.  P.  Laurie,  M.  A., 
D.  So.  In  seven  volumes.  Vol.  I,  pp.  xviii,  234;  Vol.  II, 
pp.  X,  240.    London,  Caxton  Publishing  Co.,  1911. 

As  the  editor  announces  in  the  introduction  to  Vol.  I,  this 
work  is  a  departure  from  the  usual  plan  of  encyclopedia-mak- 
ing. Instead  of  following  the  alphabetical  order,  the  subjects 
are  arranged  in  groups ;  and  the  result  is  a  series  of  essays  or 
monographs  each  treating  some  phase  or  problem  or  move- 
ment in  education.  The  introduction  also  outlines  in  a  general 
way  the  scope  of  the  work,  but  no  complete  list  of  subjects  is 
given  nor  are  the  several  groups  very  clearly  defined.  Once  the 
alphabetical  order  was  abandoned,  it  would  seem  natural  to 
expect  a  systematic  presentation  and  this  would  have  called 
for  at  least  one  article  in  which  the  meaning,  or  meanings,  of 
education  would  be  discussed  and  the  mutual  bearings  of  prin- 
ciples, methods,  history,  curricula,  administration  and  other 
factors  quite  clearly  exhibited.  This  would  have  given  a  sur- 
vey of  the  entire  field  and  might  have  provided  or  at  least  sug- 
gested some  criteria  for  the  reader's  guidance  in  the  study  of 
special  topics.  But  no  such  article  appears  in  either  of  the 
two  volumes  before  us. 

It  is  also  to  be  regretted  that  the  principle  of  classification 
on  which  the  groups  are  built  is  not  more  fully  explained.  As 
it  is,  one  finds  some  difficulty  in  deciding  whether  the  sequence 
of  papers  is  meant  to  be  logical,  psychological  or  pedagogical. 
The  series  in  Vol.  I  includes :  child  psychology ;  moral  instruc- 
tion and  training  in  schools;  the  study  of  the  Bible  in  the 
schools;  general  method;  the  teacher  in  relation  to  school 
methods  and  expedients ;  the  kindergarten ;  the  infant  school ; 
dictation;  on  the  teaching  of  drawing.  Each  of  these  is  im- 
portant and  some  of  the  articles  are  excellent ;  but  the  arrange- 
ment will  hardly  serve  as  a  model  lesson  in  orderly  exposition. 
Vol.  II  deals  with  the  teaching  of  the  several  school  subjects 
and  contains  some  practical  suggestions.  Both  volumes  are 
illustrated  and  a  bibliography  is  added  to  each  article.    Some 


862  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

American  authors  are  mentioned,  but  there  is  not  so  far  any 
contribution  by  an  American  writer. 

Without  examining  any  of  the  articles  in  detail,  one  must 
note  as  significant  the  following  statements  in  the  intro- 
duction : 

"These  two  movements,  then,  the  scientific  and  the  social, 
which  may  be  described  as  the  two  great  ethical  movements  of 
our  time,  are  profoundly  modifying  our  educational  system, 
and  moreover  they  are  so  new  in  their  application  that  there 
is  much  that  is  yet  undecided.  There  are  many  problems  there- 
fore only  in  the  course  of  solution,  and  consequently  we  have 
to  offer  in  these  volumes  not  a  complete  answer  to  many  of 
these  questions,  but,  perhaps  what  is  more  interesting,  the  new 
ideas  in  process  of  formation,  before  they  have  crystallized  in 
final  form.  One  of  the  profoundest  problems  which  is  always 
present  to  those  engaged  in  education  is  how  to  teach  all  that 
the  child  should  know,  and  yet  at  the  same  time  in  no  way  to 
limit  the  child's  initiative  and  freshness  of  mental  develop- 
ment. This  aim  should  always  be  before  the  teacher  in  every 
class,  but  it  reaches  farther  than  the  mere  subjects  of  the 
classroom,  because  when  we  come  to  the  question  of  the  ethical 
and  spiritual  training  of  the  child  we  have  to  ask  ourselves 
whether  it  should  not  be  our  aim  to  produce  a  man  who, 
though  he  has  been  surrounded  by  the  atmosphere  of  all  the 
best  thought  of  the  past,  has  yet  got  a  fresh  mind  to  bring  to 
the  profoundest  problems  of  life.  It  is  this  question  which 
underlies  the  struggle  for  supremacy  over  the  schools  that  is 
going  on  at  present,  and  while  this  struggle  continues  the  dis- 
putants do  not  seem  to  have  time  to  study  the  question  of  how 
religious  training  can  best  be  given  to  the  child.  This  accusa- 
tion cannot,  however,  be  made  against  the  Order  of  Jesuits, 
and  consequently  their  school  system  is  of  the  greatest  interest 
to  all  students  of  education,  because,  whether  we  take  their 
view  of  the  ultiamte  object  to  be  reached  or  not,  we  find  that 
they  have  thoroughly  thought  out  the  problem  of  how  to  pro- 
duce the  result  they  aim  at.  It  is  for  this  reason  that  the 
most  interesting  articles  by  Father  Maher,  on  the  Jesuit  Sys- 
tem of  Education  and  on  Stonyhurst,  have  been  included  in 
the  Encyclopedia." 


Eeviews  and  Notices  863 

• 
Catholics  both  in  England  and  in  America  will  follow  with 
deep  interest  the  movement  that  sets  out  by  recognizing  the 
need  of  moral  education,  though  as  yet  it  has  not,  outside  of 
Catholic  schools,  taken  any  very  definite  direction.  If  the  new 
Encyclopedia,  in  its  latest  volumes,  continues  to  emphasize  this 
most  essential  part  of  all  education,  it  will  certainly  render 
service  to  parents  and  teachers  alike. 

Edward  A.  Pace. 

Lands  of  the  Southern  Cross,  a  Visit  to  South  America,  by 
Rev.  Charles  Warren  Currier,  Ph.  D.,  Washington,  D.  C, 
Spanish- Americap  Publication  Society,  1911,  pp.  401. 

There  is  a  growing  interest  throughout  the  United  States  in 
the  affairs  of  South  America.  The  Bureau  of  American  Re- 
publics in  Washington  has  already  accomplished  much  in  the 
direction  of  establishing  better  trade  relations  with  our  south- 
ern neighbors.  The  cutting  of  the  canal  has  also  had  its  share 
in  directing  public  attention  southward.  To  those  who  were 
in  the  habit  of  thinking  of  South  America  as  semi-barbarous, 
facts  which  have  recently  gained  currency  in  this  country  must 
prove  a  series  of  surprises  and  must  develop  a  desire  for  reliable 
information  concerning  Spanish- America.  The  author  of  the 
present  work  is  eminently  qualified  to  meet  this  demand.  The 
honorable  part  which  he  has  taken  in  previous  congresses  of 
Americanists  established  for  him  an  international  reputa- 
tion. It  was  eminently  fitting,  therefore,  that  the  government 
of  the  United  States  should  have  appointed  him  as  one  of  its 
representatives  to  the  recent  international  congress  of  Ameri- 
canists at  Buenos  Aires,  and  it  was  no  less  fitting  that  he 
should  represent  the  Catholic  University  at  that  meeting  of 
savants. 

Dr.  Currier  has  placed  the  English-speaking  world  under  a 
lasting  debt  of  gratitude  to  him  for  the  splendid  volume  before 
us.  The  title  in  itself  scarcely  prepares  one  for  the  wealth  of 
information  which  the  book  contains.  From  its  pages  the  his- 
torian frequently  speaks,  outlining  in  a  few  brief  paragraphs 
the  salient  features  of  the  history  of  each  country  which  he 
visited.  The  aborigines,  the  early  discoverers,  the  struggles 
for  its  national  life,  the  fauna  and  fiora,  the  commerce  and  in- 


864  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

dustries,  as  well  as  the  manners  and  customs  of  the  present 
population,  are  all  woven  into  a  narrative  that  is  full  of  liter- 
ary charm  and  that  is  kept  from  being  heavy  in  spite  of  its 
wealth  of  fact  by  the  imagination  and  sympathetic  treatment. 
Dr.  Currier's  itinerary  almost  encircles  South  America.  The 
Catholic  reader  will  be  especially  grateful  to  Dr.  Currier  for 
his  sympathetic  and  intelligent  treatment  of  such  topics  as 
"The  Church  in  Argentina,  Education  in  Argentina,  the  Church 
and  Education  in  Chile,"  and  many  other  topics  which  have 
been  habitually  misrepresented  by  writers  who  have  little  or 
no  understanding  of  the  genius  of  the  Latin- American  peoples, 
who  are  building  up  such  a  splendid  civilization  in  South 
America.  "The  Lands  of  the  Southern  Cross"  should  find  a 
very  wide  circulation.  No  intelligent  Catholic  in  the  United 
States  can  afford  to  be  without  it. 

Thomas  Edward  Shields. 

The  Second  Spring,  a  Sermon  by  John  Henry  Newman,  Edited 
with  introduction,  notes  and  exercises  by  Francis  P.  Don-, 
nelly,  S.  J.,  New  York,  Longmans,  Green  and  Co.,  1911, 
vii+97. 

Father  Donnelly,  in  preparing  this  sermon  for  the  English 
classes  in  our  secondary  schools,  has  not  only  rendered  a  serv- 
ice to  the  teachers  of  English,  but  he  has  set  an  example  in  the 
right  direction  which  should  be  imitated.  English  literature 
has  too  long  been  exploited  by  the  enemies  of  the  Church.  It  is 
high  time  that  Catholics  should  search  the  field  for  themselves 
for  material  suited  to  our  classrooms. 

The  New  Hudson  Shakespeare,  Twelfth  Night,  or  What 
You  Will,  inirod'^tion  and  notes  by  Henry  Norman  Hud- 
son, LL.  D.,  edited  and  revised  by  Ebenezer  Charlton 
Black,  LL.  D.  (Glasgow),  Boston,  Ginn  and  Company, 
1911,  pp.  lxil+129. 


The  Catholic 
Educational  Review 


DECEMBER,  1911 


THE  CHEISTIAN  IDEAL  OF  EDUCATION 

The  student  of  the  history  of  education,  if  he  is  to 
derive  profit  from  his  study,  should  not  be  content  with 
ascertaining  the  facts  about  educational  systems,  but 
should  strive  to  separate  from  the  mass  of  historical 
data  the  content,  the  method,  and  the  ideal,  in  each  period 
and  in  each  country  whose  educational  institutions  and 
systems  he  studies.  He  should  devote  special  attention 
to  the  ideal,  which,  he  will  find,  dominates  and  determines 
both  the  content  and  the  method.  And  he  should  not 
hesitate  to  criticise  the  ideal;  he  should  try  to  form  an 
estimate  of  it,  and  compare  it  with  other  ideals  that 
preceded  it  or  followed  it.  The  Catholic  student  is  justi- 
fied in  adopting  the  Christian  ideal  and  using  it  both 
retrospectively  and  prospectively.  That  is,  he  should 
judge  pre-Christian  systems  according  to  the  degree  in 
which  they  approximate  the  Christian  ideal,  or  embody 
one  element  of  it,  and  he  should  estimate  the  different 
educational  systems  of  Christian  times  according  as  they 
deviate  from  the  Christian  ideal  or  exhibit  some  phase  of 
the  historical  development  of  that  ideal.  What,  then,  is 
the  Christian  ideal  of  education  and  how  does  it  stand 
related  to  pre-Christian  ideals? 

In  the  first  place,  pagan  education  never  fully  grasped 
the  principle  that  each  individual  human  being  has  an 
independent  personal  value.  Education  among  savages 
and  primitive  races  subjected  the  individual  to  tribal  cus- 


866  The  Catholic  Educational.  Eeview 

torn.  It  knew  no  educational  principle  except  that  of 
imitation,  and  the  imitation  which  it  recognized  was  of 
the  most  elementary,  static,  unprogressive,  mechanical, 
soulkilling  kind.  Its  model  was  the  adult  member  of  the 
tribe,  and  its  method  aimed  at  the  exact  reproduction  in 
the  young  savage  of  the  manner  and  measure  of  success 
exhibited  by  the  adult.  It  placed  no  premium  on  prog- 
ress, condemning  all  innovations  as  not  only  harmful  but 
in  some  indefinite  way,  unholy.  When  education  aimed 
at  recapitulation,  as  it  did  among  the  Chinese,  the  re- 
capitulation also  was  mechanical,  and  left  no  room  for 
individual  departure  from  the  standard  imposed  by  cus- 
tom or  national  tradition.  The  Hindus  and  the  Egyp- 
tians educated  for  the  caste,  the  fixed  social  or  religious 
determination  of  values.  They  subordinated  the  aspira- 
tions and  needs  of  the  individual  to  the  requirements  of 
the  social  or  religious  institution.  They  took  into  con- 
sideration neither  the  present  constitution,  mental  and 
physical,  of  the  individual,  nor  the  possibilities  that  lay 
before  him  in  the  future.  With  their  attention  fixed 
steadily  on  the  past,  they  strove  to  fit  the  pupil  to  carry 
on  unimpaired,  but  also  without  augment  or  improve- 
ment, the  heritage  of  the  past:  they  did  not  encourage 
him  either  to  add  to  his  inheritance  or  to  improve  his  own 
condition  by  the  acquisition  of  qualities  that  would  make 
him  individually  better  or  happier.  The  Persians  and 
the  Spartans  educated  for  citizenship.  They  broke  to 
some  extent  with  fixed  tradition  and  the  restrictions  of 
the  caste  system.  They  were  consequently  progressive 
along  the  lines  of  progress  which  they  chose.  Our 
criticism  of  their  educational  system  is  that  they  drew 
those  lines  too  closely  around  the  individual.  They  as- 
signed too  narrow  a  scope  to  human  endeavor.  For  man 
is  intended  not  merely  to  be  a  citizen  or  a  soldier.  As 
we  understand  it,  man's  destiny  implies  the  development 
of   factors   spiritual,   morale   intellectual   and   physical 


The  Cheistian  Ideal  of  Education  867 

which  do,  indeed,  make  him  a  good  citizen  and  a  good 
soldier,  but  which  make  him  also  a  good  man,  and  con- 
sequently a  good  citizen  or  a  good  soldier.  The  Greeks 
and  the  Eomans  understood  this.  They  did  not  exclude 
good  citizenship  from  their  educational  ideal.  At  the 
same  time,  they  aimed  higher  than  citizenship  by  educat- 
ing for  human  excellence  according  to  a  purely  human 
standard.  The  Greeks  educated  for  beauty  and  happi- 
ness, the  Romans  for  success  and  effectiveness.  They 
both  included  civic  virtue  and  devotion  to  the  service  of 
the  state  in  their  standard  of  excellence.  Nevertheless,  we 
judge  that  standard  to  be  too  low,  because,  aiming  at 
what  is  purely  natural,  it  was  inevitable  that  they  should 
fall  below  the  standard  of  nature,  like  the  marksman 
who,  aiming  directly  at  the  mark,  hits  below  the  mark, 
owing  to  the  force  of  gravitation.  The  Greeks  and  Ro- 
mans made  education  free,  by  removing  the  limitations 
and  restrictions  of  tribe,  caste  and  national  custom.  But 
they  did  not  make  it  entirely  free.  For,  they  exposed  to 
death,  that  is,  murdered,  weak  and  deformed  children; 
they  slaughtered  the  defenceless  slave  and  captive, 
** butchered  to  make  a  Roman  holiday '';  they  treated 
woman  as  a  chattel;  in  a  word  they  failed  to  recognize 
that  each  and  every  individual,  no  matter  how  apparently 
useless  to  the  state,  has  a  claim  on  society  and  a  right 
to  life  and  happiness. 

This  Christianity  did.  It  taught  from  the  beginning 
that  God  is  Father  of  all  mankind,  that  every  child  bom 
into  the  world  is  impressed  with  the  image  and  likeness 
of  God,  that  human  life  is  a  sacred  thing,  and  that  no 
system  of  education  may  be  tolerated  which  overlooks  or 
forgets  the  infinite  value  of  a  soul,  even  though  it  be  the 
soul  of  a  slave,  an  outcast,  or  a  weak  and  defective  infant. 
Freedom  means  the  recognition  of  the  value  of  the  indi- 
vidual. Greece  introduced  freedom  in  the  political,  the 
intellectual,  the  moral  and  the  esthetic  order.    But  it 


868  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

furnished  no  enduring  foundation  of  freedom.  Chris- 
tianity, by  insisting  on  the  value  of  every  human  soul, 
granted  the  first  magna  charta,  the  first  great  charter 
of  freedom,  and  can  claim  what  no  other  institution  can 
claim,  that  it  first  made  man  truly  free,  with  the  freedom 
of  the  children  of  God.  This,  then,  is  the  first  point  in 
our  description  of  the  Christian  ideal :  Christianity  eman- 
cipated the  individual  from  the  restrictions  of  tribe,  caste, 
or  nation  and  the  limitations  of  imperfect  human  stand- 
ards. 

In  the  next  place,  Christianity,  as  is  well  known,  struck 
at  the  root  of  some  of  the  grossest  evils  of  paganism.  It 
taught  the  sanctity  of  home.  Even  among  the  Romans, 
whose  worship  of  the  household  deities  {lares  et  penates) 
typified  a  hallowed  instinct  of  domestic  ties,  the  home  was 
but  imperfectly  consecrated.  It  was  domiaated  by  the 
irresponsible  power,  the  possible  tyranny,  of  the  father, 
who  ruled  by  virtue  of  the  patria  potestas,  and  could 
rear  his  children  or  discard  them  to  perish  by  starvation, 
as  he  saw  fit.  In  Christian  times  the  power  of  the  head 
of  the  family  has  been  limited  not  only  in  law  but  also  ia 
conscience.  His  authority  is  not  absolute  but  fiduciary.  He 
is  responsible  to  God  for  the  lives  and  souls  of  his  chil- 
dren, and  while  they  are  Lq  their  minority  he  is  bound 
both  by  law  and  by  conscience  to  support  them.  Chris- 
tianity taught  the  sacredness  of  the  marriage  tie.  We 
know  what  the  institution  of  marriage  was  in  imperial 
Rome.  The  satirists  and  the  comic  poets  found  in  the 
frequency  and  facility  of  divorce  a  fruitful  theme  for 
their  jibes,  and  the  moralists  deplored  in  vain  the  promis- 
cuity, for  it  amounted  to  that,  which  had  taken  the  place 
of  the  stern  conjugal  fidelity  of  earlier  days.  Christian- 
ity taught  that  marriage  is  a  sacred  thing,  a  sacrament 
typified  by  no  less  august  a  union  than  that  of  Christ 
with  his  Church.  It  taught,  and  still  teaches,  when,  as 
in  the  Catholic  Church,  it  is  faithful  to  its  traditions, 


The  Christian  Ideal  of  Education  869 

that  the  marriage  tie  is  indissoluble,  and  that  divorce 
is  as  unchristian  as  it  is  opposed  to  the  best  interests 
of  the  state.  Christianity  taught  the  sacredness  of 
child-life.  The  Eomans  had,  indeed,  a  saying,  ''Maxima 
pueris  debetur  reverentia/'  They  meant  that  older  peo- 
ple should  forbear  in  the  presence  of  children,  and  not 
sully  youthful  souls  with  words  and  thoughts  destructive 
of  childlike  innocence.  They  did  not,  however,  value 
the  soul  of  a  child  as  Christianity  has  taught  us  to  do. 
They  were  allowed  by  their  laws  to  sacrifice  the  lives  of 
children  whom  they  considered  defective.  We  believe 
that  every  soul  has  a  priceless  value,  that  every  human 
being  has  a  right  to  the  life  which  God  has  given  him, 
and  that  when  Christ  took  little  children  in  his  arms  and 
blessed  them  He  consecrated  child-life  and  made  it  a 
thing  sacred  and  inviolate. 

One  could  go  farther  in  this  comparison  between  pagan 
and  Christian  ideas.  Enough  has,  however,  been  said  to 
establish  the  point  that  Christianity  brought  a  remedy  for 
some  of  the  grossest  evils  of  paganism,  evils  which  had  a 
direct  influence  on  pagan  ideals  of  education. 

In  the  third  place,  Christianity  taught  in  a  definite 
maimer  that  there  is  a  life  beyond  the  grave,  and  that 
there  are,  consequently,  values  spiritual,  moral  and  in- 
tellectual, which  are  superior  to  merely  temporal  and 
economic  values.  *  ^  What  doth  it  profit  a  man  if  he  gain 
the  whole  world  and  suffer  the  loss  of  his  own  soulT' 
Life  and  its  interests  are  to  be  judged,  human  institutions 
customs  and  observances,  above  all,  education  which  is  a 
preparation  for  life — all  these  are  to  be  judged,  not  by 
the  standard  of  time,  but  by  the  standard  of  eternity. 
The  spiritual  interests  of  man  are  supreme.  Here  we 
have  the  heart,  so  to  speak,  of  the  whole  subject,  the 
dominant  idea  in  Christianity,  by  which  all  pre-Christian 
education  is  judged  and  found  wanting  and  which,  in  the 
various  phases  of  its  historical  development,  is  the  key 


870  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

to  the  imderstandiiig  of  the  history  of  education  in  Chris- 
tian times.  Spiritual  interests  are  supreme.  The  poor, 
ignorant  creature  who,  in  the  midst  of  trials  and  suffer- 
ings, gives  expression  to  the  optimistic  sentiment,  ''What 
does  it  all  matter,  if  one  has  the  grace  of  God, ' '  is  wiser 
than  all  the  sages,  and  unknowingly  sums  up  the  whole 
philosophy  of  Christian  education.  Spiritual  interests 
take  precedence  over  the  physical,  the  intellectual,  and, 
if  a  conflict  were  possible,  even  over  the  moral. 

Here,  however,  a  serious  misunderstanding  is  to  be 
avoided.  A  thoughtful  writer,  comparing  these  modern 
times  with  the  Ages  of  Faith,  characterizes  our  era  as 
dominated  by  ''worldliness''  and  describes  the  Middle 
Ages  as  dominated  by  the  spirit  of  ''otherworldliness,'' 
that  is,  the  spirit  which  puts  the  interests  of  the  next  life 
above  the  interests  of  this.  Otherworldliness,  if  we  are 
to  retain  the  term,  is  not  incompatible  with  the  pursuit 
of  happiness  and  success  in  this  world.  There  are  per- 
sons, some  of  them  men  of  distinction  in  the  realm  of 
scholarship,  who  are  so  given  to  exaggeration  of  state- 
ment that  they  seem  never  to  see  but  one  side  to  any 
question.  They  talk  as  if  faith  were  incompatible  with 
science,  forgetting  that  men  like  Pasteur  managed  to 
reconcile  the  highest  scientific  attainments  with  the  sim- 
plest Catholic  faith.  They  contend  that  the  Church  is 
subversive  of  national  ideals,  in  spite  of  the  facts  in  our 
own  history  and  that  of  other  nations,  which  go  to  show 
that  a  loyal  son  of  the  Catholic  Church  may  serve  his 
country  faithfully  and  even  make  the  patriot's  supreme 
sacrifice  of  offering  up  his  life  in  his  country's  cause. 
They  say  that  a  belief  in  Providence  excludes  effort, 
thrift  and  industry,  overlooking  the  examples  of  Catho- 
lic Belgium,  Catholic  Ehineland  and  Bavaria,  and  our 
own  farming  or  industrial  settlements  of  Catholics,  where 
arduous  labor  and  patient  toil  are  inspired  by  the  belief 
that  God  is  the  giver  of  all  good  gifts.     They  argue  that 


The  Cheistian-  Ideal  of  Education  871 

saintliness  is  incompatible  with  sense,  that  belief  in 
miraculous  healing  eliminates  all  need  of  a  reasonable 
care  of  one 's  health.  All  these  are  misunderstandings  or 
misrepresentations.  Christianity,  while  it  educates  for 
the  life  to  come,  and  makes  spiritual  interests  to  be  su- 
preme, does  not  withdraw  from  the  domain  of  education 
those  things  which  belong  to  culture,  refinement,  happi- 
ness and  success  in  the  realm  of  nature  and  humanity. 
Herbert  Spencer  defined  education  as  ^'Preparation  for 
complete  living.''  The  Christian  educator  accepts  this 
description,  but  insists  that  no  scheme  of  education  is 
complete,  or  prepares  for  '^ complete  living''  unless  it 
prepares  for  the  life  to  come  as  well  as  for  this  life. 
Christianity,  therefore,  does  not  suppress  or  destroy 
what  was  of  value  in  pre-Christian  systems  of  education. 
Whatever  was  good  and  useful  in  the  principle  of  imita- 
tion as  we  find  it  among  savages  is  preserved  and  utilized 
in  a  higher  form  in  Christian  education,  where  the  heroes 
of  Christian  legend  and  story  and  the  sacred  human  na- 
ture of  Christ  Himself  are  set  before  us  as  our  models, 
with  the  infinite  prefection  of  God  as  the  ''one  divine 
event"  towards  which  all  humanity  is  striving.  Educa- 
tion for  caste,  social  order,  national  tradition  and  relig- 
ious custom  had  the  advantage  of  preserving  and  incul- 
cating the  conservative  virtues.  That  advantage  is  not 
discarded  but  retained  in  Christian  education.  Indeed, 
in  the  estimation  of  thoughtful  men  today,  the  greatest 
and  the  most  beneficent  conservative  force  in  the  modern 
world  is  the  Catholic  Church.  Sparta  and  Persia  edu- 
cated for  citizenship.  Christianity,  by  aiming  at  the  for- 
mation of  the  perfect  Christian,  in  whom  honesty,  indus- 
try, thrift,  sobriety  and  unselfish  devotion  to  the  interests 
of  others  are  cardinal  virtues,  lays  the  foundation  of 
perfect  citizenship  and  supplies  the  moral  support  with- 
out which  civil  authority  would  be  futile  and  its  efforts 
for  law  and  order  weak  and  ineffectual.    The  Greeks  and 


872  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Eomans  educated  for  human  excellence.  Christianity 
does  not  neglect,  much  less  condemn,  the  cultivation  of 
the  beautiful  and  the  pursuit  of  success.  There  is  noth- 
ing in  the  Christian  code  to  discourage  young  men,  or 
young  women  either,  from  striving  to  attain  beauty, 
strength  and  efficiency  in  the  physical  order.  There  is 
no  conflict  between  Christian  meekness  of  spirit  and 
healthy  muscular  strength.  Christianity  does  not  con- 
demn, nor  does  it  discourage,  the  education  of  the  mind, 
the  development  of  the  fine  arts,  the  growth  and  develop- 
ment of  man's  power  of  thinking  and  feeling.  It  does 
not  discourage  ability  or  success  in  business  or  in  indus- 
try, in  commerce  or  in  the  useful  arts.  What  Christian- 
ity did,  and  does,  is  to  add  to  these  educational  ideals  a 
new  element,  the  spiritual.  And  this  addition  is  not 
mere  augment.  It  introduces  a  transforming  element. 
For  the  spiritual  vitalizes,  unifies,  and  organizes  the 
physical,  intellectual  and  moral  elements  of  character;  it 
gives  them  that  cohesiveness,  that  liability  to  rapid  and 
thorough  assimilation  which  is  so  important  in  educa- 
tional matters.  The  human  being  to  be  educated  is 
organically  one.  One  body,  one  mind,  one  heart,  one 
soul,  above  all,  one  personality,  constitute  the  individual 
to  be  educated.  The  spiritual  force  of  Christianity  co- 
ordinates these  various  elements,  subordinates  the  less 
important  to  the  more  important,  subjects  the  incidental 
and  accidental  to  the  essential  and  indispensable,  and 
thus  facilitates  to  a  wonderful  degree  the  task  of  the 
educator. 

Finally,  Christianity,  by  means  of  the  Counsels  of 
Perfection,  sets  up  a  definite  ideal  of  perfection  towards 
which  humanity  is  to  strive.  The  official  Church  never 
failed  to  distinguish  between  these  ideals,  which,  although 
they  were  to  be  the  inspiration  of  all  Christians,  were  to 
be  actually  attained  by  the  few,  and  the  laws  of  conduct, 
or  precepts,  which  were  to  be  observed  by  all.    Her  view 


The  Cheistian  Ideal  of  Education  873 

is  that  poverty,  charity  and  obedieilce  in  their  highest 
form  of  complete  self  abnegation  are  not  to  be  imposed 
as  obligations  on  all  the  faithful.  The  counsels  are  for 
the  chosen  few,  and  are  a  matter  of  individual  calling, 
or  vocation.  When  these  counsels  were  institutionalized, 
as  they  were  in  monasticism,  there  was  never  the  inten- 
tion to  drive  all  men  and  women  into  monasteries,  al- 
though it  was  intended  that  the  example  of  so  great  per- 
fection in  the  few  should  diffuse  its  influence  over  all  the 
Church  and  benefit  sinner  as  well  as  saint.  This,  too, 
has  been  misunderstood.  Perhaps  the  occasion  for  the 
misunderstanding  was  the  inordinate  zeal  of  some  Chris- 
tian writers.  Some  of  those  writers  failed  to  see  the 
world  as  it  is.  They  pictured  it  as  steeped  in  iniquity, 
and  consequently,  were  led  to  believe  and  to  say  that  no 
one  could  save  his  soul  except  in  the  monastic  state. 
Such  was  never  the  belief  of  the  official  Church.  We 
should  look  to  the  decision  of  competent  ecclesiastical 
authority  and  not  be  misled  by  occasional  exaggerations 
of  writers  who  were  inspired  by  their  own  fears,  and 
though  occasionally  we  find  in  the  corrupt  manners  of 
the  times  partial  justification  for  their  opinions,  we 
should  always  remember  that  their  judgment  is  not  that 
of  the  Church. 

The  counsels  of  perfection  furnished  a  definite  ideal 
towards  which  human  nature  could  tend,  and  thus  be  pre- 
vented from  falling  below  human  standards,  as  it  did  in 
pre-Christian  times.  In  a  word,  then,  to  the  ideals  based 
on  physical,  intellectual  and  moral  values,  Christianity 
added  the  spiritual,  which,  while  it  neither  subverts  these 
nor  supplants  what  is  good  in  them,  adds  to  them,  vital- 
izes them,  and  thus  brings  them  up  to  a  higher  and  nobler 
form  of  activity.  Christianity  solved  the  problem  of  ed- 
ucation in  a  manner  at  once  simple,  decisive,  and  perma- 
nent. There  was  something  hesitating,  halting,  fluctuat- 
ing about  pagan  ideals.  Christ,  by  instituting  his  Church, 


874  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

which  was  to  continue  his  work,  gave  permanency  and 
consistency  as  well  as  authority  to  the  Christian  ideal. 
Ever  ancient  and  ever  new,  the  Christian  Church  has 
been  confronted  with  a  variety  of  educational  problems, 
she  has  met  in  each  age  conditions  entirely  new,  and  she 
has  met  them  with  a  resourcefulness  and  a  wealth  of 
expedients  which  could  come  from  no  human  source.  But, 
always  true  to  her  mission,  her  solution  of  every  prob- 
lem has  been:  The  spiritual  interests  are  supreme. 
**What  doth  it  profit  a  man  if  he  gain  the  whole  world 
and  suffer  the  loss  of  his  own  soulT'  She  has  paid 
dearly  in  misrepresentation  and  calumny  for  the  mainte- 
nance of  that  principle.  Her  children  have  paid  dearly 
for  it  in  the  temporal  sacrifices  they  make.  But  the 
price  is  well  paid,  and  will  be  paid,  as  long  as  it  is  re- 
quired. 

William  Turneb. 


THE   EELATION   OF   THE   SEMINAEY   TO   THE 
GENERAL    EDUCATIONAL    PROBLEM    CON- 
SIDERED FROM  THE  SEMINARY 
VIEWPOINT* 

The  broad  character  of  our  subject  is  manifest  from 
the  fact  that  it  alone  is  to  engage  the  attention  of  this 
distinguished  body  during  the  several  sessions  of  the 
convention.  The  word  relation  implying  a  plurality  of 
terms,  it  is  natural  that  more  than  one  view  of  the  subject 
should  be  presented,  particularly  as  there  is  some  diffi- 
culty in  judging  one's  own  position  without  aid  from 
others.  Outside  views  are  necessary  and  welcome,  but 
at  the  same  time  it  is  equally  important  that  the  inside 
view  be  presented.  Those  who  are  engaged  in  seminary 
work  are  familiar  with  its  every  detail ;  actual  experience 
enables  them  to  form  an  accurate  estimate  of  the  means 
and  methods  of  accomplishing  their  trust,  as  well  as  of 
the  difficulties  that  may  interfere  with  the  success  of 
their  labors. 

In  this  paper  we  shall  endeavor  to  give  expression  to 
some  thoughts  on  our  subject  as  it  appears  to  those 
whose  life-work  is  devoted  to  the  training  of  aspirants  to 
the  sacred  ministry.  No  claim  is  put  forth  to  give  an 
exhaustive  treatment,  rather,  speaking  as  one  less  wise, 
would  I  merely  bespeak  your  generous  attention  while 
I  present  such  thoughts  as  will  serve  as  a  preliminary  to 
a  discussion  by  those  better  versed  and  more  competent 
to  shed  light  upon  a  matter  of  singular  importance  to  us 
all. 

Yes,  the  subject  is  important  and  for  that  reason  alone 
it  is  incumbent  upon  me  at  the  outset  to  determine  as 


*Read  before  the  Seminary  Department  of  the  Catholic  Educational  As- 
sociation, Chicago,  June,  1911. 


876  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

clearly  as  may  be  the  exact  question  at  issue.  In  this  I 
shall  be  guided  by  the  suggestion  accompanying  the  re- 
quest that  I  should  write  this  paper.  We  who  are  en- 
gaged in  seminary  work  are  here  primarily  to  consider 
from  our  point  of  view  what  the  seminary  can  and  should 
do  to  further  interest  in  Catholic  educational  work  among 
those  who  are  about  to  enter  upon  their  active  labors  in 
the  Lord's  vineyard.  What  is  our  responsibility  and 
what  our  task,  that  the  young  priest  may  go  forth  in  the 
promotion  of  Catholic  school  work? 

It  is  not,  then,  within  the  scope  of  this  discussion  to 
determine  conditions  that  make  for  coordination  of  Cath- 
olic institutions.  In  a  great  measure  that  has  been  ac- 
complished in  other  years.  Our  work  is  so  distinctive 
that  for  us  this  problem  is  greatly  simplified.  A  definite 
goal  is  always  before  us,  much  authoritative  guidance  is 
at  our  disposal,  many  erroneous  paths  are  closed  for  us 
and  hence,  while  recognizing  the  inestimable  value  and 
relentless  need  of  coordination  in  all  our  work  pertaining 
to  education,  still  I  say  that  such  is  not  the  topic  pre- 
sented to  us  today.  Neither  are  we  directly  concerned 
with  the  questions  of  a  purely  internal  character,  some- 
thing that  concerns  ourselves  alone.  Questions  of  dis- 
cipline, of  method,  of  spiritual  direction,  of  uniformity  of 
standard  and  of  conditions  for  entrance — all  these  have 
been  ably  discussed,  and  while  ever  capable  of  greater 
advancement,  yet  they  can  concern  us  at  present  only  in 
so  far  as  they  bear  on  the  question  as  I  have  already 
stated  it. 

This  Association  stands  for  organization  in  the  broad 
field  before  it,  it  aims  to  secure  concerted  effort,  to  con- 
serve the  vast  energies  operating  in  the  name  and  under 
the  inspiration  of  Catholicity.  This  general  idea  underlies 
our  present  investigation;  it  is  presumed  there  is  an 
eagerness  amongst  us  not  merely  to  secure  success  in  our 
own  particular  branch,  specialty  or  institution,  but  that 


The  Eelation  op  the  Seminaey  877 

with  wider  view  and  more  generous  enthusiasm  we  shall 
so  act  as  to  make  our  tafluence  and  our  efforts  a  potent 
agency  in  the  general  campaign  to  uplift  the  hearts  and 
minds  of  men  to  the  things  that  are  worth  while. 

Such  a  disposition  exists ;  there  is  little  reason  for  com- 
plaint, rather  may  we  congratulate  ourselves  that  the  very 
fact  of  this  gather iQg  is  ample  evidence  that  the  will  to 
spend  and  be  spent  is  strong  amongst  us. 

ProceediQg  on  this  assumption,  we  are  to  ask  our- 
selves what  we  and  the  institutions  we  represent  can  and 
should  be  in  order  that  our  young  priests  may  be  sent 
out  by  us,  zealous  and  capable  to  the  fullest  measure  of 
carrying  on,  upbuilding  and  promoting  the  work  of  solv- 
ing the  problems  in  the  field  of  Catholic  education.  It 
may  be  answered  by  some  that  there  is  nothing  of  a 
specific  character  to  be  accomplished  by  the  seminary 
in  this  respect.  Only  in  so  far  as  it  promotes  the  pri- 
mary end  of  its  existence  does  it  come  into  relation  with 
this  more  general  problem.  Agaia,  it  may  be  answered 
that  all  depends  upon  the  seminary ;  that  the  key  to  suc- 
cess is  in  its  hands ;  that  failure  to  make  the  best  of  our 
opportunities  in  the  educational  world  must  be  imputed 
to  negligence  or  failure  in  the  seminary.  The  priest,  we 
are  told,  is  the  most  potent  factor  in.  promoting  the  wel- 
fare of  Catholic  schools,  and  the  priest  will  be  in  a  great 
measure  what  his  seminary  training  has  made  him. 
Hence  the  question  cannot  be  ^* sidestepped'';  the  issue 
is  placed  unequivocally  before  us,  and  it  must  be  met. 

The  answers  above  suggested  are  too  extreme  to  be 
wholly  true.  While  the  entire  responsibility  for  the  suc- 
cess or  failure  of  Catholic  educational  work  cannot  be 
laid  at  the  door  of  the  semiaary,  yet  its  influence  is  real 
and  our  problem  is  to  find  a  means  of  making  it  more 
effective  and  lasting.  Particularly  are  the  early  years  of 
one's  life  in  the  priesthood  inspired  by  the  ideas  and 
habits  imbibed  and  acquired  during  the  formative  period. 


878  The  Catholic  Educationali  Eeview 

As  we  are  principally  concerned  just  now  with  these  early- 
years,  it  is  clear  that  there  must  be  some  relation  between 
the  seminary  and  the  general  educational  problem.  Yet 
our  responsibility  is  not  unlimited.  The  seminary  is  not 
a  normal  school,  nor  is  it  intended  to  be  a  college  for  the 
formation  of  the  technical  teacher.  Its  scope  is  too  com- 
prehensive to  permit  us  to  devote  our  time  and  our  energy 
to  the  task  of  equipping  our  students  for  the  work  of  a 
professional  instructor.  These  assertions  can  be  regard- 
ed as  little  more  than  commonplaces,  yet  they  are  serv- 
iceable in  helping  us  to  define  the  limits  within  which  our 
responsibility  lies  and  in  consequence  will  serve  as  a  par- 
tial criterion  for  the  adoption  of  the  means  we  may  take 
to  bring  about  the  desired  results.  Let  us  then  recognize 
that  while  other  agencies  are  not  to  be  ignored,  there  is  a 
measure  of  responsibility  laid  upon  us,  and  something 
can  and  ought  to  be  done  by  us  to  render  more  efficient 
the  interest  of  young  and  zealous  priests  in  educational 
matters. 

At  this  juncture  it  may  not  be  amiss  to  ask  the  very 
pertinent  question:  are  we  to  go  on  the  presumption 
that  we  have  not  been  doing  enough  in  this  par- 
ticular ?  Must  we  begin  with  a  confession  of  having  dis- 
regarded or  lost  sight  of  our  obligation  to  train  priests 
who  will  be  ready  and  eager  to  enter  upon  this  work? 
No  general  answer  can  be  given,  but  I  believe  that  there 
is  no  complete  forgetfulness  of  this  feature  of  our  work. 
A  partial  remissness  may  at  times  be  noticed,  a  tendency 
to  subordinate  unduly  this  particular  function  may  be 
charged  against  us,  but  at  the  same  time  Catholic  educa- 
tion is  going  on,  it  is  advancing,  it  has  become  aggres- 
sive, and  the  priests  of  our  American  Church  are  the 
champions  that  have  made  it  such.  And  if  such  be  the 
case,  who  will  deny  to  the  seminaries  their  meed  of 
recognition  for  the  existence  of  such  a  condition? 

Our  priests  are  men  of  education,  and  educators,  not 


The  Eelation  op  the  Seminaky  879 

merely  in  the  broad  sense  of  diffusing  enlightened  ideas 
on  important  soul  topics,  but  in  the  more  restricted  con- 
ception of  the  term  that  implies  their  personal  interest  in 
the  proper  mental  training  of  their  people.  Facts  are 
eloquent  in  proclaiming  this  truth,  this  very  gathering, 
this  nation-wide  Association  with  its  annual  sessions,  de- 
clares in  tones  most  energetic  that  our  priests  are  wide 
awake  to  the  importance  of  our  educational  problems. 
We  in  this  Department  form  an  integral  element  of  the 
Association,  and  our  presence  here  attests  most  forcibly 
our  desire  to  aid  in  every  manner  possible  the  progress 
of  every  undertaking  that  makes  for  the  educational  bet- 
terment of  our  brethren  in  the  Faith. 

The  picture,  then,  is  not  all  shadow,  there  is  not  complete 
indifference ;  no,  nor  is  there  any  great  measure  of  remiss- 
ness of  which  to  blame  ourselves  when  called  upon  to 
face  our  responsibility  with  regard  to  the  present  subject. 
Yet,  when  we  examine  what  we  have  been  doing  and  when, 
on  the  other  hand,  we  consider  the  urgent  necessity  of 
dealing  wisely  with  the  living  educational  problems  con- 
fronting the  Church  at  the  present  hour,  we  ought  to  find 
ample  room  for  improvement ;  perfection  is  not  yet,  more 
can  and  should  be  accomplished  by  us  in  our  Christ-like 
work  to  secure  a  more  insistent  order  in  this  particular 
respect. 

The  relations  between  the  pastor  and  the  school 
have  been  discussed  in  a  former  session  and  in  another 
Department  of  this  Association.  The  discussion  bore  not 
upon  the  existence  of  such  a  relation  but  upon  particular 
features  of  it,  for  its  existence  is  no  matter  of  contro- 
versy. What  was  said  on  that  occasion  can  be  applied  to 
the  assistant  pastor  or  the  young  priest  with  almost  the 
same  force  as  it  was  applied  to  the  pastor  of  a  normal 
city  parish.  There  is  no  need  of  repeating  in  this  paper 
what  was  then  said,  but  it  is  evident  that  the  newly  or- 


880  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

dained  minister  of  Christ  must  at  the  outset  be  prepared 
to  assume  such  relation. 

This  preparation  in  so  far  as  it  concerns  the  seminary, 
consists  first  of  all  in  the  formation  of  a  state  of  mind. 
The  years  of  preparation  are  not  intended  merely  to  af- 
ford an  opportunity  of  learning  certain  truths  and  solv- 
ing certain  scholastic  problems,  but  they  are  required  in 
order  that  the  candidate  for  Holy  Orders  may  be  moulded 
and  fashioned  after  the  most  exalted  human  type.  The 
resultant  state  of  mind  is  one  in  accordance  with  the 
means  employed  to  form  it;  and  those  means  are  the 
expression  of  all  that  is  best  in  the  Catholic  conception 
of  mental  and  moral  development.  It  is  therefore  only 
natural  that  the  Catholic  priest  should  be  the  highest 
exponent  of  the  worth  of  educational  forces,  that  his 
interest  in  the  agencies  that  have  helped  to  make  him 
what  he  is  should  be  most  keen,  his  devotion  to  them 
most  intense. 

Normally  the  young  man  will  leave  the  halls  of  the 
seminary  with  a  deep-rooted  esteem  for  his  studies;  he 
manifests  an  eagerness  to  continue  his  labors  and  seeks 
guidance  concerning  the  course  he  would  best  adopt.  He 
knows,  too,  that  their  worth  is  not  for  him  alone ;  that  in 
due  measure  they  are  necessary  for  all,  if  his  labor  of 
salvation  is  to  be  fruitful  among  the  people.  The  true 
understanding  of  education  has  been  brought  home  to 
him  consciously  or  unconsciously ;  and  while  he  might  not 
be  able  to  pen  the  article,  still  he  has  made  his  own  ideas 
such  as  are  expressed  in  Dr.  Pacers  luminous  article  on 
Catholic  education  (Cath.  Ency.,  Vol.  5.).  He  wishes  to 
be  no  obscurantist,  he  is  conscious  of  his  commission  to 
go  and  teach,  and  he  understands  that  such  a  trust  im- 
plies the  right  on  the  part  of  all  the  people  to  know  and 
to  be  instructed.  While  it  is  primarily  his  duty  to  in- 
culcate the  truths  of  faith,  it  is  not  possible  for  him  to 
make  that  teaching  effective  unless  the  ground  is  duly 


The  Eelation  of  the  Seminaby  881 

prepared  for  the  seed  that  is  to  spring  up  to  eternal  life. 

Knowing  this,  he  values  justly  the  importance  and 
dignity  of  proper  educational  work;  he  sees  how  indis- 
pensable it  is  for  the  expansion  of  the  kingdom  of  God, 
and  he  recognizes  moreover  how  serious  are  the  obstacles 
placed  in  his  way  if  a  false  system  of  training  is  allowed 
to  prevail.  He,  least  of  all,  will  tolerate  a  divorce  be- 
tween intellectual  and  moral  instruction;  he  knows  that 
religion  alone  can  provide  a  sound  basis  for  any  solid 
morality ;  and  with  his  conviction  that  education  is  meant 
to  be  the  great  civilizing  force,  he  is  ready  to  proclaim, 
even  though  inexperienced,  that  no  real  civis  can  be 
formed,  no  real  social  organization  can  subsist,  if  aught 
save  the  principles  underlying  Catholic  education  serve 
as  the  guiding  star  for  a  nation's  leaders. 

All  this  is  fundamental,  but  it  is  a  positive  element,  a 
dynamic  element,  and  so  indispensable  that  all  else  is  use- 
less without  it.  Our  young  priest  may  not  be  wholly  au 
courant  with  particular  phases  of  the  problem  he  is  to 
face,  but  at  the  same  time  he  can  hardly  be  presumed  to 
be  in  complete  ignorance  of  actual  issues.  The  majority 
of  our  seminarians  will  not  leave  their  Alma  Mater  with- 
out a  general  knowledge  of  the  history  of  Catholic  edu- 
cation in  latter  days,  they  may  be  more  or  less  conversant 
with  the  particular  struggles  that  have  marked  the  course 
of  the  last  century,  and  above  all  they  may  be  in  no 
need  of  conviction  of  the  utter  inadequacy  of  our  own 
public  school  system  to  fit  our  fellow  Americans  to  be 
what  the  God  of  nations  expects  them  to  be.  Such,  then, 
is  the  first  contribution  of  the  seminary  to  the  equipment 
of  our  young  priest  to  begin  his  labors  in  the  cause  of 
Catholic  education.  He  will  go  forth  endowed  with  a 
state  of  mind  that  is  admirably  adapted  to  the  successful 
prosecution  of  such  an  undertaking,  and  that  endowment 
is  the  normal  resultant  of  his  seminary  training.  The 
picture  is  not  too  great  a  departure  from  reality;  there 


882  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

are  exceptions,  no  doubt,  and  comparatively  few  may  ex- 
press a  liking  for  the  professorial  chair.  Yet  such  a  state 
of  mind  can  reasonably  be  expected  to  characterize  by 
far  the  greater  number  of  those  we  send  forth  to  continue 
the  mission  of  the  greatest  of  all  Teachers. 

If  there  is  room  for  improvement  in  this  respect,  it  is 
to  be  secured  by  a  more  earnest  endeavor  on  our  part  to 
foster  habits  of  study  among  those  entrusted  to  our  care, 
and  to  make  use  of  the  excellent  means  suggested  by  the 
gentlemen  participating  in  the  discussion  on  this  topic 
during  the  Convention  at  Cincinnati.  A  reference  to  the 
full  report  of  that  meeting  will  provide  us  with  such  sug- 
gestions as  may  be  serviceable. 

It  is  not  my  place  to  try  to  enumerate  a  list  of  the  burn- 
ing issues  now  agitating  the  minds  of  educators.  We 
can  at  the  present  only  suggest  some  general  means  by 
which  the  seminarians  may,  during  their  preparatory 
career,  be  made  fully  acquainted  with  the  particular  prob- 
lems with  which  they  will  have  to  deal.  Before  mention- 
ing these  means  in  detail  I  wish  to  give  expression  to  the 
conviction  that  it  is  not  practicable  to  add  anything  more 
to  the  curriculum  with  a  view  of  preparing  our  students 
distinctively  for  educational  work.  Indeed,  what  could 
be  added,  unless  a  course  in  pedagogy  or  catechetical  in- 
struction? The  former  is  attended  with  so  many  diffi- 
culties as  to  verge  upon  the  impossible,  and  the  latter 
though  introduced  in  one  form  or  another,  has  but  an 
indirect  bearing  on  our  subject  in  the  sense  in  which  I 
have  presented  it.  However,  I  do  not  wish  to  be  under- 
stood as  advocating  a  negative  or  repressive  policy  in 
the  matter,  and  therefore  I  think  I  may  call  attention  to 
the  following  means  or  opportunities  of  securing  a  live- 
lier interest  in  the  general  subject  of  education  among 
our  seminarians. 

I.    In  every  institution  for  the  education    of    the 
clergy  there  is  a  course  in  pastoral  theology,  intended  to 


The  Eelation  op  the  Seminary  883 

give  practical  suggestions  concerning  the  various  fea- 
tures of  priestly  work.  In  such  a  course  the  subject  of 
education  and  school  work  can  scarcely  be  disregarded. 
Now,  it  seems  that  a  goodly  portion  of  a  year's  work  can 
be  devoted  to  the  subject,  and  an  experienced  professor 
should  be  able  to  impress  upon  his  class  the  importance 
of  such  work  in  the  ministry  and  provide  the  means  of 
becoming  acquainted  with  the  actual  conditions  confront- 
ing us  at  the  present  time.  Particularly  will  it  be  possi- 
ble in  such  a  course  to  impart  such  general  guiding  prin- 
ciples as  will  enable  the  future  pastor  to  guard  against 
many  mistakes  in  dealing  with  the  special  phase  of  the 
problem  that  he  will  meet  when  beginning  his  work.  The 
relation  of  priest  to  pupils  and  to  teachers  can  be  dwelt 
upon  in  a  general  way,  and  the  matter  of  coordination 
and  method  can  be  treated  with  sufficient  fullness  to  in- 
sure the  desirable  degree  of  uniformity.  No  professor 
worthy  of  the  name  will  fail  to  offer  the  best  that  he  has 
to  encourage  and  direct  those  placed  under  his  guidance 
in  this  branch.  If  he  be  a  man  of  practical  experience 
in  parish  and  school  work — a  quality  eminently  desira- 
ble— he  will  give  his  class  the  benefit  of  his  own  labors, 
and  will  in  a  large  measure  contribute  to  the  formation 
of  a  state  of  mind  and  of  will  calculated  to  produce  most 
gratifying  results  in  the  educational  field.  Is  there  not 
room  for  improvement  in  this  department  of  our  work? 
Are  other  topics  of  such  greater  importance  that  this  one 
should  be  unmercifully  sacrificed? 

II.  It  is  the  custom,  I  presume,  in  most  seminaries 
to  give  lectures  or  conferences  to  the  students  on  subjects 
pertaining  to  their  spiritual  advancement  and  to  the  char- 
acter of  the  work  they  are  to  undertake.  Here,  then,  it 
would  seem,  is  another  opportunity  for  emphasizing  the 
importance  of  educational  work  in  the  sacred  ministry. 
A  well  regulated  and  methodical  course  of  conferences 
every  year  or  two  would  not  fail  to  be  productive  of  re- 


884  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

suits  that  would  blossom  forth  in  the  fulness  of  their 
beauty  and  worth  during  the  years  that  follow  the  years 
of  theological  study.  The  ^ve  or  six  years  which  occupy 
the  attention  of  the  ordinary  seminarian  afford  ample  op- 
portunity for  the  consideration  of  such  a  subject. 
Thought  and  energy  will  be  necessary  to  make  such  con- 
ferences forcible  and  interesting,  but  it  is  not  too  much 
to  ask  of  any  one  heartily  devoted  to  the  work  of  forming 
competent  laborers  in  the  cause  of  religion. 

III.  It  is  recommended  by  many  of  wide  and  thought- 
ful experience  that  the  professors  should  frequently  min- 
gle with  their  students  during  the  hours  of  recreation. 
Aloofness  on  their  part  is  considerad  to  be  productive  of 
more  harm  than  good.  Whatever  may  be  one's  personal 
opinion,  it  would  seem  that  if  there  is  to  be  such  associa- 
tion during  free  hours,  no  more  commendable  subject  for 
conversation  could  be  suggested  than  the  work  and  prac- 
tical issues  of  education.  At  such  a  time  there  is  an 
absence  of  restraint,  and  consequently  a  better  oppor- 
tunity for  the  communication  of  ideas  and  views  on  this 
topic,  views  which  cannot  fail  to  be  deeply  interesting  to 
our  young  men,  especially  if  the  conversation  be  directed 
to  some  actual  question  or  event  that  is  engaging  the  at- 
tention of  men  who  are  devoting  their  energies  to  the  de- 
velopment of  educational  work. 

IV.  No  one  can  gainsay  the  influence  of  magazines 
and  newspapers.  In  one  sense  their  share  in  shaping  the 
opinions  of  men  is  out  of  all  proportion.  Yet,  there  are 
good  magazines  and  good  newspapers  and  there  are  some 
that  manifest  a  most  commendable  interest  and  sound 
practical  judgment  in  matters  pertaining  to  our  subject. 
Should  we  not  encourage  those  entrusted  to  us  to  make 
all  lawful  use  of  publications?  Can  it  possibly  be  ob- 
jected that  the  recent  regulations  from  Eome  would  in- 
terfere with  such  a  plan?  I  think  not,  and  I  would  be- 
speak a  keener  appreciation  for  reviews  and  papers  that 


The  Eelation  of  the  Seminary  885 

manifest  a  purpose  of  promoting  such  work.  Ought  not 
a  publication  such  as  the  newly  founded  Catholic  Educa- 
tional Review  be  of  interest  and  of  value  to  our  young 
men?  Has  it  not  set  up  a  standard  that  merits  general 
approval?  If  so,  who  will  deny  its  worth  in  promoting 
the  purpose  for  which  we  are  here  assembled?  Other 
magazines  and  papers  also  set  aside  a  special  department 
to  educational  work  and  report  the  latest  items  of  infor- 
mation in  this  province.  In  so  far  as  they  do  this  they  are 
helpful  to  us  and  in  one  way  or  another  may  be  used  to 
the  advantage  of  our  students,  so  that  they  may  be  better 
able  to  understand  existing  conditions  in  the  educational 
world.  There  is  said  to  be  a  conspiracy  of  silence  on  the 
part  of  the  secular  press  against  Catholicism,  and  while 
the  truth  of  the  assertion  applies  to  European  countries 
rather  than  to  our  own  land,  there  is  a  possibility  of  util- 
izing to  greater  advantage  the  opportunity  afforded  by 
the  great  daily,  opportunities  that  the  priest  ought  not 
to  slight  but  to  grasp  and  demand  insistently,  in  order 
that  the  whole  truth  concerning  our  educational  efforts 
may  be  made  known  and  appreciated. 

V.  Another  excellent  means  of  presenting  and  dis- 
cussing ideas  relative  to  our  present  subject  is  to  be 
found  in  the  academies,  seminars,  or  societies  that  are  to 
be  found  in  nearly  all  our  institutions.  These  periodic 
meetings  of  students  and  professors  to  listen  to  the  read- 
ing of  an  essay  on  topics  pertaining  to  seminary  work, 
are  admirably  adapted  to  the  purpose  of  emphasizing 
the  importance  of  educational  work.  Why  not  occasion- 
ally assign  for  discussion  subjects  that  deal  with  actual 
educational  questions?  They  can  scarcely  fail  to  be  in- 
teresting ;  indeed,  will  be  much  more  so  than  subjects  con- 
cerning the  time-worn  topics  that  are  ordinarily  assigned 
for  discussion.  Delving  into  speculative  matters — the 
Quaestiones  Domesticae — is  not  without  its  disciplinary 
value  for  the  average  student,  but  practical  matters,  and 


886  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

in  particular  educational  matters,  will  have  a  wider  ap- 
peal and  more  lasting  results  should  be  obtained.  This  I 
regard  as  one  of  the  best  means  we  have  for  promoting 
the  work  in  which  we  are  now  concerned. 

VI.  Lastly,  by  way  of  suggestion,  I  would  counsel  the 
establishment  by  this  Association  of  a  committee  or  body 
of  lecturers,  composed  of  men  devoting  their  energies  to 
educational  problems,  men  who  may'  be  called  upon  from 
time  to  time  to  go  from  one  seminary  to  another  to  talk 
to  the  students  on  subjects  of  this  order.  The  plan  might 
be  feasible,  at  least  I  regard  it  as  worthy  of  mention  on 
this  occasion.  The  cooperation  of  the  rectors  of  our  va- 
rious institutions  will  scarcely  be  wanting  and  some  prac- 
tical suggestions  might  be  given  to  secure  the  realization 
of  the  idea.  Surely  it  would  not  be  impossible  to  find 
one  or  several  well-informed  priests  able  and  willing  to 
undertake  such  a  task.  If  it  could  be  done  there  would  be 
no  uncertainty  about  the  advantages  accruing  from  such 
a  course.  There  are  difficulties  in  the  way,  but  let  us 
hope  they  are  not  insurmountable  and  that  the  combined 
efforts  of  the  several  Departments  of  this  Association 
may  be  sufficient  to  make  these  suggestions  practicable. 

With  these  considerations  I  will  bring  my  words  to  a 
close.  I  conceive  that  there  is  a  relation  between  the 
seminary  and  the  general  work  of  education,  a  relation 
of  cooperation  on  the  part  of  professors,  a  relation  based 
on  the  necessity  of  earnest  endeavor  to  fit  our  students 
to  enlist  among  the  defenders  of  solid  education,  a  rela- 
tion that  is  of  no  accidental  character  but  proceeding 
from  the  very  nature  of  our  work  and  involving  a  large 
degree  of  responsibility,  a  relation  of  which  we  are  con- 
scious, one  that  we  are  not  anxious  to  slight,  but  rather 
wish  to  strengthen  and  perfect,  so  that  by  using  the  means 
and  opportunities  at  our  disposal,  and  girding  ourselves 
afresh  to  pursue  with  zeal  and  love  the  exalted  mission 
which  the  Great  High  Priest  has  committed  to  us,  we 


The  Eelation  of  the  Seminary  887 

shall  continue  with  ever-increasing  success  to  form  new 
champions  in  the  educational  struggle.  We  shall  strive 
with  the  spirit  of  consecration  and  love,  in  season  and 
out  of  season,  to  equip  our  young  levites  with  all  that  is 
demanded  to  make  them  competent,  energetic  workers  in 
the  establishment  of  the  Kingdom  of  Christ  upon  earth. 

F.  V.  Corcoran,  C.  M. 
Kenrick  Seminary, 
St.  Louis,  Mo. 


THE  WORK  OF  THE  SISTERS  OF  THE  HOLY 

NAMES 

This  was  how  it  originated:  Miss  Eulalie  Durocher 
was  given  the  opportunity  to  see  the  young  girls  of  her 
native  Province  of  Quebec  growing  to  womanhood  with- 
out sufficient  religious  instruction;  then  grace  ripened  a 
plan  in  her  soul  whereby  she  was  enabled  to  come  to  their 
rescue.  When  enterprises  are  of  God  they  flourish  won- 
derfully. To  follow  the  progress  and  development  of  the 
work  undertaken  by  Miss  Durocher  back  in  the  early 
forties  of  the  last  century  will  make  this  statement  evi- 
dent. 

Just  one.  hundred  years  ago,  October  6,  1911,  Eulalie 
Durocher  was  bom  at  St.  Antoine,  P.  Q.  She  was  edu- 
cated at  the  Congregation  Convents  at  St.  Denis  and 
Montreal.  Three  of  her  brothers,  by  entering  the  priest- 
hood, set  her  a  noble  example  of  self-sacrifice ;  her  eldest 
sister  joined  the  Congregation  of  Notre  Dame.  Eulalie 
intended  to  f ollew  her  sister  to  the  Novitiate  but  was  pre- 
vented by  illness.  She  resolved  none  the  less  to  carry  out 
her  pious  project  when  her  health  would  permit;  mean- 
while she  prayed,  and  waited,  and  grew  strong.  God, 
however,  had  other  designs  on  her.  Mrs.  Durocher 's 
death  occurred  shortly  after  Eulalie 's  return  from  school. 
Then  father  and  daughter  went  to  live  at  the  parochial 
residence  at  Beloeil,  where  her  brother.  Rev.  Theophile 
Durocher,  was  Rector.  Here  it  was  that  Eulalie  had 
occasion  to  see  the  deplorable  condition  of  popular  educa- 
tion; for  her  activity,  embracing  as  it  did  all  forms  of 
charity,  brought  her  into  close  contact  with  every  class  of 
society. 

In  1835,  there  were  in  Canada  thirteen  convents  under 
the  direction  of  the  Sisters  of  the  Congregation  of  Notre 


WOEK   OP   SiSTEES   OF   HoLY  NaME  889 

Dame;  the  Ursulines  had  a  boarding-school  in  the  City 
of  Quebec,  another  at  Three  Eivers.  Miss  Durocher 
saw  that  fifteen  schools  conld  not  provide  for  the  intellec- 
tual needs  of  the  rapidly  increasing  school  population  of 
the  Province  of  Quebec.  She  realized  that  something 
should  be  done,  and  at  once.  But  how  do  it?  While  she 
was  praying  for  light  and  guidance  the  Oblates  of  Mary 
Immaculate  came  to  Canada,  at  the  call  of  Eight  Eev. 
I.  Bourget,  Bishop  of  Montreal.  On  their  arrival  in  1841 
they  were  given  the  parish  of  St.  Hilaire,  their  first 
mission-field  in  America.  A  year  later  they  opened  a  col- 
lege at  Longueuil,  P.  Q. 

St.  Hilaire  being  quite  near  Beloeil,  Eev.  Father 
Telmon,  0.  M.  I.,  became  Eulalie^s  spiritual  director. 
Through  him  Mgr.  de  Mazenod,  founder  of  the  Oblate 
Fathers,  was  informed  of  the  state  of  education  in  Can- 
ada and  of  Miss  Durocher 's  desire  to  devote  her  life  to 
its  betterment.  The  saintly  Bishop  had  founded  a  teach- 
ing Order  at  Marseilles,  the  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Names 
of  Jesus  and  Mary,  and  on  Father  Telmon 's  representa- 
tions, he  decided  to  open  a  convent  of  the  Holy  Names 
at  Longueuil  where  Eulalie  could  enter.  One  year,  an- 
other passed,  and  it  was  still  impossible  for  Sisters  to 
come  from  Marseilles  for  the  proposed  foundation.  The 
final  decision  was  an  indefinite  postponement  of  the 
project. 

In  her  hour  of  disappointment  Eulalie  did  not  abandon 
hope.  Why  could  there  not  be  a  new  educational  Order  in 
God 's  Church  ?  To  many  the  idea  seemed  novel  and  rash ; 
yet  the  Lord  showed  His  chosen  servant  how  it  could  be 
done.  Through  sorrow  and  suffering,  through  trials  and 
humiliations.  He  led  her  His  way,  and  she  followed  hum- 
bly and  submissively,  as  can  be  read  in  her  life,  until  the 
Eight  Eev.  I.  Bourget,  Bishop  of  Montreal,  and  Mgr.  de 


890  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Mazenod,  Bishop  of  Marseilles,  urged  her  to  begin  an 
Order  at  Longueuil.  At  their  bidding  and  that  of  her  spir- 
itual director,  she  left  Beloeil,  accompanied  by  a  holy 
friend.  Miss  M.  Dufresne,  to  accomplish  her  life-mission. 

Miss  Henriette  Cere  with  her  sister  Emilie  was,  at  this 
time,  conducting  a  school  near  the  Longueuil  parish 
church.  Eulalie  and  her  friend  received  a  cordial  wel- 
come here  and  together  with  Miss  Cere,  they  immediately 
began  their  novitiate.  Kev.  Father  Guigues,  0.  M.  I.,  was 
their  ecclesiastical  superior,  Eev.  Father  Allard,  0.  M. 
I.,  their  novice-master,  and  Eight  Eev.  I.  Bourget,  their 
devoted  father,  their  faithful  and  enlightened  friend. 
This  explains  why  the  ^* sea-severed''  Orders  of  the  Holy 
Names  never  had  any  connection  besides  the  ties  of 
friendship  and  the  bonds  of  prayer;  why  the  small  pri- 
vate school  of  Miss  Cere  is  revered  as  the  foundation 
house,  the  first  Convent  of  Mother  Mary  Eose's  Com- 
munity. 

The  beginning  was  made  with  thirteen  boarders  and 
about  twice  that  number  of  day  pupils.  Thus  it  was  in 
penury  and  trials,  which  stimulated  the  wonderful  fervor 
of  the  three  foundresses,  that  the  Congregation  of  the 
Holy  Names  had  birth.  The  religious  formation  of  the 
novices  went  hand  in  hand  with  their  professional  train- 
ing, and  Father  Allard  was  a  stem  task-master  because 
a  competent  one. 

After  several  months  of  preparation.  Miss  Durocher, 
Miss  Cere  and  Miss  Dufresne  were  admitted  to  the  Ee- 
ligious  Clothing,  taking  the  names  of  Sister  Mary  Eose, 
Sister  Mary  Magdalen,  and  Sister  Mary  Agnes.  Two 
new  recruits  now  joined  the  Foundresses,  Miss  Salome 
Martin,  whose  home  was  at  St.  Philip,  P.  Q.,  and  Miss 
Hedwidge  Davignon,  of  St.  Mathias,  P.  Q.;  the  former 
was  known  under  the  religious  name  of  Mother  Theresa 
of  Jesus,  the  latter  as  Mother  Veronica  of  the  Crucifix. 
If  Mother  Mary  Eose  impressed  her  Congregation  with 


Work  of  Sisters  of  Holy  Name  891 

the  seal  of  her  tireless  devotedness  to  her  chosen  life- 
work,  her  maternal  tenderness  for  her  Sisters  and  the 
pupils,  her  angelic  holiness;  if  Mother  Mary  Magdalen 
became  pre-eminently  the  model  religious  teacher  for  her 
Order ;  if  Mother  Mary  Agnes  was  the  exponent  of  morti- 
fication and  renouncement  for  all  generations  of  the  Holy 
Names,  the  next  two  candidates  were  to  be,  one  the  apos- 
tle, and  the  other  the  pedagogical  authority,  of  the  Com- 
munity. God  takes  the  means  to  fit  His  instruments  for 
His  work.  The  Church  has  always  trained  its  teachers. 
A  novitiate  is  a  splendid  school  of  ethics  where  the  will 
and  the  heart  are  moulded  to  the  highest  virtue.  If  these 
preparations  are  imperative.  Mother  Mary  Rose  knew 
that  something  else  was  also  required.  To  accomplish 
her  design  of  forming  efficient  educators,  she  realized 
that  professional  training  was  necessary.  Hence  after 
months  of  constant  drill  in  the  school-room  under  the 
cultured  Father  Allard,  the  Superiors  decided  to  send 
Mother  Theresa  of  Jesus  and  Mother  Veronica  of  the 
Crucifix  to  Montreal  to  complete  their  normal  work. 

While  in  the  city,  the  two  novices  boarded  with  the 
Sisters  of  Providence,  and  studied  methods,  and  gained 
additional  experience  in  the  schools  of  the  Christian 
Brothers,  under  the  immediate  direction  of  an  able 
and  gifted  instructor.  Brother  Facile.  Mother  Veronica 
afterwards  tested  the  knowledge  she  acquired  there,  by 
practice  in  the  school  room;  then  she  prepared  a  peda- 
gogical treatise  for  the  use  of  the  Sisters.  The  services 
of  Professor  Hagan,  of  Ottawa,  were  also  engaged  for 
the  formation  of  the  young  teachers  at  Longueuil.  Thus 
was  that  part  of  the  edifice  built,  which  was  not  reared  by 
hands. 

Mother  Mary  Rose,  in  the  meantime,  was  considering 
the  development  of  her  Comanunity.  The  present  resi- 
dence was  much  too  small.  The  number  of  postulants 
was  increasing,  as  was  also  the  school  attendance.    The 


892  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

parishioners  of  Longueuil  again  came  to  the  assistance 
of  the  young  Community,  and  provided  a  larger  and 
more  commodious  establishment.  In  this,  the  second 
year  of  existence,  the  number  of  resident  pupils  ran  into 
the  sixties,  and  the  day  pupils  were  double  that  of  the 
preceding  year.  The  three  Novices  had  worked  earnestly 
at  their  sanctification,  had  been  so  generously  self- 
sacrificing  in  the  service  of  God  that  His  Lordship  and 
the  novice-master  appointted  December  8,  1844,  as  the 
date  of  their  religious  profession.  This  became  a  mem- 
orable day  for  the  Community :  that  morning  the  Bishop 
gave  it  episcopal  approbation,  and  the  first  government 
was  organized,  with  Mother  Mary  Eose  as  Superior. 
Within  the  course  of  the  same  year,  it  was  incorporated 
by  Act  of  Parliament. 

Success  is  rarely  a  gift ;  it  must  generally  be  purchased 
at  an  exceeding  cost.  The  price  demanded  of  Mother 
Mary  Eose  was  a  heavy  toll,  but  God  is  never  bankrupt. 
Calmly,  patiently.  Mother  faced  the  financial  storms  with 
which  she  was  buffeted.  The  property  which  had  been 
given  her  was  demanded  back,  she  gave  it ;  money  for  its 
use  was  exacted,  she  paid  it;  new  buildings  had  to  be 
erected,  she  had  them  built;  more  properly  had  to  be 
purchased  or  expansion  would  become  impossible,  she 
bought  it;  and  the  means  to  meet  her  payments  never 
failed  her,  although  she  and  her  Sisters  suffered  from 
lack  of  the  very  necessaries  of  life;  they  were  often 
obliged  to  pass  a  week  at  a  stretch  without  bread  at  their 
meals.  The  school  flourished,  nevertheless,  and  her 
daughters  have  always  been  grateful  to  the  benefactory 
who  secured  for  them  years  of  peace  for  the  upbuilding 
of  the  work,  even  if  he  did  try  it  crucially  afterwards. 
The  monetary  troubles  over,  calumny  was  resorted  to, 
but  when  God  is  with  us,  it  matters  not  who  is  against  us. 
The  Community  grew  and  Mother  Mary  Eose  had  the 
happiness  of  opening  branch  houses  at  Beloeil,  St.  Tim- 


Work  of  Sisters  of  Holy  Name  893 

othy,  and  St.  Lin  before  her  premature  death,  October  6, 
1849.  She  left  twenty-three  professed  Sisters,  eleven 
novices  and  twelve  postulants  imbued  with  her  spirit  to 
carry  on  her  work. 

Her  successor,  Mother  Veronica  of  the  Crucifix,  was  a 
leader  in  educational  endeavor.  Her  ambition  was  to 
broaden  and  deepen  the  studies,  that  the  young  girls, 
who  were  now  coming  in  large  numbers  to  the  Longueuil 
boarding  school,  might  become  the  valiant  women  of  Holy 
Writ.  Nor  was  she  disappointed.  The  distinctive  edu- 
cational characteristics  of  the  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Names 
are  mainly  due  to  Mother  Veronica  of  the  Crucifix. 

To  Mother  Theresa  of  Jesus,  who  was  elected  Superior 
General  in  1854,  the  Community  owes  its  development. 
Her  gifts  of  head  and  heart  were  extraordinary.  We 
have  but  to  visit  Hochelaga  Convent  to  discover  what 
manner  of  woman  she  was.  In  these  early  days  of  pen- 
ury and  inexperience  she  did  not  hesitate  to  build  an 
institution  that  soon  became  one  of  the  foremost  of  its 
kind  in  America.  Mr.  Simon  Valois,  the  father  of  Mrs. 
Lussier,  of  Montreal,  one  of  the  Longueuil  pupils,  gen- 
erously donated  the  land  and  erected  the  chapel,  a  gem 
of  Grecian  architecture.  Pupils  came  from  far  and  near 
until  there  were  two  hundred  resident  students.  These 
girls  are  now  women  well  on  towards  the  sunset,  they 
are  women  who  have  understood  that  life  has  duties  and 
responsibilities  as  well  as  pleasures,  women  who  have 
made  the  world  better  by  their  refinement  and  their 
virtue. 

But  Mother  Theresa  of  Jesus  did  other  things  that 
were  wonderful  for  the  times.  In  1859,  Mgr.  Blanchet 
asked  the  Bishop  of  Montreal  to  send  teachers  to  his 
distant  diocese  of  Oregon  City.  The  Congregation  of  the 
Holy  Names  had  only  sixteen  years  of  existence.  Mother 
Theresa  of  Jesus  counted  the  cost,  then  appealed  to  the 
Community:    twelve    Sisters    immediately    volunteered 


894  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

their  services  for  the  new  school  in  Portland,  Ore.  It  was 
a  trying  moment  for  nature.  These  pioneers  of  educa- 
tion on  the  Pacific  Coast  were  quitting  home,  kindred,  and 
native  land,  which  would  be  henceforth  for  them  a  pleas- 
ant dream,  but  none  the  less  a  dream.  And  yet,  they  too, 
knew  well  that  it  is  a  joy  to  be  able  to  clasp  the  hands  of 
loved  ones  when  you  wish,  and  let  heart  speak  to  heart. 
The  route  to  Oregon  in  those  days  lay  by  Panama ;  and 
six  weeks  was  the  measure  of  the  journey  to  Portland, 
then  a  mere  trading  post  for  miners.  There  were  hard 
days  ahead,  days  of  poverty  and  ceaseless  labor,  but  the 
end  was  attained,  thanks  to  the  noble  women  who  under- 
stood so  well  how  to  train  the  intellect  and  form  the 
character.  From  St.  Mary's  Academy  and  College,  as 
from  Longueuil  and  Hochelaga,  have  gone  out  women 
who  would  be  a  credit  to  any  institution  and  who  are  an 
honor  to  their  country. 

^* Conditions  are  not  pleasant  in  America,'*  a  Eussian 
nobleman  said  to  one  of  St.  Mary's  Alumnae,  **when  you 
are  liable  to  have  to  sit  at  table  with  the  daughter  of  your 
washerwoman. ' ' 

^*I  am  proud,"  she  replied,  **to  claim  as  my  native 
land  a  country  where  intelligence  is  king,  and  education 
the  aristocracy." 

She  was  the  wife  of  the  American  Minister  to  Constan- 
tinople, and  true  to  the  spirit  of  the  Eules,  this  woman 
like  so  many  others,  was  educated  according  to  her  state 
in  life.  **What  inspiring  pages  of  domestic  life  could  be 
written  on  the  pupils  who  have  passed  out  of  the  many 
schools  that  grew  and  prospered  on  the  Pacific  slope!" 

Mother  Veronica  of  the  Crucifix,  herself  came  at  the 
Superior  General's  wish  to  direct  the  houses  at  Port- 
land, St.  Paul,  Oregon  City,  The  Dalles,  Salem,  and  Jack- 
sonville. If  these  schools  *^ command  distinction,"  as 
Eight  Eev.  Edw.  J.  0  'Dea,  recently  wrote,  it  is  due,  in  a 
great  measure  to  the  energetic  foundresses.    In  1892 


WOBK  OP   SiSTEES   OF   HoLY  NaME  895 

Mother  Mary  Margaret  brought  the  studies  up  to  a  high 
standard;  she  had  St.  Mary's  chartered  as  a  college  and 
spared  no  effort  to  fit  her  Sisters  for  the  work  of  higher 
education. 

Key  West,  Fla.,  and  Oakland,  Calif.,  were  a  result  of 
Mother  Theresa's  visit  to  the  West.  The  many  acade- 
mies and  schools  in  Washington,  Oregon,  and  California 
are  the  outcome  of  her  zeal.  We  are  astonished  today 
when  we  reflect  on  the  magnitude  of  her  plans,  but  their 
realization  and  success  convince  us  that  they  were 
inspired  by  the  Holy  Ghost.  Windsor,  Ontario,  and 
Albany,  N.  Y.,  also  sprang  into  existence  at  her  word. 

With  Mother  Veronica  of  the  Crucifix  to  stimulate  the 
young  Sisters  with  her  own  love  of  study,  and  Mother 
Theresa  of  Jesus  to  dare  and  do  all  things  for  Christ's 
little  ones,  the  Community  spread  and  carried  afar  its 
educational  ideals.  God  was  surely  kind  to  Mother  Mary 
Rose's  daughters.  He  called  the  Mother  home  early,  but 
He  ranged  strong  intellectual  women  under  the  banner  of 
the  Holy  Names  who  did  the  work  that  their  Mother 
had  planned. 

**Help  the  clergy  in  every  way  you  can!"  has  been  a 
frequent  recommendation  of  the  Foundress.  Wherever 
her  daughters  opened  schools  in  the  West,  they  boarded 
the  Pastor  and  took  care  of  the  sanctuary  and  the  sacristy 
until  the  country  was  developed  and  the  priests'  naainte- 
nance  secured. 

With  that  spirit  of  progress  which  has  alwava  marked 
the  Community  of  the  Holy  Names,  Mother  Mary  ot  the 
Eosary  at  great  expense  built  the  new  boarding  school 
at  Outremont,  near  Montreal.  Recently,  in  the  adminis- 
tration of  the  present  Superior  General,  Mother  Martin 
of  the  Ascension,  Normal  Schools  have  been  opened  at 
Seattle  and  Spokane  in  the  State  of  Washington ;  and  at 
Valleyfield,  P.  Q.  All  grades  of  schools,  as  well  as  schools 
for  all  classes  form  the  lif«-work  of  the  Sisters  of  the 


896  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Holy  Names.  The  students  of  St.  Mary's  Academy,  Win- 
nipeg, have  taken  public  examinations  for  many  years 
past,  and  enjoy  the  advantage  of  securing  degrees  under 
the  system  of  affiliated  colleges  which  constitute  the  Uni- 
versity of  Manitoba. 

*  *  To  educate  young  ladies  according  to  their  station  in 
life,*'  is  in  the  Eules  of  the  Order;  and  Eome  in  1901, 
gave  the  final  approbation  to  the  Constitutions.  Yet, 
the  Sisters  twice  departed  from  the  prescribed  end. 
They  closed  their  school  in  Jacksonville,  Ore.,  in  1868, 
when  the  black  smallpox  made  a  charnel-house  of  the 
beautiful  town.  All  the  citizens,  who  could,  fled.  Hus- 
bands abandoned  their  wives;  and  mothers,  their  off- 
spring. But  Sister  Francis  of  Assisi  and  Sister  Mary 
Edward  went  among  the  plague-stricken  during  those 
six  awful  weeks  of  death ;  day  and  night  they  were  at  the 
post  of  danger  while  strength  remained.  At  last  the  vio- 
lence of  the  disease  spent  itself  through  lack  of  victims, 
and  the  Sisters  went  north  to  recuperate.  Sister  Francis 
of  Assisi 's  health  never  returned.  She  lingered  for  two 
years  before  answering  the  Lord's  home-call.  She  had 
given  her  life  for  her  neighbor,  what  could  she  have  done 
more?  Sister  Mary  Edward  still  lives  to  tell  the  tale  of 
these  terrible  days  among  the  dying  who  were  decompos- 
ing before  life  was  extinct. 

On  another  occasion  also  the  Sisters  abandoned  their 
books,  this  time  to  open  one  of  their  schools  to  the 
nation's  defenders.  It  was  during  the  Spanish- American 
War  when  the  hungry  regiments  reached  Tampa,  Fla., 
without  provisions.  The  young  ladies  of  Holy  Names 
Convent,  Tampa,  aided  their  teachers  to  brew  tea  and 
make  coifee,  etc.,  for  the  famishing  men.  The  Convent  of 
Mary  Immaculate,  Key  West,  was  turned  into  a  hospital, 
and  handed  over  to  the  United  States  authorities  who 
trained  the  Sisters  in  what  short  time  they  had  to  care 
for  the  wounded.    During  a  scourge  of  yellow  fever  on 


WOBK   OF    SiSTEES   OF   HOLY  NaME  897 

the  Island,  the  Sisters  had  once  before  sent  their  pupils 
home,  and  devoted  themselves  to  the  pest-stricken.  There 
was  happiness  in  soothing  the  last  hour  of  the  dying,  or 
in  helping  nature  in  her  efforts  back  to  health. 

To  be  the  least  among  the  helpers  of  Holy  Church  is 
a  great  joy;  to  do  work  that  will  reflect  her  spirit,  make 
known  her  greatness,  and  spread  her  light  is  almost  an 
apostolic  privilege.  To  have  over  1,300  teachers  banded 
under  one  General  Superior — for  thank  God,  during  the 
march  of  the  years,  there  has  never  been  a  branch  lopped 
from  the  tree — is  surely  the  fulfillment  of  the  prayers  of 
the  humble  yet  virile  woman,  who  with  a  prophet  ^s  eye 
and  a  prophet's  ardor  saw  what  could  be  done  for  educa- 
tion and  how  to  do  it. 

Today  there  are  nine  Provinces  of  the  Order,  whose 
respective  Provincials  lighten  the  burden  of  the  General 
Superior  and  her  five  Councillors.  Silently,  slowly,  God 
raised  up  the  citadel.  With  the  Holy  Names  for  watch- 
word, we  pray  that  we  may  long  be  able  to  speak  of  victo- 
ries in  the  hard  fought  field  of  modem  educational  en- 
deavor. S.  M.  G. 

Montreal,  Canada. 


READING  IN  SECONDARY  SCHOOLS  AND  COL- 
LEGES 

The  main  purpose  of  this  paper  is  to  discuss  how 
we  may  promote  the  right  kind  of  reading  in  our  high 
schools,  academies  and  colleges.  Along  with  the  belief 
that  reading  constitutes  an  essential  part  of  education 
runs  the  conviction  in  the  minds  of  many  if  not  most  edu- 
cators that  our  young  people  read  neither  wisely  nor 
well.  They  do  not  read  the  right  things,  or  they  read 
them  without  appreciation,  and  they  read  the  wrong 
things.  Assuming  that  we  are  agreed  on  the  need  of 
reading  not  only  as  part  of  a  course  in  English  literature 
but  also  as  a  very  essential  part  of  an  education  that 
would  be  liberal  and  humane,  our  problem  becomes  mainly 
one  of  ways  and  means  to  reach  an  end.  That  end  indeed 
should  not  be  forgotten.  The  aim  of  a  study  of  literature 
is  not  the  mere  acquaintance  with  the  facts,  titles,  names, 
dates  of  the  meanings  and  genealogies  of  words,  but 
understanding  and  appreciation  of  the  life  of  literature ; 
it  is  the  assimilation,  and  not  the  accumulation,  of  the 
knowledge  to  be  derived  therefrom.  The  student  mind  is 
a  living  organism,  not  an  apartment  house.  It  must  grow 
and  develop  by  an  inner  force ;  it  has  not  to  be  furnished 
or  decorated  from  without.  To  teach  the  young  mind  to 
reflect,  to  convert  to  its  own  uses  what  it  knows,  to  turn 
knowledge  into  power,  is  the  teacher's  function  whereby 
he  will  reduce  the  number  of  average  men  and  women  in 
the  world.  For  the  average  man  or  woman  is  the  man  or 
woman  who  does  not  think.  We  shall  consider  reading, 
then,  as  a  means  to  this  larger  end  in  the  study  of  litera- 
ture. 

Here  is  the  case  as  we  meet  it  concretely  in  the  class 
room.    The  average  age  of  a  high  school  freshman  is  15, 


Eeading  in  Secondaby  Schools  and  Colleges      899 

of  a  college  freshman,  18,  while  the  age  of  an  academy 
freshman,  we  presmne  discreetly,  is  somewhere  between 
the  two.  In  the  grades,  work  in  English  is  largely  limited 
to  the  study  of  grammar,  so  that  the  high  school  fresh- 
man has  done  little  if  any  formal  reading  in  English.' 
This  is  not  to  say  he  has  done  no  reading.  Even  if  the 
home  does  not  supply  him  with  books,  in  this  day  of  read- 
ily accessible  public  libraries  he  has  probably  come  into 
close  contact  with  books  and  done  some  if  not  consid- 
erable reading.  In  the  cities  the  juvenile  section  of  the 
library  is,  I  believe,  well  patronised.  So  that  at  14  many 
a  boy  and  girl  has  formed  a  taste  for  reading,  at  least 
for  a  certain  kind  of  reading.  But  that  matter  Is  negli- 
gible for  the  present.  The  important  thing,  from  the 
teacher's  standpoint,  is  that  here  there  is  ready  for  his 
use  a  tool,  an  instrument  for  him  to  play  upon,  a  force  and 
power  which  he  has  but  to  direct.  The  case  is  the  same 
for  the  student  who  comes  to  college  with  a  formed  taste 
in  reading.  The  professor's  task  is  comparatively  light. 
He  has  but  to  mould  an  existing  medium,  he  has  not  to 
create  his  materials. 

But,  on  the  other  hand,  there  is  the  high  school  fresh- 
man, and,  more  incredible,  the  college  freshman  or  high 
school  graduate,  who  has  not  acquired  a  taste  for  reading. 
Here  the  teacher  or  professor  must  start  from  the  ground 
up.  First  of  all,  he  must  himself  be  a  man  of  wide  and  deep 
reading,  with  a  true  relish  for  literature  and  a  true  sym- 
pathy for  human  nature,  not  as  an  abstraction  but  as 
personified  in  the  dull,  indolent,  or  unwilling  pupil  before 
him.  If  the  teacher  himself  is  fully  convinced  of  the 
need  and  the  advantages  of  reading,  if  he  is  on  fire  with 
the  love  of  literature,  with  an  enthusiasm  in  method  intel- 
ligently controlled,  he  has  made  the  first  long  step  in  the 
direction  of  creating  the  interest  lacking  in  his  pupil.  For 
we  may  as  well  face  the  fact,  painful  as  it  is :  too  seldom 
are  we  teachers  thus  equipped  in  mind  or  temper,  and  in 


900  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

some  measure  the  absence  of  right  reading  in  onr  schools 
and  the  presence  of  wrong  reading  is  due  to  the  teacher 
who  is  only  half  convinced  in  the  cause,  only  half  equipped 
for  the  the  work,  and  consequently  but  a  blind — or  at  least 
one-eyed — leader  of  the  blind,  a  cistern  without  water. 
The  low  stream  points  to  a  low  source.  A  teacher  who  is 
not  in  love  with  literature  and  in  love  with  life,  the  only 
key  to  letters,  a  teacher  uninformed,  about  whom  lingers 
some  superstition  of  the  dangerousness  of  literature,  a 
teacher  who  stoops — mayhap  from  compound  interest  or 
test-tubes — to  literature  is  the  first  dilBficulty  in  the  prob- 
lem of  reading  in  secondary  schools  and  colleges.  Until 
in  the  teacher  ^s  mind  the  library  takes  at  least  equal  foot- 
ing with  the  laboratory  in  vain  will  any  effort  be  to  give 
reading  the  place  it  ought  to  have  in  the  school  cur- 
riculum. 

Supposing,  however,  the  teacher  rightly  equipped  and 
zealous  in  this  particular  work,  confronted  with  a  pupil 
or  class,  deficient  in  this  matter  of  reading,  whether  in 
high  school,  academy  or  college,  with  what  lights  on 
method  can  we  furnish  his  good  intention?  Such  a 
teacher,  we  would  again  remark,  has  already  made  a  long 
stride  in  the  right  direction  simply  by  being  what  he  is ; 
for  not  machinery,  devices,  or  methods  so  essentially  are 
needed  as  the  enkindling  spirit,  the  love  of  literature. 
Here  as  elsewhere,  cor  ad  cor  loquitur.  So  much  being 
premised,  the  teacher  will  succeed  in  his  purpose  in  pro- 
portion as  he  understands  his  pupil  or  his  class,  in  pro- 
portion to  his  influence  over  the  individual  or  the  group, 
and  in  proportion  to  the  aptness  of  the  selection  of  books 
which  he  makes  for  the  one  or  the  many.  These  three 
elements  count  for  much  at  the  very  start.  It  all  comes 
down  to  suiting  the  nourishment  to  the  organism,  but  to 
do  this,  imderstanding  of  the  condition  of  the  organism, 
power  of  personality  to  make  one's  prescription  effective 
and,  obviously,  as  we  have  previously  intimated,  know]- 


Eeading  in  Secondaby  Schools  and  Colleges      901 

edge  of  the  range  of  remedies,  i.  e.,  knowledge  of  the 
resources  of  literature  itself,  are  necessary  on  the 
teacher's  part. 

The  mind  grasps  only  what  it  is  prepared  to  receive — 
*Hhe  eye  sees  only  what  it  brings  with  it  the  power  of 
seeing.''  Keeping  that  as  a  cardinal  principle,  let  the 
teacher  be  concerned  to  reach  the  nerve  or  cord  which  a 
particular  book  or  selection  may  be  expected  to  touch. 
For  example,  the  instinct  of  self-preservation  is  strong 
in  the  boy.  Consequently  his  mind  is  in  readiness  to 
assimilate  the  literature  of  war  and  adventure.  Dray- 
ton's **Agincourt,"  and  Tennyson's  ** Revenge"  and 
*  ^  Charge  of  the  Light  Brigade, ' '  and  the  ballads  of  Henry 
Newbolt  will  hold  and  thrill  many  a  boy  on  whom  **The 
Psalm  of  Life"  is  lost,  not  because  they  are  better  poetry, 
that  is  not  the  question,  but  because  he  has  the  means  of 
understanding  them  better.  Similarly,  most  narrative 
poetry,  such  as  the  '^Rime  of  the  Ancient  Mariner"  will 
appeal.  The  same  is  true  of  prose  reading.  I  have 
known  a  class  of  boys  in  high  school  work  to  follow 
breathlessly  an  hour's  reading  of  the  old  chronicle 
account  of  the  Battle  of  Hastings.  The  teacher  at  first 
must  take  what  he  can  get  in  the  way  of  preparedness 
for  reading  on  the  pupil's  part,  and  work  on  that.  I 
know  of  one  splendid  and  desperate  professor  who  was 
reduced,  in  the  beginning,  to  read  a  dime  novel  to  his 
class,  a  class  that  he  subsequently  brought  on  to  the  love 
of  Ruskin.  Applications  will  vary  greatly,  but  the  prin- 
ciple remains  that  the  selection  is  to  be  governed  by  the 
pupil's  preparedness  to  receive  it. 

When  the  pupil  is  unready,  however,  his  disposition 
can  be  worked  upon;  curiosity  can  be  aroused,  interest 
stimulated.  The  ways  of  doing  this  are  simple  but  there 
is  sometimes  need  of  delicacy.  Praise  of  a  book  often  is 
fatal  to  its  appreciation.  It  is  like  the  laudatory  intro- 
duction given  a  speaker,  often  it  defeats  its  purpose.    If 


902  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

you  can  touch  some  vital  nerve  in  the  student  you  give  the 
book  a  better  chance.  For  example,  you  desire  him  to 
read  Newman's  Callista.  '*  Here/ 'you  say,  **is  the 
first  of  the  psychological  novels,  and  yet  a  book  that  has 
never  been  allowed  the  importance  it  really  has.  Now, 
you  will  meet  discussion  of  novels,  psychological  and 
other,  everywhere.  Not  one  man  in  fifty  will  know  about 
this  book.  Here  is  your  chance  to  be  one  man  in  fifty." 
There  you  give  the  student  a  motive,  not  the  highest 
motive  possible,  but  you  touch  a  vital  spot,  his  desire 
for  conspicuous  excellence,  and  you  have  said  no  praise 
derogatory  to  the  book.  He  takes  it  from  you  as  a  matter 
of  course  that  the  book  is  worth  reading.  Charles  War- 
ren Stoddard  is  an  author — a  Catholic  author,  too — ^well 
worthy  of  the  most  liberal  reading  in  the  class  room  and 
out.  And  he  may  be  approached  in  a  number  of  ways, 
apart  from  the  primal  way  of  the  student's  preparedness 
for  his  writings.  Does  the  Catholic  want  to  have  one 
superb  stylist  among  Catholic  writers  in  America  to  refer 
to  in  this  or  that  discussion  of  the  merits  of  our  contribu- 
tion to  literature;  does  he  wish  to  have  for  citation  and 
for  his  own  satisfaction  an  instance  of  perfect  conver- 
sion; is  he  anxious  to  see  the  blend  of  East  and  West 
influences  in  a  peculiarly  susceptible  temperament,  let 
him  steep  himself  in  Charles  Warren  Stoddard.  Other 
motives,  varying  with  the  reader,  the  teacher,  and  the 
author  to  be  approached,  may  be  discovered  to  place  a 
book  in  the  right  light  for  the  student,  to  create  an  inter- 
est where  there  was  none,  or  to  rouse  a  dormant  curiosity. 
In  all  this  work  of  immediate  influence,  the  teacher  will 
succeed  best  where  he  best  persuades  the  particular  pupil 
that  this  book  is  just  the  thing  for  him.  In  such  attention, 
there  is  a  subtle  compliment  which  the  ordinary  student 
will  appreciate,  and  on  the  teacher's  side  there  is  no 
reason  why  such  a  compliment  may  not  be  sincere. 
Outside  the  formal  reading  of  the  class  room  and  apart 


Eeadifg  in  Secondaey  Schools  and  Colleges      903 

from  pure  pedagogy  there  are  ways  to  stimulate  interest 
in  reading.  At  all  times  we  read  for  delight  which  is  the 
final  motive  of  art.  Here,  pleasure  and  profit  are  one. 
There  is  reading  for  information,  but  that  is  rather  study, 
and  there  is  a  scientific  reading,  the  close,  intensive  con- 
sideration which  is  given  a  text  in  the  class  room,  and 
this,  too,  is  scientific  study,  whether  of  philology,  of  logic, 
the  laws  of  thought  relation,  or  of  literary  structure.  But 
reading  as  we  use  it  here  is  reading  for  life  and  enjoy- 
ment, for  appreciation  and  the  resultant  assimilation  of 
knowledge  which  means  general  intellectual  development. 
Such  reading  is  its  own  reward,  and  college  students,  at 
least,  can  be  got  to  understand  that  this  is  so.  They 
like  to  be  told  that  they  are  wealthy  mentally,  or  may 
become  so,  win  the  knowledge  that  alone  is  power,  simply 
by  addressing  themselves  to  the  mastering  of  a  few  great 
books.  And  the  satisfaction  that  comes  while  this  work 
is  being  pursued,  in  returns  got  along  the  way,  justifies 
their  faith  for  the  ultimate  result.  For  younger  students 
a  motive  less  high  may  be  invoked,  for  example,  honors, 
or  exemptions. 

Give  a  medal  for  reading  as  we  do  for  writing  and 
bookkeeping;  or  allow  exemption  from  this  or  that  class 
duty,  class  attendance,  or  examination,  provided  a  certain 
achievement  is  made  in  right  reading.  This  method  is 
mentioned,  though  it  presents  academic  difficulties,  and 
there  is  no  intention  here  of  according  it  full  approval. 
This  plan,  however,  might  be  followed.  In  high  school 
work,  offer  an  alternative  in  the  course  of  the  history  of 
literature;  either  a  course  of  study  in  a  reputable  text- 
book with  necessary  selected  readings,  or  a  course  in  the 
history  of  literature  wholly  by  reading,  groups  of  authors 
and  works  being  selected  and  set  by  the  teacher.  Pro- 
vided such  reading  were  done  under  the  proper  direction 
there  is  no  doubt  which  would  be  the  better  course  in  the 
history  of  literature  inasmuch  as  it  is  infinitely  better  to 


904  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

know  literature  and  authors  in  their  works,  than  to  know 
about  authors  and  know  their  writings  scarcely  at  all.  In 
advanced  college  work  the  plan  is  actually  followed  where 
there  is  a  course,  for  instance,  in  Shakespeare,  but  what 
more  profitable  work  in  English  could  a  college  freshman 
do  than  that  involved  in  a  detailed  and  careful  reading,  let 
us  say,  of  Newman's  Idea  of  a  University,  Assimilating  the 
knowledge  therein  contained, — and  that  would  be  a  liberal 
education — he  would  arrive  as  well  at  a  juster  apprecia- 
tion of  style  and  do  more  for  the  acquiring  and  improving 
a  style  of  his  own,  since  style  is  really  a  work  of  thought — 
*  thinking  out  into  language,  *'  Newman  calls  it — than  by 
any  amount  of  formal  and  explicit  drilling  on  those  ele- 
ments standing  unrelated  to  living  literature  and  alone. 

A  quickening  method  that  may  be  applied  outside  the 
class  room  and  in  connection  with  it  is  the  reading  circle, 
or  society  for  reading  alone.  In  union  there  is  strength. 
The  spirit  of  reading  is  contagious,  books  circulate,  read- 
ers make  readers.  The  teacher  has  achieved  a  great 
result  when  he  creates  a  reader  who  will  create  other 
readers.  Gather  these  forces  together,  give  them  an 
organization  and  a  purpose,  allow  the  society  special 
privileges,  and  hold  it  to  strict  compliance  with  its  own 
regulations,  make  membership  in  it  every  way  desirable 
and  advantageous.  In  this  way  you  will  put  reading  on 
a  footing  of  honor  which  at  present  it  lacks  in  the  minds 
of  most  students. 

An  organization  of  this  kind  exists  at  the  University  of 
Notre  Dame,  and  I  have  been  asked  by  the  committee  of 
this  association  to  outline  the  methods  of  the  society. 
**The  Apostle  of  Eeligious  Beading''  had  its  origin  in 
the  requests  for  books  made  by  students  to  one  of  the 
prefects  in  Brownson  Hall.  The  prefect  in  question  at 
first  loaned  his  own  books,  few  in  number  and  sober  in 
character.  These  were  faithfully  read  and  returned  with 
requests  for  others.    Then  there  arose  in  the  prefect's 


Eeading  in  Secondaby  Schools  and  Colleges      905 

mind  a  project  of  founding  a  circulating  library  of  good 
solid  reading.  This  library  should  be  supported  by  nomi- 
nal fees  paid  by  faithful  readers  and  by  contributions 
from  without.  In  two  years  and  a  half  upwards  of  two 
hundred  books  have  been  secured  in  this  way.  These 
books  are  practically  all  by  Catholic  authors,  American 
and  English,  and  are  the  very  best  of  their  kind.  With 
the  development  of  the  work,  the  idea  of  religious  reading 
has  been  gradually  modified  into  good  reading,  amount- 
ing to  nearly  the  same  thing  substantially  while  allowing 
a  wider  range  in  the  selection  of  books.  Thus  it  has  come 
about  that  the  library  is  made  up  largely  of  fiction,  whole- 
some Catholic  fiction,  and  when  one  reflects  on  the  kind  of 
books  and  magazines  this  Catholic  fiction  has  supplanted 
for  many  of  the  library's  present  patrons,  one  sees  that, 
after  all,  it  has  not  fallen  short  of  its  initial  religious 
ideal.  Located  in  Brownson  Hall,  the  library  is  none  the 
less  open  to  the  students  of  every  hall  of  the  University. 
In  each  of  the  halls  there  is  a  promoter  who  each  week 
goes  around  with  a  basket  or  suit  case  of  books  offering 
a  selection  and  delivering  the  goods,  literally,  at  the 
student's  very  door.  In  this  way  many  are  supplied  who 
would  be  reluctant  to  hunt  up  books  for  themselves.  This 
means  reaches  those  who  would  not  read  otherwise,  and 
it  is  a  convenience  as  a  timesaver  for  the  eager  student. 
Here  is  a  typical  complete  card  of  a  college  freshman 
representing  a  year's  reading: 

Life  after  Death  (Vaughan). 

Dangers  of  the  Day  (Vaughan). 

Means  and  Ends  of  Education  (Spalding). 

The  Coin  of  Sacrifice  (Eeid). 

A  Royal  Son  and  Mother  (von  Hiigel). 

A  Sin  and  Its  Atonement. 

A  Troubled  Heart  (Stoddard). 

A  Day  in  the  Cloister  (Camm). 

Carmela  (Reid). 


906  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

Vera's  Charge  (Reid). 

The  Lepers  of  Molokai  (Stoddard). 

Poems  (Tabb). 

A  typical  list  of  a  preparatory,  or  high  school  student, 
shows  the  following : 

A  Sin  and  Its  Atonement. 

Thoughts  for  All  Times  (Vaughan). 

Martyrs  of  the  Coliseum  (O'Reilly). 

Sins  of  Society  (Vaughan). 

The  Divine  Story  (Holland). 

Fabiola  (Wiseman). 

Holy  Mass  ( 0  'Kennedy) . 

When  one  remembers  that  the  library  counts  about 
two  hundred  steady  readers  one  surely  must  say  it  has 
been  successful.  This  success  is  due  first  to  the  untiring 
zeal  of  its  founder  and  chief  promoter.  Brother  Alphon- 
sus,  C.  S.  C,  to  its  accessibility,  to  the  personal  propa- 
ganda, as  it  might  be  called,  which  is  its  distinctive  note, 
and  finally  to  the  range  and  excellence  of  its  books. 

This  suggests  a  final  question, — what  to  read.  For 
school  room  work  the  answer  is  simple,  the  classics,  of 
course,  and,  let  me  add,  the  classics  in  whole,  not  in  part. 
Selections,  *' elegant  extracts'' — anathema  on  the  name 
and  the  thing.  These  are  the  cream,  the  sweetmeats  of 
literature,  and  one  can  no  more  acquire  a  reliable  taste 
in  literature  from  dining  off  them  than  he  could  hope  for 
good  health  on  a  diet  of  bon-bons  and  ice  cream  cones. 
The  masters  are  not  always  on  the  heights,  they  are  not 
at  their  best  on  every  page,  there  are  slumps  in  great 
books.  Why  spare  the  young  reader  the  stretch  of  desert 
that  alone  gives  the  oasis  its  full  sweetness?  Why  take 
from  him  his  best  background  for  appreciating  the 
author's  highest  greatness?  Rather,  let  him  wrestle  with 
his  author,  where  need  be,  and  he  will  the  more  genuinely 
and  gratefully  rest  in  his  great  passages.  And  he  will 
know  life  the  better.     I  would  make  an  exception  for 


Eeading  in  Secondary  Schools  and  Colleges      907 

poetry  in  favor  of  a  book  like  Palgrave's  Golden  Treas- 
ury, or  Mrs.  MeynelPs  Flower  of  the  Mind,  or  The  Ox- 
ford Book  of  English  Verse.  Poetry  is  poetry  or  nothing. 
And  in  poetry,  moreover,  individual  poems  are  complete 
in  themselves,  and  are  consequently  not  ** extracts''  at 
all.  In  the  three  anthologies  cited  may  be  found  all  the 
gold  of  English  song.  Gradations  of  readings  have  been 
made  by  competent  hands  and  editions  offered  for  school 
use,  so  that  this  matter  need  not  be  here  touched  upon. 

Class  work  will  do  much  if  it  makes  a  reader  of  the 
student  when  outside  the  classroom,  and  it  will  do  little 
if  it  fail  of  this.  To  get  our  young  people  to  sit  down 
contentedly  with  the  world's  great  books  is  to  counteract 
some  of  the  intellectual  and  social  faults  of  our  American 
people.  When  fashions  of  mind,  no  less  than  of  dress, 
of  books  and  even  of  physique,  change  almost  hourly, 
we  are  cursed  with  the  vulgar  ambition  to  be  up  to  date. 
We  are  impatient  of  process,  we  want  immediate  results, 
we  are  irreverent  of  the  past,  whether  of  yesterday  or  of 
Thebes.  We  hurry  through  things,  we  make  short  cuts. 
One  enterprising  firm  of  publishers  exhibits  this  tendency 
in  the  strongest  light  by  offering  an  abridged  edition  of 
the  great  masterpieces  of  literature,  thus  furnishing  an 
express  subway  course  through  the  literature  of  the 
world.  Our  own  books  notoriously  reflect  this  tendency. 
They  are,  as  some  one  happily  termed  them,  the  moving 
pictures  of  literature.  These  thousands  of  dollar  and 
a  half  or  dollar  and  a  quarter  volumes  that  issue  daily 
from  our  publishing  houses  stand  to  the  works  of  Dickens, 
Thackeray,  Sienkiewicz,  as  the  nickleodeon  to  the  drama 
of  Elizabethan  England.  They  present  only  the  most 
superficial  view  of  life,  highly  colored  often  by  a  flam- 
boyant personality.  From  the  masters  we  get  life  as  it 
is,  while,  as  Professor  Babbitt  says,  ^*much  of  modem 
literature  merely  encourages  to  sentimental  and  romantic 
revery  rather  than  to  a  resolute  and  manly  grappling 


908  The  Catholic  Educationaij  Eeview 

with  the  plain  facts  of  existence/^  There  is  a  quality* 
of  sobriety  about  the  great  books  and  a  discipline  that 
serves  as  a  stimulus  to  the  will  and  the  moral  side  of  man. 
Between  the  mind  and  character  of  the  man  who  has 
read  these  books  and  the  mind  and  character  of  the  man 
who  has  fed  on  the  Bob  Chambers'  of  literature  there  is 
the  difference  there  is  between  a  steel  lance  and  a  roll  of 
putty.  There  is  a  bracing  atmosphere  in  the  classics,  an 
air  in  which  the  weak  grow  lusty  and  the  strong  are  made 
more  mighty.  The  restlessness,  the  softness,  the  irrev- 
erence; the  whimsicalness  of  our  time  will  meet  one  strong 
corrective  in  the  intellectual  discipline  to  be  derived  from 
the  habit  of  reading  the  world's  best  books.  To  form 
that  habit  in  our  own  young  people,  to  give  them  the 
power  to  be  wise  and  happy  at  the  same  time,  is  a  worthy 
work  for  any  Catholic  teacher. 

Charles  L.  0'Donn:ell,  0.  S.  C. 
Notre  Dame  University. 


A  TRIPARTITE  AID  TO  RELIGIOUS  EDUCATION 

PART  I 

Catholic  education  has  been  primarily  established  for 
the  salvation  of  souls  through  the  medium  of  daily- 
religious  and  moral  instruction.  Does  the  work  of  the 
religious  educator  in  this  direction  end  with  the  little 
morning  talk?  By  no  means.  God  is  first,  last,  and 
always ;  not  in  one  thing  only,  but  in  all  things.  To  teach 
rightly,  is  to  deal  with  the  human  heart,  to  plant  therein 
a  love  of  what  is  true,  good,  and  beautiful;  and  religion 
is  but  one  of  the  means  to  attain  this  end.  *  *  What  ever  is, 
is  good.*'  Truth,  the  ultimatum  of  all  knowledge,  is 
God's.  All  truth,  then,  emanating  from  Him  should 
return  to  Him  as  the  water  flowing  from  the  fountain 
returns  thereto.  It  is  an  axiom  of  common  sense  that  all 
the  means  should  harmonize  and  be  subordinate  to  the 
end.  So,  in  the  teaching  of  profane  branches,  many 
opportunities  arise  to  remind  us  of  the  end  in  view  and 
furnish  means  for  its  attainment,  which  is  to  have  our 
pupils  seek  God  and  His  Kingdom  through  the  world  in 
which  they  live.  He  is  everywhere;  all  things  are  but 
finite  limitations  of  His  infinite  bounty ;  Nature  is  but  the 
mirror  of  His  perfections. 

We  teach  to  impart,  holding  with  firm  conviction  that 
knowledge  is  good  and  worthy  of  our  best  endeavors. 
While,  to  know,  is  good ;  to  be,  is  better.  The  knowledge 
without  the  proper  being  is  a  dangerous  weapon  in  the 
hands  of  a  human  creature ;  so,  while  we  inculcate  knowl- 
edge, we  endeavor  to  perfect  our  pupils  in  their  being, 
and  it  must  stand  to  reason  that  the  one  should  aid  the 
other.  The  Wise  Man  says:  *^With  all  thy  getting,  get 
understanding, ' '  and  what  is  understanding,  if  not  a  cor- 
rect notion  of  right,  of  truth,  of  justice?    Justice  is  the 


910  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

King  of  the  Cardinal  Virtues,  the  sum  total  of  the  wisdom 
of  the  ancient  Philosophers.  We  do  not  highly  value  a 
Sunday  religion ;  in  the  same  manner,  the  courses  of  study 
in  our  schools  would  be  barren  of  proper  results  if  relig- 
ion did  not  permeate  and  vivify  all. 

Of  the  branches  taught  in  our  schools,  which  will  be 
helpful  in  attaining  the  end  of  religious  education,  there 
are  three  which  preeminently  partake  of  religion,  while 
apparently  seeming  apart  therefrom — science,  literature, 
and  history.  Yet,  we  need  not  make  these  lessons  relig- 
ious in  the  strict  sense  of  the  word ;  a  tactful  teacher  can 
often  inject  religion  without  seeming  to  do  so.  This  is 
not  only  useful,  but  even  necessary  to  be  true  to  our 
vocation.  In  the  world  at  large,  most  men  have  an  aim, 
be  it  money,  position,  or  fame.  All  desire  success  in  their 
chosen  sphere;  no  means  are  left  untried  to  assure  it, 
be  they  ever  so  insignificant.  Often,  their  endeavors  are 
worthy  of  a  better  cause.  How  imperative,  then,  is  it  for 
us  to  keep  in  view  our  lifework,  which  is  God's!  During 
His  life  on  earth,  He  never  lost  sight  of  the  end;  and 
for  its  ultimate  success.  He  laid  down  His  life.  To  us,  He 
has  imparted  the  grace  to  continue  His  work;  not  only 
that,  but  He  has  set  us  the  example :  *  *  He  taught  as  one 
having  power.''  Well  might  the  Scripture  add  to  us: 
**Go,  and  do  thou  in  like  manner!" 

In  the  teaching  of  science,  many  opportunities  are 
afforded  to  show  its  correlation  to  religion.  Science  here 
is  not  to  be  taken  in  its  broadest  sense,  but  is  restricted 
to  the  natural  sciences.  The  metaphysical,  as  treated  by 
Catholics,  are  religious  directly  and  indirectly ;  otherwise, 
we  would  have  an  incongruity  in  the  form  of  a  soulless 
intellect,  or  treat  of  principles  and  laws  while  ignoring 
the  Author. 

In  our  day,  men  with  their  highly  formed  intellects, 
minus  the  coordinated  training  of  the  heart,  in  their  pride 
and  mad  rush  for  notoriety,  are  gradually  rejecting  the 


A  Teipartite  Aid  to  Eeligious  Education        911 

Supernatural,  and  losing  faith  in  a  personal  God.  Our 
Catholic  youth  need  no  confirmation  for  the  existence  of 
God  or  His  revealed  Religion ;  such  has  been  implanted  in 
their  souls  by  Baptism,  strengthened  by  Confirmation, 
nurtured  by  a  fond,  pious  mother,  and  carefully  guarded 
by  a  selfless,  devoted  teacher.  Happy,  blessed  the  child 
with  these  safeguards !  No  wonder  so  much  is  expected 
of  him  from  the  fountain  head  of  all  his  goodness — God's 
Holy  Church! 

Thank  God  for  the  Faith!  But  let  it  not  be  a  light 
hidden  under  a  bushel.  Too  timid  we  have  been.  The 
days  of  the  Catacombs  have  long  since  passed.  ^*So 
let  thy  light  shine ' '  must  be  the  motto  of  the  Church  and 
her  valiant  sons  if  the  unbelief  of  the  present  is  to  be 
checked.  We  need  make  no  stir;  simply  let  the  light 
shine.  Light  makes  no  noise;  it  peeps  through  crevices 
unobtrusively;  it  illumines  in  the  open  unimpedibly. 
Numerically  we  are  strong,  in  proportion  should  our 
influence  be  in  the  moral  order.  ' '  Then  conquer  we  must, 
for  our  cause  is  so  just.''  But  conquer  we  will  not,  unless 
we  make  use  of  the  proper  means,  just  the  very  ones 
which  the  enemies  of  religion  use  to  bring  it  into  dis- 
credit— vigilance,  activity,  and  determination. 

The  age  in  which  we  live  fastens  itself  on  to  the  latest 
fad,  good  or  bad.  It  lives  or  dies  according  to  the  numDer 
and  zeal  of  its  propagators.  Should  we  rest  on  our  oars  ? 
Should  ours  in  later  life  be  dashed  headlong  in  the  whirl- 
pool of  modem  vagaries  to  their  own  destruction  and  the 
discredit  of  the  Religion  which  fain  would  throw  the 
saving  rope  of  grace  ?  Then  we  must  be  up  and  doing : 
against  vigilance  in  the  wrong,  we  must  be  vigilant  in 
the  right ;  activity  against  activity ;  determination  against 
determination.  Our  vocation  demands  it  of  us,  the 
Church  looks  to  us  for  it,  and  God,  Himself,  expects  it 
of  us.  True,  it  is,  that  Christian  virtue  has  ever  been 
symbolized  by  the  modest  violet;  but,  when  it  is  threat- 


912  The  Catholic  Educational.  Review 

ened  by  being  ruthlessly  trampled  upon,  self-preservation 
demands  that  it  shall  live,  and  if  needs  be  by  open  fight  with 
moral  arms.  Christian  Faith  loves  the  quiet  of  seclusion ; 
but  when  quiescence  amounts  to  pusillanimity,  virtue 
ceases  to  be,  and  borders  on  vice.  We  must,  then,  form 
our  pupils  to  be  soldiers  in  the  moral  order,  and  science 
is  one  of  the  means  to  the  end. 

In  the  world  of  science  there  is  a  class  of  men  who  use 
satire  and  ridicule  with  all  their  poignant  force  to  reflect 
discredit  and  disbelief  in  religion.  False  science  would 
dethrone  religion;  real  science  must  be  used  to  keep  it 
enthroned.  When  our  Catholic  youth  mix  with  the  world, 
and  possibly  hear  their  religion  made  little  of,  and  them- 
selves termed  *  Spriest-ridden,''  will  they,  with  the  divine 
glow  of  the  real  manhood  it  is  our  blesses  privilege  to  try 
to  instill,  stand  up  and  put  the  scoffer  to  shame  and  con- 
fusion by  the  very  means  he  used  to  confuse?  Or,  must 
our  youths  blush,  and  by  a  silence  affirm,  or  at  least,  give 
the  impression  that  they  know  not  what  they  believe? 
Let  us  not  trust  to  ingenuity,  or  rely  on  the  occasion 
making  the  man,  but  forestall  by  a  thorough  drill  in 
maintaining  God  through  the  world  which  He  has  created. 
It  is  true  that  the  student  acquires  a  knowledge  of  the 
origin  of  the  world  in  cosmology;  but  how  few,  compara- 
tively speaking,  ever  reach  that  stage  in  the  college  cur- 
riculum !  We  are  dealing  with  the  many,  not  the  privi- 
leged few,  and  we  must  try  as  far  as  practicable  to  make 
up  for  them  the  loss  which  we  regret  it  is  theirs  to  sustain 
in  not  benefiting  by  the  advantages  of  higher  Catholic 
education. 

We  must  teach  wherein  the  so-called  man  of  science  is 
wrong  in  his  conception,  or  rather  nonconception,  of  God 
and  revealed  Religion.  The  man  of  science  will  not  be- 
lieve religion  because  he  does  not  understand  it.  **The 
Church  asks  too  much  of  reasonable  men. ' '  The  simplest 
school  boy  can  readily  see,  if  pointed  out,  the  very  incon- 


A  Tkipaetite  Aid  to  Religious  Education        913 

sistency  of  the  doubter.  Wliat  of  Nature?  All  tlie  great 
scientists  were,  and  are,  as  little  children  sitting  at  her 
feet,  drinking  in  unquestionably  the  little  she  vouchsafes 
to  give  them.  They  never  doubt ;  they  dare  not  question 
her  authority ;  they  are  all  eagerness  to  learn  more,  never 
able  to  learn  all.  Before  Nature,  the  scientists  bends  his 
knee  and  says  his  ^^ Credo''  with  as  much  reverence  and 
more  awe  than  we  do  when  we  bow  before  the  God  of 
Nature.  In  Nature,  the  scientist  believes  that  which  he 
does  not  understand,  and  neither  sees.  He  believes  that 
the  grass  grows.  Can  he  see,  can  he  understand  the 
process  underlying  the  growth;  the  intussusception  of 
moisture  by  the  roots  whereby  the  little  blade  is  endowed 
with  organic  life?  He  believes  in  electricity  because  he 
sees  its  effects.  Can  he  tell  what  the  little  fluid  is  which 
runs  our  cars,  lights  our  houses  and  streets,  and  even 
cooks  our  food?    Nature  balks  him  at  every  turn. 

There  are  some  not  of  our  Faith,  who  in  the  pursuit  of 
science  realized  their  own  littleness,  notably,  the  late 
Lord  Kelvin,  who  said:  ** Scientific  thought  is  compelled 
to  accept  the  idea  of  creative  Power.''  Further  he  stated, 
in  speaking  of  his  achievements  during  his  fifty-five  years 
of  research:  *^As  regards  electrical  and  magnetic  force, 
the  relation  between  ether  and  ponderable  matter,  I  know 
as  much  now,  as  I  did  fifty-five  years  ago."  The  same 
eminent  physicist  more  than  once  was  heard  to  say  that 
the  closer  he  came  in  contact  with  the  secrets  of  Nature, 
the  nearer  he  approached  to  Nature's  God;  a  thought 
which  we  cannot  too  deeply  impress  on  the  growing,  in- 
quiring mind  of  youth. 

Despite  the  proofs  of  God's  existence,  we  now  and 
again  hear  the  foolish  statement  that  this  world  is  a 
fortuitous  concurrence  of  atoms.  Its  absurdity  is  nicely 
shown  by  a  story  which  runs  to  the  effect  that  a  man  once 
unknowingly  found  himself  at  his  own  home  in  the  midst 
of  a  company  of  pronounced  atheists.    While  listening  to 


914  The  Catholic  Educational  Beview 

their  blasphemous  tirade,  the  clock  struck.  **  Gentle- 
men, * '  he  said, '  *  this  is  a  wonderful  age.  You  heard  that 
clock  strike.  Its  contrivance  is  phenomenal;  it  came 
together  without  human  agency;  every  cog  and  wheel  is 
in  its  proper  place ;  it  need  never  be  wound. ' '  The  com- 
pany laughed;  but  when  they  saw  his  apparent  earnest- 
ness, they  began  to  doubt  his  sanity.  As  he  persisted,  a 
heated  argument  followed.  By  adroit  questioning  on 
his  part,  he  led  them  to  affirm  that  the  clock  was  regulated 
by  the  sun-dial,  which  in  turn  was  dependent  on  the  sun. 
*  ^  Gentlemen, ' '  he  concluded,  *  ^  I  can  no  more  believe  that 
the  sun  which  is  the  determiner  of  time  and  the  center  of 
the  Universe  came  into  existence  of  itself,  and  of  itself, 
keeps  in  motion  the  clock-work  of  the  stars  and  planets 
than  you  can  believe  the  same  of  that  simpler,  little 
clock. ' '  It  is  needless  to  state  that  silence  and  confusion 
reigned  supreme  among  the  group  of  scoffers. 

Furthermore,  in  our  dealing  with  elementary  science 
in  the  class  room,  we  should  touch  on  the  position  which 
the  Church  has  ever  held  in  regard  to  scientific  progress. 
That  she  is  inimically  inclined  thereto,  is  as  old  a  calumny 
as  the  so-called  Eef ormation ;  and  has  as  often  been  suc- 
cessfully refuted  as  it  has  been  falsely  uttered.  Still,  it 
requires  but  an  opportune  occasion  to  bring  it  forth  from 
the  depths  of  ignorance  and  malice.  Why,  if  Halley's 
comet  were  to  reappear  tomorrow,  the  supposed  Bull  of 
excommunication  would  be  raked  up  from  nowhere,  and 
we  would  be  accused  of  once  having  hurled  it  at  the 
unoffensive,  disappointing  little  trail  of  light!  The 
Church  has  ever  been  foremost  in  scientific  research,  and 
her  ablest  minds  have  been,  on  that  account,  the  greatest 
benefactors  to  the  human  race.  The  strongest  point  to 
attest  this,  is  the  rebirth  of  the  science  of  anatomy  under 
the  patronage  of  the  Popes,  after  it  had  lain  dormant  for 
six  centuries  by  reason  of  the  barbaric  wars  of  Europe. 
Here,  too,  a  Bull  of  condemnation  was  given  out  by  Boni- 


A  Tbipaetite  Aid  to  Religious  Education        915 

face  Vm,  which,  when  read  properly,  will  turn  out  to 
be  in  reality  but  a  prohibition  against  the  pagan  custom 
of  cremation.  But  the  main  point  on  which  the  accusation 
rests,  is  the  Galileo  case.  That  the  famous  scientist  was 
condemned,  no  one  denies;  that  he  was  condemned  for 
being  scientific,  or  that  he  was  subjected  to  torture,  is 
but  a  fabrication.  Galileo  brought  the  trouble  on  himself 
by  reason  of  his  own  obstinacy  in  holding  as  a  fact  that 
which  was  only  a  theory;  and  today,  the  scientists  who 
would  pity  him  and  scoff  at  the  benightedness  of  the 
Church,  admit  that  his  theories  were  wrong.  At  most, 
he  was  bidden  to  keep  silence  until  he  could  support  his 
reasoning  by  proofs.  He  was  silenced  by  the  Roman 
Tribimal  which  is  not  the  Church.  A  writer  in  the  * '  Edin- 
burg  Review,'*  who,  on  account  of  his  not  being  of  our 
Faith,  thereby  gives  more  weight  to  his  words  in  this 
instance,  says  of  the  case  in  question:  **The  myths 
created  by  ignorance  or  fraud,  in  treating  of  Galileo's 
condemnation,  have  been  dispelled.  The  dungeon,  the 
rack,  and  the  horrors  of  solitary  confinement  has  dis- 
appeared from  authentic  history."  In  fine,  he  was  con- 
demned for  being  unscientific;  for  encroaching  on  the 
Bible  to  support  his  theory,  which  like  the  Constitution, 
to  the  country,  is  sacred  to  the  Church,  and  neither  admits 
of  private  interpretation;  his  condemnation  consisted  in 
being  reprimanded;  his  confinement  was  of  twenty-two 
days'  duration  in  one  of  the  rooms  of  a  palace,  where 
he  had  the  freedom  of  the  place  and  the  intercourse  of  his 
friends  at  his  own  pleasure. 

More  far  reaching  than  preparing  our  pupils  to  enter 
the  field  of  controversy,  which  is  only  a  possible  contin- 
gency, is  the  benefit  accruing  to  themselves  from  the 
study  of  the  natural  sciences.  As  they  grow  older,  and 
the  so-called  American  birthright  prerogative  of  freedom 
possibly  asserts  itself  in  the  shape  of  independence  of 
thought,  which  might  incline  them  to  regard  the  myste- 


916  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

ries  of  Eeligion  in  a  critical  light,  the  knowledge  of 
science  should  come  to  their  aid  and  teach  them  the  utter 
futility  of  searching  into  the  secrets  of  the  Almighty. 

Religious  dogma  should  be  no  stumbling  block  to  the 
Catholic  educated  youth.  He  has  learned  that  science  in  the 
natural  order  is  dogmatic,  unrelentingly  so.  Why  not  re- 
ligion, even  more  so  ?  God  rules  over  both.  The  youth  sees 
that  dogma  permeats  chemistry.  If  he  disregards  the  most 
minute  of  rules  in  compounding  or  in  analyzing,  will  he 
obtain  a  resultant?  The  Law  of  Definite  Proportion  is 
fixed,  irrefutable;  and,  incidently,  useful  to  show  by  its 
simple  words  the  sublime  truth  which  Edison  calls,  *Hhe 
presence  of  an  All-pervading  mind'^  as  an  evasion  for 
his  recent  unscientific  utterance  that  he  no  longer  be- 
lieved in  a  Personal  God  or  a  future  life.  Mathematics 
are  based  on  axioms,  which  no  sane  man  denies  because 
he  cannot  demonstrate.  The  boy  or  girl  readily  sees  this 
in  the  beginning  of  geometry.  They  likewise  know  that 
heat,  light,  and  sound  are  but  hypothetical  as  far  as 
human  knowledge  extends  towards  their  nature.  They 
should  thus  understand  that  if,  in  the  natural  order, 
things  are  incomprehensible,  that  it  is  more  reasonable 
that  the  supernatural,  which  transcends  the  natural, 
should  be  unintelligible  to  mortal  man  who  cannot  rise 
above  his  nature  any  more  than  water  can  go  beyond  its 
level  unaided. 

Finally,  science  is  most  useful  to  us  in  accomplishing 
the  end  of  our  work  by  reason  of  its  Catholicity.  Depend- 
ing, as  we  are  obliged  to,  for  the  most  part,  on  text-books 
from  an  indifferent,  if  not  a  hostile,  source,  we  never 
find  the  name  of  God  mentioned  nor  the  religion  of  some 
of  the  most  eminent  names  connected  with  scientific 
achievements.  As  we  do  not  expect  it,  we  are  not  disap- 
pointed at  not  finding  it;  still,  the  omission  should  be 
supplied  by  us,  simply  to  attain  the  end  in  view.  In  all 
departments  of  science  are  to  be  found  Catholic  names ; 


A  Teipaetite  Aid  to  Eeligious  Education        917 

names,  that  shed  their  luster,  not  only  on  scientific  lore ; 
but  the  Religion  which  was  to  them  a  source  of  inspira- 
tion. 

The  very  beginning  of  scientific  knowledge  lies  in  ex- 
periments. Albertus  Magnus,  a  Dominican  saint,  was  the 
first  to  point  out  the  wisdom  of  a  direct  appeal  to  Nature 
to  learn  her  secrets.  Francis  Bacon,  a  Franciscan,  is 
called  the  '* Father  of  Experimental  Physics.''  To  Coper- 
nis,  a  priest,  is  attributed  the  discovery  of  the  solar 
system  which  bears  his  name.  De  Vico,  a  Jesuit,  first 
discovered  the  existence  of  comets;  another  Jesuit,  Sec- 
chi,  originated  the  investigation  of  the  solar  spectrum. 
The  ** Father  of  Modern  Chemistry,"  is  a  Catholic, 
Anthony  Lavosier.  The  founder  of  the  modern  science 
of  bacteriology  is  the  immortal  Pasteur.  The  most  re- 
nowned mathematician  is  the  devout  Pascal.  Every  day 
we  hear  the  terms :  volt,  galvanic,  ampere ;  and  each  cor- 
responds to  a  devout  Catholic,  the  last  named  found  sol- 
ace and  pleasure  in  teaching  the  simple  truths  of  the 
Catechism  to  the  young.  Roentgen  and  Marconi  are  but 
recent  benefactors  to  humanity;  and,  at  the  same  time, 
belong  to  the  Church. 

These  are  but  a  few  of  the  many  illustrative  names  to 
be  used  to  impress  our  youth  that  their  Religion  claims 
learned  men  as  well  as  those  who  are  holy ;  that  sanctity, 
far  from  being  a  hindrance  to  learning,  is  a  help  thereto, 
inasmuch  as  virtue  clears  the  mind  and  prepares  the  way 
for  the  inception  of  truth. 

With  the  school  library  usefully  adorned  with  a  set  of 
the  Catholic  Encyclopedia,  biographic  sketches  of  such 
men  can  be  required  as  an  exercise  in  composition,  and  a 
more  lasting  impression  will  be  made.  Such  an  impres- 
sion is  vital  to  our  interests.  Why  lay  so  much  stress  on 
Catholic  names  1  Does  it  not  savor  much  like  the  boasting 
we  hear  every  time  we  have  a  Catholic  elected  to  public 
office,  as  if  the  Church  sought  such,  or  could  be  benefited 


918  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

thereby.  But,  here,  the  case  is  different.  We  have  an 
end  in  view;  we  hope  to  inspire  pride  of  Faith;  from 
pride  will  spring  admiration;  from  admiration,  love; 
from  love,  practice;  and,  in  practice,  the  fondest  hopes 
of  the  zealous  teacher  are  realized,  and  science  will  not 
have  been  taught  in  vain.* 

Brothee  Julian,  C.  F.  X. 
Louisville,  Ky. 


♦Literature  and  History  will  he  considered  in  separate  numbers  of  the 
Review. 


HON.  WILLIAM  CALLYHAN  EOBINSON,  LL.  D. 

On  Monday,  November  6tli,  William  Callyhan  Eobin- 
son,  Dean  of  the  Law  School  of  the  Catholic  University  of 
America,  passed  to  his  reward.  He  died  as  he  lived, 
among  his  books.  Those  who  knew  him  best  say  that  his 
departure  from  this  life  was  as  he  would  have  wished. 

Bom  in  Norwich,  Conn.,  July  26,  1834,  his  early  edu- 
cation was  received  in  private  schools  and  at  Wesleyan 
Academy.  In  1854  he  was  graduated  from  Dartmouth 
College  with  the  degree  of  A.  B.  His  Alma  Mater  con- 
ferred on  him  the  degree  of  LL.  D.  in  1879,  and  in  1881 
Yale  made  him  Master  of  Arts. 

Eleven  years  after  graduating  from  Dartmouth  he 
practiced  law  in  New  Haven.  He  was  a  lecturer  at  the 
Yale  Law  School  from  1869  to  1872,  and  Professor  of 
Common  Law  in  the  same  institution  from  1872  to  1896. 

As  Judge  of  the  New  Haven  City  Court  he  served  from 
1869  to  1871,  and  thereafter  was  Judge  of  Connecticut 
Court  of  Common  Pleas  till  1895,  when  he  organized  the 
Law  School  at  the  Catholic  University  of  America.  For 
sixteen  years  he  labored  earnestly  as  Dean  of  the  Cath- 
olic University  Law  School,  delivering  his  last  lecture 
on  Friday,  November  3d. 

His  most  celebrated  works  are  *^Life  of  Ebenezer 
Beriah  Kelly,''  *^ Notes  on  Elementary  Law,''  ** Elemen- 
tary Law,"  ^^Clavis  Eerum,"  ^^Law  of  Patents"  in  three 
Volumes,  ^  ^  Forensic  Oratory, ' '  and  *  *  Elements  of  Amer- 
ican Jurisprudence. ' '  He  contributed  to  legal  periodicals 
from  1867  to  1910  and  was  Editor  of  the  Mirror  of  Justice 
in  1903.  He  was  considered  an  authority  on  Patent  Law 
and  sent  one  of  his  pupils  to  Japan  to  revise  the  patent 
laws  of  that  country  for  which  he  was  highly  honored 
by  the  Japanese  Government. 


920  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Our  late  Dean  was  not  born  within  the  fold  of  the 
Catholic  Church.  He  was  educated  for  and  became  an 
Episcopalian  Minister.  As  a  Minister  he  found  himself 
still  searching  for  the  truth  and  his  legal  bent  of  mind 
with  its  capacity  to  weigh  evidence  brought  him  into 
Mother  Church.  Then  and  throughout  the  remainder  of 
his  life  his  unyielding  loyalty  to  truth  as  it  was  reflected 
in  the  mirror  of  his  own  soul,  seemed  to  many  to  be  his 
most  prominent  attribute.  Conviction,  begotten  of  rea- 
son, developed  in  later  years  into  sublime  faith,  and  his 
satisfied  belief,  that  the  quest  of  younger  days  had  ended 
happily,  gave  him  an  equipoise  that  but  few  attain.  Once 
certain  that  he  had  acquired  a  knowledge  of  Divine  Truth, 
the  unfolding  of  the  Common  Law  was  easily  grapsed  by 
his  mind  and  he  became  a  Master  of  it  early  in  his  legal 
career.  As  explanatory  of  the  fact  he  probably  would 
use  at  least  as  positive  language  as  another  who  has  said : 
^^The  law  is  the  outcome  and  the  result  in  all  the  great 
features  that  give  character  to  it,  of  the  principles  of 
natural  right  and  justice  wrought  by  sound  reasoning  and 
long  and  patient  experience  into  salutary  adaptation  to 
civil  conduct  and  human  interests.  In  the  growth  of  the 
structure  that  has  thus  arisen  Christianity  has  been  a 
predominant  influence.  Whatever  cavil  may  be  raised 
about  the  religion  we  profess,  its  history  remains,  and  the 
influence  of  its  morality  is  undisputed.  It  has  been  truly 
declared  to  be  a  part  of  the  Common  Law;  and  he  has 
studied  to  small  purpose  who  has  not  learned  how  large  a 
part  that  is.  If  the  world  can  do  without  Christianity's 
teaching,  the  world's  law  cannot  dispense  with  the  results 
of  it/'* 

The  Late  Dean  had  the  teaching  instinct.  It  was  love 
of  that  profession  that  induced  him  to  co-operate  in 
founding  the  Yale  Law  School.  Tempting  offers  to  return 


♦Edward  John  Phelps,  "Orations  and  Essays,  The  Relation  of  Law  to 
Justice,"  p.  105,  New  York,  1901. 


Hon.  William  Callyhan  Eobinson,  LL.  D.       921 

to  private  practice  came  frequently  but  remained  unac- 
cepted. How  well  he  taught  at  Yale  was  attested  at  the 
Commencement  Exercises  in  June,  1909,  when  a  tablet 
to  his  memory  was  unveiled  at  that  institution,  President 
William  H.  Taft  being  present. 

His  acceptance  of  the  call  to  the  Catholic  University 
in  1895  was  in  keeping  with  a  sacrificial  trait  not  too  com- 
mon even  among  teachers.  At  the  age  of  sixty-one,  when 
most  men  fortunately  circumstanced  are  not  assuming 
unnecessary  burdens,  he  undertook  the  task  of  founding 
another  School  of  Law.  In  doiQg  so  he  believed  that  he 
had  a  mission  to  perform.  Through  all  the  earlier  years 
of  struggle  he  was  striving  to  raise  the  Law  School  to  the 
high  level  of  the  other  departments  of  the  Catholic  Uni- 
versity of  America.  Just  as  bright  days  dawned  and  the 
School  of  Law  was  being  filled  by  eager  students  Judge 
Eobinson  was  summoned  by  The  Judge  of  Judges. 

How  well  our  late  Dean's  mission  was  performed  at 
this  University  another  time  and  other  men  will  deter- 
mine. In  the  iaterval  most  will  agree  that  the  mental 
attitude,  wherein  daily  duties  are  a  mission,  must  raise 
the  value  of  any  teacher's  work  from  the  plain  of  time- 
serving to  the  height  of  a  labor  of  love.  Without  this 
latter  no  teacher  can  be  great. 

May  his  soul  rest  in  peace. 

Thomas  C.  Cakrigan. 


A  HASTY  INFERENCE 

The  following  letter  appeared  in  the  Catholic  Standard 
and  Times,  under  date  of  October  6 : 

^^The  Catholic  Educational  Review  for  September  has 
an  authoritative  article  on  the  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross 
by  ^S.  M.  A./  one  of  their  own  sisters,  which  settles  the 
dispute  as  to  which  was  the  first  college  to  graduate  Cath- 
olic women.  It  states  on  page  639  *  since  the  opening  of 
Collegiate  Hall  at  St.  Mary's  (Notre  Dame,  Indiana)  in 
1904,  eighty  young  women  have  taken  their  degrees. '  In 
1903  St.  Elizabeth's  College,  Convent  Station,  N.  J.,  con- 
ferred the  degree  of  B.  A.  on  a  class  after  four  years 
of  college  work.  The  Bishop  of  Newark  was  right  in 
addressing  them  as  ^the  first  fruits  of  the  higher  educa- 
tion of  women  in  this  country.'  Monsignor  Flynn,  the 
historian,  was  right  in  *The  Catholic  Church  in  New 
Jersey'  when  he  stated  that  the  College  of  St.  Elizabeth 
was  '  the  first  institution  of  the  kind  in  this  country, '  for 
one  of  the  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross,  in  the  article  quoted 
above,  confirms  their  claims.  The  trouble  in  this  little 
controversy  was  we  did  not  agree  as  to  the  definition  of 
the  words  *  college'  and  *  degree.'  Both  of  these  terms 
are  too  often  misused  in  this  country.  A  'college'  should 
have  a  charter  empowering  it  to  confer  degrees  after  four 
years  of  sucessful  collegiate  work.  'Collegiate  work'  in 
a  Catholic  college  means  a  classical  course  of  four  years. 
'Degree':  after  four  years'  successful  study  of  what  are 
called  the  Liberal  Arts  the  student  is  rewarded  with  the 
title  of  B.  A.  (Bachelor  of  Arts).  And  so,  Mr.  Editor, 
I  humbly  apologise  to  the  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Cross  at 
St.  Mary's,  Notre  Dame,  for  being  misled  into  foisting 
on  them  an  honor  which  one  of  their  own  members 
refutes,  and  to  the  Sisters  of  Charity  of  St.  Elizabeth's 


A  Hasty  Infebencb  923 

College  forgiveness  is  asked  for  attempting  to  take  from 
them  the  glory  which  is  theirs  of  being  the  first  to  confer 
on  Catholic  women  in  these  United  States  the  degree 
of  B.  A.  after  four  years  of  regular  college  work. 

Sincerely  yours, 

S.  H.  Hoegan/' 

We  print  the  following  reply  from  S.  M.  A. : 
An  article  on  the  Sisters  of  Holy  Cross,  which  appeared 
in  this  Review  for  September,  has  been  cited  in  various 
newspapers  as  proof  conclusive  that  St.  Mary's,  Notre 
Dame,  conferred  degrees  for  the  first  time  in  1904.  The 
writer  of  the  article  in  question  knew  nothing  of  the 
controversy  then  waging  on  the  terms  ** college''  and 
*' degree,"  nor  of  the  rival  claims  set  up  by  the  partisans 
of  the  two  well-known  schools  devoted  to  the  higher  edu- 
cation of  young  women.  It  is  unlikely  that  either  the 
institutions  or  their  faculties  entered  into  the  discussion, 
as  their  time  and  efforts  are  given  to  weightier  matters. 
Hence  it  is  not  surprising  that  the  writer  has  seen  today 
for  the  first  time  a  newspaper  clipping  in  which  she  is 
quoted  as  an  authority  in  settling  a  dispute  of  which 
she  has  never  heard. 

Since  attention  is  called  to  her  statement  on  page  639,  of 
the  Catholic  Educational  Review,  relative  to  the  opening  of 
the  new  Collegiate  Hall  at  the  Motherhouse,  it  is  only  fair 
to  turn  to  page  635  of  the  same  magazine  and  learn  that 
St.  Mary's  was  chartered  February  28,  1855,  under  an 
Act  of  the  General  Assembly  of  the  State  of  Indiana  and 
was  empowered  **to  confer  such  degrees  as  are  used 
in  academies  of  the  highest  standing. ' '  This  Act  was  by 
no  means  inoperative.  Long  before  a  separate  college 
building  was  even  dreamed  of,  some  students  who  had 
finished  the  advanced  academic  course  with  honor  entered 
the  post  graduate  courses  which  led  to  the  degree  of 
B.  A.     These  degrees  were  recognized  by  no  less  an 


924  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

authority  on  matters  educational  than  the  late  Dr.  Will- 
iam T.  Harris,  when  United  States  Commissioner  of  Edu- 
cation. 

With  the  dawning  of  the  twentieth  century  applicants 
for  degrees  became  so  numerous  as  to  justify  the  expense 
of  erecting  a  separate  building  and  maintaining  a  separ- 
ate faculty  to  meet  these  growing  demands.  It  was 
merely  to  show  the  wisdom  of  this  radical  departure  from 
the  established  order  of  things  as  well  as  to  note  the  close 
relationship  in  our  day  and  country  between  material 
growth  and  educational  activities,  and  not  to  take  glory 
from  any  other  workers  in  the  field  of  education,  that  led 
the  writer  to  mention  particularly  the  increasing  number 
of  college  students  availing  themselves  of  the  increased 
facilities  offered  by  Collegiate  Hall. 

Had  the  statement  been  made  that  '  ^  since  the  opening 
of  St.  Angela's  Hall  (the  Commercement  Auditorium) 
several  hundred  pupils  had  received  their  academic 
diplomas  and  medals, ' '  would  any  one  have  interpreted  it 
as  meaning  there  had  been  no  graduates  during  the  pre- 
vious half  century?  Neither  can  it  be  inferred  that 
because  *^  Since  the  opening  of  Collegiate  Hall  at  St. 
Mary's  in  1904,  eighty  young  women  have  taken  their 
degrees,''  that  none  were  so  honored  previous  to  this 
event  I  S.  M.  A. 


SURVEY  OF  THE  FIELD 


THE  HIGH  SCHOOL 


The  printed  report  of  the  Proceedings  and  Addresses 
of  the  eighth  Annual  Meeting  of  the  Catholic  Educational 
Association  held  in  Chicago,  Illinois,  June  26-29,  1911, 
has,  within  the  past  few  days,  reached  the  members  of 
the  Association.  The  volume  is  filled  with  splendid 
papers  dealing  with  topics  of  vital  interest  to  our  Catholic 
schools  of  all  grades.  The  recent  growth  of  our  Catholic 
high  schools  and  the  many  problems  which  they  present 

occupied  the  leading  place  during  the  pro- 
THE  CATHOLIC  cecdings.  Three  out  of  the  five  papers 
EDUCATIONAL  read  at  the  general  sessions  were  devoted 
ASSOCIATION        to  the  high  school.    The  first  paper.  The 

Eeport  of  the  Committee  on  High  Schools, 
by  the  Rev.  James  A.  Burns,  C.  S.  C,  appeared  in  our 
September  issue.  The  second  paper.  The  High  School, 
Its  Relation  to  the  Elementary  School  and  to  the  College, 
was  presented  by  the  Rev.  James  J.  Dean,  0.  S.  A.  This 
paper  will  be  closely  studied  by  Catholic  educators 
throughout  the  country,  especially  wherever  the  need  of 
a  Catholic  high  school  is  felt.  Its  opening  paragraphs 
give  a  vivid  picture  of  a  condition  of  things  which  de- 
mands speedy  remedy. 

**At  a  recent  meeting  of  the  Executive  Board  of  this 
Association  one  of  our  foremost  Catholic  educators  de- 
clared that  the  most  prominent  characteristic  of  Cath- 
olic education  in  the  United  States  at  the  present  time 
is  its  utter  lack  of  system.  That  such  a  statement  could 
be  made  without  eliciting  any  comment  or  bringing  forth 
any  expression  of  dissenting  opinion  is  strong  presump- 


926  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

tive  evidence  of  its  truth.  That  our  parish  schools  are 
doing  remarkable  work,  and  this  in  spite  of 
NEED  OF  serious  difficulties,  cannot  be  denied.  Unf  ortu- 
SYSTEM  nately,  their  field  is  limited  and  their  work,  be- 
cause of  its  elementary  character,  can  hardly  be 
said  to  constitute  an  educational  system.  That  our  col- 
leges are  accomplishing  much,  and  this  in  the  face  of 
almost  insurmountable  obstacles,  is  equally  true.  Between 
the  two,  however,  there  is  a  wide  field,  the  tilling  of  which 
seems  to  have  received  scant  consideration.  Candidly 
we  are  forced  to  admit  that  there  is  no  such  thing  as  a 
comprehensive  Catholic  system  of  secondary  education. 
The  parish  schools  have  made  some  effort  to  supply 
the  need  with  varying  success,  generally  without  proper 
equipment  and  without  an  efficient  teaching  staff." 

The  writer  proceeds  to  point  out  the  evil  consequences 
attending  upon  the  efforts  of  the  colleges  to  deal  with  sec- 
ondary education  and  insists  that  our  Catholic  school 
system  should  conform,  in  its  general  divisions,  at  least, 
to  that  prevailing  in  the  country  at  large  and  hence  that 
it  should  have  these  four  divisions :  (1)  The  Elementary 
School  System;  (2)  The  Secondary  School  System;  (3) 
The  College;  and  (4)  The  Professional  School.  Each 
of  these  divisions  corresponds  to  a  psychological  phase 
in  mental  development;  each  has  its  separate  end  to 
achieve;  but  they  evidently  should  be  so  articulated  one 
with  the  other  that  the  child  might  pass  up  through  the 
entire  system  without  confusion  or  needless  loss  of  time. 

While  the  primary  school  has  its  own  end 
TWOFOLD  to  achieve,  it  must  also  afford  an  adequate 

AIM  OF  preparation  for  the  high  school.     In  like 

HIGH  SCHOOL    manner,  the  high  school  has  definite  ends 

of  its  own  to  attain,  and  in  addition  to 
these  it  should  leave  the  pupil  properly  prepared  for  col- 
lege. 

The  public  high  school  system  has  back  of  it  more 


SuBVEY  OP  THE  FlELD  927 

than  half  a  century  of  growth,  nevertheless,  it  has  not  yet 
satisfactorily  solved  the  problem  of  combining  the  spe- 
cific end  of  the  high  school  with  the  proper  preparation 
for  college.  College  men  have  used  their  position  of  van- 
tage to  compel  the  high  school  to  sacrifice  its  specific  aims 
to  college  entrance  requirements.  The  reaction  against 
this  procedure  has,  during  the  last  few  years,  become 
marked  and  it  has  found  expression  in  an  interesting  and 
suggestive  report  upon  the  Articulation  of  High  School 
and  College,  submitted  by  a  committee  of  nine  appointed 
at  the  Boston  meeting  of  the  National  Educational  Asso- 
ciation, July,  1910.  The  committee  con- 
HiGH  SCHOOL  sistcd  of  Clarcncc  B.  Kingsley,  Manual 
COMMITTEE  Training  High  School,  Brooklyn,  N.  Y.; 
OF  N.  E.  A.  William  M.  Butler,  Principal,  Yeatman 

High  School,  St.  Louis,  Mo.;  Frank  B. 
Dyer,  Superintendent  of  Schools,  Cincinnati,  Ohio; 
Charles  W.  Evans,  Principal,  High  School,  East  Orange, 
N.  J. ;  Charles  H.  Judd,  Professor  of  Education,  Univer- 
sity of  Chicago ;  Alexis  F.  Lange,  Dean  of  College  Facul- 
ties, University  of  California;  W.  D.  Lewis,  Principal, 
William  Penn  High  School,  Philadelphia,  Pa.;  William 
Orr,  Deputy  State  Commissioner  of  Education,  Boston, 
Mass.;  William  H.  Smiley,  Principal,  East  Side  High 
School,  Denver,  Col.  The  report  was  adopted  by  the 
Secondary  Department  of  the  National  Educational  As- 
sociation at  San  Francisco,  July  11,  1911,  and  consists 
of  the  following  three  parts : 

A.  Some  preliminary  considerations  on  the  field  and 
function  of  education  in  the  high  school. 

B.  A  working  definition  of  a  well-planned  high  school 
course. 

C.  Eeasons  for  the  adoption  of  this  definition  as  the 
basis  of  college  admission. 

A  careful  perusal  of  the  papers  and  discussions  on  the 
high  school  in  the  latest  report  of  the  Catholic  Educa- 


928  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

tional  Association  will  reveal  the  fact  that  the  public 
high  schools  are  facing  many  of  the  same  difficulties  that 
confront  our  Catholic  secondary  schools.  The  following 
five  considerations  are  taken  verbatim  from  the  report 
of  the  Committee: 

**1.  Dr.  Henry  S.  Pritchett,  in  his  Annual  Eeport  as 
President  of  the  Carnegie  Foundation,  finds  that  Ameri- 
can education,  from  elementary  school  to  college,  is  suf- 
fering from  the  attempt  to  teach  too  many  subjects  to 
the  same  students  at  the  same  time.  He 
ENKicHED  believes  that  students  taking  the  newer 
HIGH  SCHOOL  subjccts  should  not  be  required  to  carry  all 
cuKRicuLUM  the  older  subjects.  He  states  emphatically 
that  this  is  no  argument  against  the  en- 
riched curriculum  of  the  high  school;  but  that,  on  the 
contrary,  the  high  school  must  go  on  still  further  enrich- 
ing its  curriculum,  and  that  it  is  the  duty  of  the  college 
to  adjust  itself  to  the  high  school  thus  broadened. 

^*2.  It  is  the  duty  of  the  tax-supported  high  school  to 
give  every  student  instruction  carefully  designed  to 
return  to  society  intelligent,  able-bodied,  and  progressive 
citizens.  To  this  end  certain  work  should  be  included  in 
the  course  of  every  student  whether  or  not  he  contem- 
plates entering  a  higher  institution.  The  responsibility 
of  the  high  school  in  this  matter  cannot  be  delegated  to 
the  college  because  there  is  no  guarantee  that  the  par- 
ticular student  will  actually  go  to  college. 

**3.  It  is  coming  to  be  recognized  that  in  a  democratic 
society  the  high  school  has  a  distinct  function.  The  high 
school  period  is  the  testing  time,  the  time 
THE  FUNCTION  f or  trying  out  different  powers,  the  time 
OP  THE  HIGH  for  forming  life  purposes.  Consequently, 
SCHOOL  the  opportunity  should  be  provided  for 

the  student  to  test  his  capacity  in  a  fairly 
large  number  of  relatively  diverse  kinds  of  work. 

**In  the  high  school  the  boy  or  girl  may  very  properly 


SUBVEY  OF  THE  FlELD  929 

make  a  start  along  the  line  of  his  chosen  vocation,  but  a 
final  choice  should  not  be  forced  upon  him  at  the  begin- 
ning of  that  career.  If  he  makes  a  provisional  choice 
early  in  the  course,  there  should  be  ample  opportunity 
for  readjustment  later  in  the  high  school.  For  this 
reason  the  requirement  of  four  years  of  work  in  any 
particular  subject,  as  a  condition  of  admission  to  a  higher 
institution,  unless  that  subject  be  one  that  may  be 
properly  required  of  all  high  school  students,  is  illogical 
and  should,  in  the  judgment  of  this  committee,  be  imme- 
diately discontinued. 

^^4.  Not  only  is  it  the  duty  of  the  high  school  to  lay  the 
foundations  of  good  citizenship  and  to  help  in  the  wise 
choice  of  a  location,  but  it  is  equally  important  that  the 
high  school  should  make  specific  contribution  to  the  effi- 
ciency of  the  individual  along  various  broad  lines.  In 
our  industrial  democracy  the  development  of  individual 
aptitudes  and  unique  gifts  is  quite  as  important  as  the 
development  of  the  common  elements  of  culture.  More- 
over, hard  work  is  to  be  secured  not  by  insistence  upon 
uniformity  of  tastes  and  interests,  but  by  the  encour- 
agement of  special  effort  along  lines  that  appeal  to  the 
individual.  Our  education  would  gain  in  power  and 
virility  if  we  made  more  of  the  dominant  interests  that 
each  boy  and  girl  has  at  the  time.  It  would  seem  that 
some  have  come  to  believe  the  oft-repeated  statement  that 
the  liberal  should  precede  the  vocational ;  but  an  organic 
conception  of  education  demands  the  early  introduction 
of  training  for  individual  usefulness,  thereby  blending 

the  liberal  and  the  vocational ;  for  only  then 
BLENDING  docs  the  liberal  receive  its  social  significance 
THE  LIBERAL  and  importance.  In  other  words,  the  boy 
AND  THE  who  pursucs  both  the  liberal  and  the  voca- 
vooATioNAL    tioual  sees  the  relation  of  his  own  work  to 

the  work  of  others  and  to  the  welfare  of 
society ;  whereas  the  liberal  without  the  vocational  leaves 


930  The  Catholic  Educationax.  Eeview 

him  a  mere  spectator  in  the  theater  of  life  and  the  boxes 
in  this  theater  are  already  overcrowded. 

*^5.  Mechanic  arts,  agriculture,  or  household  science 
should  be  recognized  as  rational  elements  in  the  educa- 
tion of  all  boys  and  girls,  and  especially  of  those  who 
have  not  as  yet  chosen  their  vocation.  Under  the  autho- 
rity of  the  traditional  conception  of  the  best  preparation 
for  a  higher  institution,  many  of  our  public  high  schools 
are  today  responsible  for  leading  tens  of 
INDIVIDUAL  thousands  of  boys  and  girls  away  from  the 
AND  SOCIAL  pursuits  for  which  they  are  adapted  and  in 
NEEDS  which  they  are  needed,  to  other  pursuits  for 

which  they  are  not  adapted  and  in  which  they 
are  not  needed.  By  means  of  exclusively  bookish  cur- 
ricula false  ideals  of  culture  are  developed.  A  chasm 
is  created  between  the  producers  of  material  wealth  and 
the  distributers  and  consumers  thereof. 

^^The  high  school  should  in  a  real  sense  reflect  the 
major  industries  of  the  community  which  supports  it. 
The  high  school,  as  the  local  educational  institution, 
should  reveal  to  boys  and  girls  the  higher  possibilities  for 
more  efficient  service  along  the  lines  in  which  their  own 
community  is  industrially  organized. 

*^Our  traditional  ideals  of  preparation  for  higher  in- 
stitutions are  particularly  incongruous  with  the  actual 
needs  and  future  responsibilities  of  girls.  It  would  seem 
that  such  high  school  work  as  is  carefully  designed  to 
develop  capacity  for  and  interest  in  the  proper  manage- 
ment and  conduct  of  a  home  should  be  regarded  as  of 
importance  at  least  equal  to  that  of  any  other 
DOMESTIC  work.  We  do  not  understand  how  society  can 
SCIENCE  properly  continue  to  sanction  for  girls  high 
school  curricula  that  disregard  this  funda- 
mental need,  even  though  such  curricula  are  planned  in 
response  to  the  demand  made  by  some  of  the  colleges  for 


SUBTBY  OP  THE  FlELD  931 

Comment  on  these  considerations  is  scarcely  necessary, 
but  it  may  be  well  to  point  out  the  fact  that  our  Catholic 
high  schools  have  higher  ends  to  attain.  There  will  be 
general  agreement  in  the  contention  of  Dr.  Pritchett  that 
our  schools,  of  all  grades,  are  '*  suffering  from  the  at- 
tempt to  teach  too  many  subjects  to  the  same  students 
at  the  same  time,''  but  there  will  not  be  such  unanimity 
in  the  remedy  which  he  suggests  and  which  looks  very 
like  the  introduction  of  wide  electivism  in  the  high  school. 
On  the  other  hand,  it  seems  only  fair  that  the  college 
should  so  modify  its  demands  upon  the  high  school  as  to 
leave  the  latter  institution  the  requisite  freedom  for  the 
attainment  of  its  own  specific  ends.  College  entrance  re- 
quirements have  been  rightly  blamed  for  much  of  the  con- 
fusion and  discouragement  to  be  found  in  our  secondary 
schools.  A  severe  indictment  against  them  is  brought  by 
the  Eev.  James  J.  Dean  in  his  paper  on  the  high  school* 
to  which  we  have  referred  above. 

**The  reason  commonly  assigned  by  high  school  teach- 
ers for  their  failure  in  this  respect  is  the  twofold  nature 
of  the  duty  devolving  upon  them — the  equipment  of  the 
great  majority  for  the  business  of  life  and  the  prepara- 
tion of  a  few  for  college.    Can  it  be  that  these  duties  are 

inconsistent  and  irreconcilable,  absolutely  dis- 
coLLEGE  tinct  and  independent  of  each  other?  If  so, 
ENTRANCE  the  college  is  out  of  harmony  with  the  life  of 
REQUIRE-  the  nation  and  cannot  long  survive.  To  say 
MENTS         the  least,  we  must  admit  that  the  college  is 

partly  to  blame,  and  this  for  certain  very  defi- 
nite reasons.  Among  these  we  may  enumerate  (1)  the 
ever-changing  entrance  requirements,  widely  advertised 
but  seldom  enforced,  (2)  the  great  variety  of  ridiculous 
courses  leading  to  a  degree  for  anything  from  psychology 
to  typewriting,  (3)  the  vagaries  of  college-bred  instruc- 
tors and  university  trained  superintendents.  College  en- 
trance requirements  and  college  entrance  examinations, 


♦Proceedings  of  the  8th  Annual  Meeting  of  the  Catholic  Educational 
Association,  p.  78. 


932  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

as  at  present  regulated,  are  in  many  respects  farcical.  A 
great  variety  of  unrelated  subjects  is  demanded,  and  tests 
are  given  in  a  way  that  makes  a  true  estimate  of  ability 
highly  problematical.  Syllabi  are  drawn  up  outlining 
the  work  upon  which  the  examinations  will  be  based,  and 
each  individual  professor  immediately  proceeds  to  dis- 
regard them.  Perhaps  the  most  absurd  thing  about  these 
examinations  is  that  they  may  be  taken  piecemeal  over  a 
period  of  two  or  three  years,  immediately  upon  the  com- 
pletion of  a  particular  branch,  thus  affording  a  memory 
test  over  a  brief  space  of  time  but  giving  absolutely  no 
information  as  to  the  candidate's  ability  here  and  now. 
It  matters  little  what  the  student  may  have  known  two 
or  three  years  ago,  the  point  to  be  determined  is — what 
can  he  do  nowT' 

One  need  not  agree  with  everything  that  Father  Dean 
says  and  yet  recognize  the  fact  that  there  is  some  justice 
in  his  arraignment.    To  live  our  present  life  worthily  is 

the  best  means  of  preparing  for  the  life  to 
NEEDLESS  comc.  And  so  it  must  always  remain  true  that 
conflict  the  best  preparation  for  college  will  be  found 
OF  AIMS       in  a  secondary  education  that  best  meets  the 

present  needs  of  our  developing  youth.  Power 
rather  than  content  is  the  preparation  needed  both  for 
successful  achievement  in  the  world  and  for  a  worthy 
career  through  the  higher  institutions  of  learning. 

If  *4t  is  the  duty  of  the  tax-supported  high  school  to 
give  every  student  instruction  carefully  designed  to  re- 
turn to  society  intelligent,  able-bodied,  and 
specific       progressive  citizens,''  it  is  equally  the  duty 
AIM  OF  of  the  Catholic  high  school  to  add  to  these 

catholic  requirements  that  of  giving  to  the  Church 
HIGH  loyal  and  intelligent  children.     The  forma- 

BCHOOL         tion  of  character,  the  instilling  of  high  and 
noble  ideals,  must  be  included  among  those 
things    which    our    Catholic    people    have    a    right    to 
demand    of    all    our    secondary    schools.      **The    high 


Survey  of  the  Field  933 

school  period  is  the  testing-time,  the  time  for  try- 
ing out  different  powers,  the  time  for  forming 
life's  purposes,''  and  hence  it  should  be  the  time  for 
the  cultivation  of  vocations  to  the  priesthood  and  to  the 
religious  life.  No  matter  what  choice  the  boy  or  girl  may 
make  at  the  beginning  of  the  high  school  ^career,  they 
should  find  it  possible  at  a  later  period  to  turn  towards 
the  religious  life  without  undue  loss  of  time,  and  hence  it 
does  not  seem  wise  to  require  four  years  of  Latin  as  a 
condition  for  college  entrance.  The  work  of  the  priest- 
hood and  that  of  our  teaching  communities 
CULTIVATION  is  absolutely  essential  for  the  preservation 
OF  VOCATIONS  of  the  Church,  and  if  our  schools  fail  in 
the  cultivation  of  vocations  to  these  high 
callings,  they  cannot  and  should  not  survive  no  matter 
what  other  services  they  may  render.  Complaint  is  heard 
on  all  sides  of  the  dearth  of  vocations  to  the  priest- 
hood and  there  is  not  a  teaching  community  in  the 
country  supplied  with  sufficient  members  to  adequately 
perform  the  work  required  of  it.  It  is  true  that  voca- 
tions come  from  God,  but  it  is  none  the  less  true  that 
these  vocations  may  be  lost  through  defects  in  our  edu- 
cational system.  In  building  up  our  high  schools,  it  seems 
clear  that  this  subject  must  be  regarded  as  one  of  para- 
mount importance. 

The  ^*  working  definition  of  a  well-planned  high  school 
course"  contains  the  following  five  elements : 

**1.  The  quantitative  requirement  should  he  fifteen  units, 

''A  unit  represents  a  year's  study  in  any  subject  in  a 

secondary  school,  constituting  approximately  a  quarter 

of  a  full  year's  work.    This  definition  assumes  that  the 

length  of  the  school  year  is  from  thirty- 

QUANTiTATivE     six  to  f orty  weeks,  that  a  period  is  from 

requieements   forty  to  sixty  minutes  in  length,  and  that 

the   study  is   pursued   for  four   or   five 

periods  per  week.    It  further  assumes  that  two  hours  of 


934  The  Catholic  Educationai.  Review 

manual  training  or  laboratory  work  is  equivalent  to  one 
hour  of  classroom  work. 

**We  believe  that  fifteen  units  is  a  better  requirement 
than  sixteen  units,  because:  (1)  Quantity  should  be  sub- 
ordinated to  quality.  (2)  Overstrain  should  be  elimi- 
nated from  the  atmosphere  of  the  school.  (3)  There 
should  be  one  unit  leeway,  inasmuch  as  failure  in  one  unit 
in  one  year  should  neither  cost  the  student  an  extra  year, 
nor  tempt  the  principal  to  permit  such  student  to  try  to 
carry  an  extra  unit  the  succeeding  year.  (4)  Students  of 
exceptional  ability  should  be  permitted  to  earn  five  units 
per  year,  thereby  shortening  the  high  school  period  by 
one  year.  (5)  Students  poor  in  ability  should  be  required 
to  spend  five  years  upon  the  course,  attempting  and  per- 
forming three  units  each  year,  thereby  diminishing  fail- 
ures and  reducing  excessive  per  capita  cost  of  instruction. 
Where  fifteen  units  is  adopted  as  the  required  number, 
it  would  seem  reasonable  that  physical  training  and 
chorus  singing  should  not  be  counted  toward  the  fifteen 
units.  We  further  recommend  that  the  practice  of  admit- 
ting students  to  college  weighed  down  with  conditions  be 
disapproved  on  the  ground  that  it  is  injurious  to  the  stu- 
dent, to  the  high  school  from  which  he  comes,  and  to  the 
college  to  which  he  goes. 

**2.  Every  high  school  course  should  include  at  least 
three  units  of  English,  one  unit  of  social  science  {includ- 
ing history),  and  one  unit  of  natural  science. 

**(1)  English.  There  is  at  the  present  time  almost 
unanimous  agreement  among  high  school  and  college 
authorities  that  three  or  four  units  of  English  should  be 
required  of  all.  But  the  high  school  should 
ENGLISH  be  granted  freedom  to  adapt  the  work  to  the 
real  needs  of  its  boys  and  girls.  A  course  that 
is  good  in  one  high  school  may  not  be  suited  to  the  needs 
of  another  high  school.  Uniformity  in  this  subject  is 
utterly  disastrous. 

**(2)  Social  Science  (including  history).  High  school 


SUBVEY  OF  THE  FlELD  935 

courses  in  history  should  always  be  taught  so  as  to  func- 
tion in  a  better  understanding  of  modern  institutions, 
current   events,   and   present   movements.     Courses   in 

economics  should  be  encouraged.  Economic  dis- 
sociAL  cussions  are  paramount  and  ignorance  of  eco- 
sciENCE  nomic  principles  is  appalling.    Every  high  school 

student  should  be  given  a  practical  knowledge  of 
affairs  in  his  own  community,  political,  industrial,  and 
philanthropic;  of  the  basic  principles  of  state  and 
national  politics ;  and  of  movements  for  social  reform  and 
international  peace.  Any  high  school  course  that  secures 
part  or  all  of  the  above  results  should  be  given  full  recog- 
nition. 

^*  (3)  Natural  Science,  Where  a  unit  of  natural  science 
is  taught,  it  should  be  recognized  as  fulfilling  the  minimum 
requirement  in  natural  science.  In  some  schools  an  in- 
troductory course  has  been  worked  out,  based  upon 
physics,  with  a  minimum  of  principle  and  a 
NATUKAL  maximum  of  application,  as  most  advan- 
sciENCE  tageously  meeting  the  needs  of  the  pupils.  In 
such  a  course  there  should  be  strict  insistence 
upon  accuracy  and  neatness  in  the  presentation  of  note- 
books and  laboratory  exercises.  Opportunity  should  be 
given  for  individual  pupils  to  work  along  special  lines, 
and  to  make  contributions  out  of  their  studies  to  the  work 
of  the  class  as  a  whole.  In  other  schools  introductory 
science  is  based  largely  upon  biology.  General  biological 
material  is  used  to  explain  human  functions.  Personal 
hygiene,  including  sex  hygiene,  is  taught.  Special  atten- 
tion is  paid  to  problems  of  ventilation,  sanitation,  and  the 
elimination  of  preventable  diseases.  Effort  is  made  to 
secure  intelligent  cooperation  with  health  au- 
BiOLOGY  thorities  and  to  form  public  opinion  regarding 
higher  standards  of  health.  A  certain  amount 
of  physics  and  chemistry  is  also  introduced  into  this 
course.     Either  of  the  introductory  courses  would  be 


936  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

placed  intentionally  in  the  first  or  second  year  of  the  high 
school. 

**(4)  Physical  Training.  Systematic  physical  training, 

consisting  of  exercises  and  clean  games  should 

PHYSICAL    be  required  of  all  students;  but  this  work 

TKAiNiNG     should  uot  bc  regarded  as  counting  towards 

the  fifteen  required  units. 

"  (3)  Every  high  school  course  should  include  the  com- 
pletion of  two  majors  of  three  units  each  and  one  minor 
of  two  units,  and  one  of  the  majors  should  he  English. 

^*  Irrespective  of  the  possibility  that  the  student  may  go 
to  a  higher  institution,  it  is  desirable  for  him  to  do  in  the 
high  school  a  certain  amount  of  work  of  an  advanced 
character.  This  provision  also  makes  it  possible  for  a 
part  of  the  work  in  college  to  be  a  continuation  of  the 
work  done  in  the  high  school,  thereby  pre- 
coNTiNuiTY  serving  continuity  in  the  educational  pro- 
iN  EDUCA-  cess.  We  recommend  that  the  following  be 
TioNALPKO-  recognized  as  majors:  (a)  3  units  of  Eng- 
CESS  lish  (required  of  all),     (b)  3  imits  of  one 

foreign  language  (Latin,  German,  French, 
or  Spanish),  (c)  3  units  of  mathematics  (to  include 
elementary  algebra  and  plane  geometry,  and  selections 
from  plane  trigonometry,  solid  geometry,  intermediate 
algebra,  and  advanced  algebra),  (d)  3  units  of  social 
science  (to  include  selections  from  history,  civics,  eco- 
nomics, municipal  affairs,  and  history  of  industry  or  com- 
merce), (e)  3  units  of  natural  science  (to  include  selec- 
tions from  an  introductory  science  course,  physics,  chem- 
istry, astronomy,  agriculture,  physiography,  elementary 
biology,  advanced  physiology,  botany  and  zoology). 

^^4.  The  requirements  in  mathematics  and  in  foreign 
languages  should  not  exceed  two  units  of  mathematics 
and  two  units  of  one  language  other  than  English. 

*^For  admission  to  engineering  courses,  the  require- 
ment of  a  major  in  mathematics  appears  reasonable.    For 


SUBVEY  OF  THE  FlELD  937 

admission  to  a  distinctively  literary  or  classical  course, 
the  requirement  of  a  major  in  one  foreign  language  ap- 
pears reasonable.  For  other  students  a  requirement  of 
more  than  two  units  of  mathematics  and  two  units  of  one 
language,  when  not  in  accord  with  the  dominant  interests 
and  aptitudes  of  the  student,  appears  excessive. 

^^5.  Of  the  total  fifteen  units,  not  less  than  eleven  units 
should  consist  of  English,  foreign  language, 
COLLEGE  mathematics,  social  science  {including  his- 
ENTEANCE  tory) ,  natural  science,  or  other  worh  conducted 
REQUiEE-  hy  recitations  and  home  study.  The  other  four 
MENTS  units  should  he  left  as  a  margin  to  he  used 
for  additional  academic  work  or  for  mechanic 
arts,  household  science,  commercial  work,  and  any  other 
hind  of  work  that  the  hest  interests  of  the  students  appear 
to  require, 

*^No  limitations  should  be  imposed  upon  the  use  of  the 
margin  except  that  the  instruction  should  be  given  by 
competent  teachers  with  suitable  equipment  with  classes 
not  too  large,  and  that  the  students '  work  should  be  of  a 
satisfactory  grade.  The  recommendation  that  the  sub- 
jects from  which  the  margin  may  be  made  up  be  left 
entirely  unspecified  appears  to  be  vital  to  the  progressive 
development  of  secondary  education.  As  long  as  formal 
recognition  must  be  sought  for  each  new  subject,  so 
long  will  the  high  school  be  subservient  and  not  fully 
progressive.  It  ought  to  be  possible  for  any  strong  high 
school  at  any  time  to  introduce  into  its  curriculum  a  sub- 
ject that  either  meets  the  peculiar  needs  of  the  community 
or  that  appears  to  be  the  most  appropriate  vehicle  for 
teachers  of  pronounced  individuality.  This  margin  of 
four  units  is  not  excessive.  It  amounts  to  an  average 
of  only  one  unit  a  year.  A  course  containing  eleven  units 
of  academic  or  prepared  work  requires  the  student  to 
carry,  practically  throughout  the  course,  three  of  these 
subjects  at  a  time.    In  general,  this  involves  the  prepara- 


938  The  Catholic  EDucATioiTAL  Eeview 

tion  of  three  lessons  a  day  outside  of  the  classroom.  A 
daily  assignment  of  more  than  three  lessons  together  with 
manual  training  or  vocational  work  in  school  hours,  is 
not  conducive  to  a  high  standard  of  excellence.  In  many 
of  our  high  schools  girls,  especially,  are  subjected  to  a 
scholastic  routine  not  designed  to  develop  a  strong  race, 
either  physically  or  mentally.  (Note:  Placing  the  num- 
ber of  required  units  of  academic  or  prepared  work  at 
eleven  instead  of  twelve  allows  a  leeway  of  one  unit  in 
case  of  a  failure  in  the  academic  work.  In  case  of  no 
failure,  by  taking  four  units  each  year,  the  students  may 
accomplish  either  an  extra  academic  imit  or  an  extra 
vocational  unit.) 

^^The  provisions  of  the  foregoing  definition  may  be 
summarized  as  follows :  Nine  specified  units.  3  units  of 
English.  2  units  of  one  foreign  language.  2  units  of 
mathematics.  1  unit  of  social  science,  including  history, 
1  unit  of  natural  science.  2  additional  academic  units. 
One  or  both  of  these  units  must  be  advanced  work  to  meet 
the  requirements  of  a  second  major  of  three  units.  4 
units  left  as  a  margin  for  whatever  work  best  meets  the 
needs  of  the  individual. '  * 

This  definition  of  a  high  school  course  would  seem  to 
meet  the  requirements  of  the  case  and  it  might  well 
form  a  basis  of  discussion  for  a  curriculum  suited  to  our 
academies  and  high  schools.  Of  course,  we 
DEFINITION  should  havc  to  make  provision  for  religious 
OF  HIGH  instruction  and  Church  History,  but  this 

SCHOOL  need  not  unnecessarily  burden  the  course. 

couBSE  It  possesses  sufficient  elasticity  to  permit 

the  high  school  to  do  its  work  in  preparing 
the  great  body  of  students  who  will  not  have  opportunity 
for  further  academic  instruction  for  their  life  work  and 
at  the  same  time  it  furnishes  a  reasonable  foundation  for 
college  work.  Whether  we  accept  all  the  provisions  of 
this  definition  or  not,  it  seems  evident  that  one  of  our 


Survey  of  the  Field  939 

greatest  needs  at  present  is  some  easily  understood  and 
workable  definition  of  a  high  school  which  will  put  an  end 
to  the  present  evil  of  college  entrance  examinations. 
Thousands  of  our  young  people  are  annually  turned  away 
from  our  institutions  into  non-Catholic  colleges  and  uni- 
versities by  the  fear  of  having  to  pass  entrance  examina- 
tions to  Catholic  colleges,  which,  in  reality,  they  could 
pass  with  considerable  ease  if  the  examinations  were  set 
with  due  regard  to  the  students'  actual  achievements 
instead  of  being  based  on  college  requirements  that  are 
out  of  joint  with  our  secondary  schools  and  sometimes 
still  further  out  of  joint  with  the  social  and  industrial 
conditions  which  both  college  and  high  school  should  en- 
deavor to  meet. 

The  third  part  of  the  report  from  which  we  have  been 
quoting  is  well  worth  the  serious  consideration  of  Cath- 
olic colleges  and  high  schools. 

**  College  admission  should  be  based  solely  upon  the 
completion  of  a  well-planned  high-school  course.  The 
committee  submits  the  following  argument  in  defense  of 
this  proposition: 

** First:  On  the  one  hand,  many  students  do  not  go 
to  college  because  they  took  those  courses  which  were 
dictated  by  their  aptitude  and  needs  instead  of  courses 
prescribed  by  the  colleges.  On  the  other  hand,  many 
students  do  not  take  the  courses  which  they  need  because 
they  think  they  may  go  to  college.  A  committee  of  the 
Boston  Head  Masters '  Association,  in  a  report  approved 
by  that  Association  last  fall,  stated  the  difficulty  as  fol- 
lows: *It  frequently  happens  that  a  pupil  in  the  public 
high  school  does  not  discover  that  he  is  likely  to  go  to 
college  until  one,  two,  or  three  years  of  the  high  school 
course  has  been  completed.  As  matters  stand  now,  many 
of  the  courses  in  which  he  has  received  instruction  and 
in  which  he  may  have  done  excellent  work  are  entirely 
useless  to  him  in  so  far  as  he  may  apply  them  to  the  pur- 


940  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

poses  of  college  admission.  The  committee  are  of  the 
opinion  that  this  is  decidedly  wrong.'  The  idea  that  the 
student  should,  early  in  his  high  school  course,  decide 
whether  he  is  going  to  college  ignores  one  of  the  chief 
functions  of  the  high  school;  namely,  that  of  inspiring 
capable  students  with  the  desire  for  further 
THE  OPEN  education.  It  is  coming  to  be  clearly  recog- 
DOOE  nized  that  the  chief  characteristic  of  education 

in  a  democracy  as  contrasted  with  that  in  a 
society  dominated  by  class  distinction,  is  the  principle  of 
the  *open  door.'  This  principle  of  the  ^open  door'  is  part 
of  the  great  idea  of  the  conservation  of  human  gifts.  It 
demands  that  personal  work  should  be  recognized  wher- 
ever found.  The  college  is  one  of  the  many  doors  that 
should  be  kept  open.  The  colleges  themselves  bear  tribute 
to  this  principle  in  the  innumerable  scholarships  that  they 
offer  to  boys  and  girls  in  humble  circumstances.  In  fact, 
it  has  long  been  recognized  in  this  country  that  one  boy 
who  seeks  a  college  education  because  of  a  strong  inner 
purpose  in  the  face  of  obstacles  is  worth  to  the  college 
and  to  society  a  do!2en  boys  who  go  to  college  merely 
because  it  is  regarded  as  the  proper  thing  to  do. ' ' 

The  reasoning  of  this  paragraph  is  cogent  and  so  emi- 
nently just  that  few,  I  believe,  will  object  to  it.  We  might 
add,  however,  that  for  our  colleges  the  question  of  voca- 
tions to  the  priesthood  is  of  more  value  than 
BELiGious  any  other  consideration  offered.  If  the  call 
VOCATIONS  to  the  priesthood  comes  late  in  the  high-school 
course,  to  a  boy  who  up  to  that  time  was  pre- 
paring himself  for  active  service  in  the  world  at  the  term- 
ination of  the  high-school  course,  the  Catholic  college 
should  admit  him,  giving  full  credit  for  the  work  that  he 
had  done.  If  his  Latin  and  Greek  are  below  the  usual 
requirement,  such  a  boy  will  easily  make  up  for  it  in  his 
college  course,  because  of  the  development  which  he  has 
had  in  other  directions.    Moreover,  an  early  development 


SUEVEY  OF  THE  FlELD  941 

towards  the  practical  affairs  of  life  is  a  most  excellent 
foundation  for  the  boy  who  would  become  a  priest. 

**  Second.  The  attempt  that  is  often  made  to  supple- 
ment the  work  now  required  by  the  colleges  with  such 
additional  work  as  is  required  by  the  community  and  by 
a  more  adequate  understanding  of  the  needs  of  real  boys 
and  girls,  is  highly  unsatisfactory.  May  7th,  1910,  the 
High  School  Teachers'  Association  of  New  York  City 
issued  a  statement  in  which  they  affirmed:  *We  believe 
that  the  interest  of  the  forty  thousand  boys  and  girls  who 
annually  attend  the  nineteen  high  schools  of  the  city  can- 
not be  wisely  and  fully  served  under  pres- 
DiscKEPANCY  ent  college  entrance  requirements.  Our 
BETWEEN  experience  seems  to  prove  the  existence  of 

pEEPAKATioN      a  wide  discrepancy  between  preparation 
FOR  LIFE  for  life  and  preparation  for  college  as 

AND  FOR  defined  by  college  entrance  requirements. 

COLLEGE  The  attempt  to  prepare  the  student  for 

college  under  the  present  requirements 
and  at  the  same  time  to  teach  him  such  other  subjects 
as  are  needed  for  life  is  unsatisfactory.  Under  these  con- 
ditions the  student  often  has  too  much  to  do.  The  quality 
of  all  his  work  is  likely  to  suffer.  The  additional  subjects 
are  slighted  because  they  do  not  count  for  admission  to 
college.  In  such  a  course  it  is  impossible  for  the  student 
to  give  these  subjects  as  much  time  and  energy  as  social 
conditions  demand.' 

**  Third.  Even  by  faithfully  following  the  usual  college 
prescription,  the  best  preparation  for  college  is  not  se- 
cured. Abraham  Flexner  in  his  book,  *The 
COLLEGE  American  College,'  shows  how  the  college  is 
STANDING  standing  in  its  own  way.  He  says  that  ^The 
IN  ITS  motive  on  which  the  college  vainly  relies, 

OWN  WAY      self-realization,  has  got  to  be  rendered  opera- 
tive at  the  earliest  stage.'    *As  a  matter  of 
fact,'  he  adds,  'the  secondary  period  is  far  more  favor- 


942  The  Catholic  Educational  Review 

able  than  the  college  to  the  free  exploration  of  the  boy/ 
The  restrictive  preparatory  courses  prescribed  by  the 
colleges  do  not  afford  the  kind  of  experience  needed  in 
the  high  school. 

*^  Fourth.  In  the  attempt  to  prepare  for  the  widely 
varying  requirements  of  different  colleges  the  energies 
of  the  school  are  dissipated.  The  energy  that  should  be 
devoted  to  meeting  actual  individual  needs 
DISSIPATION  of  students  is  expended  upon  the  study  of 
OFENEKGY  collcgc  catalogucs.  An  institution  that 
should  be  encouraged  to  develop  internally 
is  made  subordinate  and  subservient.  As  an  illustration 
of  the  confusion  in  the  requirements  of  different  col- 
leges, we  find  that  one  college  requires  one  foreign  lan- 
guage, counts  work  in  a  second,  and  gives  no  credit  for  a 
third;  another  college  requires  two  foreign  languages, 
and  requires  one  unit  in  a  third,  unless  music  or  physics 
is  presented  as  a  substitute ;  and  a  third  college  absolutely 
requires  three  foreign  languages. 

*^  Fifth.  But  by  far  the  most  serious  objection  to  the 
present  condition  is,  as  Commissioner  Snedden  says,  to 
be  found  in  the  restrictive  effect  upon  true  high  school 
development.  The  high  school  today  is  the  arena  in 
which  our  greatest  educational  problems  should  be 
worked  out.  High  school  attendance  in 
SOLUTION  OP  this  country  has  increased  almost  four- 
EDucATiONAL  fold  withiu  the  last  twenty  years.  If  the 
PKOBLEMS  college  will  recognize  the  true  function  of 

the  high  school  this  marvelous  growth  will 
continue  unabated  and  the  American  high  school  will 
become  an  institution  unparalleled  as  a  factor  for  demo- 
cratic living.  It  is  doubtful  whether  any  nation  ever 
before  possessed  such  an  opportunity. ' ' 

This  report,  throughout,  lays  strong  emphasis  on  the 
fact  that  the  high  school  period  is  the  period  of  forming 


Survey  of  the  Field  943 

life  purposes,  the  period  of  plastic  development.  Dur- 
ing the  grammar  school  period  the  children  are  too  im- 
mature and  too  little  aware  of  their  own 
HIGH  SCHOOL  possibilities  to  determine  their  life's 
PERIOD  FOR  work.     On  the   other  hand,  the  college 

FORMING  LIFE     period  is  too  late  in  life  for  new  begin- 
PURPOSES  nings,    unless    in   the    exceptional    case. 

From  considerations  such  as  those  ad- 
vanced in  this  report,  the  need  of  Catholic  high  schools 
should  be  clearly  seen.  Even  if  our  energies  should  have 
to  be  withdrawn,  in  some  measure,  from  elementary 
school  and  college,  we  cannot  afford  to  neglect  the 
children  during  the  most  important  period  of  their  life. 
But,  in  reality,  there  is  no  need  to  diminish  in  the  smallest 
degree  what  we  have  heretofore  been  doing  in  parochial 
school  and  college. 

The  faith  and  generosity  that  built  up 
NEED  OF  these  institutions  and  which  still  supports 
CATHOLIC  them  is  not  exhausted.  God  is  blessing  our 
HIGH  people  every  day  with  larger  means,  and 

SCHOOLS  when  they  realize  the  importance  of  the 
Catholic  high  school,  there  is  no  room  to 
doubt  that  they  will  meet  the  demand  in  a  worthy  man- 
ner. Perhaps  the  greatest  obstacle  in  the  way  of  the  devel- 
opment of  our  high  schools  is  to  be  found  in  the  diffi- 
culty of  securing  the  adequate  preparation  of  a  sufficient 
number  of  teachers  for  the  work.  The  Educational  De- 
partment of  the  Catholic  University  has  taken  this  matter 
in  hand  and  through  the  Sisters'  College  it  has  already 
made  a  splendid  beginning.  In  the  near  future  all  of  our 
Sisterhoods  will  be  able  to  secure  the  best  training  that 
the  age  affords  for  their  future  high  school  teachers.  The 
Educational  Department  of  the  University  should  also  be 
in  a  position  to  contribute  very  materially  towards  the 
solution  of  the  many  intricate  problems  connected  with 
the  articulation  of  Catholic  high  schools  and  colleges. 

Thomas  Edward  Shields. 


DISCUSSION 

TEACHING  THE  CHILD  TO  THINK 

Much  of  the  work  of  the  primary  grades  is  of  necessity 
devoted  to  the  instrumentalities  of  thought.  The  child 
must  be  taught  his  alphabet,  he  must  learn  to  read  and 
write  and  spell.  And  these  are  such  big  undertakings 
that  we  sometimes  lose  sight  of  the  fact  that  the  child  in 
the  primary  grades  no  less  than  the  advanced  pupil  soon 
tires  of  drills ;  he  is  in  need  of  mental  food  suited  to  his 
capacity,  and  unless  this  be  supplied  to  him  his  mind  and 
heart  cannot  develop  normally.  Unconnected  fragments 
do  not  meet  his  needs.  He  has  not  within  himself  large 
resources,  nor  has  he  yet  achieved  the  power  to  build  up  a 
unified  fabric  of  the  divergent  elements  that  are  too  fre- 
quently offered  to  him.  Of  course  the  child  needs  change 
and  variety,  but  these  things  must  be  had  without  sacri- 
ficing unity.  Again,  the  child's  power  is  too  feeble  to 
grasp  the  thought  in  its  first  presentation.  He  needs 
repetition  even  more  than  does  the  mature  student.  But 
if  we  content  ourselves  with  repeating  the  same  unde- 
veloped thought,  it  soon  palls  on  the  child,  who  finds  noth- 
ing more  in  it  that  a  wearisome  memory  task.  The  same 
thought  must  be  presented  to  him  over  and  over  again, 
but  each  time  in  a  new  setting  and  in  a  more  developed 
form.  This  is  in  line  with  what  has  been  said  of  the 
context  method  of  reading  and  of  the  method  of  teaching 
spelling  which  was  outlined  in  the  last  number  of  the 
Review.  The  child  meets  the  word  in  various  contexts 
until  he  learns  its  meaning  without  effort.  And  so  when 
he  meets  the  thought  repeatedly  in  a  new  setting,  it  devel- 
ops in  his  mind  without  conscious  effort. 

This  method  of  teaching  the  child  to  think  controlled 
in  large  measure  the  writing  of  the  Catholic  Education 


DisoussioN  945 

Series  of  primary  text-books.  For  an  illustration  of  this 
turn  to  the  first  chapter  of  Religion,  First  Book.  Here 
home  will  be  found  to  be  the  central  thought.  The  idea  of 
home  is  presented  to  the  child  in  the  first  instance  in  con- 
nection with  the  robins.  They  come  in  the  early  spring, 
braving  the  cold  and  the  scarcity  of  food,  to  build  a  home. 
They  labor  together  in  the  building  of  a  nest,  and  the 
labor  and  love  is  all  for  the  sake  of  the  little  ones  which 
the  mother  bird  lovingly  gathers  under  her  wings.  The 
child  is  thus  enabled  to  see  that  love  is  the  power  which 
creates  home.  After  the  children  have  dramatized  this 
story  and  have  thus  learned  something  of  its  inward 
meaning,  the  same  lesson  is  presented  to  them  in  a  new 
setting  in  their  own  homes.  They  are  taught  to  appre- 
ciate their  mother's  arms  and  their  father's  protecting 
care.  And  after  they  have  lived  through  this  scene, 
enhanced  by  their  new  insight  into  the  meaning  of  home, 
their  eyes  are  turned  towards  the  home  of  Jesus.  The 
growing  thought  of  home  is  thus  utilized  as  an  appercep- 
tion mass  through  which  the  child  is  led  into  a  knowledge 
of  those  things  which  transcend  his  experience  and  our 
heavenly  home  begins  to  dawn  upon  him  with  something 
of  its  native  power  and  inner  meaning. 

In  the  second  chapter  a  single  phase  of  home  is  emj>ha- 
sized  as  the  children  learn  how  the  father  and  mother 
robin  labor  all  day  long  to  procure  nourishment  for  their 
little  ones,  and  from  this  they  are  led  to  consider  how 
their  father  and  mother  labor  to  feed  them.  The  transi- 
tion from  this  to  the  story  of  the  loaves  and  fishes  and  to 
the  prayer  **Give  us  this  day  our  daily  bread''  is  easy 
and  natural. 

The  third  chapter  takes  up  the  consideration  of  home 
as  a  refuge  from  temptation  and  danger  and  follows  up 
the  theme  in  a  similar  threefold  aspect.  And  so  on,  from 
chapter  to  chapter,  through  the  First  and  Second  Books, 
the  idea  of  home  and  its  various  aspects  is  developed  in 
the  child's  mind.    The  thought  is  never  repeated  in  the 


946  The  Catholic  Educational.  Review 

same  words,  nor  in  the  same  phase ;  it  grows  and  develops 
from  page  to  page.  There  is  repetition,  over  and  over 
again,  but  the  thought  is  always  presented  in  a  new  set- 
ting and  is  made  to  reveal  new  elements  that  were  hereto- 
fore latent  or  concealed  from  the  child's  perceptions. 

Out  of  this  central  thought  many  other  allied  thoughts 
are  made  to  develop.  As  for  example  the  idea  of  the 
shepherd.  Our  children  for  the  most  part  have  no  knowl- 
edge of  the  shepherd  life  to  which  Our  Saviour  so  fre- 
quently referred.  They  are  not,  therefore,  in  a  condi- 
tion to  understand  the  wealth  of  loving  tenderness  which 
Our  Saviour  conveyed  to  His  hearers  when  He  spoke  of 
Himself  as  the  Good  Shepherd,  nor  without  this  key 
would  they  ever  be  in  a  position  to  understand  the  com- 
mission which  Our  Saviour  gave  to  St.  Peter  when  He 
charged  him  with  the  duty  of  feeding  His  lambs  and  feed- 
ing His  sheep.  It  is  important  that  the  child  be  given 
this  thought  in  its  fulness,  but  how  may  this  be  accom- 
plished? To  transport  him  to  a  Western  sheep  ranch, 
where  hirelings  round  up  the  sheep  for  the  slaughter, 
would  not  serve  the  purpose,  even  were  it  practicable. 
And  we  cannot  transport  the  child  back  through  the 
centuries  to  the  days  of  the  Boy-Shepherd  progenitor  of 
Our  Saviour.  The  child  who  is  not  unusually  situated 
knows  something  of  the  meaning  of  mother-love,  and  this 
knowledge  must  be  strengthened  and  deepened  first  and 
then  it  must  be  utilized  to  lead  him  into  an  understanding 
of  the  love  which  fills  the  shepherd's  heart. 

In  the  first  chapter  of  Religion,  First  Book,  when  Jesus 
stands  before  the  children  as  their  model,  and  sets  for 
them  the  standard  of  their  appreciation  they  are  told: 
*  *  Jesus  loves  the  sunbeams  and  the  breezes.  He  loves  the 
sky  and  the  stars.  He  loves  the  birds  and  the  flowers. 
He  loves  the  sheep  and  their  shepherd.  He  loves  all  who 
work  for  others. ' '  The  child  is  not  yet  in  a  condition  to 
grasp  a  chain  of  reasoning,  but  he  will  not  fail  to  connect 
the  two  things,  the  love  that  Jesus  bears  the  sheep  and 


Discussion  947 

their  shepherd  and  the  love  which  He  extends  to  all  who 
work  for  others.  The  germ  of  the  shepherd  thought  has 
thus  been  planted  in  the  child's  mind  at  the  very  outset. 
It  seemed  wisest  to  let  it  germinate  there  whilst  we  were 
busy  developing  in  the  children's  minds  the  consciousness 
of  parental  love.  In  the  beginning  of  the  Second  Book, 
however,  occasion  is  found  to  return  to  the  theme.  The 
religious  lesson  in  the  first  chapter  centers  around  the 
mystery  of  the  Annunciation.  It  is  fitting,  therefore,  that 
we  follow  the  example  set  by  the  Evangelist  and  give 
to  the  child  something  of  Our  Lord's  geneaology.  For 
we  are  concerned  that  he  understand  that  Christ  is  truly 
human  as  well  as  truly  divine. 

The  story  of  King  David  begins  as  follows : 
*' Flocks  of  quiet  sheep  are  feeding, 
Little  lambs  are  playing  near. 
And  the  watchful  shepherd  leading 
Keeps  them  safe  from  harm  and  fear. 

**  David  was  a  shepherd  boy.  He  lived  in  Bethlehem 
a  long,  long  time  ago.  His  father  gave  him  charge  over 
the  sheep.  David  never  forget  them.  He  took  them  to 
the  brook  to  drink  and  went  with  them  to  the  pasture. 
When  the  little  lambs  were  sick  he  took  them  in  his  arms 
and  fed  them  and  carried  them  home.  David  loved  his 
sheep  very  much  and  they  loved  him.  They  followed  him 
wherever  he  went  and  came  when  he  called  them.  One 
day  David  was  playing  on  his  harp  in  the  shade  of  a 
tree.  The  sheep  and  the  lambs  were  all  listening  to  him. 
A  big  lion  stole  up  behind  the  flock  and  grabbed  one 
of  the  little  lambs  in  his  mouth.  He  started  to  run  off 
with  it  to  eat  it.  David  heard  the  lamb 's  cry  and  ran  after 
the  lion.  He  caught  him  by  the  neck  and  killed  him. 
Then  he  took  the  poor  little  lamb  in  his  arms  and  soothed 
it  and  brought  it  back  to  its  mother.  God  was  so  pleased 
with  David  for  his  care  of  the  sheep  and  the  lambs  that 
He  made  him  a  great  king." 


948  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

The  child  will  not  fail  to  see  in  David's  attitude 
towards  the  sheep  the  tenderness  and  the  solicitous  care 
of  a  mother  for  her  baby  nor  will  David's  courage  be 
without  its  effect  in  impressing  upon  the  child  the  fact 
that  the  shepherd's  love  is  so  like  that  of  a  mother  that 
it  leads  to  the  same  deeds  of  heroism  and  self-forgetful- 
ness  whenever  the  loved  one  is  in  danger.  We  have  here 
the  shepherd  idea  developed  for  the  child,  but  it  is  not 
developed  as  an  isolated  fact;  there  are  many  elements 
bound  up  in  the  single  sketch.  A  preparation  is  being 
made  for  the  story  of  that  eventful  journey  of  Mary  and 
Joseph  to  the  City  of  David  and  for  the  Saviour  who 
willingly  lays  down  His  life  for  His  sheep. 

This  sketch  is  followed  in  the  subsequent  chapter  by  the 
story  of  the  Holy  Night  and  of  how  the  angels  appeared 
to  the  humble  shepherds  near  the  City  of  David  and 
announced  to  them  the  truce  that  was  being  made  between 
heaven  and  earth.  The  children  are  taught  how  tender 
love  for  the  weak  and  defenseless  is  the  necessary  prepa- 
ration for  the  reception  of  the  glad  tidings  which  the 
angels  brought  from  heaven.  Finally,  the  book  closes 
with  the  story  of  the  Good  Shepherd. 

With  the  idea  of  the  shepherd  developed  to  this  extent, 
the  children  are  prepared  to  see  in  St.  Peter  and  his 
successors  the  continuation  on  earth  of  the  Shepherd's 
loving  care.  The  first  third  of  Eeligion,  Third  Book,  is 
devoted  to  enlarging  upon  the  idea  of  the  good  shepherd 
that  is,  salvation  through  leadership.  They  led  step  by 
step  from  the  Expulsion  from  the  Garden  down  through 
the  Patriarchal  days  to  see  that  God  haves  His  people 
through  divinely  appointed  leaders.  And  so  at  a  later 
date  He  sends  them  Moses  and  the  Prophets  to  prepare 
them  for  the  coming  of  the  Saviour  who  fittingly  describes 
Himself  as  the  Good  Shepherd  who  lays  down  His  life  for 
His  sheep. 

It  must  not  be  supposed,  however,  that  we  can  proceed 
with  the  child  to  the  full  unfolding  of  a  thought  in  the  same 


Discussion  949 

manner  as  might  prove  acceptable  were  we  dealing  with 
adults.  When  a  certain  phase  of  development  of  a 
thought  is  reached  we  must  let  it  lie  until  the  child's 
mind,  developing  along  many  other  lines,  stands  in  need 
of  an  enlarged  and  developed  presentation  of  a  thought 
that  at  an  earlier  stage  could  only  be  grapsed  in  its  germ- 
inal form.  And  thus  in  the  development  of  the  shepherd 
idea  it  was  necessary  to  pause  while  the  child  reached  a 
keener  comprehension  of  parental  love  and  of  the  many 
forms  in  which  this  love  was  exercised  for  the  benefit  of 
the  child.  And  again  it  was  necessary  that  the  child 
should  learn  of  temptation,  of  sin  and  redemption  as  well 
as  of  the  love  of  the  Heavenly  Father  that  sent  Jesus 
down  to  earth  to  suffer  and  die  for  the  redemption  of  a 
fallen  race.  For  purposes  of  analysis,  indeed,  we  may 
follow  separately  the  development  of  each  thought  given 
to  the  child,  but  in  the  actual  presentation  to  the  child, 
these  various  thoughts  must  be  interwoven  in  one  organic 
development  which  preserves  throughout  its  many-sided 
symmetry  and  its  perpetual  functions. 

In  this  way  only  can  the  child  be  taught  to  think. 
Formal  definitions  and  analyses  are  beyond  him.  The  rules 
of  right  reasoning  will  remain  a  sealed  book  to  him  for 
some  years  to  come,  but  the  teacher,  by  following  system- 
atically the  unfolding  of  each  thought  in  its  relation  to 
the  developing  mind,  will  have  taught  the  child  effectually 
how  to  think  and  the  rules  of  the  process  may  easily  be 
learned  at  a  later  date.  Nor  should  it  be  forgotten  that 
in  teaching  the  child  after  this  maimer  his  mind  and  heart 
are  being  fed  on  the  food  supplied  by  the  Heavenly 
Father.  It  is  time  that  we  were  done  with  the  old  fallacy 
which  led  many  well-meaning  teachers  to  feed  children's 
souls  on  words  and  word  drills  at  a  time  when  their 
imaginations  and  their  hearts  were  famishing  for  want 
of  real  food. 

Thomas  Edwabd  Shields. 


CUKRENT  EVENTS 

THE    CATHOLIC    UNIVERSITY    OP    AMERICA 

The  distinction  conferred  on  the  Church  in  America  by  Pope 
Pius  X  in  elevating  three  of  our  prelates  to  the  dignity  of  the 
Cardinalate  has  called  forth  a  universal  expression  of  gratitude 
and  satisfaction.  The  Catholic  University  rejoices  in  a  very 
special  sense  over  these  elevations  to  the  Sacred  College,  for 
two  of  the  Cardinals-Elect  are  members  of  its  Board  of  Trus- 
tees, and  the  retiring  Apostolic  Delegate  has  been  during  his 
residence  in  the  Capital  its  counsellor  and  constant  friend. 

On  the  evening  of  November  9  Monsignor  Falconio  paid  a 
farewell  visit  to  the  University.  A  reception  was  tendered  to 
him  in  the  Assembly  Room,  McMahon  Hall,  by  the  faculty  and 
students.  His  address  on  that  occasion  was  a  fervid  expres- 
sion of  his  affection  for  the  University,  and  of  his  conviction 
that  it  would  in  the  future  more  than  realize  the  hopes  for  its 
success  entertained  by  its  saintly  founder,  Pope  Leo  XIII. 
After  the  reception,  the  Cardinal-Elect  was  the  guest  of  honor 
at  a  banquet  given  by  the  Rt.  Rev.  Rector  of  the  University. 
The  faculty,  the  presidents  of  the  aflSliated  colleges,  the  Very 
Rev.  Monsignor  Cerretti,  Auditor  of  the  Apostolic  Delegation, 
and  other  distinguished  clerics  and  laymen  were  present. 

Rt.  Rev.  Monsignor  Shahan  sailed  from  New  York  on  Novem- 
ber 14  in  the  company  of  the  Cardinals-Elect,  Falconio  and 
Farley,  for  a  visit  to  the  Eternal  City.  He  will  assist  at  the 
ceremonies  of  investiture  of  the  new  Cardinals,  and  will  return 
to  America  in  December. 

Doctor  Thomas  C.  Carrigan,  of  the  Departments  of  Law  and 
Education,  has  been  appointed  Acting-Dean  of  the  School  of 
Law  for  the  remainder  of  the  scholastic  year.  The  office  of 
Dean  was  made  vacant  on  November  6,  by  the  sudden  death  of 
Judge  William  C.  Robinson,  LL.D. 

A   NOTABLE   FOUNDATION. 

On  November  14,  Sir  James  J.  Ryan,  a  prominent  business 
man  of  Philadelphia  and  intimate  friend  of  Cardinal  Gibbons, 


CuREENT  Events.  951 

donated  the  sum  of  |50,000  to  the  Catholic  University  to  estab- 
lish a  chair  in  the  School  of  Sacred  Sciences  for  the  study  of 
the  Old  Testament.  The  foundation  will  be  known  as  the 
"James  J.  Ryan  and  Hannah  Cusack  Ryan  Chair  of  Sacred 
Scripture."  The  generous  donor  has  long  been  known  for  his 
extensive  benefactions.  In  recognition  of  them  and  other 
services  to  the  Church  he  has  been  decorated  by  the  Holy  See 
with  Knighthood  in  the  Order  of  St.  Gregory. 

NEW   CATHOLIC   COLLEGE   FOR   WOMEN 

The  movement  to  establish  a  Catholic  college  for  women  in 
the  city  of  Chicago  has  met  with  general  approval  and  support. 
The  project  is  undertaken  by  the  Sisters  of  Charity  of  the 
Blessed  Virgin  Mary,  whose  motherhouse  is  located  at  Du- 
buque, Iowa,  and  who  have  been  for  many  years  one  of  the  most 
flourishing  teaching  communities  in  the  central  and  western 
parts  of  this  country.  The  Superioress  of  the  congregation 
received  on  September  26  the  following  encouraging  letter  from 
His  Grace,  the  Most  Rev.  Archbishop  Quigley  : 

Chancery  Office, 

Chicago,  111., 
Rev.  Mother  Superioress,  Sept.  26,  1911. 

Sisters  of  Charity,  B.V.M.,  Chicago. 
Dear  Rev.  Mother : 

I  have  heard  with  satisfaction  that  the  Sisters  of  Charity 
are  preparing  to  establish  a  college  for  women  in  the  city  of 
Chicago.  An  institution  of  this  kind  is  greatly  needed  in 
Chicago,  as  there  are  many  Catholic  women  following  univer- 
sity courses,  with  a  view  of  obtaining  degrees,  in  non-Catholic 
colleges  and  universities. 

The  work,  therefore,  has  my  entire  sympathy  and  fullest  ap- 
probation. This  work  needs  only  to  be  mentioned  to  our  Cath- 
olic people  to  be  appreciated  and  supported.  I  feel  confident 
that  the  many  Catholics  of  our  great  city,  and  particularly  the 
Catholic  societies  of  women,  will  give  it  encouragement  and 
financial  assistance. 
Wishing  God's  blessing  upon  the  underaking,  I  remain, 
Yours  truly  in  Xto., 

J.  E.  Quigley, 

Archbishop. 


952  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Six  of  the  sisters  of  the  community  who  will  be  assigned  to 
the  faculty  of  the  new  college  are  at  present  enrolled  among 
the  students  of  Sisters'  College,  at  the  Catholic  University. 
They  are  candidates  for  degrees  and  are  specializing  in  the 
Schools  of  Philosophy,  Letters,  and  Science. 

CONVENTION  OP  CATHOLIC  YOUNG  MEN 

The  thirty-seventh  annual  convention  of  the  Catholic  Young 
Men's  National  Union,  held  in  October  at  Washington,  D.  C, 
marked  an  important  advance  in  the  history  of  the  organiza- 
tion. There  are  now  104  societies  and  clubs  in  the  Union.  Ten 
of  these  are  in  the  archdiocese  of  Baltimore,  where  a  diocesan 
union  was  organized  last  summer.  Arrangements  have  been 
made  to  establish  another  union  in  the  diocese  of  Wilmington, 
and  it  is  expected  that  similar  steps  will  be  taken  in  a  short 
time  in  the  dioceses  of  Trenton  and  Harrisburg. 

President  William  C.  Sullivan  in  his  annual  report  said  that 
the  Union  was  in  far  better  condition  than  the  most  sanguine 
imagined  possible  a  year  ago.  It  is  successfully  conducting 
at  present  a  national  essay  contest,  a  lecture  bureau,  a  literary 
exchange  and  bureau,  interdiocesan  debating  tournaments, 
study  clubs,  and  it  is  encouraging  athletics.  In  urging  a  reor- 
ganization of  the  literary  committee,  he  declared  that  attention 
should  be  given  to  public  morals  particularly  in  relation  to 
theatrical  productions,  newspapers,  magazines  and  periodicals, 
fiction  and  historical  works.  He  said  also  that  there  are  468 
Catholic  athletes  registered  in  the  Catholic  Amateur  League 
which  the  National  Union  directs. 

The  theme  assigned  for  the  national  essay  contest  was, 
^'The  Church  of  All  Nations."  The  board  of  judges  consisted  of 
Rev.  Henry  C.  Schuyler,  Mr.  Martin  I.  J.  Griffin  and  Mr.  John 
J.  O'Shea,  all  of  Philadelphia.  John  F.  Everling,  of  Philadel- 
phia, won  first  prize,  a  set  of  the  Catholic  Encyclopedia ;  David 
A.  Newton,  Jersey  City,  second  prize,  a  set  of  Irving's  works; 
John  J.  Kehoe,  Conshohocken,  Pa.,  third  prize,  a  gold  watch. 
Two  special  prizes  were  given  to  Joseph  A.  Cummings,  of 
Brooklyn,  N.  Y.,  and  Francis  B.  Condon,  of  Central  Falls, 
R.  L 

The  following  resolutions  were  adopted  by  the  National 
Union : 


CuBRENT  Events.  953 

"Whereas,  It  has  been  deemed  opportune  by  Our  Most 
Holy  Father,  Pope  Pius  X,  to  raise  his  voice  in  the  interest  o.f 
universal  peace;  be  it 

"Resolved,  That  we  join  our  prayers  to  Guy  Most  Holy 
Father's  counsel,  that  the  God  of  Peace  may  influence  the  na- 
tions to  observe  the  laws  of  justice  in  their  mutual  relations. 

"Whereas,  James  Cardinal  Gibbons,  Archbishop  of  Balti- 
more, has,  through  the  favor  of  God,  completed  the  fiftieth  year 
of  his  priesthood  and  the  twenty-fifth  of  his  Cardinalate ;  be  it 

"Resolved,  That  we,  representatives  of  the  Catholic  young 
men  of  the  United  States,  extend  our  respectful  congratula- 
tions to  His  Eminence. 

"Whereas,  The  continually  increasing  immigration  from 
countries  traditionally  Catholic  constitutes  a  grievous  problem 
for  both  Church  and  country,  that  these  immigrants  be  safe- 
guarded in  their  faith  and  helped  to  right  citizenship ;  and 

"Whereas,  This  National  Union  of  Catholic  Young  Men  ac- 
cepts its  responsibility  in  charity  of  caring  for  the  young  men 
included  in  this  immigration ;  be  it 

"Resolved,  That  this  Union  pledges  its  best  effort,  in  accord- 
ance with  its  motto,  ^God  and  Our  Neighbor,'  to  help  these 
young  men  to  proper  religious  and  social  environment,  and  by 
placing  every  means  of  instruction  and  recreation  at  the  dis- 
posal of  this  Union  and  its  constituent  parts  aid  these,  our 
brothers,  to  those  privileges  of  religious  and  civil  prosperity 
that  we  enjoy. 

"Whereas,  The  results  already  obtained  by  various  local 
unions  in  caring  for  the  school  boy  and  the  young  working  boy 
as  to  his  instruction  and  recreation  have  been  definite  and 
far-reaching;  be  it 

"Resolved,  That  this  National  Union  pledges  its  aid  and  en- 
couragement to  all  such  efforts,  and  urges  an  ever-increasing 
attention  on  the  part  of  local  organizations  to  opportunities 
within  their  individual  reach ;  that  every  society  affiliated  with 
this  Union  urge  upon  its  individual  members  the  propriety  and 
almost  the  necessity  of  joining  the  men's  religious  societies 
connected  with  their  parishes,  such  as  the  Holy  Name  Society 
and  the  Men's  League ;  that  we  affirm  and  repeat  the  resolutions 
favorably  acted  upon  at  former  conventions  relating  to  the 
support  and  encouragement  of  Catholic  schools  and  the  Cath- 


954  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

olic  press ;  that  we  urge  both  individual  and  concerted  support 
of  the  movements  to  purge  the  stage  of  all  questionable  per- 
formances. 

"Whereas,  Having  before  us  the  Report  to  this  convention 
of  the  Alliance  Board  regarding  the  steps  taken  by  the  Ameri- 
can Federation  of  Catholic  Societies  to  establish  a  national 
organization  which  will  offer  to  the  Catholic  young  men  social 
and  athletic  inducements  with  Catholic  association  and  sur- 
roundings; be  it 

"Resolved,  That  the  American  Federation  of  Catholic  So- 
cieties be  earnestly  urged  to  give  concerted  effort,  along  with 
the  Young  Men's  National  Union  and  the  Young  Men's  Insti- 
tue,  through  their  valuable  influence  with  the  clergy  and  laity, 
to  develop  in  the  various  parishes  a  sentiment  to  assist  the 
promulgation  of  these  two-named  young  men's  societies." 

Mr.  William  C.  Sullivan,  of  Washington,  D.  C,  was  reelected 
President  of  the  Union,  and  the  Rev.  Joseph  M.  Corrigan,  of 
Philadelphia,  Spiritual  Director.  The  other  officers  elected  are : 
First  Vice-President,  Hubert  J.  Rowe,  of  Newark;  Second 
Vice-President,  William  H.  Gallagher,  of  Wilmington;  Third 
Vice-President,  Leo  A.  Kirschner,  of  Toledo ;  Secretary,  J.  Con- 
nor French,  of  Trenton;  Treasurer,  Leo  A.  Smith,  of  Phila- 
delphia. Members  of  the  Executive  Board:  Rev.  James  C. 
Comiskey,  of  Dover,  Del.;  Thomas  B.  McNamee,  of  Washing- 
ton ;  John  A.  Moran,  of  Newark ;  Charles  Gerhard,  of  Philadel- 
phia ;  William  R.  Foley,  of  Brooklyn ;  B.  J.  Miller,  of  Cleveland/^ 
John  J.  Kehoe,  of  Conshohocken,  Pa.;  James  J.  Doherty,  of 
Trenton;  W.  V.  Lyons,  of  Baltimore,  and  James  Roche,  of 
Alexandria,  Va. 

The  National  Union  decided  to  hold  the  next  annual  meeting 
at  Brooklyn,  N.  Y.  Rev.  Augustine  Hackert,  S.J.,  of  Toledo, 
was  named  as  the  delegate  to  the  next  convention  of  the 
American  Federation  of  Catholic  Societies  at  Louisville  in 
1912. 

EFFECT  OF  HIGHER  ENTRANCE  REQUIREMENTS 

The  higher  entrance  requirements  for  the  professional  and 
technical  schools  of  the  University  of  Missouri,  which  became 
operative  at  the  opening  of  the  present  school  year,  have  al- 
ready shown  a  marked  effect  on  the  registration  and  distribu- 


Current  Events.  955 

tion  of  students,  according  to  the  New  York  Evening  Post 
of  November  12.  At  present  only  those  students  who  can  show 
four  years  of  high  school  training  and  at  least  two  years  of 
work  in  a  standard  college  are  admitted  to  the  following 
schools:  Law,  Medicine,  Journalism,  Education,  Civil  Engi- 
neering, Mechanical  Engineering,  and  Chemical  Engineering. 
The  rule  has  not  yet  been  applied  to  the  College  of  Agriculture, 
which  still  admits  graduates  of  accredited  high  school  courses. 
It  is  said  that  the  growth  in  the  enrolment  has  been  checked 
by  the  adoption  of  these  higher  standards.  Losses  are  shown 
this  year  in  the  Schools  of  Law  and  Engineering,  and  there  is  a 
slight  loss  in  Journalism.  The  Schools  of  Education  and  Medi- 
cine had  previously  enforced  the  same  requirement,  and  have 
begun  to  show  a  tendency  to  regain  their  lost  ground  numeri- 
cally. However,  the  new  requirements  led  to  an  increase  in 
the  College  of  Arts  and  Sciences,  which  combined  with  the 
normal  increase  in  the  College  of  Agriculture  makes  the  en- 
rolment of  the  University  about  three  thousand,  a  slight  in- 
crease over  the  registration  of  last  year. 

A   DISTINGUISHED    CATHOLIC    DIPLOMAT 

The  Honorable  Herbert  Goldsmith  Squiers,  LL.D.,  of  Wash- 
ington, D.  C,  who  died  in  London  on  October  19  after  a  long 
illness,  was  a  distinguished  Catholic  member  of  our  diplo- 
matic service.  Mr.  Squiers  was  born  in  Canada  in  1859.  He 
received  his  education  in  this  country,  studying  at  the  Can- 
andaigua  Academy,  the  Minnesota  Military  Institute,  the  Mary- 
land Agricultural  College,  and  the  United  States  Artillery 
School,  where  he  graduated  in  1880.  He  served  with  distinc- 
tion in  the  later  Indian  Campaigns,  and  in  1890  was  made  lieu- 
tenant of  the  Seventh  Cavalry.  In  1891  he  resigned  his  lieu- 
tenancy to  enter  the  diplomatic  service.  Under  the  adminis- 
tration of  President  Roosevelt  he  acted  as  Minister  to  Cuba, 
and  later  accepted  a  similar  appointment  in  Panama. 

Mr.  Squiers  was  for  a  time  instructor  in  military  science 
and  tactics  at  St.  John's  College,  Fordham.  In  1906  he  re- 
ceived the  honorary  degree  of  LL.D  from  that  institution.  He 
was  in  recent  years  a  benefactor  of  the  Catholic  University  of 
America  where  he  maintained  two  scholarships  for  deserving 
lay  students. 


956  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

GROWTH    OF   THE    WINONA   SEMINARY 

On  Tuesday  afternoon,  October  24,  ground  was  broken  on 
the  campus  of  Winona  Seminary,  Winona,  Minn.,  for  the  erec- 
tion of  a  new  class  and  lecture  hall.  Appropriate  ceremonies 
marked  the  occasion.  The  first  shovelful  of  ground  was  lifted 
by  the  Rev.  F.  T.  English,  who,  in  the  absence  of  the  Rt.  Rev. 
Bishop,  addressed  the  Sisters  and  students  on  the  happy  in- 
ception of  the  new  undertaking.  The  following  was  the  order 
of  exercises : 

1.  Opening  Words  and  Lifting  of  the  First  Ground.  Rev. 
F.  T.  English. 

2.  Psalm,  "Nisi  Dominus."    The  Glee  Club  aiid  Choir. 

3.  Psalm,  "Laudato  Dominum."    The  Glee  Club  and  Choir. 

4.  Prayer  for  the  New  Undertaking.    Rev.  T.  F.  O'Connor. 

5.  Hymn,  "Holy  God."    The  Seminary  Choral  Club. 

The  Winona  Seminary  is  one  of  our  most  successful  Catholic 
colleges  for  women.  The  courses  offered  there,  particularly 
those  leading  to  the  bachelor's  degree  in  arts  and  music,  have 
been  favorably  recognized  by  leading  colleges  and  universities. 
It  is  gratifying  to  learn  that  more  spacious  accommodations 
are  demanded  by  the  increasing  number  of  students  in  the 
higher  courses.  The  new  building  will  be  pushed  rapidly  to 
completion.  It  will  provide  class  and  lecture  halls,  a  thorough 
laboratory  equipment  for  the  study  of  the  natural  sciences, 
and  a  new  conservatory  of  music.  The  latter  will  contain 
seventy  practice  rooms  for  piano,  voice,  and  violin,  besides 
concert  rooms  and  studio  apartments.  The  cost  of  the  new 
structure  is  estimated  at  about  |150,000. 

HIGH    SCHOOL    FRATERNITIES    ABOLISHED 

The  faculty  of  Horace  Mann  High  School,  an  institution 
affiliated  with  Columbia  University,  New  York,  has  announced 
its  determination  to  abolish  secret  societies  in  the  school.  An 
order  has  been  issued  which  calls  for  the  disbandment  before 
1913  of  the  two  fraternities.  Phi  Sigma  and  Delta  Sigma  and 
the  two  sororities.  Delta  Nu,  and  Theta  Chi,  in  which  it  is 
believed  the  majority  of  the  students  have  been  enrolled. 


CuEBENT  Events.  957 

HOLY   CROSS    ACADEMY — DUNBAETON 

One  of  the  most  interesting  lecture  courses  ever  given  at  the 
Academy  was  begun  in  October  by  Dr.  Thomas  0.  Carrigan, 
of  the  Catholic  University,  on  "What  Women  Should  Know 
of  Law."  Although  the  subject  sounds  formidable  for  young 
women,  the  lectures  have  proved  very  attractive  and  Doctor 
Carrigan's  audience  has  steadily  increased  in  numbers.  In  the 
future  he  will  meet  his  pupils,  now  too  numerous  for  a  class- 
room, every  Friday  morning  in  the  General  Assembly  Hall. 

The  Seniors  are  enjoying  the  privilege  of  attending  the  public 
lectures  of  the  Catholic  University  on  Thursday  afternoon. 

The  teachers  and  pupils  of  the  Academy  deeply  appreciated 
the  farewell  visit  of  Monsignor  Falconio,  made  shortly  before 
his  departure  for  Rome.  Other  visitors  in  November  were: 
Rt.  Rev.  Monsignor  Shahan,  Very  Rev.  Monsignor  Cerretti, 
acting-Delegate;  Rev.  William  H.  Ketchem,  of  the  Bureau  of 
Catholic  Indian  Missions ;  Rev.  Doctor  Fletcher,  of  Holy  Cross 
Cathedral,  Baltimore;  two  former  pupils,  daughters  of  Presi- 
dent Gomez,  of  Cuba,  with  their  husbands,  Lieut.  Colonel 
Coello  and  Doctor  Mencia.  The  latter  were  accompanied  by 
Senor  Rivero,  the  Cuban  Minister,  and  his  daughters,  who  are 
pupils  of  the  school. 

Patrick  J.  McCormack. 


REVIEWS  AND  NOTICES 

Report  of  the  Proceedings  and  Addresses  of  the  Eighth  Annual 
Meeting  of  the  Catholic  Educational  Association,  Chi- 
cago, Illinois,  June  26-29,  1911,  Columbus,  Ohio,  Catholic 
Educational  Association,  pp.  viii-o03. 
This  volume  is  in  every  way  equal  to  its  predecessors.  It 
forms  the  eighth  volume  of  a  series  of  great  value  to  all  edu- 
cators and  of  such  special  importance  in  Catholic  educational 
literature  as  to  demand  a  place  in  all  of  our  schools.  ^^In  the 
deliberations  of  the  Chicago  Convention  special  consideration 
was  directed  to  several  subjects  of  general  interest  and  of 
great  importance.  The  first  was  the  attitude  of  a  certain  educa- 
tional and  financial  institution  towards  religious  education  and 
the  general  educational  interests  of  the  country.  As  a  result  of 
the  study  and  discussion  of  a  careful  presentation  of  the  facts, 
the  conviction  was  shared  by  all  that  a  strong  tendency  toward 
monopoly  of  education  exists,  and  that  methods  and  systems 
which  have  prevailed  in  American  industrial  life  should  not  be 
introduced  into  the  field  of  education.  A  second  subject  was 
that  of  the  curriculum.  The  need  of  coordination  in  our  work 
has  been  felt  for  many  years,  and  the  lack  of  a  suitable  plan 
of  study  has  been  the  cause  of  much  confusion.  The  difificulty 
of  formulating  any  comprehensive  plan  has  been  so  great  that 
educators  hesitate  to  undertake  the  work.  It  is  the  opinion 
of  all  that  something  should  be  done  to  give  more  unity  and 
consistency  to  our  endeavors,  and  the  determination  to  find 
a  way  to  bring  about  a  better  coordination  was  one  of  the 
significant  notes  of  the  Convention.  An  interesting  and  in- 
structive session  of  the  Convention  dealt  with  the  problem  of 
the  affiliation  of  Catholic  schools  with  secular  institutions. 
The  report  is  a  new  evidence  of  the  growing  spirit  of  unity 
and  cooperation  that  now  characterizes  the  educational  work 
of  the  Church  in  the  United  States." 

This  passage,  taken  from  the  Introduction,  gives  sufficient 
indication  of  the  scope  and  value  of  the  discussions.  The 
Review  has  already  published  several  of  the  papers  read  at 
the  Convention.    They  should  serve  to  give  our  readers  further 


Eeviews  and  Notices.  959 

evidence  of  the  character  of  the  work  which  the  Catholic  Edu- 
cational Association  has  been  doing.  The  results  of  the  dis- 
cussions in  the  Chicago  meeting  are  summed  up  in  the  follow- 
ing six  resolutions: 

"1.  Whereas,  the  Catholic  Educational  Association  recog- 
nizes as  its  mission  the  furthering  of  Catholic  education  under 
the  guidance  of  the  Church;  Be  it  resolved,  That  we  hereby 
pledge  to  His  Holiness,  the  one  accredited  and  infallible 
teacher  of  truth,  our  fealty,  our  service,  and  our  devotion. 

"2.  Whereas,  the  Carnegie  Foundation  for  the  Advancement 
of  Teaching  is  a  private  educational  agency  which  is  attempting 
to  exercise  an  undue  and  irresponsible  supervision  over  the 
institutions  of  higher  learning  in  this  country,  which  aims  at 
de-Christianizing  American  education,  which  is,  therefore,  a 
menace  to  our  intellectual  and  moral  well-being  as  a  people; 
Be  it  resolved.  That  this  Association  deprecate  the  illiberal 
and  sectarian  attitude  of  the  Foundation  toward  American 
universities  and  colleges  of  standing  and  established  repute. 

"3.  Whereas,  the  desire  of  Catholic  teachers  to  obtain  ad- 
vanced training  is  a  healthy  sign  of  progress;  Be  it  resolved, 
That  in  the  judgment  of  this  association  the  interests  of  Cath- 
olic education  can  be  safeguarded  against  the  prevailing  natu- 
ralistic tendencies  only  by  such  instruction  being  had  under 
Catholic  auspices. 

"4.  Whereas,  excellent  work  is  being  done  in  the  field  of 
Catholic  secondary  education.  Be  it  resolved.  That  this  asso- 
ciation recognize  and  approve  the  development  of  the  Catholic 
high  school  movement. 

"5.  Whereas,  grave  danger  confronts  our  Catholic  people 
in  the  unsound  economic  and  sociological  theories  of  the  day 
and  in  the  irreligious  tendencies  of  modern  educational  meth- 
ods; Be  it  resolved,  That  this  association  urge  upon  Catholic 
teachers  the  necessity  of  directing  their  pupils  to  Catholic 
institutions  of  higher  learning. 

"6.  Whereas,  the  university  extension  movement,  the  reading 
circle  movement,  and  the  Catholic  summer  school  movement, 
constitute  an  educational  fact  of  great  importance  and  promise, 
in  so  far  as  they  supplement  the  work  of  Catholic  schools, 
academies  and  colleges ;  Be  it  resolved.  That  we  recognize  and 
commend  these  movements  to  the  Catholic  public." 

Thomas  Edward  Shields. 


960  The  Catholic  Educational  Eeview 

Padagogische    Grundfragen.      Von  Dr.  Franz  Krus,  S.  J.  Inns- 
bruck ;  New  York :  Fr.  Pustet  &  Co.    1911.     Seiten  450. 

While  recognizing  that  pedagogy  is  a  progressive  science 
which  profits  by  every  real  advance  in  thought  and  culture,  the 
author  of  Padagogische  Grundfragen  believes  that  most  of 
the  confusion  in  the  educational  world  at  present  can  be  at- 
tributed to  a  regrettable  disregard  of  the  traditional  principles 
on  which  a  sound  educational  theory  should  rest.  He  begins 
this  comprehensive  work,  consequently,  with  a  treatise  on  the 
meaning  of  education  and  places  therein  many  sane  warnings 
against  those  so-called  systems  and  schemes  of  training  which 
usurp  the  name  of  education.  He  is  careful  to  define  the  end 
and  scope  of  Christian  education  and  to  distinguish  it  from 
many  modern  notions  that  have  robbed  the  science  of  its  real 
meaning. 

The  chief  educational  factors  and  agencies,  such  as  the  home, 
the  church,  institutions  in  general  and  schools  in  particular, 
are  considered  with  the  view  of  promoting  their  better  co- 
ordination and  cooperation.  Many  other  questions,  such  as  moral 
and  physical  education,  the  training  of  the  intellect,  will  and 
emotional  faculties,  manual  training  and  religious,  in  the 
stricter  sense,  are  treated  with  a  fulness  and  breadth  of  view 
that  is  very  commendable.  Incidentally,  Dr.  Krus  opens  up 
many  interesting  discussions  in  these  chapters;  one,  for  ex- 
ample, is  in  regard  to  the  value  of  experimental  psychology 
applied  to  education.  We  must  thank  him  for  his  clear  expo- 
sition of  the  principles  which  are  to  guide  the  Christian  student 
in  the  sciences  of  pedagogy  as  well  as  in  psychology,  and  for 
his  classification  of  many  important  writings  and  views.  His 
citations  from  Catholic  authors,  ancient  and  modern,  and  refer- 
ences to  Catholic  works,  especially  in  German,  will  be  very 
much  appreciated  by  the  Catholic  student  of  these  fundamental 
questions  in  pedagogy. 

Patrick  J.  McCormick. 


CATHC 1^^  ^g^  ^22  ^2  SMC  ^ 

Catholic  Educational  Review 
BCZ-0797